Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy
Transcription
Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy
VOL. 61, NO. 1 JANUARY, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited and Published by: G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: Mason Inside Front Cover Bible Questions Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Contending for the Faith 1 BABYLON IS FALLEN! (Bro. Thomas) < 3 SECOND VOYAGE TO AUSTRALIA (Bro. Roberts) Part 25 9 "Judge Not, That Ye Be Not Judged" (R.R.) 14 JUDAS AND JESUS (Part 2) 15 What Was Christ "Purified" From? (R.R.) 21 IN THE IMAGE OF GOD MADE HE HIM 22 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY 26 December Answers Inside Back Cover We ore onxious to send Hie Berean FREE to any desiring if that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH l n 8 d e Front Ecclesial News MASON, Tex. 76856—Christadelphian Hall, Hwy. 386—Mem. 11 a m ; Class 2 pm. Bro. W. Edwards, Ranch Rte., Harper, Tex. 78631; Ph. (512) 864-3064. OUR Labor Day meeting in September was well attended by a good representation from all of the Texas ecclesias. Our bro. Don Newcomer of the Houston ecclesia gave the word of exhortation at the Memorial service. The words of Truth brought to our hearing were very strengthening and upbuilding. We are very thankful to our Heavenly Father for the work and labor put forth by our brethren. May we have the wisdom to hold fast faithfully until the return of Christ. We are sorry to report the falling asleep of our bro. J.E. (Ellie) Eastman. He had reached the good age of 88 years, and had been quite active throughout his lifetime. He was laid to rest in the Wagram cemetery near his home, on Dec. 22, 1972, to await the return of the Master. We will greatly miss the association of our brother in the Truth. He leaves his sorrowing sister-wife Kate, who is presently in the Anna Lee Rest Home in Mason, Texas. _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ —bro. Bill Edwards Bible Questions Identify the BOOK (5 books are omitted) ^. Elements melt with fervent heat.XWhatsoever things are true. Χ Ο Lord, revive Thy work! j/. Balaam & Balak. p. Thorn in the flesh. #. Receive him not into your house.^f Gourd & worm.JS. Queen of Sheba. X Let no man judge you in meat or drink. Uf. Thou, Bethlehem Ephratah. if. Go forth to him without the camp. 12. Dare any of you go to law? \i. All serve Lord with one consent. 14. Diotrophes loveth preeminence. j£. Lord God will do nothing. 16. Comfort one another with these words. Vf. Chosen to salvation thru belief of the Truth. ϊέ. Rose of Sharon. yi. Having food & raiment, be therewith content. 2 ^ Thus saith Cyrus. 21. Hating garment spotted by flesh, jj* Fall of Jericho. 23. Amraphel. jjrf. Mene, Mene. X Law of leper, ^tf. Ο foolish.. yf. Let patience have her perfect work. 2& I will shake all nations. 29. All things work together for good. 30. There is no fear in love. 31". Delilah. 32. Bare our sins in his own body. #J. Revolt of Absolom. ,34*. Demas hath forsaken me. 3*£ Messenger of Covenant. ?6.3 score & 10. '&f. I left thee in Crete .^38.2 mountains of brass. 39". Paul the aged. #f. The unity of the Spirit. 41. Saviors on Mt. Zion.iSC Song of Moses. $&. Avenge blood of J e z r e e l ^ . Marriage in Cana. 45; Man of sorrows. Jtf. Multitudes, multitudes! ftf. Mother of Harlots. 4ff. Virtuous woman. 4ff. Valley of dry bones, ψί. Jesus in Egypt. j>i. Vanity of vanities. 0. Josiah. 53! Rich man & Lazarus. 54. Boaz. 5£. Zipporah. J56T. Haman. ψί. Sanballatv5*. James killed.^. Bildad. JB6C Baruch.^. Goliath. (Write correct question number beside name of each book) Gen.? Exo.r:v ^1 Kgs. \i 2 Kgs. Lev. 2$ Ezra?Num.1* UehM Deut. fe Josh.i I Esth. 2 Jdgs. Ruth5 Λ Sam. Eccl. 5 ! Song |£ Isa.^^ Jer.to Eze.^ Dan.2 2 ! Job z> 1 Hos. 3 Psa. " Joel %% Prov.h \ Amos^ J • Obadun Jonah 7 Mic. 10 •?Hab.^^ Zeph.13 Hag. a Zech3^ 5?iAal.i^";' Matt.f 1 PetJ2. 2 PetΛ 1 Ths. « 1 Jn. •Γ/Λ Ths. i ? 2 Jn. • 1 Tim.? 1 Cor.^ 1*1 Tim.^1 3 Jn.h Titus 3 ? -jiJude 2 CorA Rev. ^'Phlm.! 7 Gal.? o Heb. Eph. } James. 17 £hlp. y\ Luke-: John1^^ Acts $'$ -Col. I i **. •·'·. EDITORIAL Contending for the Faith "Behold, ye fast for strife and contention, and to smite with the fist of wickedness. Ye fast not this day so as to make your voice to be heard on high"—Isa. 58:4 AT Mt. Sinai, the people of Israel, under the guidance of Moses, became established as a nation, and received a system of religion designed to govern the individual lives of the people, and eventually to lead them to Christ. The latter days of Israel's commonwealth heralded the arrival of the Messiah, but only a remnant had sufficient faith to recognize the days in which they lived. The rest drew nigh to God with their mouth and honored Him with their lips, but their heart was far from Him. However, the Gospel, in all its fulness, was preached to Israel, but in their blind attachment to Moses and the prophets, they failed to observe the fulfilment of the Law in Jesus. Therefore, said Paul— "It was necessary that the Word of God should first have been spoken to you: but seeing ye put it from you, and judge yourselves unworthy of everlasting life, lo, we turn to the Gentiles/'—Acts 13:46. Thus, the way of salvation was opened to the Gentiles, and now, as far as can be determined, we find ourselves in the latter days of the Gentiles. As we mentioned, there was a faithful group to welcome Jesus at his first appearing, so there is a faithful group who are now watching and waiting for his second appearing. But even so this group is waiting patiently, the question of Jesus comes to our minds: "When the Son of man cometh, shall he find the Faith on the earth?" If Jesus is to find the Faith when he comes, it will depend upon the action of the small group as to whether they are giving heed to the warning issued to them by Jesus and the apostles. Paul warns— "That in the last days perilous times shall come. '"—2 Tim. 3:1. All we have to do today is to look around us, and we will discover that the words of Paul are accurately descriptive of the age in which we are living. One of the ever-impending dangers by which we are surrounded is that we can easily become involved and partake of some of the forms of godlessness with which the world is steeped without being conscious of it. In our endeavor to maintain what we consider to be sound teaching, we may become over-zealous, and develop a condition similar to Israel, of whom Paul said— "For they have a zeal of God, but not according to knowledge. For they being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves unto the righteousness of God."—Rom. 10:2-3. 1973 Berean 1 It is possible that in our zeal to establish our own righteousness, we may form a strong opinion based upon what we may conclude is a logical deduction. But there is great danger in forcing upon the Brotherhood an issue that is based upon what we may think is a logical deduction, instead of depending upon the direct Word of God. Ο that one might come from God in these closing days, and call the Household together and remind them, as the prophet did Israel: "I desire MERCY, and not sacrifice; and the KNOWLEDGE OF GOD more than burnt offerings"—Hos. 0:6. Another prophet brings a message from God to Israel that is included in those things written for our instruction— "He hath showed thee, Ο man, what is good; and what doth the Lord require of thee, but to do justly, and to love mercy, and to walk humbly with thy God"(Mic. 6:8). Apparently some have read this verse too quickly, for a teaching is being spread abroad in which we are asked to show no mercy to certain ones who transgress one of God's laws. Is it possible that they have not read the 8th chapter of John? Here is recorded the case of a woman guilty of adultery, and the leaders of the people bring her to Jesus, and remind him that under the Law of Moses she should be stoned to death: but what do you say? The answer of Jesus should make every one of us stop and think, not once, not twice, but a thousand times. Here it is in v. 7 — "He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone at her.*' From what is being circulated in the Brotherhood, it would appear that there are some who think they have no sin, for they are trying to legislate for the whole Body by passing resolutions much of which is not supported by the direct Word of God. True, they are quoting Scripture in some cases, but it is being misquoted. Let us digress a moment, and ask a question. Who taught us the Truth of the Gospel? If we are honest, we must admit that brother John Thomas was our teacher and we learned the Truth from his writings in Elpis Israel and Eureka. Then came brother Roberts who simplified the work in Christendom Astray. For myself, who learned the Truth from these two servants of the most High God in 1918, I thank God for my teachers. But a new generation has come upon the scene, and young brethren are trying to tell us that we do not require the writings of brethren Thomas and Roberts; all we require is the Bible. It is presumption to say that we do not need ALL the help that God has mercifully provided. The record of our pioneer brethren is complete. Their teachings have stood the test of time, the Christadelphian Body owes its present existence to the fact that these two brethren brought the Truth to light in these last days. It might have been done by others, but it wasn't. They were the means God used. Let us ponder these things deeply, and not be wise in our OWn COnceitS.—Editor. 1973 Berean 2 Babylon Is Fallen! "And another (second) angel followed, saying, Fallen, fallen hath Babylon, the Great City, because she hath made all nations drink of the wine of the raging of her fornication"—Rev 14:8 BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS I HAVE styled this Angel the "Second" because the one that succeeds it is called "a Third." The First Angel (which must, of course, precede the 2nd) is the messengerhood engaged in "drawing the bow/' or sounding the Good News of the Aion in mid-heaven (vs. 6-7), after the manifestation of the Son of Deity on Mt. Zion (vs. 1-5). The 2nd Angel is constituted of the party of action by which the Roman Question can alone be solved. The purpose of their mission is the overthrow of Babylon, whose fall is proclaimed in the indefinite tense, which declares the event without specifying the exact time. This, however, is certain: the Roman Babylon will not fall until the proclamation in mid-heaven shall have been announced, saying— "Come out of her, My people, that ye be not partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues. "For her sins have reached until the heaven, and the Deity remembers her iniquities" (Rev. 18:5). The people here addressed are the Jews in Rome, and the 10s of 1000s in the Kingdom of the Beast, who, if they remain in her, are warned that they will be treated as the enemies of the Great Shepherd of the Sheep. The initiation of the 2nd Angel judgment is synchronous with the 7th Vial, in the outpouring of which (Rev. 16: 19)— "Great Babylon comes into remembrance before the Deity, to give unto her the cup of the wine of the fierceness of His wrath. *' The effect of this is the fall from which she never recovers, and which is proclaimed by the 2nd Angel. I have said that the 2nd Angelhood is constituted of the party of action. This party solves all questions beyond the ability of human governments to settle. It consists of the Spirit in cooperation with the Saints, who in Rev. 18:8 is styled "the Lord God," or Yahweh Elohim; in v. 20, the "Heaven," or "Holy Apostles and Prophets;" and in vs. 4, 6, 7, "My People." 1973 Berean 3 The Saints (to whom judgment is given under the whole heaven) in command of Judah and their allies, are the constituents of the Second Angel Power. It is their mission to give torment and sorrow to Babylon in a double proportion to the cruelties she has inflicted upon them, and not withdraw their hand till they have destroyed her from the earth. The Babylon whose fall is proclaimed by the Second Angel is the City consisting of Ten Parts, or Kingdoms (Rev. 11:13), whose Queen, as yet unwidowed, is the Mother of Harlots enthroned in Rome (Rev. 17:5, 18). This ch. 14:8 (which we are now considering) is the first place where the name "Babylon*' occurs in the Apocalypse; but, as we have seen, not the first place where it is alluded to. In Rev. 11:8 it is "styled spiritually Sodom and Egypt,'9 because its wickedness is equal to theirs, and the judgments decreed against it are as terrible and disastrous. She is as Sodom, for her fornication is raging. And as Egypt, for she had made all nations to drink of its wine. Hence the plagues of the Second Angel in all the fierceness of the wrath of God. The initiation of the Second Angel tormentation of the worshipers of the Beast and his Image is the inauguration of the Day of Revenges, when Yahweh whets His glittering sword, and His hand takes hold of judgment. It is the opening of the Hour of Judgment upon the rebellious goats, in which Yahweh, the Man of War, will render vengeance to His enemies, and reward them that hate Him. Some idea may be formed of this vengeful recompense from Deut. 32:42, in which He saith— "I will make Mine arrows drunk with blood, and My sword shall devour flesh; and that with the blood of the slain and of the captives, from the beginning of revenges upon the enemy." This will be (Dan. 12:1)— "A time of trouble such as never was since there was a nation to that same time." —the antitype of the great Pentecostian Day of Atonement, in which the trumpet of the Jubilee shall sound (Lev. 25:9). The Second and Third Angels of Rev. 14 are the executors of the " judgment written" in this *'Great Day of God Almighty" (Rev. 16:14)—a day in which an offering shall be made by fire to Yahweh unto the total and complete consumption of the apocalyptic Beasts, which, as the sin of the political world, shall be destroyed by fire and sword. The whole burnt offering of these Beasts is a grand condemnation in the flesh of the Sin-Powers. They are to be put to death by being slain with Yahweh's sword, and tormented with fire and brimstone in the burning lake, in the presence of the holy angels, or messengers, and in the presence of the Lamb, who kill and offer the sacrifice to the Eternal Power of the universe (Rev. 14:10; 19:20-21). But this "day of vengeance" in which the Great Shepherd (who is a Priest on his throne—Zee. 6:13) punishes the Goats, is also the "Year of His Redeemed" (Isa. 63:4). 1973 Berean 4 He is Redeemer of the two classes of mankind. These are: first, his "brethren" whom he has taken out from the nations for his Name (Acts 15:14); and secondly, the "many nations" who shall be joined to him as his people (Zee. 2:11). Of this second class are the 12 Tribes of the House of Jacob. The nation of Israel is to be the First-born, or chief son, of the national family, being the beloved nation for the fathers' sake (Rom. 11:28). The first class (the Saints) are redeemed from the earth, and stand with the Lamb on Mt. Zion, and follow him in all his wars and enterprises ' whithersoever he goeth.' The redemption of the second class (the nations) is the work of the Eternal Power through Christ and his Brethren. He "saves the tents of Judah first," and strengthens Judah's house (Zee. 12:7; 10:7); and then saves the house of Joseph, or the 10 Tribes of the Kingdom of Ephraim. This salvation or redemption of Jacob is developed in the Jubilee, when "the Great Trumpet is blown" against the Goats; and all Israelites are invited to "return every man to his possession." The day of the Second and Third Angels is a "time of trouble" to all nations—to Israel as well as the rest. But there is this difference with respect to them, expressed in the declaration to Daniel that— "At that time THY PEOPLE shall be delivered, every one that shall be found written in the Book" (12:1). Daniel was an Israelite AND a Saint. Hence HIS people are Israelites and Saints, both of which classes are delivered in the "time of the end"— "When Yahweh shall have washed away the filth of the daughters of Zion, and shall have purged the blood of Jerusalem from the midst thereof by the spirit of judgment and the spirit of burning" (Is. 4:4). It is the day in which the captivity of Israel and Judah is to be brought again to their own land, consequent upon the breaking of the yoke of the House of Esau from off their neck, that foreigners may no more serve themselves of them; but that they serve Yahweh their Elohim, and David their King, whom the Eternal Power hath already raised up for them in raising up the crucified "King of the Jews" from the dead. But this great national redemption is only arrived at through a terribly severe refining process. It is styled in Joel 2:11— "The Day of Yahweh, great and very terrible; and who can abide it?" The Goat-nations will be unable to abide it; and all the dross of Jacob will be consumed. All the rebels will be purged out of the great army of resurrected dry bones—now scattered and "very dry" in all the countries of their dispersion where they are politically entombed—but in the time of the Second and Third Angels, passing under the rod of discipline in the Wilderness* of the peoples (Eze. 20:33-38; 37:1-14). ^ r ' 1973 Berean Malachi asks the same question as Joel (3:1-4)— "Who may abide the day of his coming? And who shall stand when 5 he (the Messenger of the Covenant) appeareth? "For he is like a refiner's fire, and like fuller's soap. And he shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver; "And he shall purify the sons of Levi, and purge them as gold and silver, that they may offer unto Yahweh an offering in righteousness. "Then shall the offering of Judah and Jerusalem be pleasant unto Yahweh, as in the days of old, and as informer years." This Day, so great and very terrible, is the "Hour of His Judgment" proclaimed by the First Angel in midheaven (Rev. 14:67). The judgments or plagues inflicted are styled "torment with fire and brimstone," and those who are tormented— "Them who worship the Beast and his Image, and receiveth the sign of his name." whosoever They are the plagues which cause Babylon the Great City to fall. She falls because of her wickedness in church and state, and her sanguinary and merciless oppression of the Saints and Witnesses of Jesus, and of all the Jews and others she has slain upon the earth (Rev. 17:6; 18:24). Jeremiah, contemplating the terribleness of these "latter days," says (30:7-11)— "Alas, for that Day is great, so that none is like it! It is even the time of Jacob's trouble, but he shall be saved out of it. "For it shall come to pass in that Day, saith Yahweh Tz'vaoth, that I will break his yoke (the yoke of Esau's house) from off thy neck, and will burst thy bonds, and strangers shall no more serve themselves of Jacob. "But they shall serve Yahweh their Elohim, and David their King whom I will raise up unto them. "Therefore fear thou not, Ο My servant Jacob, saith Yahweh. Neither be dismayed, Ο Israel. For lo, I will save thee from afar, and thy seed from the land of their captivity. "And Jacob shall return and shall be in rest, and be quiet, and none shall make him afraid. For I am with thee, saith Yahweh, to save thee. "THOUGH I MAKE A FULL END OF ALL NATIONS WHITHER I HAVE SCATTERED THEE, YET WILL I NOT MAKE A FULL END OF THEE. "But I will correct thee in measure, and will not leave thee altogether unpunished.** 1973 Berean 6 Nations are political organizations of men. To make a "full end" of such is to dissolve and abolish all national bodies founded and built up by the violence and craftiness of the wicked. A FULL END IS TO BE MADE OF ALL THE NATIONS WHITHER YAHWEH HAS SCATTERED THE JEWS. This declaration is fatal to the independence and political existence of the United States, as well as that of all nationalities. The Second and Third Angels (which are identical with the Rainbowed Angel of Rev. 10), in the great and terrible Day of Atonement, execute this divine purpose of reducing mankind to a common and universal brotherhood, and of subjecting them to the imperial and regal sovereignty of Jesus and his Brethren. The Israelitish Nationality, however, is not destroyed. In this Day of Judgment, Israelites are "corrected in measure," and the rebellious among them destroyed. But a remnant will survive the refining process of this terrible Day, and its constituents will every man return to his possessions in the land of the Holy One of Israel. Therefore, for the sake of His Name (Jer. 30:16-17,24)— "All they that devour Jacob shall be devoured; and all his adversaries, every one of them, shall go into captivity (13:10). And they that spoil him shall be a spoil, and all that prey upon him will I give for a prey. "For I will restore health unto Jacob, and I will heal him of his wounds; because they call Zion an outcast, saying, This is Zion whom no man seeketh after. "IN THE LATTER DAYS ISRAEL SHALL CONSIDER IT." Now, the Lamb-Power, as the Man of War, Yahweh, will do all this after the example of Joshua in his war upon the Canaanites, which illustrates the manner in which Yahweh "fought in the day of battle" (Zee. 14:3). Christ Jesus, the King of the Jews, with the 144,000, as the commanders of the armies of Israel, are "the Holy Angels" and "the Lamb" in whose presence the worshipers of the Beast and his Image are tormented in the lake of fire burning with brimstone. As the Prophet "like unto Moses," he will serve these as the great lawgiver served Sihon, king of the Amorites, and Og, king of Bashan, whose story is narrated in Deut. 3 & 4. When he opens his eyes upon the house of Judah (Zee. 12:6)— "He will make the governors of Judah (the Saints) like a hearth of fire among the wood, and like a torch of fire in a sheaf. And they shall devour all the people round about, on the right hand and on the left'* Judah will then be the sword, and the bow, in the hand of the Lamb. And the house of Joseph (the 10 Tribes of the old Ephraim kingdom) will be his arrow which shall go forth as the lightning. When this bow is drawn, its arrows will be "sharp in the heart of the King's enemies" (Ps. 45:5), as it is written— "Today do I declare that I will render double for thee, when I have bent Judah for me, filled the bow with Ephraim, and RAISED UP thy sons, Ο Zion, against thy sons, Ο Greece (the goats), and made thee (the Lamb-Power in Zion) as the sword of a mighty man. "And Yahweh shall be seen over them, and his arrow (Ephraim) shall go forth as the lightning. And Adonai Yahweh shall blow with a trumpet, and shall go forth with whirlwinds of the south. "And Yahweh their Elohim shall save them in that Day as the flock of His people, for they shall be as the stones of a crown, lifted up as an Ensign upon His land" (Zee. 9:12-16). "And they shall be as mighty men who tread down their enemies in the mire of the streets in the battle.. 1973 Berean 7 "And they shall fight because Yahweh is with them; and they shall be as though I had not cast them off.. "And they of Ephraim shall be as a mighty man. Yea, their children shall see it and be glad.. "And I will hiss for them and gather them. And I will sow them among the people, and they shall remember Me in far countries. And they shall live with their children, and turn again. "And I will bring them again also out of the land of Egypt, and gather them out of Assyria. "And I will bring them into the land of Gilead and Lebanon, and room shall not be found for them" (Zee. 10:5-10). Thus, on returning home from their dispersion after they "stand upon their feet as a great army" (Eze. 37:10), they will have to fight their way through all the countries of the house of Esau. In this Jubilee return, under the Second and Third Angels— "The House of Jacob shall be a fire, and the House of Joseph a flame, and the House of Esau for stubble. And they shall kindle in them, and devour them. "And there shall not be any remaining of the House of Esau. "For Saviors shall come up on Mt. Zion (the Lamb with the 144,000) to judge the Mt. of Esau. "And the Kingdom shall be Yahweh's" (Obad. 18-21). In this way, Babylon and the Goat-Nations are (Rev. 14:10)— "Made to drink of the wine of the wrath of Deity, prepared without mixture in the cup of His indignation.'* Esau will have had the dominion over Jacob long enough, and the time will now have arrived to prove to mankind that— "There is a God thatjudgeth in the earth" (Ps. 58:11) Esau has lived by his sword, but not righteously. He crucified the King of Israel, persecuted and killed his brethren, corrupted the Faith, trod under foot the Holy City 42 months, and poured out the blood of Jacob like water upon the ground. But they who war against Zion and her sons— "Shall be as nothing, as a thing of nought." (Isa. 41:11). Therefore (vs. 14-16)— "Fear not, thou worm Jacob, and ye men of Israel. I will help thee, saith Yahweh, and thy Redeemer the Holy One of Israel. "Behold, I will make thee a new sharp threshing instrument having teeth. Thou shalt thresh the mountains (or empires) and beat them small, and shall make the hills (or smaller states) as chaff. "Thou shalt fan them, and the wind shall carry them away, and the whirlwind shall scatter them. "And thou shalt rejoice in Yahweh, and shalt glory in the Holy One of Israel." THIS HAS NEVER COME TO PASS SINCE IT WAS RECORDED BY THE PROPHET. For hitherto Jacob has been under the heel of Esau, whose metallic image stands unbroken upon its feet of iron and miry clay. 1973 Berean β The work of the Second and Third Angels is to grind to powder the various metals of which it is composed, and to do the work so effectually that no place be found for the things they represent (Dan. 2:35). Second Voyage to Australia BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS "He took the cup and gave it to them, saying, This is my blood of the New Covenant, which is shed for many for the remission of sins"—Matthew 26:28 PART TWENTY-FIVE JUNE 28, 1898: A MEETING AT WELLINGTON ON the evening of our arrival at Wellington, there was a meeting in the brethren's meeting room to which we walked after tea. No arrangement had been made for public lecture for the reason before hinted at. This was a semi-private meeting of the brethren and sisters to which some friends had been invited. Bro. Lesueur was prevented from coming, and I had to conduct the meeting myself. After preliminary exercises, I called attention to the account of a special private meeting in the house of Cornelius, held over 1,800 years ago in Caesarea (Acts 10). The object of it, as defined in the narrative, was "to hear words whereby the company might be saved" (11:14). Though not now assembled in the same express manner, our assembly had to do with the same object. The "words" then spoken were still in force and had the same power to save where they were received and obeyed. I called their attention to Paul's statement that these words were not of human origin or appointment, but were uttered and authorized by the Holy Spirit (Gal. 1:11-12). I indicated the evidence in our possession that Paul's statement was true, and then proceeded to show what the words in question were. In other words—What is the Truth? What is the Gospel? ALL MEN SINNERS: CANNOT BE SAVED WITHOUT JUSTIFICATION At the close of my remarks, some questions were put by a lady, the wife of a retired Indian official, who, I afterwards discovered was a sister—a Mrs. Baernacki (pronounced Baernadski). I supposed she was a hostile critic. She wanted my opinion as to how certain people stood with regard to prospects of salvation, who, while receiving Christ in a general way, were ignorant of the gospel of the Kingdom, and disobedient to his commandments. I said that my duty was to show what the Scripture taught, and not to express opinions about persons. God's proposal to men was, that He would save them if they would believe the Gospel, and obey the command delivered. Our wisdom lay in judging ourselves by this proposal, and leaving to Him the decision of the case of those who were outside of it, from whatever cause. 1973 Berean 9 In this attitude, we were certainly bound to contend that men ignorant of or disobedient to the Gospel could not be saved. Men by nature and practice were already condemned as sinners. They could not be saved unless they were justified from their sins. God had made known by Christ and the apostles that this justification was only to be obtained in the knowledge, belief and obedience of the Truth—of which baptism was only the initial step. It was a mistake for us to try to bend the institutions of God to the ideas of men. The only safety for ourselves and others lay in frank and absolute submission to what was revealed. THE TRUTH DENIED: A CLEAR STAND HADTO BE MADE The number of the brethren in Wellington has been reduced through the objection of some to adopt a basis of faith—that is a formulated statement of the principles recognized as essential to be in fellowship. The statement proposed was the Birmingham statement. To this there was a determined opposition in the spirit of the man who said "If it comes from Birmingham, that is a reason why we should have nothing to do with it." This attitude is not intelligible on spiritual grounds. There are carnal reasons that fully account for it. True men are only anxious to secure the Truth. If Birmingham is a help they are not ashamed to have it. Where would even our objecting friend have been, if Birmingham had done nothing? But in truth, it is not the origin of the "statement" that is altogether the ground of the objection; it is the character of it. The objectors do not consent to all that is in it. As one frankly said— "There are some things there that ought not to be." Think of some objecting to the restoration of natural Israel! The time is come to take strong and uncompromising ground. If men object to the Truth, they ought not to pass current as brethren. And if the adoption of a statement of the faith will put an end to a false situation, the sooner it is adopted the better. This is the mind of the brethren in Wellington and elsewhere. The adoption of a scriptural statement of faith, whether of Birmingham origin or elsewhere, will be the beginning of a sounder and healthier state of things, than has for some time prevailed in New Zealand. As for Birmingham, suppose the Birmingham statement is a statement that the Lord approves, where will ye be in His presence who place yourselves in opposition to an endeavor to secure a standing ground for the Truth, in the day of its weakness and unpopularity? 1973 Berean 10 WEDNESDAY, JUNE 29: WELLINGTON TO NAPIER FOR A WEEK We sailed next day in the Mararoa for Napier. The night was dark and stormy, but in the morning we arrived at our destination in sunshine. Bro.Troup and his wife were awaiting us and conveyed us to their picturesquely situated home, on the end of a high spur overlooking the sea, surrounded by hills and long distance views. We had a hearty reception from their two interesting children, whose interest in the Truth shows what can be done by parental care and instruction. Here we spent a very enjoyable week, marred only by this plague of division, which is the only fruit that factionist writers and speakers have to show for their industry. There is no cure for it except in the individual application to the Word in daily study and affectionate submission and prayer. Some will yield this and some will have only man and not God before their eyes, and consequently strife will continue till the last, till the Lord supplies the conditions of eternal and joyful calm by choosing the men that are godly for Himself, and massing them in a glorified community in which there will be no flaw. CHRIST'S DEATH WAS APPOINTED BY GOD AS A SACRIFICE Two well-attended lectures were delivered to the public and two interviews took place, to bring re-union if possible. That no result was produced I cannot say. But there was no such restoration of peace, as sometimes follows such efforts. Divisions from personal causes are easier to end than those which spring from heresy. The heresy in this case was certainly of the most serious character, namely, to reduce the death of Christ to a merely human occurrence, and to exclude God from its cause and appointment and significance. This heresy seems to be the result of well-meant inability to comprehend how an event may be—at the same timeboth human and divine. The stumblers see the wicked part performed by the Jews and Romans, and they cannot see how the wicked impulses of both Jews and Romans were used as instruments to bring about a sacrifice that the righteousness of God required in the salvation of men. The inability in this case is the more singular since this duality of character is expressly alleged in this particular matter— "Herod and Pontius Pilate, with the Gentiles and the people of Israel, were gathered together for to do whatsoever THY hand and THY counsel determined before to be done" (Acts 4:27-28). "Him, being delivered by the DETERMINATE COUNSEL and foreknowledge of God, ye have taken and by wicked hands have crucified and slain'* (Acts 2:23). GOD USES THE WICKED FOR HIS OWN PURPOSES It is part of a truth exhibited throughout the entire course of the Scripture: that God—without interfering with the free volition of wickedness—uses it in carrying out His Own ends with His people, when such instrumentality is necessary. 1973 Berean 11 Did Joseph's brethren sell him, in jealous hatred, into the hands of the Egyptians? It was that God might "send a man before them," and lay the foundation of good (Psa. 105:17; Gen. 45:5-8; 50:20). When Israel turned away from God, did Israel's enemies get the upper hand? It was because— "The anger of the Lord was hot against Israel, and He delivered them into the hands of spoilers» so that they could not any longer stand before their enemies'1 (Jdg. 2:11-14) Did David suffer from the wickedness of Amnon, the ambition of Absolom, the malice of Shimei? It was the Lord Who raised up evil against him out of his own house because he had despised the Lord in taking the wife of Uriah the Hittite (2 Sam. 12:10-11). Did God use the blood-thirsty Assyrian as a weapon of punishment against Israel?— "He (the Assyrian) meaneth not so: it is in his heart merely to destroy" THE TESTIMONY IS CLEAR AND PLENTIFUL There is really no end to the illustrations of this principle in the Bible—that God, in the ways of His providence, to accomplish His purposes, uses men who have no idea of those purposes, but are bent only on their own evil aims for which they are justly punishable. The inability to see it in the death of Christ is worse than ignorance; it is unbelief of express testimony; and as such cannot be tolerated in the fellowship of the brethren. Christ said that no man took his life from him (Jn. 10:17-18). It was his own act, that he might give his life a ransom for many (Matt. 20:28), give it to God, not to man—for he "offered himself without spot to God" (Heb. 9:14). Not by the blood of bulls and goats, but "by his own blood he obtained eternal redemption" (Heb. 9:12). Hence his words at the table concerning the cup— "This cup is the New Covenant in my blood, shed for the remission of the sins of many" (Matt 26:28). Hence also the symbolic statement that the redeemed have washed their robes and made them white in the blood of the Lamb (Rev. 8:14). Hence also the strong statement that Jesus crucified (while to the Jews a stumbling block, and to Greeks foolishness) is— "To us who are saved, Christ the power of God and the wisdom of God" (1 Cor. 1:23-24). "Wherefore I determined to know nothing among you but Jesus Christ and him crucified" (1 Cor. 2:2). These things lie at the root of the Gospel. It is through faith in the shed blood of Christ, as the appointment of God's righteousness, that we are saved (Rom. 3:25; 5:9). It is not therefore possible that the brethren can give place to glosses and manipulations of Scripture that would reduce the sacrifice of Christ to a mere human tragedy. I have no hesitation in avowing my conviction that those who present themselves with such a doctrine to Christ at his coming, will meet the fate of Nadab and Abihu, who offered strange fire before the Lord (Lev. 10:2). 1973 Berean 12 THURS., JULY 7: LEAVING NAPIER: HOP^S OF RETURN We left Napier on Thursday morning, July 7,'by the s.s. Waihora. Bro. Craig said he would not be able to see us off; but he came, also bre. Troup, Martin, and some others. Bro. Craig said he was thoroughly satisfied with the way the arrangements for the tour had worked out. Another time he hoped our stay would be longer. I thought it possible we might return again in 2 years—if the Lord remains away. If so, I might arrange to spend 6 months instead of 2 months in the country. But there might be great changes by then. FRI., JULY 8: WELLINGTON, AT BRO. & SIS. LESUEUR'S We arrived at Wellington next day, entering the beautiful roadstead about 9 o'clock. Knowing our way to Dulce Domum, we proceeded there without guidance. In the evening, at bro. Lesueur's house, we were pleased to meet bro. Tanfield, of Auckland, for the first time. We had heard of him, and found him much more than we had heard. He had obeyed the Truth some 12 months previously. He is the principal in the firm of Tanfield and Potter, chinaware importers, Auckland. He held a prominent position in the Wesleyan body for a number of years, but latterly had begun to lose interest in all religion from the insincerity of its professors, and the inconsistency of its doctrines. Christendom Astray was placed in his hands some years ago. His intelligence enabled him to appreciate the argument, and it was an unspeakable joy to him to have the Scriptures cleared of the mountains of fog through which he used to survey them, and to see them in brightness and beauty. He travels a good deal, and we saw him several times in other parts of the country. 1973 Berean 13 SUN., JULY 10: MEMORIAL AND LECTURE AT WELLINGTON On Sunday we met with the brethren and sisters at the breaking of bread in their meeting room. In the evening I lectured in the same place to an attentive audience on the general bearing of the Gospel message, and on the strong foundation on which it stands in the historic sense. MON., JULY 11: WELLINGTON TO PALMERSTON BY TRAIN We left Wellington next day for Wanganui. Our journey was by rail, and lay through the wild and beautiful scenery on the west coast by the sea-shore. We did not go straight to Wanganui, but broke the journey at Palmerston, for the sake of making it easier for sis. Roberts. There are only 2 trains a day, and to have done the journey in one day would have required us to be stirring at 5 o'clock—which would not have mattered so much if we had not been 4 miles from the station, and living with friends from whom we could not have stolen away unobserved, with the quantity of personal impedimenta which a prospective absence of 12 months from home involves. We were not aware of the presence of brethren at Palmerston. It was not, however, altogether to our surprise that we were greeted at the platform on our arrival. At Napier we had met bro. Taylor, who is superintendent of the rolling stock on the line. He enquired of our plans, and when we told him of our purpose to stay a night in Palmerston, he said there were one or two brethren there and he would inform them. It was, therefore, not unexpected when bro. Grey introduced himself on the platform. He saw us to our hotel close to the Railway Station, where, afterwards, we were called on by bro. & sis. Harvey. TUES., JULY 12: WITH BRO. SCOTT AT PALMERSTON Next morning we saw bro. Scott, a railway employee who had just been shifted from Napier to Palmerston. Palmerston is a railway junction, at which a considerable town of perhaps 4,000 to 5,000 inhabitants has sprung up. We spent a pleasant few hours there. 199 "Judge Not, That Ye Be Not Judged' "Let a man examine HIMSELF"—! Corinthians 11:28 IT is certainly true that no man ought to speak of a brother's faults behind his back until he have spoken to himself alone, and afterwards with others. But even then, you must be quite sure that the fault is of a kind that would warrant you in withdrawing if he do not submit. If there is any doubt on this head, be silent, and leave the Lord to judge at his coming. We generally find men unwilling to leave things to the Lord. They act as though they had no faith in the Lord's coming, and as if Paul had never written— "Judge nothing before the time, till the Lord come who will make manifest the counsels of the heart" (1 Cor, 4:5). —that is, the secret motives which no man can know, and which require to be known before a correct estimate of his action is possible. It would be wrong for us to judge in personal cases. It is possible to say what ought and what ought not to be done, as a matter of duty for all men; but when it comes to a question whether these are or are not done by particular men, we enter a forbidden field. We must not judge; we must not condemn. We must leave the Lord to do that at his coming (1 Cor. 4:5). We can, of course, withdraw from a brother who walks disobediently and defends it; but even this we must not do till we have seen him a few times and given him every opportunity of justifying himself. If men were more busy judging THEMSELVES, which they are COMMANDED to do, they would not have so much propensity for judging others, which they are forbidden to do.—Bro. Roberts, 1898, p. 388-9. ______-_--__-—-——-. 1973 Berean 14 INWARD PEACE THOUGH OUTWARD TURMOIL The Truth can give peace, and in this peace it can preserve a man amid all the troubles and turmoils of life. Not that he will never know trouble. A righteous man cannot be in this present evil world without knowing trouble: but there is a trouble that is OUTSIDE and a trouble that is INSIDE—as regards causes. Christ's troubles were great, but they were all outside: inside, peace was his experience: "My peace" as he called it. So it will be with his brethren. They may know trouble among men, but in their own hearts towards God, peace reigns. But even this peace is a thing of conditions; and it is the conditions we have to watch. When have we the greatest peace? Is it not when we see the most clearly and believe the most heartily the things declared to us by the Truth? It is the vivid sense of those "things" that imparts peace.—Bro. Roberts. Judas and Jesus "The Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the Only Begotten of the Father, full of Grace and Truth"—John 1:14 PART TWO \ WE now turn to consider the victim of base and meditated treachery, to the "man Christ Jesus/' of whom Peter said— "He did no sin, neither was guile found in his mouth. "Who, when he was reviled, reviled not again: when he suffered he threatened not, but committed his cause to Him that judgeth righteously" (1 Pt. 2:22-23). In John 1:14, Jesus is introduced to us in this manner— "And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, and we beheld his glory, the glory of the only Begotten of the Father, full of Grace and Truth." This appraisal of John's was endorsed by the Father when Jesus was immersed in the Jordan— "This is My beloved Son, in whom lam well pleased." Again, at his transfiguration, we hear the same Voice— "This is My beloved Son. Hear him." Speaking of him in Acts 10:38, Peter said— "God anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Spirit and with power, who went about doing good and healing all that were oppressed of the devil, for God was with him." Throughout all of his ministry, he exhibited humility in all its beauty. Paul speaks of it in Ph. 2:7-8 in this manner— "He made himself of no reputation, and took upon him the form of a servant, and was made in the likeness of men: "And being found in fashion as a man, he humbled himself, and became obedient unto death, even to the death of the cross." The crowning example of his humility was demonstrated on the night he instituted the Memorial we share together each first day of the week. John tells us that— "Jesus rose from supper, and laid aside his garments, and took a towel and girded himself. After that he poured water into a basin, and began to wash the disciples' feet, and to wipe them with the towel wherewith he was girded" (Jn. 13:4-5). Here was the Son of God, the future King of all the earth, completely humbling himself in a manifestation of what he had said in M t . 11:28-30— 1973 Berean 15 "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest. Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me, for lam meek and lowly in heart: and ye shall find rest unto your souls." Foolish, fleshly pride is at the root of a large proportion of all human thought and activity. Much of our effort and struggle and labor is to satisfy and gratify our pride. And it is all so meaningless and unsatisfying! It brings no peace or contentment, but only further struggle and concern. The only sensible, satisfying way of life is complete lowliness, emptying out all the foolish pride of the flesh. In the capacity of doing good and helping others, it mattered not to Jesus whether those who were suffering were rich or poor, Jew or Gentile; his healing power was granted freely, though he emphasized the fact that his primary mission was to the— "Lost sheep of the house of Israel" (ML 15:24). He heals the servant of a Roman centurion, and restores the withered hand of an unknown man. Then Matthew says— "Jesus withdrew himself, and a great multitude followed him, and he healed them all" (12:15). His compassion for the people was so great that on one occasion he fed 5000, and on another 4000, the latter in the Gentile area of Decapolis. The power by which this was done he explained when he sal t<The Fatner wno dwelleth in me, He doeth the works." We follow him down to Jericho, where a blind man appeals to him for help. Jesus said (Mark 10:51)— He answered— "What do you wish?" "Lord, that I might receive my sight!" Immediately he received his sight, and followed Jesus. The sympathy Jesus had for others was shown in Bethany at the home of Martha and Mary after the death of their brother Lazarus. When he beheld others weeping sadly, he was so affected that he also wept, though he knew that in a very short time Lazarus would be raised, and weeping would be turned to joy. Another outstanding case was at his betrayal, when the servant of a high priest lost his ear. Here was Jesus surrounded by a vicious, hostile mob attempting to seize him. But at that very moment he heals one of his attackers! What a lesson in self-control, and in returning good for evil! Teaching one day in a synagog, he saw a woman who had been bowed together for 18 years. Without waiting for her to ask, he called her to him and said— "Woman, thou art 1 loosed from thine infirmity." Immediately she was made straight, and glorified God. We now see him in a certain village, met by 10 lepers who said— "Jesus, Master, have mercy on us!" Jesus did not ask any questions, but merely said— 1973 Berean 16 "Go show yourselves unto the priests." The Law of Moses required this. As they went, they were cleansed. We now find him in Jerusalem beside a pool, and in front of him is a man crippled for 38 years. "Wilt thou be made whole?" asked Jesus. Without waiting for a complete answer, he said to the man— "Rise, take up thy bed, and walk. And immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed, and walked." In Matthew 4:23 we are told that— "Jesus went about all Galilee, teaching in their synagogs, and preaching the Gospel of the Kingdom, and healing all manner of sickness and all manner of disease among the people." The reason Jesus gives for the things he did for others was— The Son of Man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many." This word "minister" means "be an attendant, wait upon, serve." In Mk. 5:1-20 is recorded one of the great miracles of healing on a raving madman. Again he was in Gentile territory, and we note the presence of a great herd of swine, which the Jews did not keep. Jesus entered into conversation with the man, and so great was his pity and compassion that he healed him, and left him joyful, clothed, and in his right mind, praising God. Another example of his deep compassion was in the city of Nain where a dead man, the only son of his mother, was being carried to the grave. Jesus stopped and spoke to her, saying, "Do not weep." And then he touched the bier, and told the man to arise— "And he that was dead sat up, and began to speak. And he delivered him to his mother.rr A rare case of healing was that of the woman who had hemorrhages for 12 years, who said— "If I may but touch his clothes, I shall be whole." So she touched his garment in simple faith, and was made whole at once. Jesus realized that power had gone out of him, so he asked who touched him. The woman came to him, and told him what had happened. Jesus said to her— "Daughter, thy faith hath made thee whole. Go in peace, and be whole of thy plague." This has been but a brief cross-section of the work of the greatest man in history, of whom Nicodemus said— "We know that thou art a teacher come from God, for no man can do these miracles that thou doest except God be with him." Later on, when Jesus was addressing the Jews at the Feast of the Dedication, he said (Jn. 10:37-38)— "If I do not the works of my Father, believe me not. But if I do, though ye believe not me, believe the works: that ye may know, and believe, that the Father is in me, and I in Him." 17 1973 Berean The works to which Jesus referred were those of the message he sent to John the Baptist, who was then in prison (Lk. 7:22)— "Go your way, and tell John what things ye have seen and heard: how the blind see, the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, the deaf hear, the dead are raised, and to the poor the Gospel is preached/' It would be impossible for us to describe the greatness of Christ, so we turn to the opening words of Hebrews— "God, having anciently spoken, in many portions and by various methods, to the fathers by the prophets, "In the last of these days spoke to us by a Son, whom He appointed heir of all things, on account of whom also He constituted the ages: "Who, being an effulgence of His glory, and an exact impress of His substance, and making manifest all things by the Word of His power, having made a purification for sins, sat down at the right hand of the Majesty in high places, "Having become as much superior to angels as he has inherited a more excellent Name than they*' (Diag.). If God had not spoken, we would not be in the position of hope and joy that we are. We would be "without hope," like the outside world of darkness, and would be wandering in the path that leads to death—a death from which there would be no awakening. Therefore we bow our heads to express our heartfelt thanksgiving and sincere appreciation for the Word of Truth that brings us together as loving companions on the Way of Life. And that Word, says John— "Was made flesh, and dwelt among us. And we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only Begotten of the Father, full of Grace and Truth." This is the man to whom we have become related by our belief of and obedience to the Gospel, and we are now— "Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the promise" (Gal. 3:29). And it is the same man with whom Judas was associated for 3V2 years, preaching the Gospel, healing the sick, cleansing lepers, and raising the dead. But he was only a pretender, and finally betrayed his Master into the hands of a mob for the paltry sum of $15.00, an action that soon brought about his swift and ignominious death. This is a sharp lesson for us. Judas joined in with all the other apostles in preaching the Kingdom of God. Outwardly he was just like the rest, so much so that they did not suspect him, even when told there was a traitor among them. This shows that it is possible for us to go about giving lectures, and making a great show before the people of the world, and outwardly conforming to all the appearances—and, at the same time, not at all be living a life in harmony with the Truth. This fact was emphasized by Jesus in his great address from the Mount (Mt. 7:22-23)— "Many (not a few, but MANY) will say to me in that day, "Lord, Lord, have we not prophesied in thy Name? And in thy Name cast out devils? And in thy Name done many wonderful works?" Surely such would have reason to think that they were an accepted part of the Body! But Jesus continues— "And then I will profess unto them, I never knew you: depart from me, ye that work iniquity." 1973 Berean 18 The identity is not outward, in great works and appearances, but inward—in the character and in the heart: in the vital outcome of the inner battle with the flesh and with the diabolos. Here is the crucial battlefield. Paul comprehended this clearly, for he said— "I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection, lest by any means—when I have preached to others--! myself should be a castaway** (1 Cr. 9:27). Let us stop and think for a moment, and ask ourselves if it is possible for any of us to be in the position of Judas: outwardly a disciple, inwardly a traitor. We cannot betray Jesus in the same manner he did, but there are many ways in which we CAN betray him. One vital one is this: WHAT WE DO TO OUR BRETHREN AND SISTERS, WE DO TO CHRIST HIMSELF. He said (and some day soon these words may rise before us in letters of fire)— "Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me.'* —the LEAST. Those who appear to us to be least important, least active, least deeply rooted. These are the ones we are most likely to be careless and thoughtless about, in our own assumed greater zeal and faith. This is something to be kept foremost in our minds when we have any problems relating to our brethren and sisters. Would we dare to think of, speak about, or treat Christ the way we do some of our brethren and sisters? That is exactly what we ARE doing. Peter (1 Pt. 5:1-4) speaks to the "elders/' Now the word elders means the older or senior brethren. A greater responsibility lies on them. He tells them to "feed the flock of God"—that is, the members of the ecclesia. And they are to do it "willingly" and of a "ready mind." There must be loving eagerness in the work— "Neither as being lords (not domineering, or assuming a fictitious self-importance) . . but being EXAMPLES.** Not so much TELLING them what to do as SHOWING them what to do. Now, you elders (and I am one also), let us face the facts. ARE we 'feeding the flock* with an example? And if so, WHAT are we feeding them?—the sincere milk of the Word, or some concoction Of our own? Does the food we are feeding them cause them to— "Grow in GRACE, and in the KNOWLEDGE of our Lord and Savior Jesus Christ?*' Does it digest well, and cause them to be kind to one another, to be tender-hearted, to walk in love, and to think continually and cheerfully on the— 1973 Berean 19 "Things that are true, honest, just, pure, lovely and of good report?'* If it does, then we are doing that which is well-pleasing to our heavenly Father, and our work will bear the fruit of the Spirit. But if we are not being faithful in our duty, but are feeding them the dry and worthless husks of controversy and dissension and criticism and crotchet and private interpretation, then we are betraying the Lord Jesus and, like Judas, are only fleshly-minded pretenders. It is a serious thought. Peter continues (1 Pt. 5:5)— "Likewise, ye younger, submit yourselves unto the elder. Yea, all of you be subject one to another, and be clothed with humility.." —(why does he say that?)— ". ./or God resisteth the proud, and giveth grace to the humble/' This command of Peter's is essential to the well-being of the individual members, and of the ecclesia as a whole. Therefore let the younger brethren ask themselves this question— "Am I subject to my seniors, or am 1 allowing myself to adopt the proud, self-assertive and rebellious spirit of the young in the natural, animal world around me?" If we are inclined to be rebellious against the appointments of God, and to want to have our own wilful way, it will be well for us to remember what Samuel, by the Spirit, said to King Saul— "Rebellion is as the sin of witchcraft; iniquity and idolatry" (1 Sm 15:23). and stubbornness is as But there is a qualification attached to the matter of being subject to the elders, and that is stated by Paul in 1 Tm. 5:17— "Let the elders who preside well be esteemed worthy of double honor, especially those who TOIL in word and teaching" (Diag.). The first characteristic of true saintship is zeal and TOIL for the things of God, and not zeal for having our own way. Without any hesitation, let us have the wisdom to cheerfully obey the advice of Paul to Titus to keep away from— "Strifes of words, foolish questions, and contentions that are unprofitable and vain." They are not only unprofitable and vain, but the agitation of them results in the development of the thing God especially hates: sowing discord among brethren. Paul further tells Titus that a bishop (that is, an elder, an arranging brother) must be blameless as the steward of God, holding fast the faithful Word as he has been taught. The Truth is the most serious, demanding, responsible business that a man can put his hand to. The humblest brother of Christ has a greater responsibility, a more important, meaningful position, than the president of the greatest government or the biggest corporation in the world. Their activities and decisions are tinkertoys compared to the work of the Truth, for their work is but for the passing moment, soon to be all swept away into forgotten oblivion, while all the work of the Truth is for eternity. 1973 Berean 20 Being a Christadelphian—a Brother of Christ—is not just being a member of an ecclesia. It is a complete, fulltime, wholly-devoted way of life based upon zealous faith and obedience, which in turn is based upon love: love of God, love of Christ, and love of the brethren. What IS "love"? John says— 'This is love, that we walk after his commandments/' This is based on Jesus' own words— "Ifye love me, KEEP MY COMMANDMENTS" (Jn. 14:15). And he makes it more emphatic by making this the real, living, crucial test of love (Jn. 14:23)— "If a man love me, he WILL keep my words." There is no use mouthing fine sentiments about "love" if we do not assiduously set ourselves to learn and fulfil every commandment he has given us, constantly studying the Word for guidance and constantly searching ourselves by it. Let us then, as we face the future, be firmly determined to walk in a manner that will prove to all who call themselves Christadelphians, yea, and to all the world, that we ARE truly "Brethren in Christ" in heart and soul, and not just surface pretenders as Judas was. The pattern set before us is in Eph.5:19— "Speaking to yourselves in psalms and hymns and spiritual songs, singing and making melody in your hearts to the Lord: "Submitting one to another in the fear of God." These words are not just pious platitudes intended to please the ear. They are serious, divinely-inspired COMMANDS of God through Paul, expressing the apex of the ideal ecclesial life—the pure, joyful, spiritual life as God intends it; yea, REQUIRES it. If we agree with Paul (and who dares disagree?), then we can sing with the understanding, and break forth into joy when we sing the inspired words of our Hymn 4— "Behold how good a thing it is, and how becoming well, Together such as brethren are, in unity to dwell!" —G.A.G. WHAT WAS CHRIST "PURIFIED*' FROM? Under apostolic guidance, we see Christ in the bullock, in the furniture, in the veil, in the high priest—in brief, in all these Mosaic "patterns" which Paul says were "a shadow of things to come" (Heb. 8:5; 9:23; 10:1; 3:5). All were both atoning and atoned for (Lev. 16:33). There is no counterpart to this if Christ is kept out of his own sacrifice. He cannot be so kept out, if place is given to all the testimony—an express part of which is that as the sum-total of the things signified by these patterns, he was "purified" with a better sacrifice than bulls and goats—namely, his own sacrifice (Heb. 9:23. 12). If he was "purified," there was something to be purified from. What was it? Look at his hereditary death-taint, as the son of Adam, through whom death entered the world by sin—and there is no difficulty. As the anti-typical bullock without the camp, Jesus was a sin-offering— an offering to be burnt, consumed—to be which he had to be the very nature cursed by sin, that "the body of sin might be destroyed" (Rom. 6:6).— Bro. Roberts, 1897. "Christendom Astray," a 462-pg. book outlining and scripturally proving all basic Bible doctrines involved in the Gospel of salvation, which has helped thousands find the Way of Life, will be gladly sent free and without obligation. Write: G. V. Growcott, 12954 St. Marys, Detroit, Mich. 48227. Anything printed in the Berean may be reprinted freely by anyone in any form. No permission is needed; no credit is required Reprint in whole or in part, and the more widely the better! 1973B e r e a 21 In the Image of God Made He Him "With him (Moses) will I speak mouth to mouth, even apparently, and not in dark speeches, and the similitude of the Lord shall he behold" —Numbers 12:8 THE TRUTH FULLY DISCOVERED IT is our conception and conviction that the Truth in all its essential elements was formulated from Scripture by brethren Thomas and Roberts. We regard the matter of the scripturally-revealed Person of the Father as one of these elements. We do not regard these brethren as inspired authorities, but we do consider them faithful and dependable expounders of basic scriptural truth. Christadelphians have for 100 years embraced what they believe to be the "Faith once delivered to the saints." Regarding the element of scriptural truth as to what is revealed concerning the personal form of the Father, it is our conviction from Scripture that the Chnstadelphian belief—as in all other basic points—is sound and true. The suggestion that God has no form, or that His form, if any, is different from that manifested in the angels, and man, and the present glorious eternal spirit body of Jesus, and that the simple record of man's creation in the image of God must be interpreted symbolically—these views are not new in the world but have been fully considered in Christadelphian literature and study in the past, and have been rejected as error. In the words of bro. Roberts (Chdn. 1896, p. 348), "Our mind is that the Truth has been found in its original simplicity and purity and completeness, and that the only enlightened business in hand is to preach and contend for and apply this." THE TEACHING OF BRETHREN THOMAS AND ROBERTS WE shall first show what bre. Thomas and Roberts and the w h o l e Christadelphian b o d y from their day to the present have believed to be the scriptural truth on this matter—one of the foundation truths upon which the whole structure of revelation and the ultimate purpose of God is founded. These references are abbreviated. The intention is not to give the reasoning in full (which can be looked up), but to briefly illustrate the consistent conviction throughout. Then we shall show, by a few quotations from the "orthodox" writers of Christendom, that the idea that God has no form is one of their doctrines by which they oppose the scriptural truth of bodily salvation— the redemption of the body. Then we shall give what we consider to be positive scriptural proof that the Christadelphian viewpoint on the matter is the true one, followed by a consideration of the passages put forward to prove differently. 1973 Berean 22 QUOTATIONS FROM THE TRUTH'S STANDARD WORKS Elpis Israel, p. 38-9: "The import of the phrase 'in the image, after the likeness' is suggested by the testimony that 'Adam begat a son in his own likeness, after his image, and called his name Seth.' In this respect, Seth stands related to Adam, as Adam did to the Elohim . . Would anyone be at a loss to know the meaning of Seth's being in the image of his father? The very same thing is meant by Adam being in the image of the Elohim . . The resemblance therefore of Adam to the Elohim as their image was of bodily form . . In shape, Seth was like Adam, Adam like the Elohim, and the Elohim the image of the invisible Increate, the great and glorious Archetype of the intelligent universe." * * * Eureka, vol. I, p. 95-6: "Incorruptible and living substance, then, is the Body of the Deity; and as the glorified Jesus is the Image of the Invisible Theos/ He must have 'parts* . . He has form and parts, as well as body, and is the great Archetype, or divine Original, after which all the Elohim, or immortal intelligences, of His universe are modeled and made . . "Now these suggestions are sustained by 'the likeness of the glory of Jehovah' which appeared to Ezekiel. 'Above the firmament/ says this prophet, 'that was over the heads of the four living ones, was the likeness of a throne, as the appearance of a sapphire stone; and upon the likeness of the throne was the likeness as the appearance of a man above upon it . . This was the appearance of the likeness of the glory of Yahweh'—eh. 1:26-8." * * * Phanerosis, p. 28-9: "Paul says in Heb. 1:2-3 that the Son is the 'charakter' (Greek meaning 'graving') of His 'hypostasis' (substance) . . S'eth was the image of Adam, and Adam the image of the Elohim (Gen. 1:26; 5:3) . . Adam the First was image of Elohim, and this was in relation to bodily form . . Body and form were the hypostasis (substance) of Adam and Seth . . Where 'image (charakter—graving) is predicated of hypostasis' (substance), that hypostasis must have both body and form. The Father-Spirit . . is a bodily form." * * • Ways of Providence, p. 12-16: "Man is stated by James to be 'made after the similitude of God/ even the Father — see context (James 3:9). Paul also says he is 'the image and glory of God* (1 Cor. 11-7). Christ, formed in fashion as a man, is said to be 'the image of God* (2 Cor. 4:4; Col. 1:15); and 'the express image of His person' (Heb. 1:3); which gives force to Jehovah's description of him as 'the man that is My fellow' (Zech. 13:7). "From this results the conviction that the Father is not only glorious substance, even spirit substance, but that this substance has the human form in its perfection. The Father's person is, in fact, the prototype of all intelligent being. Of Moses it was said, as indicative of the privilege which he alone enjoyed in his day, 'the similtude of the Lord shall he behold' (Num. 12:8). TPhat this referred to the angelic manifestation of Jehovah is unquestionable, but still the fact remains that the similitude he beheld was the similitude of Jehovah. "The God revealed to us in the Bible is a Creator, a Father, and a Person; universal in His presence and power, but still a located and glorious Person . . Our simple duty is to accept implicitly what is revealed . . The Father of our Lord Jesus Christ is a personal Father, yet not a man, though we faintly borrow our image from Him." ^ ^ ^ 1973 Berean 23 Bible Finger Posts, old #29, new #19 (Written by bro. Roberts, still distributed): "Concerning the Eternal Father, the teaching of the Scriptures is very clear . . That He is light and life incorporate in glorious form and substance, even the form which the human form faintly reflects/' * * * Instructor, p. 10: "The Bible reveals that man is a living soul or creature, originally made of the dust of the ground, in the image of God." * * * Visible Hand of God, p. 18: "He (man) is the similitude of the divine form . . a special and noble creature formed for the glory of God." * * * Christadelphian Answers, p. 1: "The doctrine that God is "without body or parts' is utterly opposed to what is told us in the Scriptures of Truth, from which we learn that He is of human form—Exo. 33:23, Heb. 1:3, Jam. 3:9)." * * • Christendom Astray, p. 118: "The Scriptures plainly teach that the Father is a tangible person . . We will not say that the Being with Whom he (Moses) had this intercourse was actually THE ETERNAL ONE, because it is evident from what Stephen and Paul teach that it was an angelic manifestation . . Yet it is affirmed that to Moses it was a similitude of Jehovah (Num. 12:8). It was therefore a manifestation of the Deity." * * * Christadelphian Treasury, p. 4: "We learn from the Bible that the Deity it reveals has both body and parts." * * * Christadelphian 1889, p. 104: "We cannot pretend to measure God or even adequately compare Him to any mere human standard. The glory of the incorruptible so far transcends the glory of the corruptible that it is impossible to institute anything beyond the very faintest comparison (Rom. 1:23, Isa. 40:18). Still there are some comparisons that are directly expressed in the Scriptures, and some others that are involved. "First, with regard to the numberless variety of creatures that God made, it is said of man alone that he was made in the image of God (Gen. 1:26-7; 5:1; 9-6). This is confirmed by what is again recorded in the New Testament (1 Cor. 11:7; Acts 17:28-9). "Made like the angels at first with respect to form and faculty (but for the present 'a little lower' than they with regard to nature and function), we are destined at the last — subject to Christ's approval — to become their equals in nature, life, function, power and glory. Like the 'third heaven/ it is the stage in the process of ascension from the earthy to the heavenly, and from the natural to the spiritual (1 Cor. 15:46-9). "First, being 'born of flesh' (John 3:6), we are descendants of him of whom it is recorded that he 'was the S'on of God' (Luke 3:38), and for which reason, as Paul says, 'We are also His offspring.' In this we have the raw material of God's purpose — God's image in living clay. "Next to this, in being 'born of water' we become sons of God upon the still higher principle of being born again of the incorruptible seed, or the word of the kingdom of God sown in the heart (1 Pet. 2:23, Matt. 13:19). It is of this result that John says, 'Now are we the sons of God.' 1973 Berean 24 "This in due time (in the case of the faithful) will be followed by what Christ calls being 'born of the Spirit' (John 3:5-7) . . a man thenceforward Is Spirit* . . he has entered upon the last degree of qualification that introduces a man to eternal incorporation into the perfected immortal family of God (Rev. 21:7; Luke 20:36) . . Christ is both the example and the guarantee of its final attainment . . This accomplished, the likeness of the 'children of light* to the 'Father of Lights' may be accounted complete. "When the pure in heart see God (Matt. 5-8; Heb. 12:14), they will not look upon a mere shapeless concretion of power or aggregation of nature's forces, but upon the glorious, personal Archtype of the universe, of whose person Christ is already the 'express image,' the very impress of His substance, and the effulgence of His glory (Heb. 1:3, Rev. Ver.)." * * * Christadelphian 1892, p. 132: "God has form, and His form is the human form . . we need not go nearer than this." * * * Christadelphian 1892, p. 169: "The Divine form —the form of man, who is 'made after the similitude of God,' even the Father (James 3:9). This is the form of the angels, who are also spoken of as 'the sons of God' (Job 3#:7). Their designation as sons would point to a Father-form, even He Who 'dwells in light* . . With this in view, we can join in David's word with fulness of meaning: 'To Thee lift I mine eyes, 0 Thou that dwellest in the heavens'; and in the prayer that the Lord taught his disciples, 'Our Father Who art in heaven'." * * * Christadelphian 1892, p. 2634: "He is the Eternal, Increate, Inevitable Archtype after which He molded the corporeal form of all His children . . It is not a matter upon which to speculate, for to do so is both irreverent and presumptuous . . We can approach no nearer than the Spirit has permitted in Exo. 24:10-1; 33:18-23; 1 Tim. 6:15-6, and the various symbols of His glory . . "In discountenancing any speculative inquiry into the character of His Form, of His Person, of His Substantial Being, I do most heartily agree . . It is not a matter to be dealt with lightly or too familiarly; but with awe, reverence, and a worshipful silence, as becometh His children, begotten in the anointed Jesus, who is or bears His express image." THE FALSE VIEWS OF CHRISTENDOM BASED UPON THE IMMORTAL SOUL Adam Clarke Commentary, vol. 1, p. 38: "Gen. 1:26 — What is said here refers to his soul—this was made in the image of God . . God was now producing a spirit; it was created after the image of God, and that image, Saint Paul tells us, consisted in righteousness, true holiness and knowledge, Eph. 4:24; Col. 3:10." * * * Interntl. Bible Ency., p. 1264: "It lies in the nature of the case that the 'image' does not consist in bodily form; it can only reside in spiritual qualities." * * • Westminster Diet, of the Bible, p. 10: "He (Adam) was made in the image of God. Paul describes the similarity as consisting in knowledge, righteousness and true holiness." * * • JFB Commentary, vol. I, p. 8: "In what did this image consist? Not in the erect form of man . . but in the moral dispositions of his soul, commonly called original righteousness." 1973 Berean 26 The a b o v e quotations illustrate the general way in which these verses are interpreted by Christendom. Some however— recognizing, and more honestly facing, the force of the words in the original—seek a way of fitting them in with the orthodox conception of God and the soul, as follows— Companion Bible, p. 4: "Refers only to outward form, not to attributes. Our image/ that is, of Elohim, the Second Person, who had taken the creature form in order to create." * • * Abington Commentary, p. 221: "A further hint of a lower theological position has been seen by some in the repeated phrase In our image,' which is thought to point to a time when men believed that God had a material frame like that which man possesses." (Continued next month, if the Lord will) Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "He taketh away the heart of the chief of the people of the earth. They grope in the dark without light, He maketh them stagger like a drunken man"—Job 12:24-25 A COMMON FELLOWSHIP. We have received a very interesting and significant "Certificate" from a brother in England. It is a common form being used by all the major churches in Britain (Church of England, Methodists, Lutherans, Presbyterians, Roman Catholics, etc.) to certify what they call "Baptism." It says, "The following Churches have agreed that a certificate in this form is evidence of Christian Baptism, and will be accepted by them all as evidence of the validity of each other's baptism." NOTE: This is surely a climactic step in the path of "ecumenism," or— more properly, "Back-to-Rome-ism." By this free intercommunion, these Churches have to all intents & purposes become one with Rome. They may for convenience & from custom keep their own sub-titles, but with intercommunion they have essentially become one. And because (like the nations of Europe & Russia) one among them is so much stronger, & better organized, & more rigidly disciplined, & more historically rooted, than the others—it is in effect a full return to Rome. Rome claims, by its age & preeminence, to be the original, central, foundation Mother-Church. The others, by accepting her fellowship, must concede to her claims. POISONING THE SEAS. Oceans have long been main depository for man's waste. Amount of garbage dumped into sea is reaching saturation point. Spread of technology has resulted in dangerous upsurge in amount of highly toxic material. Many closed seas, as Mediterranean & Baltic, so befouled by oil, radioactive wastes, pesticides & other foul residue, that fish are disappearing. Main danger to sealife & human health is long-lasting or highly poisonous wastes. Worst offender is oil. Each gallon spilled depletes oxygen in 400,000 gallons of sea water, decimating all fish life in the area. More dangerous to human are poisonous metals, as mercury & cadmium. Both concentrate in fish, & can be fatal to humans who eat the fish. Before death, mercury literally drives its victims mad; cadmium destroys kidneys & bones. Among other extremely toxic wastes are radioactive liquids from reactors, & gases used in chemical & biological war research. (Nwk 11:27) NOTE; For 6000 yrs. man has lived on the earth, & the earth has supported him. Now in our day his vastly increased numbers, & his blind, aggressive "progress" to cater to his lusts & pleasures, are rapidly destroying the lifesustaining properties of the planet. But God will shorten the days; sweep away the vast majority of evil flesh; refurbish the earth in cleanliness, beauty & glory; & establish His pure divine Kingdom. 1973 Berean 26 SAUDI ARABIA-U.S. DEAL? Saudi Arabia far more important to West than Egypt, Syria or even Libya, for it sits on top of world's greatest source of oil. Tho producing since '38, it still holds known reserves of at least 150 billion barrels. Recent discoveries may double that. Production now 6 million barrels a day, with 20 million a day planned in a few years. Saudi Arabia's oil minister recently proposed a major increase in Saudi Arabian investments in US in return for guaranteed oil imports. He said, "You are biggest market; we are biggest supplier. We have a mutual interest." US welcomed idea; seems a likely bet before long. (Nwk. 11:27) NOTE: "Sheba & Dedan" always point us to Arabia. It is deeply significant, therefore, that (1) Saudi Arabia has the biggest oil reserves, & (2) is closely allied with US & Britain. POPE RESTORING AUTHORITY. When Vatican II opened doors to modern scholarship, Catholic theologians were quick to seize opportunities. In few short years, they were questioning everything in Church's teachings from sex ethics to papal infallibility. Era of such unfettered speculation seems ending. Vatican's decision: diversity allowed in forms of expression, but not in basic belief. Pope has made it clear only he & bishops have power to "tell the people what God asks them to believe." Time is on Rome's s i d e people get tired of being told something new every day. (Tm 11:13) NOTE: The Man of Sin has a vital role to play in uniting & stirring up the world against Christ when he returns from heaven, whom the Pope will denounce as the long-heralded Jewish Antichrist. The Pope must therefore set his house in order. In religion, the masses want pomp & authority. STRUGGLE TO CONTROL AFGHANISTAN. Strategically located between Russia, China, Pakistan & Iran, an unstable Afghanistan has meant trouble in Central Asia for 2300 years. Today Russia fears emergence of a China-dominated Afghanistan would give China an opening into Mideast. China fears that a Russia-dominated Afghanistan would strengthen wall of containment Russia is trying to build around China. US is intensely interested in keeping it out of orbit of both. US has given $1/2-billion aid since '52; Russia has given $1 billion. Govt. is inefficient & corrupt; it's one of world's least-developed nations. As result of Govt. inertia, 200,000 (a conservative estimate) may die of starvation this winter. Afghanistan so deeply in debt that only massive refinancing of its obligations can avert bankruptcy. Nearly V2 the children die before age 1; nearly V2 the rest before age 12. Afghanistan contains virtually every disease known to medical science. All water is contaminated. Life expectancy is 39 years. (USN11:6) RACE TROUBLE IN ARMED FORCES. Race violence now troubling Navy spotlights a deep-rooted problem. It's causing growing concern as US switches to all-volunteer military. A greater potential for unrest if, as expected, volunteer army results in a bigger ratio of Blacks. Rioting, triggered by race conflict, aboard carrier Kitty Hawk off Vietnam. Black-White battle on Navy ship Hassayampa in Philippines. Refusal of 100 Blacks to return to duty on carrier Constellation at San Diego. Breakdown of discipline in US Navy. Race tension is boiling issue. On some US bases, animosity so high it's unsafe for a soldier to walk alone at night. In July, '70, in N. Carolina, a White Marine beaten to death by Blacks. Last Dec. 30 & Jan. 1, racial brawling at Iwakuna, Japan: 15 Marines injured. (USN 11:27) NOTE: In the present evil world of the sword, where "might makes right," a nation's power & safety & very existence depends upon its armed forces (or those of a strong ally). The race conflict, & the modern false religion of "permissiveness"—worshipping the God of Lust & "selfexpression"—bodes evil for the vital armed forces of US in its coming time of greatest peril & need. 27 1973 B erean RISE IN CRIME & TERROR. Terrorism & wanton brutality cutting ever more deeply into lives of people & nations. Terror now a common event in common places.. . leaving a trail of death & desolation. Trail is widening over much of world by assassination, skyjack, riot, random murder. Fashionable explanations are "childhood deprivation," "social injustice," alienation," & "inescapable inheritance of instinct of violence from prehistoric times." Going far beyond attempts to excuse or explain it, the "New Left" now celebrates violence as a positive virtue: say it promotes "manhood" of oppressed peoples. Experiments in making common cause with criminals are developing, as in efforts to politicize Black convicts. Violence today less & less embarrassed by limits imposed by centuries of lawfulness. By means of hijackings, kidnapings, explosions & fires of recent years, they're announcing their determination to shake & destroy civilization. They may well succeed. In today's "global village," desperate persons move with ease & speed undreamed of by killers in past. As world air travel grows spectacularly—from 46 million passengers in '52 to 325 million in 72—killers find it easier to move undetected. Rising availability of weapons, many the residue of recent wars. In decade or 2, criminals may be armed with nuclear devices. Violent acts growing in number & ferocity. In Britain violent crime up 16 pet. in '72; murder up 30 pet. Many of the crimes were motiveless. US leads almost all other nations in violent crime. From '66 to '71 crime up 90 pet. Police killed: 57 in '69; 100 in '70; 125 in '71. Some big U.S. cities are in state of virtual siege. Old notions of self-restraint, once thought necessary to make life tolerable, are in serious trouble in US. World's shaken by upheavals of all kinds—politics, cultures, economies, communications—offering new openings for terror & destruction. Vanishing is stability of values & authority in this world & next. Emerging is free-form attitude toward human relationships. Ideal of "self-fulfilment" in the new culture is freeing people from rules, institutions, & the past. An age of "harmony & understanding" was promised as restraints loosened, but what has come is a rising flow of violence & disorder, in real life & on screen. Movies make ever more daring forays into depiction of blood-splattered horror. On TV, Viet War is shown with no holds barred—along with riots & other forms of mayhem. People have seen death so many times on TV that now it is nothing for them to kill & hijack. Linked closely to spread of desensitization to violence is undercurrent—even among law-abiding—of hostility to authority. Courts in US & elsewhere are accommodating themselves to concept of "guiltless" aggressor. Real answer to problem of violence must come from within family, & way we raise our children. If that is so, violence will be around as a critical problem for a long time. Fewer young people are anchored to religious belief. (USN11:13) NOTE: Every crime statistic, horrible as it is, is another faith-building testimony to divine Truth, both as to the basic evil of human nature, & the nearness of the end of human rule on earth. Man truly has always been evil, but in these last days the earth is to be "FILLED with violence." The vile modern doctrine of "permissiveness"—to encourage & indulge the lust of the flesh to its wildest excesses & aggressions, instead of to discipline it with the principles of decency & holiness—is filling the earth with a race of selfish & destructive beasts. And modern "progress" is creating weapons & facilities for violence undreamed of in earlier ages. TV has played a large role in the development of this evil state. The justice of God causes man to destroy himself with his own stupidities. But a new day is coming for those few who desire it, & prepare themselves for it with all their heart. ._____-—_^_—_----__---_-___. 1973 B e r e a n 28 CHINA'S AGED LEADERS. Mao is 78, Chou 74. These 2 have somehow kept China together. Once they go, then what? All restraint will be gone. No reconciliation between factions will be possible without Mao or Chou. Expect bloody purges, even a massacre. All China will be in turmoil. (USN 10:23) LATIN AMERICAN ARMS RACE. Latin America turning more & more to Europe instead of US for war equipment. Since '67, Europe has sold over $1.6 billions of sophisticated weapons to eager S. American countries. "Against whom are we arming ourselves? " pleads one Colombian. "We're building armies that are meaningless in international terms, but devastating to internal lives of our countries." Thruout Latin America, burden of meeting payments on foreign debts has been a contributing factor in preventing many countries from breaking out of abject poverty, yet arms race goes on. (Nwk. 10:16) NOTE: 25 yrs. ago, after WWII, US influence & prestige was supreme in S. America. Its united supporting votes could always be counted on in the UN, where US was always in the great majority, & Russia in the tiny minority. But what a tremendous change has occurred! And well may Latin America say, "Against whom are we arming?" Most countries there are, like Russia, under military dictatorships, maintaining their power by the gun. The arms are against their own people. TYRANNY IN UGANDA. 10 yrs. after independence, Uganda quivers under rule of Gen. Amin, a military despot who has terrorized & silenced country's best-educated citizens, murdered & mutilated army officers, & dashed hope» for orderly progress & cooperation in E. Africa. Amin is visible symbol of a common tendency—not limited to Africa—to seek solutions by military dictatorships & law of the gun. He was once widely regarded as Uganda's savior. When he overthrew socialistic Obote 21 months ago, rapturous crowds danced in streets. At first, no one seemed more pleased with Amin than Britain & Israel. The 2 nations had trained him as a soldier, & they gave him economic and military aid, including an Israeli jet flown by British pilots for his own use. Amin is a devout Moslem. He gradually turned against Israel. Last month he issued a eulogy to Hitler's massacre of Jews to emphasize his anti-Zionist fervor. (Nwk 10:16) NOTE: Britain & Israel trained & supported Amin, & now he has turned against them. The nations are powerless in their shady schemings. All is in the hands of God. He sets up & puts down whomsoever He will, often, as He sayst 'exalting basest of men,' as suits His purpose of punishing wickedness. NEW KIND OF CRIME. New kind of international thievery: nominally respectable dealers in US & Europe hire gangs of thieves & killers abroad to get ancient works of art. Looters & their sponsors use every device & strategem known: diplomatic intrigue, bribery, & violence when necessary. Result is sharp rise in corruption Few officials willing to turn down bribes that can exceed their annual salary. Corrupt officials represent just one cog in huge machine engaged in archeological destruction & looting. Archeologists foresee eventual destruction of all records of past. (Nwk. 10:16) NOTE: Under the modern God-less doctrine of "permissiveness," crime & plunder are respectable. The only law is the law of lust. We shall inevitably see more of this spirit in the marketplace. Nothing is sacred. Desire is the only determinant of action. THE COMMON MARKET. Little unity. The 9 leaders look back nervously to voters at home. One candidate, Norway, has already opted out. Not one of remaining 9 leaders can be sure their voters may not want out. The closer British get to membership, the less they appear to like it. Latest polls show only 31 pet. in favor—a record low. (USN 10:23) NOTE: Surely there must be a change of direction here. Something must bring Britain back to her proper position. Her politicians forced her into the Mkt. over the objections and reluctance of her people, but she has no place in the Catholic Europe Beast which must make common cause with the Russian Gog. 1973 Berean 29 EARLY JEWISH OPPOSITION TO ZIONISM. Jewish opposition to Zionism was as formidable an obstacle as anti-Semitism & Arab resistance to formation of Jewish state. In optimistic early decades of 19th century emancipation, the total assimilation of Jews into Europe seemed likely. There was widespread Christian conversion of leading families. Baptism was entrance ticket to European civilization. One prominent Jew said at that time, "A Jew who prefers a non-existent state & nation (Israel) to Germany should be put under police protection, because he's obviously insane." Most Jews continued to believe that, in spite of periodic resurgences of anti-Semitism, assimilation could proceed. Theodor Herzl ''almost singlehandedly" transformed Zionism from a mood into a political movement. In organizing first Zionist World Congress, he immediately found he could get no support from rich Jews such as Rothschilds. "Why stir up trouble?" sums up the reluctance of Munich Jewish community to sponsor the first Congress. It took Nazism, murder of 6 million Jews, & total Arab rejection, to galvanize Zionism into an aggressive force. (Nwk. 10:16) NOTE: The appointed time came in God's prophetic purpose for the Land to be rebuilt, & the Nation to be reborn. But how many comfortable & prosperous Jews would have turned their hearts & steps toward the barren sands of Palestine, without the Catholic pogroms of Poland & Russia, & the Nazi gas chambers of the monster Hitler? "EVOLUTION" CONFUSION. Students of evolution agree on little beyond fact that a recognizable man equipped with a large brain & standing erect, appeared on earth about a million years ago. Now even that benchmark of human ancestry in doubt. (Nwk 11:20) NOTE: Truly students of evolution are "agreed on little" beyond the fact that they must reject the reality & authority & Word of God, & manufacture some theory—however impossible & absurd—to account for all the endless marvels & beauties & intricacies of God's Creation, on the basis of dead, blind, mechanical chance. How pitiful!—when the comforting glories of God's love cry out from every aspect & detail of His marvelous handiwork! Blind Evolution, for all its pomposities, has never explained, or even attempted to explain, the phenomenon of BEAUTY, & beauty is the hallmark of all God's work, from the tiny flower to the sunset: "He hath made everything beautiful in his time." US vs. EUROPE. Unless some way is found to head off a full-fledged USEurope trade war, the former allies may find themselves in bitter rivalry for world energy resources. Economic difficulties could lead to political confrontation. Nixon may go down in history as man responsible for US & Europe breaking their bonds & going own ways. (Nwk 11:27) NOTE: A wonderful sign. This must be. US's stupidity & arrogance, & Europe's greed & resentment, must cause a falling out, & a turning of Europe to Russia. God will send an "evil spirit" between them when the proper time comes. _ _ _ _ _ _ „ _ _ _ _ m m m m m m ARAB OIL VICTORY. The decades-old Arab dream of gaining control over the vast pools of oil beneath Mideast deserts now realized. New oil deal calls for 51 pet. Arab ownership by early '80's. With Arabs now clearly holding upper hand, both availability & price of oil is more than ever under their control. (Tm. 10:16) NOTE: From the point of view of the West's interests & vulnerability, these agreements are far more ominous than they appear on the surface. Let us not forget the Suez Canal, once the proud "life-line" of the mighty British Empire—history's greatest dominion, on which the "Sun never set." Rusty hulks now clog the Canal's stagnant, silting channels. The noose is tightening. Arab control inevitably means, in the end, Russian control. Prophecy & history are rapidly converging for the final act on the human stage of strutting little puppets. 1973 Berean 30 DEEPENING CRISIS IN RUSSIA. Worst crisis in decade, & impact is deepening. Worst crop failure since '63; series of foreign-policy setbacks; shortage of consumer goods; growing internal ideological dissent. Russia being forced to turn to US for help: already has bought billion dollars' worth of grain, & still more will be required. A year of incredibly bad weather: last winter very cold with little snow cover, the summer hottest & driest for a century, then rains fell in torrents just when least wanted—in middle of fall harvest. Vegetable supply, chronically short at best, even smaller than ever. Russia has 40 million persons working in agriculture, compared to Zlk million in US. (USN 10:16) NOTE: Russia is geared for world conquest, not for the well-being of her people. In the instruments of aggression she is frighteningly efficient, but in caring for her masses she is callous and bumbling. And surely the hand of God can be seen in her recent weather—worst in 100 years. She must come hat in hand to US for food, but it will whet her determination for world control. Only US stands in the way, & US is a faltering giant, bogged in its own pleasure-seeking and greed. PHILIPPINES AT CROSSROADS. Marcos declared martial law and seized one-man control on Sep. 22. Philippines faces possible economic collapse, a military takeover, or a Communist armed revolt. If Marcos fails, anything could happen. The overwhelming majority of the 40 million Filipinos live barely above subsistence levels, with yrly. per capita income of under $200. A few "first families" have cornered a large chunk of national income. Country has to import rice & fish, tho it has fertile farmland and is surrounded by ocean. Under V2 population has safe drinking water; only 1 family in 5 has electricity. Resurgence of Communist guerrilla movement. Communist cells multiplying rapidly. Next few months will be critical. (USN 10:16) NOTE: Again & again we are impressed with bro. Thomas' deep understanding of men & nature, based on Scripture. He had short shrift for the charade of "democracy," tho in his day it was greatly in vogue as the "wave of the future" to free man from poverty & oppression. PILGRIM IN POLAND. At least 150,000 pilgrims went to Auschwitz extermination camp last week to honor a Franciscan friar named Kolbe, one of the 4 million murdered there by Nazis. The principal celebrant at Auscnwitz was Cardinal Krol, Archbishop of Philadelphia, whose father came from Poland. When he arrived at his father's home town he was greeted by horsemen in 17th century uniforms of Polish cavalry, & a brass band welcome amidst cheering throngs. In 1966, when Poland celebrated its 1000th anniversary of Christianity, both Krol & Pope were denied permission to visit Poland. Krol's welcome now is just one sign of thaw between Poland's Govt. & Church. (Tm 10:30) NEW US ASIAN OUTPOST. Naval installation in Thailand could become US's "Singapore." US has spent $40 million to convert Sattahip into a deepwater port. Warships operating from here would be in a position to quickly counter Russia's determined bid to expand its power in this region. Russian naval ships are appearing in rapidly increasing numbers in Indian Ocean and Arabian Sea. (USN 10:23) NOTE: In so many ways the young US lion has taken over the position and destiny of the decrepit old British lion. The picture is fulfilling, but how differently from what we expected! This strengthens our faith, and sharpens our caution against presumption. We are not prophets. We can only laboriously glean the prophecies for guidance, to the extent God deigns to open them to us. 1973 Berean 31 RUSSIA-CHINA TENSION becoming more acute, more dangerous. Russia has over million troops, nuclear weapons, missiles, most modern arms on Chinese border. So has China. Build-up continues. National rivalry between 2 imperial giants. China sees Soviet troops in Mongolia, never a Russian possession; sees Russia holding 400,000 sq. mis. that was Chinese before 1858. Now China fears Russian designs on Manchuria, home of 75 million Chinese. Russia sees China reaching for Mongolia, almost empty & rich in pastoral land; sees China threatening the whole of Soviet Far East with an expanding horde of people. Danger remains, and grows. (USN11:27) NOTE: Very interestingly the pattern develops, as God balances one nation against another. It was a pact between arch-enemies Hitler & Stalin that inaugurated WWII. China's 2 dictators, Mao & Chou, are both very old. Big changes due. _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ U.S. BECOMING "HAVE-NOT" IN RAW MATERIALS. Blessed in beginning with wealth of natural resources, US now leaning more & more on other countries for vital raw materials. By '85, US may have to depend on imports for Yk its raw materials, including iron, aluminum, chromium, manganese, nickel, tungsten & tin. US uses 30 pet. of world's mineral output. Since '40, US has used $260 billion of materials—about equal to amount used by entire world in all history up to '40. In '47, US supplied 40 pet. of world's key minerals: now it depends on other countries for 22 of the 74 minerals essential for a modern industrial society. (USN 12:4) NOTE: The wanton plundering & depletion of the Earth's divinelyprovided riches is a sign both that man's evil rule is reaching an end, & that US's position of world power is very precarious. "EUROPE SECURITY CONFERENCE" opened last week in Finland. May be most significant conference since WW II. Russia, who proposed it, bills it as a triumph of Soviet diplomacy. They want it to ratify present Europe borders, solidifying their hold on Central & E. Europe. They seek, too, a more relaxed atmosphere in Europe so they can put pressure on US to withdraw, leaving Russia dominant military power in Europe. (Tm 12:4). NOTE: US fought this "Conference" for a long time, knowing the West had nothing to gain & everything to lose by it. It is a big step forward to Russia's domination of Europe. Russia is an iron-bound dictatorship, rigidly controlled for aggressive national interests. The Western nations are divided & floundering "democracies" with every individual seeking his own selfish & greedy ends. The final outcome therefore is inevitable. HUMAN EVIL. The Ik tribe of north Uganda are all extreme example of human nastiness. It would be an insult to animals to call their habits bestiality. The Ik teach us that our much vaunted "human values" are not inherent in humanity at all. Creation of a game reserve a generation ago penned them in mountains, & forced them to farming. They were afflicted by drought, hunger, isolation, technical inadequacy, disease. Healthy men & women, given food in plenty, will gorge till they vomit rather than share even with their infants. If a man's wife falls by trailside, he'll leave her to die, then grumble if someone else robs the body first. The old, weak, or blind will be tripped, pushed over, & at last ignored as dead tho still alive. The Ik way of life is contagious. They have power to perpetuate their survival system. A theologian would recognize the source of the trouble—the Iks manifest the reality of evil. (Tm 11:20) NOTE: The significance of this is that it is the direction that today's vile "permissiveness" & "self-expression" philosophies are leading mankind. Today's "wisdom" is not to discipline & subdue the flesh & build a character well-pleasing to God, but to "do your thing," regardless of anyone else's rights or welfare. An evil generation of Amorites is filling the earth, to be destroyed at the hands of a new and greater Joshua. Financially, the Berean is covered thru the May issue. 1973 Berean 32 PLIGHT OF POOR COUNTRIES IS GRIM. "Have-nots" lag while "Haves" get richer. Widening gap between world's rich & poor nations. Foreseen are political upheavals, troubles for foreign investors, deterioration of trade. In poor nations, children under 5 account for over 60 pet. of deaths: main cause is malnutrition: 2/3 of survivors stunted physically or mentally. In 70, 25 pet. of labor force in poor countries was wholly or partially unemployed; by *80 it will be 30 pet. There are 800 million illiterates in world today—100 million more than in '50. Brazil shows a typical trend: share of national income received by poorest 40 pet. dropped from 10 pet. in '60 to 8 pet. in 70, while share of richest 5 pet. of people grew from 29 pet. of the national income to 38 pet. In India, 200 million—40 pet. of population—live below poverty level, the point at which serious malnutrition begins. (USN 10:16) NOTE: How dreadful are the dark places of the earth! We happen to live in lands of insulated voluptuousness & greedy abundance, but more of mankind scratches out a joyless, sickly existence in grinding labor & poverty. There is much fine talk of "charity," but it is a poor veneer over inner selfishness; & furthermore, the magnitude of the task is far too great for man to cope with. Russia thinks if she can control the world she will correct all this in her Godless Millennium, but she must beg her own food from the hated capitalists. MOZAMBIQUE GUERRILLAS. A nasty guerrilla conflict, simmering in SE Africa for 8 yrs., in dangerous new phase. Primary target is massive $450-million Cabora Bassa Dam on the Zambezi River which will dwarf Egypt's Aswan Dam. This insurgency threatens interests of White-ruled Rhodesia & S. Africa, raising spector of escalating conflict that could engulf southern Africa. (Nwk 11:27) NOTE: The Tower of Babel again. Race against race. People against people. Nation against nation. Man dreams of "peace," but only an evil, selfserving peace to indulge his lusts & pleasures. But God will not permit it. He must punish them for their disobedience & wickedness by turning them against each other. WHY MAN CAN NEVER BRING PEACE OR JUSTICE. Escorted by 200 police, the little band of frightened Black & Puerto Rican 7th-graders last wk. walked slowly from bus to school door. "You ain't people, you're animals!" shouted someone in crowd of 1500 jeering, egg-throwing Whites massed behind police barricades. "Go back to the zoo." Thus integration came to Canarsie in Brooklyn. "These children will never be welcome here," vowed president of Parents' Assn. White parents organized a boycott that shut down the neighborhood's 8 schools, idling 9500 young people—many of whom spilled out on streets & threatened one another with bats & chains. Police escorted black children into school,but it was nearly empty.(Tmll:13) NOTE: The Tower of Babel set the pattern, & man's vileness has perpetuated it ever since. God sent strife & division among men because of their pride & wickedness, & that strife & division will continue as long as man is proud & wicked. mm__a_^___mmm__m__m___^ TENSE SITUATION IN MOROCCO. US has a large stake: has given $700 million to Morocco since '47. Important communications base at Kenitra links US forces in Mediterranean with US mainland. There have been 2 bloody efforts by the military to overthrow king Hassan, the last by his most trusted adviser. "Have-nots" form overwhelming bulk of population, & there's vast force of restless unemployed. (USN 10:30) MOST SIGNIFICANT ELECTION IN POST-WAR GERMANY. Brandt resoundingly re-elected, confirming his position as most powerful man in W. Europe. (Tm 12:4) THE OIL SQUEEZE. US oil output stagnating. Big supplies are in Africa & Mideast. US will be increasing its imports from there by $1 billion a year, perhaps twice that as prices rise. By '80, US may be importing $20 billion annually in oil. Where is that kind of money coming from? And do we want to make ourselves so heavily dependent on countries of doubtful stability & uncertain ability to defend themselves? Europe & Japan in even worse fix than US. By '80, accumulated oil-earned assets of Arabs will be $100 billion, growing at $20 billion a year. By shifting it around, they could play havoc with international monetary system. And US could be denied a vital resource, not only by supplier countries, but by any power capable of interfering with channels of supply. (Nwk 12:11) NOTE: Clearly the vast, wasteful, lust-&-pleasure oriented US economy is headed for a crisis. So large a proportion of the national economy is devoted to the satisfying of greed & the production of rubbish! The huge & growing US world trade deficit is already keeping the world's money structure in constant & increasing turmoil. Now US is to pour out more & more spiraling billions to buy oil to feed its follies. ANOTHER WAR ROUND IN MIDEAST? In long run, another war inevitable. Russia is sensitive to charges in Arab world that they've become soft on Israel & a poor ally. They want to do something to counter thisv Goal of Palestinians is to raise level of hostility between Arabs & Israel so no settlement possible. Palestinians fear Egypt & Jordan are only interested in getting their own lost lands, & after that would drop Palestine cause. Basic positions of Arabs & Israel are irreconcilable. Israel convinced it's vital for their national security to hold lands captured during '67 War. Arabs feel it's essential to their national honor to get them back. Both really mean it; something has got to give. (USN 10:23) NOTE:' Truly, war IS inevitable. And this time it could well be the final one. How wonderfully the age-old prophecies are fulfilling! "I will gather all nations against Jerusalem to battle." Israel must be isolated & alone, with only an enfeebled Tarshish as her friend. All things are moving beautifully that way. RUSSIAN FOOD CRISIS. In Moscow, basic foods in ominously short supply. Potatoes have vanished from govt. stores; are 50 cents lb. in 'free' markets. Shortages outside Moscow even more severe. Worst food shortage since '63, as recently admitted. Such admissions are rare. Shortages of feed have forced slaughter of precious livestock herds that are insufficient in best of times. Currency sorely needed to buy Western industrial equipment is going for food. In 72, food purchases from West exceeded value of all Russian imports of Western technology during previous 5 years. (Tm 10:30) December Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. John left—Perga Baalzebub—Ekron Place—Casiphia First love—Ephesus Stone Paul—Lystra Uriah died—Rabbah Terah died—Haran On foot to—Assos Righteyes-Jabeshgilead Satan seat—Pergamos Omri built—Samaria Jacob well—Sychar Village called—Emmaus Tell not in—Gath Sing as harlot—Tyre Blind Zedekiah—Riblah 17. Joseph, Elisha—Dothan 33. Taught men—Succoth 18. Deliver up—Keilah 34. Joshua burned—Hazor 19. 2nd city taken—Ai 35. Jezebel—Thyatira 20. Nathanael home—Cana 36. Saul capital—Gibeah 21. Trophimus sick—Miletus 37. Shorn head—Cenchrea 22. Lord roar—Zion 38. Strength—Philadelphia 23. Pharpar,Abana-Damascus39. Pleased not—Cabul 24. Lord make room-Rehoboth 40. Philip found—Azotus 25. Vineyards of—Engedi 41. Desert—Gaza 26. WoundAhab-Ramothgilead 42. Kill 85 priests—Nob 27. Work Wilily—Gibeon 43. Friends home—Bethany 28. Wilderness—Τadmor 44. Avenge blood—Jezreel 29. Mede palace—Achmetha 45. In Sicily—Syracuse 30. Spies—Kadeshbarne? 46. Fetch compass-Rhegium 31. Dyed garments—Bozrah 47. Macedonia man—Troas 32. Treasure city—Pithom 48. N. of Tyre—Sidon $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO. 2 FEBRUARY, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited u*d Published liw G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: Baltimore, Hamilton, Houston, Lampasas, Whangarei Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Our Relation to the Ecclesia 33 Fraternal Gatherings 35 January Answers 35 THE WORK OF THE THIRD ANGEL (Bro. Thomas) 36 SECOND VOYAGE TO AUSTRALIA (Bro. Roberts) Part 26 40 IN THE IMAGE OF GOD MADE HE HIM (Part 2) 46 PRAISE THE LORD, Ο MY SOULI 51 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY 58 Bible Questions Back Cover We «re anxious to send Hie Berean FREE to any desiring if that way. Please do not hesitate to request if. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News BALTIMORE, Maryland—Memorial 10:30am—Bro. Russell Frisbie,3*17 Forest Hill Road, Baltimore 21207. Phone (301) 944-3170. WE are sorry to ώ ν έ to report that bro. George W. Falkinburg and sis. Mary E. Falkinburg are no longer in fellowship with us. We are also sorry to report that sis. Patricia D. Clatterbuck is no longer with us, having given up the Truth. Your brother in Christ,-Russell C.Frisbie HAMILTON, Ont.—Sherwood Rm., Wentworth Arms Hotel, Main & Hughson Sts— Memorial 11 am—Bro. R.F. Philip, 799 Cranston Court, Burlington, Ontario. Phone (416) 639-1750» GREETINGS and Love to all of like precious Faith who call upon Him in Mercy and Truth. It is with sadness we report the falling asleep in Christ of sister Jenny Fotheringham. Sister Jenny died in her 75th year. She devoted her life to the service of the Lord, and exhibited her faith and trust in God in that she was not afraid to remark that she was ready when the time came if she fell asleep before the coming of the Lord. So being dead, the history of her life speaks to us as an example of faith, trust, patience and hope. We will miss the association and fellowship of our sister, but carry on and also fight the good fight of faith, knowing that if found faithful we shall experience the joy of meeting in the Kingdom all who have died in the Lord. May our Lord quickly come. With our united love in the Truth, ,^-..,,-^.-.*^.-.^.^^^ —bro. R.F. Philip HOUSTON, Tex, .77012—Christadelphian Hall, M0t Junius St.—Sun. Sen. 10 a m ; Breaking of Bread 11 am; ΕI pis Israel Class Wed. 7 pm; Revelation Study Sun 7 pm (except 3rd Sun. Public Lecture).—Bro. John Packer, 210 E. Third St., Deer Park, Tex. 77536, phone (713) 479-4292. WITH great joy we announce that ALTON STUCHLIK, after giving a good confession of the Faith on Oct. 27, passed through the waters of baptism on the 28th. We pray that his new walk in life may be found acceptable in the day of the Lord. Also, we are happy to announce that sis. Sharon Scott has returned to Houston after living in Oklahoma City; and bro. & sis. Charles Banta Jr. have returned to Houston after living in Lampasas. Bro. & sis. Lonnie Carroll have moved to Lampasas. Bro. & sis. Roy Johnson have moved to Richardson, Texas. We regret that bro. M.E. Wilhoit has returned to a former group. We have had the following visitors in recent months: bre. & sis. Pat Cassidy, Jack Stanaland, Russell Frisbie, Lonnie Carroll, Nick Mammone, Frank Pyne, Braden Edwards, Fred Higham Jr., George Booker, and Roy Johnson; brethren Ronnie Wolfe, Andrew Marshall, G. Growcott, and Wesley Booker; and sisters Ruby Wolfe, Kay Wolfe, Ouida Landers, Margaret Sommerville and Hattie Wolfe. We appreciate the labor of love of all brethren who assisted us in speaking appointments. —bro. John Packer LAMPASAS, Texas—Christadelphian Hall, Ave. I East—S.S. 10am; Memorial 11 am; Sunday Class 7 pm; Wed. Class 7 pm—Bro. Ross Wolff, 1802 Rumley Rd., Lampasas 76550. Phone (512) 556-5249. GREETINGS of love to the brethren and sisters in Christ Jesus. It is with deep sorrow we report the death of our beloved sister Jessie Hatcher. Yet we sorrow not as those who have no hope, believing her sleep of death will be for only a short time, for she will hear the words— "The Master has come, and calleth for thee." (Continued on Inside Back Cover) Our Relation to the Ecfclesia "These things write I unto thee, hoping to come unto thee shortly: but if I tarry long, that thou mayest know how men ought to behave themselves in the House of God, which is the Church (Ecclesia) of the living God, the pillar and ground of the Truth"—1 Tim. 3:14-15 IT will be noted that in setting out the above words of Paul, we have inserted the word "ecclesia" after the word "church." We will let brother John Thomas explain the reason— "Ecclesia, then, is a word compounded of EK, "out of", and KLESIS, "a call or invitation/* Hence an EKKLESIS is "an invitation to come out"; and the assembly of people convened in consequence of their acceptance of the invitation is an ecclesia. This is the etymology of the word, which is also in agreement with its scriptural constitution" (Eur. 1:120). In his letters, the apostle Paul has much to say about the Ecclesia. Here are three examples. First— "That you may know how men ought to behave in the House of God, which is the Ecclesia of the living Godt the pillar and ground of the Truth." Therefore, the Ecclesia is not a man-made organization, where each member can do as he pleases. Paul likens it to the human body where all parts must work in unison. As soon as the parts of the body cease to co-operate, the result is that disease sets in. If there is nothing done to stop the disease, it will become chronic, and the final result is death. Such, also, is the Ecclesia. The only way in which it can remain in good health is by the willing co-operation of all its members. If it becomes departmental, it is headed for serious trouble. It is not only essential that all members must unite in the operation of the Ecclesia, but it is absolutely necessary for the members to give FIRST PLACE to the Ecclesia and its wellbeing. Another striking illustration of the Ecclesia is given by Paul— "For we are laborers together with God: ye are God's husbandry, ye are God's building"—1 Cor. 3:9. What a lofty and honorable calling! "Laborers together with God." Do we fully realize what that means? If we are working with God, it is certainly essential that we carry out His instructions. It is just impossible for us to set up our own standards. One of the stern lessons that the Law teaches us is that we must follow the course set before us, for the penalty of disobedience is severe. The case of Nadab and Abihu stands out in bold relief, and should burn in our minds so deeply that we would never forget the lesson their disobedience teaches us. 1973 Berean ss But Paul goes further, and says we are God's Building. In what way can we be God's Building? We believe that Paul answers our question in these'words— "Now therefore ye are no more strangers and foreigners, but fellowcitizens with the saints, and of the Household of God. "And are built upon the foundation of the apostles and prophets, Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner stone; "In whom all the Building fitly framed together groweth unto an holy Temple in the Lord."—Eph. 2:19-21. There is another point that we must not overlook regarding God's Building. Paul reminds us of it by saying— "Let every man TAKE HEED how he buildeth thereupon." "A minister of the Sanctuary, and of the true Tabernacle, which the Lord pitched, and not man"—Heb. 8:1-2. In other words, let us be extremely careful during our building operations that we follow the divine specifications, and not make any alterations in the plans as our work proceeds. The third example of Paul's reference to the Ecclesia is one of beauty in which he uses a highly elevated form of expression— "Now of the things which we have spoken this is the sum: We have such an High Priest, who is set on the right hand of the throne of the Majesty in the heavens; When Moses by the instruction of the Spirit pitched the man-made Tabernacle, it was set up in the wilderness of Sinai. But when the Lord pitched the true Tabernacle in the first century, the setting was vastly different. However it was also in a wilderness of unlightened men and women, described by Paul in Eph. 2:12— "That at that time ye were without Christ, being aliens from the commonwealth of Israel, and strangers from the covenants of promise, having no hope, and without God in the world" The Ecclesia is made up of men and women who have come out of that hopeless state by their belief and obedience of the Gospel, and have determined to walk in newness of life, and henceforth they should not serve sin. Having been baptized into Christ, he has become their Master, and they are expected to serve him. Here is the way Jesus puts it— "He that hath my commandments, and KEEPETH them, HE it is ihat loveth me." There is much misunderstanding on the part of some who try to keep the Lord's commandments strictly on the basis of their technical interpretation of the letter of the law, the manner in which the priests, scribes and Pharisees operated. But Jesus put them to the test when—to trap him—they brought a woman to him, taken in adultery, for which the law prescribed death. The way Jesus handled this case should make every one of us sit up and take particular notice. His answer was— 1973 Berean 34 "He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone at her." The teaching of Jesus on the matter of sin, mercy and forgiveness is so clear it just seems impossible for any of us to fail to comprehend it. Therefore, we conclude this month's message with the parable of the Pharisee and the publican. Luke says Jesus spoke this parable unto certain who trusted in themselves that they were righteous, and despised others— 'Two men went up into the Temple to pray; the one a Pharisee, and the other a publican. The Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself, God, I thank Thee, that I am not as other men are, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this publican. I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. "And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as his eyes unto heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner. "I tell you (says Jesus), this man went down to his house justified rather than the other: for every one that exalteth himself shall be abased; and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted"—Lk. 18:9-14 In all our operations of an ecclesia, there are many things on which we must pass judgment. But before we take any action, let us begin with ourselves: for if we judged ourselves as eagerly as we judge others, what wonderful, loving, spiritual communities our ecclesias would be! —Editor Fraternal Gatherings If the Lord Will LAM PAS AS, TEXAS: FRIDAY to SUNDAY, JUNE 8 to 10 Bro. Ross Wolfe, 1802 Rumley Rd., Lampasas, Tex. 76550; (512) 556-5249 Η YE, TEXAS: SUNDAY to SUNDAY, JULY 29 to AUGUST 5 Bro. C. Banta, 815 Boston, Deer Park, Tex. 77536; phone (713) 479-2568 January Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. 18. 19. 20. 21. Elements melt—2 Pet. Things true—Phlp. Revive work—Hab. Balaam—Num. Thorn in flesh—2 Cor. Receive not—2 John Gourd/ worm—Jonah Queen Sheba—1 Kgs. Judge in meat—Col. Bethlehem—Micah Without camp—Heb. Dare go law—1 Cor. All serve Lord—Zeph. Diotrophes—3 John Lord do nothing—Amos Comfort—1 Thess. Belief of Truth—2 Ths. Rose Sharon—Song Food, raiment—1 Tim. Saith Cyrus—Ezra Hate garment—Jude 22. Fall Jericho—Josh. 23. Amraphel—Gen. 24. Mene, Mene—Dan. 25. Law of leper—Lev. 26. Ο foolish—Gal. 27. Patience—James 28. Shake nations—Hag. 29. All work good—Rom. 30. No fear in love—1 Jn. 31. Delilah—Jdg. 32. Bare sins—1 Pet. 33. Absalom—2 Sam. 34. Demas forsake—2 Tm. 35. Msngr. of Cvnt.—Mai. 36. 3-score-10—Psalms 37. Left in Crete—Tit. 38. Brass mtns.—Zech. 39. Paul aged—Phlm. Spirit—Eph. 40. Unity/ Spirit41. Saviors Zion—Obad. 42. Song Moses—Deut. 43. Blood Jezreel—Hos. 44. Cana marriage—Jn. 45. Man sorrows—Isa. 46. Multitudes!—Joel 47. Mother Harlots—Rev. 48. Virtuous woman—Prv. 49. Valley bones—Eze. 50. Jesus in Egypt—Mt. 51. Vanity—Eccl. 52. Josiah—2 Kgs. 53. Rich man—Luke 54. Boaz—Ruth 55. Zipporah—Exo. 56. Haman—Esther 57. Sanballat—Neh. 58. Kill James—Acts 59. Bildad—Job 60. Baruch—Jer. 61. Goliath—1 Sam. CORRECTION IN OCTOBER QUESTIONS AND ANSWERS An alert sister has called attention to an error. In Oct. List 2, and in Oct. Answers No. 37 (Nov. issue), "Ahaziah" is wrong. It should be "Jehoram" as husband of Athaliah. Please correct your copies so they will not be misleading to any later readers. 1973 Berean 35 The Work of the Third Angel BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "And a Third Angel followed them, saying with a loud voice, If anyone worship the Beast and his Image, and receive a Sign upon his forehead, and upon his hand; he also shall drink of the wine of the wrath of the Deity which hath been prepared without mixture in the cup of His indignation. And he shall be tormented with fire and brimstone in the presence of the Holy Angels, and in the presence of the Lamb. "And the smoke of their torment ascendeth until the aeons of the aeons: and they have no respite day and night, who worship the Beast and his Image, and whosoever receiveth the Sign of his name"—Rv. 14:9-11. "AND a 3rd Angel followed them": that is, the 2 Angels treated of in vs. 6-8. His following them indicates that Babylon, the Great City, has fallen BEFORE the 3rd Angel Power proceeds to finish the plagues of the last stage of the "Hour of Judgment.'' In other words, the terrible overthrow predicted in Rev. 18 will be complete. Rome will be where Sodom and Gomorrah are, and for a like reason—because of the filthy conversation and unlawful deeds of the spirituals of wickedness in the heavenlies, who are reserved unto a Day of Judgment to be punished (2 Pt. 2:6-9). There will then be no "Name of Blasphemy" or Papal Dynasty enthroned upon the 7 Heads, or mountains. Popes, cardinals, bishops, priests and deacons; St. Peter's, basilicas, churches and monastic "dens of foul spirits and all unclean and hateful birds"; with all the "dainty and goodly things lusted after" by the beastly soul of the Drunken Harlot of the earth—all these abominations will have departed, and, "as a great millstone cast into the sea," will have subsided into the volcanic abyss, to "be found no more at all." This glorious and complete destruction of the temporal and spiritual Papal Power will have been consummated by the 2nd Angel which proclaims the fall of Babylon. But something more is necessary than the destruction of the Papacy to the complete enlightening of the earth with the glory of the Angel who descends out of the heaven having great power (Rev. 18:1). There still remains the "kings of the earth who have committed fornication and lived deliriously with her," and the "merchants of the earth" who trade in the dainty and goodly things peculiar to the bazaars dedicated by them to guardian saints, and which they call "churches." These kings and priests survive the Sodom overthrow of the "Eternal City." They still occupy their position "afar off" in the 10 Streets of the Great City; for AFTER Rome has been "utterly burned with fire" by the power of the Lord God Who judgeth her, they are said to stand afar off for fear of her torment, and to bewail and lament for her— 1973 Berean 3β "Alas, alas," (they exclaim), "thatgreat city Babylon, that mighty city! For in one Hour is thy judgment come!" (Rv. 18:4-19). But the lamentations of her ecclesiastics are the most mournful and grievous, because the fall of the Papacy by the power of the Lamb ruins their imposture and thievery throughout the world— 'The merchants (or great men) of the earth, by whose sorceries all the nations are deceived, shall weep and mourn over her; for no man buyeth their merchandise any more" (Rev. 18:11, 23). This class of trafficers in the bodies and souls of men (and the sympathizers with the Papacy and the "Eternal City" are not the only class of traffickers in such wares) in the text under consideration, are the men— ". . who worship the Beast and his Image, and receive a Sign in their forehead, or upon their hand" (Rev. 14:9) . . —termed in v. 11 the "Sign of his name." The calamity which befalls their "holy city" evidently fails to transfer their love and worship to the Lamb Power, or Stone of her destruction. They "weep and mourn over her," because her fall ruins their vested interests. Their mourning is not so much their love of the city and its body ecclesiastic, as of themselves. "Brother," said one priest to another, "what a profitable thing this fable of Jesus Christ has been to us!" This is the spirit of the craft—they weep and mourn, not because they discover that the Catholic superstition is a bald and wicked humbug, but because they can no longer utilize it to their own aggrandisement in wealth and power "ρΟΓ n o n mQ buyeth THEIR merchandise and more." That is the secret of their grief! A common danger cements the union of the kings and princes of the late Babylon's dominion. The Drunken Harlot priesthood, the 8th Head of the scarlet-colored Beast, and the 10 Horns— "Have one mind, and give their power and strength unto the Beast." —in aid of the common cause. The 8th Head is the Dictator of the confederacy, styled in Rev. 20:2— 'The Dragon, that Old Serpent, which is the Devil and Satan." The Harlot Priesthood is the False Prophet of the situation, that works miracles before the Beast, and deceives them that had received the Sign of the Beast, and them that worshiped his Image before it was destroyed by the 2nd Angel judgments (Rev. 19:20). When "Christian" nations go to war, the clergy are always there to prophesy success, and to assure the combatants that the "God of battles," who gives the victory, is on their side. True to their calling and character, they will be the chaplains of the military establishments of the Beast in the field, and praying to their "God of battles," and prophesying victory from their "sacred desks" and "altars" over the Israelitish Antichrist! 1973 Berean 37 As usual, they deceive the governments and all who trust them. By their prophesyings they deceive the worshipers of the Beast, and harden their hearts for the capture and destruction to be inflicted on them by the 3rd Angel-power. The Beast and kings of the goat-nations determine to make war against the King of the Jews, and to meet his forces in the field. It is not likely that they will attribute the recent overthrow of the "Eternal City" to power exerted by his will. They will no doubt consider it accidental, and but another phenomenon to be added to the overthrow of Pompeii and Herculaneum. The terrible catastrophe only inflames their wrath, and causes them to "make war upon the Lamb." The Napoleons, the Victor Emanuels, the Francis Josephs, and the Alexanders, of the day, gather together their armies like swarms of bees, intending to scatter his troops with the whirlwind of their host (Hab. 3:14)— "They came out as a whirlwind to scatter me: their rejoicing is as to devour the poor secretly'* (Hab. 3:14). They will think to take him by surprise. But the Eternal Father is on his side; there will therefore be to him no cause of fear. Let the reader study Psa. 118, which treats of "the Stone which the builders refused," and he will find the nature of the situation under the 3rd Angel manifestation— "All nations compassed me about like bees." But, as he enquires in v. 6— "What can man do unto me?*' These armies will rush like the rushing of mighty waters, but "the Lamb shall overcome them" (Rev. 17:14). "They shall be quenched as the fire of thorns; for by the NAME OF YAHWEH will I destroy them" (Psa. 118:12). By this Name they are (Isa. 17:13)— "Rebuked, and chased as the chaff of the mountains before the wind, and like thistledown before the whirlwind." By this Name—the "King of kings and Lord of lords"—the Ten Horns are overcome. They are conquered by the Lamb with 7 Horns and 7 Eyes, because he is the King almighty, and "they that are with him are called, and chosen, and faithful." Such disaster as this, saith the prophet (Isa. 17:14)— "Is the portion of them that spoil us, and the lot of them that rob us" Thus, in "the Great Day of God Almighty," by the invincible troops of the King of Israel, is the Beast and the False Prophet polity '' taken and cast alive into a Lake of Fire.'' 1973 Berean 38 This 3rd Angel judgment (which, like the 2nd, belongs to the plagues of the 7th Vial) slays Daniel's 4th Beast, destroys its body politic, and gives him to the burning flame (Dan. 7:11). By this process the Latin Catholic superstition is eradicated from the kingdoms of Western Europe, which by conquest "become the kingdoms of Yahweh and of His Christ" (Rev. 11:15). The 3rd Angel judgments, however, are not expended with this result. Their smoke continues to ascend "eis aionas aionon"—to cycles of cycles"—or courses of time which constitutes what is commonly styled "the Millennium," because it is a period of 1000 years duration. The smoke of 3rd Angel "torment" continues to ascend to the establishment of "the economy of the fulness of times" (Eph. 1:10), by which time there will be no more Latin and Greek Catholics, Protestants and Moslems to be subdued. This will be a glorious and blessed consummation of the "War of the Great Day of God Almighty," in which Israel will have done valiantly (Num. 24:18), chasing their enemies who fall before them by the sword—5 chasing 100; and 100 of them putting 10,000 to flight (Lev. 26:8). The purpose of the 2nd and 3rd Angel-judgments is 4-f o l d First, to avenge the blood of the saints and witnesses of Jesus shed by the spiritual and temporal rulers of the Greco-Latin nations; Secondly, to render vengeance to the rebellious who refuse to obey the Gospel announced in the First Angel-proclamation; Thirdly, to develop the mercy decreed for Yahweh's Land and the Twelve Tribes of Israel; and Fourthly, that all adversaries being subdued, the surviving population of the earth may rejoice as the reconciled people of the Holy One of Israel, in whom, and in his father Abraham, all the families of the earth are blessed. This 4-fold purpose is indicated in Deut. 32 in the words— "To me belongeth vengeance and recompense. Yahweh shall judge His people, and repent Himself for His servants, when He seeth that their power is gone. "See now that I, even I am He (the Promised Seed), and that there are none of elohim with me: I kill, and I make alive; I wound, and I heal; neither is there any that can deliver out of my hand. "For I lift up my hand to the heavens (Rev. 10:5-6) and say, I am the Living One of the Olahm (or Millennium). "If I whet my glittering sword, and mine hand take hold on judgment, I will render vengeance to mine enemies, and 1 will reward them that hate me. "I will make mine arrows (the 10 Tribes) drunk with blood, and my sword (Judah) shall devour flesh with the blood of the slain, and of the captives, from the beginning of revenges upon the enemy." Therefore (v. 43)— "0 YE NATIONS, HIS PEOPLE, cause ye to rejoice; for He will avenge the blood of His servants, and will render vengeance to His adversaries, and will be merciful to His Land and to His People." When these judgments of the 2nd and 3rd Angels are all exhausted, and the smoke of them consequently ceases to ascend, mankind will then come to know that— "There is none like the AIL OF YESHURUN (the Strength of Israel) riding the heavens in thy help, and with His majesty the clouds. 1973 Berean 39 "The Elohim of the East (elohai kedem: Rev. 16:12) a Refuge, and underneath the Powers of Olahm (the Lamb with the 144,000). "He shall thrust out the enemy from before thee, and shall say, Destroy! Then Israel shall dwell in safety alone. "The fountain of Jacob shall be upon a land of corn and wine: also his heavens shall drop down dew" (Deut. 33:26-28). Then it may be truly said (v. 29)— "Happy art thou, Ο Israel! Who is like unto thee, Ο people saved by Yahweh, the Shield of thy help, and who is the Sword of thine exaltation! Also thine enemies shall be proved liars to thee, and thou shalt tread upon their high places." The "smoke" (Rev. 14:11) which ascends, is the symbol of the glory and power of Deity in burning operation against the worshipers of the Beast. In Rev. 15:8 it is styled— "Smoke from the glory of Deity, and from His power." In this place, the "temple" is said to be "filled with" this smoke. The Lord God Almighty and the Lamb are the temple (Rev. 21:22). The smoke is, therefore, His wrath; and while it flames (Rev. 15:8) «<No o n e is a bf e t 0 enter into tne Nave." —for the Nave is the Most Holy Heavenly State, in which the nations hang the trumpet in the hall, and practise war no more. Second Voyage to Australia BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS "Blessed are they that DO HIS COMMANDMENTS, that they may have right to the Tree of Life, and enter in through the gates into the City"—Rev. 22:14 PART TWENTY-SIX TUES., JULY 12, 1898: FROM PALMERSTON TO WANGANUI NEXT morning we left for Wanganui—about 3 hours' distance. We changed carriages at Aramoho—within 3 miles of Wanganui. On the platform we were met by bro. Taylor, who conveyed us to Wanganui. It seems strange at first sight that an important town like Wanganui should be left off the main line, and be accessible only by a branch. It is due to the situation of the town at the mouth of a river on the sea, and to the conformation of the land which would have required a costly bridge to put Whanganui on the main line. At Wanganui, we were met by sis. Dexter, bro. Mackay, sis. Comrie, and, I think, one or two others. An ''expressman'' took our things, and sis. Dexter drove us in her "trap" to the house, about a mile out on the other side of the river. This they have acquired since my last visit. Here a cow, and a horse, and 5 acres impose the kind of activity that, in such fresh air, brings health—of which the whole family are reaping the benefit. We were soon at home in such genial Surroundings. 1 9 7 3 Berean 40 In the evening a number of brethren and sisters came together to tea. After tea, bro. Dexter took the chair, and guided things into profitable shape by the aid of a program which he had prepared. Several profitable addresses were delivered, intermixed with the singing of hymns. WED., JULY 13: THE WORK OF THE SALVATION ARMY, ETC. Next night (July 13), a similar meeting was held at bro. Taylor's, with this difference, that several enquiring strangers were present, and the occasion was turned into a kind of a Bible Class, at which bro. Tanfield propounded several questions for their benefit. The questions principally related to the position of such movements as the Salvation Army, the George Midler Orphanage, the life of Mr. Gladstone, etc.—whether or not they might have some relation to the work of God in the earth. I replied that God had various classes of servants in the work of preparing the earth, as a final habitation of glory. This was proved by the case of Cyrus, who was styled Yahweh's "anointed," though, as Yahweh said by Isaiah (45:1-4)- «Thou ^st not known Me." So also was Nebuchadnezzar styled 'My servant' (Jr. 27:6). And so the Assyrian— "I will send him against an hypocritical nation . . howbeit he meaneth not so" (Isa. 10:6-7). The earth was being prepared by various agencies, as an inheritance for Christ and the saints. When Christ was on the earth, it was a forest-covered abode of barbarism, for Greek and Roman civilizations were only barbarisms, when judged by the light of the divine law. Since that time the earth had been cleared, and *'subdued" in a physical sense. Also in the sense of intellectual and moral sensibility, great changes had been effected in the populations. At the present moment we were verging on a new age which, though it would be inaugurated by judgment, probably required, for the proper operation of that judgment, the predisposing influences associated with the movement to which reference had been made. The Salvation Army was doing gutter-clearing work; other agencies were ameliorating the natural harshness of the carnal mind. But we need not be careful to assign the place or assess the value of such agencies. We could not do it accurately, and we might make dangerous m i s t a k e s - (<The Lord seeth not as man seeth,, Our aim should be to ascertain the Lord's will, as bearing upon OURSELVES, and leave all outside questions to His settlement. The danger was that in trying to see a divine work in that which is merely human but regulated divinely, we might weaken the obligation of that which is undoubtedly divine—namely, the Gospel and institutions of Christ, as apostolically revealed. The great question was— t,What must w e do to be saved?» 1973 Berean 41 The question was not likely to be helped by the study of movements among men—however striking. We must never forget that, as regards eternal life, nothing is acceptable to God but God's Own requirements. Jesus had informed us that "in that day" many would vainly come to him claiming favorable consideration on the ground that they had preached in his name, and done many wonderful works. FRI.-SUN., JULY 15-17: T W O LECTURES IN THE THEATRE On Friday there was a lecture in the theatre, at which there was a fair audience; and again on Sunday evening at the same place. Lengthy notices appeared in the papers, supplied by bro.Mackay. MON., JULY 18: TO HAWERA: THE JENKINS: A LECTURE We took leave of the brethren with regret on Monday, July 18, and went forward to Hawera, where it had been arranged one lecture should be given. Bro. & sis. Jenkins have been for some years located in this place—a township of considerable size and importance (population perhaps 4,000 or 5,000). They have been known as inscrutable people, whose inscrutability, it was thought, was probably due to mental derangement, instead (as the fact is) of mental arrangement. They were desirous that their true position should be exhibited to their neighbors, in connection with an invitation to such neighbors to share such a blessed position, for— "Blessed are they that do His commandments, that they may have right to the Tree of Life, and enter in through the gates into the City." The subject chosen was: "The Clergy All Wrong About the Gospel, Both as to Its Nature and Indispensability to Salvation." The place was the theatre. The audience was large. The chair was occupied by bro. Jenkins. I had a close hearing for an hour-and-ahalf, after which a preacher rose and repudiated the allegations that had been made. He did nothing more than assert, and you cannot answer assertions except by counter-assertions—in which there is no profit. The only attempt at argument was the citation of 1 Cor. 15:1-3, in proof of the death of Christ being the Gospel. I pointed out, in reply, that the death of Christ was only part of the Gospel, that it must first be known who Christ was, before his death could be understood, and that no man could know what it was to be the Christ or Anointed, who did not know the things concerning the Kingdom of God in which the Christship had its essence. The interruption caused a little stir. I said that it was impossible that the question could be properly argued in a few minutes at the close of a lecture, but that if the gentleman was desirous of a proper argument, I should not be unwilling, on another occasion, to meet him in a properly organized debate. 1973 Berean 42 It seems, from what bro. Jenkins afterwards reported, that a very favorable impression was produced. He reports a call for literature, and says he could profitably use what spare literature brethren may have beside them. "Mr. Jenkins, furniture-maker, Hawera, Tarranaki, N.Z.," will find him. TUES.-THURS., JULY 19-21: TO STRATFORD: SIS. BAERNACKI Next day we went forward to Stratford, under the shadow of Mt. Egmont, 20 miles distant, accompanied by bro. Nash, who had come from Stratford; and also by sis. Jenkins and her children, who intended spending the time there during our presence. Stratford is the place where the ecclesia, for several years, consisted of 3 sisters only, meeting regularly in the house of sis. Blair. They have now been reinforced by 3 brethren, and one or two additional sisters—namely, bro. Nash and his wife; bro. Gold, from Hastings; a bro. Steward and his wife; and lastly, by a sis. Baernacki (pronounced Baernatzki—Polish 'c* having the sound of *tz'). The case of the last has special features of interest. She is the (Scotch) wife of a Polish refugee, who fled to England, from political trouble, 40 years ago. Her husband obtained a high position in the Indian Civil Service, and, after a lengthened service in India, was pensioned off, and came to live in N.Z. Mrs. Baernacki was always of an enquiring turn of mind in religious matters. Her position in India brought the clergy about a good deal, and in her position as hostess, she used to put questions to them, which they could not ignore. She now says that, without exception, they were unable to deal with her questions, and confessed their own ignorance, and pooh-poohed the matter as of no importance. They all told her not to trouble herself. She told them it was extraordinary that they should tell her to take no trouble about matters that were of the very first importance, unless they were all hypocrites in professing to be the servants of God. 1973 Berean 43 She got no satisfaction till she came to New Zealand, where she was brought into contact with the brethren at Wellington, through her son. She now finds great satisfaction in the perfect understanding of the Scriptures that the Truth has brought her. If she could have the company of her husband and sons in the matter, her joy would be full. Perhaps God will grant this great favor. I had some conversations with them. Their difficulties are those created by false systems of religion. Mr. Baernacki said the clergy told him he must have faith. But how was he to get faith? GET THE FACTS, THEN FAITH WILL COME I told him to get FACTS, and faith would soon come, for faith was the confidence produced by facts. The case for revelation rested in facts that could not be disposed of. A man might be ignorant of the facts, and therefore unaffected by them. But the facts were there, and—when known—produced their effect by the inevitable law of conviction. While at Stratford, we were accommodated at a private boarding house, in the absence of convenience among the brethren. This arrangement worked very well. It tends to health, and efficiency of work, to be at perfect ease privately, and under no necessity to talk at meals. The brethren sometimes do not understand (and cannot without experience understand) that the incessant consumption of nervous energy, in speaking and writing, renders it necessary that the domestic intervals should be in perfect repose, so far as talk is concerned. It is the very highest kindness they can bestow, to leave us alone at such times. They cannot think so perhaps, but it is true. Of course, it is nothing but the weakness of this mortal nature, but facts are facts. The Stratford brethren acted on this principle in providing us apartments in the house of a stranger. They conferred a great benefit, for which we were duly grateful. We know it cannot always be as we would wish, and when it so happens we resign ourselves. But as Paul says, "If thou mayest be free, use it rather"; so we do. 2 LECTURES & A TEA MEETING: "ONLY BELI EVE"—BUT WHAT? There were 2 lectures and a tea meeting during our stay at Stratford. The lectures were well attended. Bro. Gold presided, and bro. Nash read the Scriptures. There was a little interruption the second night, by a Plymouth Brother, who contended, at the close, that it was enough to simply believe in the Lord Jesus, as Paul told the Philippian jailor. I asked him if Paul did not mean, Believe the Truth concerning the Lord Jesus? He answered that Paul said nothing about believing the Truth concerning the Lord Jesus—it was, believe in him. But how, said I, could a man believe in the Lord Jesus, who did not know who the Lord Jesus was? He thought that was quibbling. Nay, my friend, said I, be reasonable. Would you not say that a man must believe in the Lord's crucifixion? Yet Paul said nothing about that just then. Must he not believe in the Lord's resurrection, about which Paul said nothing just then, though he said elsewhere that a man must with his heart believe that God raised Christ from the dead, in order to be saved (Rom. 10:9). 1973 Berean 44 Our friend did not like the squeeze of reason, so he walked out of the meeting, muttering that it was all a pack of lies, and that he should afterwards show it. FRI., JULY 22: TO NEW PLYMOUTH: THE BURDENS OF TRAVEL We left Stratford for New Plymouth on Friday, July 22. At New Plymouth we were to catch the steamer for Auckland, sailing at 9:35 p.m. The proper train to catch the steamer was several hours after the train we selected. There was advantage in the proper train, inasmuch as it would give us more time at Stratford, and run us right down to the steamboat side at the break-water, whereas other trains stopped short at New Plymouth proper, landing us 3 miles away from the waterside. But "per contra," we should arrive in the dark in a bustling crowd, and it would not be easy to look after our things. We preferred to have time and deliberation and quietness, as most people do when they get to the declining side of life. So we took the 3 o'clock train, in which we found there were disadvantages. It was not only that we had to hire a special conveyance for the 3 miles down to the break-water, but when we got there, we found the cab could only get as far as the shore end of the pier, and we had to carry, and have carried, our things along the whole length of the break-water in the dark, in the teeth of high winds and rain, amidst waggons and intersected railway tracks, before we could get to the steamer. It was a stiff half-hour's work. I first saw sis. Roberts on board, and then returned with a steward to the heap of things, which in 2 journeys we carried on board. Once there, it was bliss, with no friends to talk and kindle up to. (Poor human weakness. It will be different on the happy morn. The multitude of the redeemed will not want to get away from one another then). At 9:35 ρ .m. the rest of the passengers came bundling aboard, and the steamer instantly sailed out into the darkness and tempest. SAT., JULY23: BYSHIPTO AUCKLAND: WITH THE TANFIELDS We had a rough night, but it was soon gone, and at 10 o'clock next morning we were sailing in the sunshine into the quiet sheet of water, that forms the land-locked harbor of Onehunga (pronounced Oney-hung-ha), the port for Auckland on the west side. Mooring at the wharf, we were soon among friends. Bro. Tanfield was there, and sisters Walker and Leitch, and I think one or two others. The train for Auckland (about 8 miles distant) came alongside, and whisked us away to the beautiful city, which vies with Sydney and Hobart, as having the most beautiful harbor in the colonies. We were to be bro. Tanfield's guests, who lives on the Devonport side of the harbor, so we had to get into a steam ferryboat for a sail of about 2V2 miles, which was done in 15 or 20 minutes. Landed on the other side, we were soon under bro. Tanfield's godly roof, where we made the pleasant acquaintance of his wife, who is also in the Faith, and the intelligent and hearty abettor of all her husband's ways in the Truth. We were also pleased to become acquainted with their large and interesting family, of whom there is hope that they also will embrace the hope of Israel. erean 45 1973 B SUN., JULY 24: MEETINGS AT AUCKLAND Next day (Sunday), we crossed in the morning to the breaking of bread, and remained over for the day, under sis. Walker's lively roof. In the evening there was a lecture on 'The Resurrection of Christ/' There was a large audience, in spite of the driving rain. The meeting was near a large new chapel that has been built by the Conditional Immortalists—a somewhat numerous body of people, who have discarded the grosser features of sectarian darkness, but who refuse submission to the claims of the Truth in the fulness of its harmonious doctrines, and practical obligations. They considered the Truth "narrow"—which Jesus said it was. They prefer liberty and numbers. This is convenient for the time, but "What will ye do in the end thereof?" They are tainted with partial inspiration. This will rot them away to nothing at last. The Truth has had many difficulties to encounter in Auckland, but there is every appearance of better times in store. Bro & sis. Tanfield are great acquisitions, and there are buddings of fruit in other directions. In the Image of God Made He Him "Men are made after the similitude of God"—James 3:9 "Man is the image and glory of God"—1 Cor, 11:7 PART TWO THE LITERAL FOUNDATION OF SCRIPTURE THERE is undoubtedly much more to the general subject of the 'image of God' than just bodily form. The whole Bible is built on this plan— "First that which is natural, afterwards that which is spiritual." The solid literal foundation in each case is firmly laid, and then the beauties of type, lesson or symbol are developed from it. But Christendom sweeps away the literal basis entirely and gives everything a "spiritual" interpretation. There is jnuch in the Bible about Israel, Jerusalem, temple, city, etc., that is figurative and spiritual. Christendom uses this to break down the literal foundation upon which these spiritual truths are built. To them, there is nothing literal in all the promises about Israel, Jeru- salem, the land, etc. All, however obviously factual and literal, must be "spiritualized." The word "body" is another excellent example of this treatment. Unquestionably there is much secondary or figurative use of this word, but it is all based on the solid literal foundation. When we read that he "shall change our vile body (soma) that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious body (soma)" we know that it is strictly literal—the basic foundation of our hope of eternal life through glorification of the literal body. And when we read "For the edifying of the body (soma) of Christ," and "We are members of his body (soma)," while we fully understand this does not mean a literal physical body, still we do not feel compelled 1973 Berean 46 to set the one against the other and conclude that the literal meaning must be false. The real, simple, literal frameivork of the Bible is our anchor. Certain statements are demon- strably literal. We need all of the literal scriptural foundation to combat the immaterial soul theories of Christendom, which merely brushes aside all literal statements that do not fit its views. ACCEPTING JUST WHAT GOD HAS SAID WHAT then is the literal foundation that we are given concerning man being made in the image of God? It is not a matter of what we think it should mean, or of developing an idea that we feel to be "conceivable." ANY conception of God is "inconceivable." It is just as difficult, yea, more difficult, to conceive of Him without a body than with one—just as difficult and more so to conceive of Him with any other form than one like our own. It is just as impossible for us to adequately conceive of space as endless as it is to think of it. with an end (for what is beyond?). Our minds are not constructed to grasp these things, and to speculate is folly. We must—as carefully as we can—try to determine just what God has told us, and hold firmly to that. That is our salvation. Exactly what He has told us— thereby we may, in His mercy, save ourselves from the pitfalls that have befallen all who have permitted their minds to speculate and wander from the narrow beam of directly revealed truth. When we have established the literal foundation, and fixed it immovably in our minds, then we can profitably examine the secondary meanings and lessons that are developed from it in Scripture. As regards the soul, hell, death, satan, Israel, Jerusalem, temple, land, city, h e a v e n , earth, etc., the Old Testament lays the solid foundation of literal reality. Upon this established reality the New Testament builds. C h r i s t e n d o m throws the Old away—the book of definitions—and is therefore free to make what it likes of the New. 1973 Berean TSELEM THE word "image" in question in Gen. 1:26-7 is tselem in the original Hebrew. This word occurs 34 times. Of these 34 occurrences— In 4 places it is used in connection with the making of man in God's image—Gen. 1:26, 27; 9:6. In 27 places it is obvious and inescapable f r o m the direct context that the meaning is actual, literal form, shape and appearance. In the 3 remaining places the meaning is not fixed by the context. (One of these 3 concerns Seth being in the "image" of Adam—we believe the simple, natural meaning is obvious but not absolutely conclusive.) The f o l l o w i n g are all the o c c u r r e n c e s of this word tselem— The four references to the 'image of God'— Gen. 1:26—"And God said, Let us make man in our image, after our likeness." Gen. 1:27 (twice)—"So God created man in his own image, in the image of God created he him." Gen. 9:6—"For in the image of God made he man." 47 The 27 times where the meaning is clear and unmistakable — Num. 33:52—"Destroy all their molten images." 1 Sam. 6:5—"Ye shall make images of your emerods and images of your mice." 1 Sam. 6:11—"The images of their emerods." 2 Kings 11:18—"And his images broke they in pieces." 2 Chron. 23:17—"And brake his images in pieces." Eze. 7:20—"They made the images of their abominations and their detestible things." Eze. 16:17—"Madest to thyself images of men." Eze. 23:14—"Images of the Chaldeans portrayed with vermilion." Amos 5:26—"Moloch and Chiun your images." Daniel, chaps. 2 & 3—Sixteen occurrences 'the great image/ the image's head,' 'smote the image upon his feet,' 'an image of χ old.' 'the golden image.' Dan. 3:19—"And the form (tselem) of his visage was changed" the visible appearance. The 3 remaining times where the meaning is not definitely fixed by the context — Gen. 5:3—"Adam begat a son in his own likeness, after his image." Psa. 39-6—"Man walketh in a vain show (tselem)." Some translate this, "Although every man walketh in the image (of God), yet . . ." Psa. 73-20—"O Lord, when Thou wakest, Thou shalt despise their image." In every place w h e r e the This last is illustrated by meaning of this word tselem is many passages, such as these: fixed by the context, it inescapIsa. 41:23 (God speaking to ably refers to literal form. the idols) — "Show the things SO WHEN GOD USES THIS that are to come hereafter, that WORD AND SAYS THAT MAN we may know that ye are gods IS MADE IN HIS IMAGE, WE . . Behold, ye are of nothing, BELIEVE THERE CANNOT and your work of nought. An BE ANY DOUBT AS TO WHAT abomination is he that chooseth HE MEANS US TO UNDERyou." STAND BY IT. Jer. 2:28 — "Where are the To suggest that this word as gods that thou hast made thee? used here means something enLet them arise, if they can save tirely different from its real thee." meaning and the way it is used Eze. 6:4-7 — "Your images everywhere else is surely unshall be broken . . and ye shall reasonable and w r ο η g, and know that I am the Lord." would open a way whereby all * * * the literal framework of the So we see that in 27 cases Bible could be nullified. 'tselem' conclusively means a For any who will treat the literal, visible, outward form. Scriptures fairly and loithout and in the remaining three previous bias, really seeking the cases where the meaning canmeaning intended. Gen. 1:26 can not be proven from the context, convey but one simple, clear this same meaning is the simmeaning. 1973 Berean 48 plest and most reasonable one Free from theological specuto infer. lotion about immortal souls and the body not being the real man, this is the conclusion all sound brethren have come to in the past as they have read this revelation from God. WHOLE SUBSEQUENT PICTURE CONFIRMS THIS THE whole subsequent picture as given in the Scriptures clearly confirms and agrees with this fitting and beautiful and inspiring and ennobling literal foundation of our kinship with the Father—"In the image of God created He man." This is necessitated by the revealed fact that—for those who are faithful—this mortal body is to be changed to glorious eternal spirit substance "even like unto Christ's glorious body" which is so described after his resurrection. (Christendom has lost this anchor of reality -— bodies are quite incidental to their creed.) Jesus Christ—a g l o r i o u s spiritual body—now sits at the right hand of God, his Father. To that divine family we hope to be eternally joined, each with his body changed to glorious, incorruptible spirit substance, sons of our Father in heaven. This conception of God as the Father and glorious Archetype of all His children is woven throughout the Bible. It lies at the root of, and gives meaning to, all the "manifestations of God" right down to that greatest and fullest manifestation— " a Son." 1973 Berean 49 TEMUNAH same word as used in Deut. IN Num. 12:8 God says— 4:12, "Ye heard the voice . . . "With him (Moses) will ί but SAW no similitude." (This speak mouth to mouth . . . latter verse has been used in and the similitude of the Lord the arguments for the views we (Heb: Yahweh) shall he be are combatting.) hold." This word occurs ten times This word "similitude" is in all, as follows:— temunah a n d is e x a c t l y the Num. 12:8—"The similitude of the Lord (Yahweh) shall he behold." Exod. 20:4—"Thou shalt not make any graven image or any likeness of anything.'* Deut. 4:15—"Ye saw no manner of similitude." Deut. 4:16—"The similitude of any figure, the likeness of male or female." Deut. 4:23—"Graven image, or the likeness of any thing" (Same in verse 25). Deut. 5:3—"Graven image, or the likeness of any thing." Job 4:16—"An image was before mine eyes." Psa. 17:15—"I will behold Thy face in righteousness: I shall be satisfied, when I awake, with Thy likeness" (RV: 'with beholding Thy form.') It will be observed that in in the other two places (Num. every occurrence but the first 12:8 and Psa. 17:15) where the and the last, the context leaves similitude of God is referred to, no possible doubt that actual, we have any license to give it outward, visible form or shap r a different meaning? To arbiis meant. Eight times out of ten trarily say that temunah does not mean visible form in these the context positively fixes the 2 places in question, when it unmeaning. On w h a t possible deniably does everywhere e3se, ground can it be claimed that is utterly unreasonable. How can God teach us any thing, if we are going to treat words like this? Here again He is using a word to teach us something about Himself, and in every other place in Scripture where He uses that word He so arranges the context as to make the meaning inescapable—literal form. He says of Moses, "The similitude of Yahweh shall he BEHOLD," and a fulfilment of this promise is described in detail in language that can leave no doubt as to its literal meaning—Exo. 33:2023. ALL REVELATIONS OF GOD POINT JUST ONE WAY ALL that is revealed on this subject tends in one direction. All the 'similitudes of Yahweh' that have been manifested have been of just one form. Surely God is leading our minds to but one conception. Bearing in mind the clear meaning of Gen. 1:26, this consistent presentation all through Scripture is irresistible in its import. As bro. Thomas points out (Eur. I, p.95-6), "The appearance of the likeness of the glory of Yahweh*' (Eze. 1:28) which was "the likeness as the appearance of a MAN" (v.26) is another link in this chain of the manifestation of the similitude of Yahweh. And what else can we reasonably make of Exo. 33:20-23— "And He (Yahweh, v.17) said. Thou canst not see My Face, for there shall not man see Me and live . . . thou shalt see My back parts: but My face shall not be seen." Surely no words could be plainer or more specific than this, if we will accept them in their simple meaning. Again we have Exo. 24:10-11— "And they saw the God of Israel and there was under His feet as it were a paved work of sapphire stone." All this fits perfectly on the foundation of Gen. 1:26-7 that God patterned His children after His own form; which form —in the faithful—will be perpetuated in the incorruptible spirit nature like to the glorious body of Jesus Christ. We do not desire to analyze or speculate upon these statements. We do not know how or to what degree either Moses or the elders or Israel or Ezekiel saw God. We do not believe it is a profitable subject for analysis or speculation. We simply desire to extract from these passages the one basic revelation in them—the simple confirmation they give us concerning the revealed form of God. God has chosen, in His wisdom in laying the foundation of our knowledge, to reveal this. If He had not, it would be utter presumption to discuss it or theorize upon it. But He has been graciously pleased to make certain revelations, and this point we are considering is part of the knowledge concerning Himself and ourselves that He desires us to receive and live by-"Your BODY is the temple of the Holy Spirit:' Ye are shaped for a noble and exalted destiny—as glorious SONS of God! This revealed truth helps to guard us against the nebulous vaporizings ο f trinitarianism and immortal-soulism. It is just the opposite from what the wisdom of the world has decided that God should and must be. For the pitifully limited natural human mind to formulate conceptions of what is or is not "fitting" as regards the Nature and Person of God is the sheerest folly. Wisdom will simply accept what God has revealed. 1 COR. 11:7and JAMES 3:9 1973 Berean 1 Cor. 11:7—"Man is the image and glory of God." 50 James 3:9—"Men, which are made after the similitude of God." These both clearly refer to discernment. Gen. 1:26-7, and speak of a natTo say that it means "dominural condition applying to all ion" is very strained, for both men indiscriminately. It is clear Genesis and James describe from the first reference that it mankind as "created," "made," is something the man alone has in the image of God, clearly rein the primary sense and NOT ferring to some inherent factor THE WOMAN. of the actual thing made, part of To say that it means "spiritual the actual making or forming, discernment" is obviously un- and not something externally sound because Paul and James bestowed upon him, as dominspeak of it as something still ion. This "dominion" interpretaapplying to all men in their tion also, of couse, ignores the day. And by this line of argumeaning of image in Gen. 1:26 ment, I Cor. 11-7 would indias we have shown it to be. cate that sisters had no spiritual (Continued next month, if the Lord wlfl) Praise the Lord, Ο My Soul! "While I live will I praise the Lord: I will singpraises unto my God while I have any being!"—Psalm 146:2 PSALMS 146 TO 150 THE Psalms is one of the most beautiful and majestic books of all Scripture. These words cover every aspect of the Truth—from the highest conception of Yahweh as Creator and Sustainer of all—to prophecy—to things of Christ—to the great plan of man's redemption ; and to illustrate that perfect faith, confidence and oneness that man can attain with God. The Hebrew name of the book of Psalms is Tehillim, meaning Praise. This is the basic theme of the whole book. We are exhorted over and over again to praise God. Psa. 147:1— "Praise ye the Lord: for it is good to sing praises unto our God; for it is pleasant; and praise is comely." Psa. 95:2-3—"Let us come before His presence with thanksgiving, and make a joyful noise unto Him with psalms. "For the Lord is a great God, and a great King above all gods." P s a l m 50:23 gives us the personal application— 1973 Berean si "Whoso offereth praise glorifieth Me: and to him that ordereth his conversation aright will I show the Salvation of God." To praise God is to glorify Him. Praise should come from the innermost part of our being, and not just from the lips. God's whole plan and purpose in Creation is that ultimately His Name might be glorified. The final completion will come when— "The earth shall be filled with the knowledge of the glory of the Lord." We all often speak and pray about God's glory filling the earth. This is what we all SAY we look and long for. If this IS our innermost desire, then our walk and conduct in the Truth will show it. We will glorify God in every way, in all circumstances. We will read and study and learn more of His glorious truths. Our every action, our whole lives, will be dedicated to glorifying God. Anyone who is not doing all they can from the heart, will not be "shown the Salvation of God" in the form of eternal life. It is not enough to just KNOW God's will. Today, with so many books available on the Truth, it could easily be conceived that knowledge is the principal thing. But it is not. The will of God not only must be known, but DONE. It must be engraved on the mind, and issue from the heart in deep longing for God and His ways. Thru this means, we will find our highest joy in obedience. David said— "I delight to do Thy will, Ο my God, yea, Thy Law is within my heart/' This is the only way and true basis of obedience. It is the only way we can keep the commands of God. If our heart and mind are blended in conformity with God's will, our delight will be in doing His service. The words of inspiration pondered in the heart, will be as a stream flowing from the fountain of life. As David says (Ps.36:9): "With Thee is the fountain of life: in Thy light we shall see light.'* There are many beautiful thoughts and exhortations that can be extracted from the Psalms if we allow ourselves to see and use them. The words were written and recorded that we might profit from them and become obedient to God's ways, purified and beautified in our lives and characters. Obedience is the best sacrifice we can offer in our hope for mercy. "Behold the eye of the Lord is upon them that fear Him, upon them that hope in His mercy." By fearing or reverencing Him, David says, God will look down upon us and extend His mercy. This is the only course we can follow if we wish His mercy to rest upon us. The natural mind will not tell us this, and if we heed it, we will wander out of the way of understanding. By heeding things spiritual and developing the spiritual mind, we will not wander. This book of praise, if we lovingly obey its words, will be a light before our eyes. It can truly be said that everyone will find in the Psalms words that will suit every occasion in their walk to the Kingdom. The last 5 Psalms are truly Psalms of Praise to God. Each begins: "PRAISE YE THE LORD" —and ends the same way. The Psalmist is deeply moved to praise God in thankfulness for all things. He is determined, while he lives, to constantly praise the Creator and extol His Name— 1973 Berean 52 "Praise ye the Lord! Praise the Lord, Ο my soul!" "While I live will I praise the Lord: I will sing praises unto my God while I have any being" (Psa. 146:1-2). As the Psalmist says, our lifetime is the time we are given to praise and serve God. We often sing this in Hymn 142—"Life is the time to serve the Lord." For in death there is no opportunity (v.4)— "His breath goeth forth; he returneth to his earth: in that very day his thoughts perish." Do we remember this as we arise to face each new day? We should give thanks for the new opportunity to serve God and praise Him. We should begin the day with prayer, seeking forgiveness for all our past sins, with earnest determination to use the day before us in obedience and service to God. This is the purpose of each new day, why it is provided. As we use it rightly, it will help us both now and in the day of judgment. V.3—"Put not your trust in princes, nor in the son of man, in whom there is no help" (margin—salvation). It is a shortcoming today that people are more and more placing confidence in their own personal aspirations. But we, as children of God, must not do so, for we have all sinned and come short of the glory of God. No human scheme by us, no matter how marvelous it may seem, will ever help us to attain salvation. We must place our trust and faith in God alone. God only knows all our needs, and He is the only One who can provide, if we ask in faith. Our faith must be in the One God of Jacob, our hope for deliverance in Him. The more we draw to Him in prayer and reading of His Word, the more help we receive in the renewal of inner strength, joy and peace. V.5—"Happy is he that hath the God of Jacob for his help, whose hope is in the Lord his God, "Which made heaven and earth, the sea and all that therein is: which keepeth truth for ever." The Psalmist gives the reason why we must not trust in man: he soon dieth. And he contrasts that with why we should trust in God: God created the heavens, the earth, the sea and everything in it. If He has such great power to create and sustain all the universe, surely we can trust His promise that His Word will not fail, His Truth will endure forever. Let us think upon this. Perhaps we should consider more the unsearchable wisdom and power of Him that hath— ".. stretched out the heavens and laid the foundations of the earth." Astronomers tell us from their observations— wn Berean 53 "The moon revolves around our earth; the earth,with its associate planets, revolves around the sun. "All the infinite host of heaven is grouped into clusters and systems that revolve, orbit within orbit, and world around world, until a firmament of millions of suns is balanced by another as great, and all go sweeping together around some mightier center. "And so suns, whose light has been millions of years in reaching us, are all rushing as though driven by hurricanes of infinite power around some mysterious center." The vast heavens above us go beyond our mortal comprehension. Yet we read in Psalm 147:4-5— "He telleth the number of the stars; He calleth them all by their names. "Great is our Lord, and of great power: His understanding is infinite." This introduces the beautiful thought of the Psalmist (Ps. 8:3-4) — "When I consider Thy heavens, the work of Thy fingers, the moon and the stars, which Thou hast ordained; "What is man that Thou art mindful of him? And the son of man, that thou visitest him?" In consideration of such immense greatness and power, it is only fitting that we praise Him. He has called us to be a part of His great purpose of filling the earth with His glory. The number of stars is used in Scripture to typify a countless number, like the sand of the sea. The stronger the telescope man invents, the more stars he can see—and still there is no end. The sun itself is a star. Being close to the earth, it acts as its source of light and heat. Spiritually, stars represent individuals given immortality— "As one star differeth from another in glory, so is the resurrection of the dead." And Daniel was told (12:3)— "Many that sleep in the dust of the earth shall awake . . They that be wise shall shine as the brightness of the firmament, and they that turn many to righteousness as the stars forever and ever." At the Creation, the angels are spoken of as "morning stars" singing together as, at the bidding of God, they brought light and life to a dead earth. Morning stars are those whose rising heralds the dawn. Jesus is THE bright and morning Star, the Sun, the ruler of the heavens. Ps. 147:8—"Who covereth the heaven with clouds.. " Clouds, in their natural state, are a dense concentration of water droplets suspended in air. They oftentimes hold thousands of tons of moisture necessary for watering the.earth. If clouds are lacking in any area, then there is no rain, and all things wither. We see that this is so from many dry climates where the earth is a desert. There must be clouds and rain for life. Elihu asked Job (37:16)— "Dost thou know the balancing of the clouds? The wondrous works of Him Who is perfect in knowledge?" We should ask ourselves this same question, and draw from it spiritual thoughts. Clouds are used in a spiritual sense as the medium of God's manifestation and operations. At the transfiguration of Jesus (the manifestation of the glory of his kingdom) a bright cloud overshadowed. 1973 Berean 54 When he was taken into heaven a cloud received him. It is promised he will come "in the clouds of heaven." These clouds are the clouds of saints—the cloud of immortal ones, drawn up by the Sun of Righteousness, changed into Spirit nature, ready to pour out the judgments of God. When we let our minds dwell upon God's Creation and its spiritual significance as revealed, we find much promise and beauty in God's presence manifested in the clouds. Continuing Ps. 147:8— " . . who prepareth rain for the earth." As God blesses the earth with rain, so He blesses us with His Word: "For as the rain cometh down, and the snow from heaven . . watereth the earth and maketh it bring forth and bud, that it may give seed to the sower and bread to the eater, so shall My Word be** (Is. 55:10). And Deut. 32:1-2— "Give ear, Ο ye heavens, and I will speak; and hear, Ο earth the words of My mouth. "My doctrine shall drop as the rain, my speech shall distil as the dew, as the small rain upon the tender herb, and as the showers upon the grass. ** The rain from heaven is the Word of God, the Water of Life. Just as the rain makes the grass to grow, so God's Word brings forth fruit. It is recorded that God showers the rain on the just and the unjust. All have it, but only a few really know its benefit. It is a necessity to life, for without it all things would wither and die. So it is with us, in relation to God's words. They are as a shower and we have the opportunity of drinking heavily from them. Psa. 147:9-10— "He giveth to the beast his food, and to the young ravens which cry. "He delighteth not in the strength of the horse: He taketh not pleasure in the legs of a man.*' The whole animal creation is seen and cared for by God. Not a sparrow falls to the ground without Him knowing it. It is God that gives all creatures strength. Therefore God is not pleased that men should be proud and boastful of their physical power. He delights not in the horse's proud and haughty way (in that he is powerful), or in the pride of man because of human strength.God is pleased when man acknowledges that all he is and has, is from God, and thus holds his Creator and Provider in fear and reverence. Psa. 147:16— "He giveth snow like wool: he scattereth the hoarfrost like ashes.** Again, these verses emphasize God's power and control of the elements. Having considered rain, clouds and stars, let us now consider briefly the snow. Snow affords much evidence of God's love of beauty and order. Each flake is perfectly made, and there are never two exactly alike. God teaches Job by asking— 1973 Berean 55 "Hast thou entered into the treasures of the snow?*' There is comfort and peace in thinking on these things. Our God is great and glorious. Goodness, beauty and joy are the eternal pattern of all His works. All things that mar that beauty and joy are but passing shadows that will be swept away when their brief purpose is accomplished. Snow represents purity and the pure whiteness of those who would be in harmony with God. Each snowflake is a separate and individual and beautifully intricate design: yet altogether they are one glorious, pure, white unity. So are the Redeemed: each one a beautiful individual character of marvelous design, but all are part of a vast, shining, Sun-lit, holy unity in God. Psalm 148:1-6 speaks further of God's creation: the heavens, the stars, the clouds, etc. Then in v. 7 is the command— "Praise the Lord from the earth, ye dragons and all deeps:" As we read in Psa. 146:6— ".. the sea and all that therein is." After looking at God's wonders in the heavens above, our attention is turned to the earth, to the deep places, and to the sea and all that is therein. So in Psa. 95:4-5— "In His hand are the deep places of the earth: the strength of the hills is His also. The sea is His and He made it, and His hands formed the dry land." Why should the "deep places" of the earth be mentioned more than the flat or wide open places? There seems to be a reason. If there is any time when we are able to feel our own absolute insignificance, it is when we have to do with the deep places of the earth. Standing on a cliff, or on mountain edges, looking over the mighty crags into the depths below, where ships and great rocks are like small specks, we powerfully feel how great is He and how entirely and implicitly we are in His Hand. So also with the strength of the hills. Psalm 148:9 calls on the mountains and all hills for praise. The great mountains overwhelm us with God's stupendous power. His greatness is unsearchable. It is staggering to our poor capacities. We can but recognize it, and yield the feeble attribute of praise and thankfulness. 1973 Berean se To many, thoughts as these are called weak and "soft." True this may be, but it is the way we must be. Softness is the opposite to hardness, and hardness is the quality we are divinely warned against. It is natural to be self-assertive and hard-hearted, but it is wrong in God's sight. May we further develop within ourselves a softer and gentler and more loving attitude. Psa. 148:8— "Fire, and hail; snow, and vapors; stormy wind fulfilling His Word." Fire and hail represent the righteous judgments of God against the unrighteous and disobedient. It is good we remember both the goodness and severity of God. God is love, but He is also a con- suming fire to the wicked. We cannot presume upon His mercy and go our way. We must strive always to be obedient and to seek forgiveness of our shortcomings after we have tried our hardest to obey. For after we have done all, we are still unprofitable servants and must seek the Father's mercy and love. "Stormy wind, FULFILLING HIS WORD." The same word is used in Scripture for both "wind" and "spirit." All is of God. The wind both literal and spiritual plays an important part in fulfilling God's will and accomplishing His purpose. As the wind is in the natural heavens, so is the Spirit in the spiritual heavens. The wind is a mighty, unseen power of God, ranging from the gentle, refreshing breeze to the terrible, destructive hurricane and tornado. The basic power behind natural wind is the sun: so the power behind the Spirit is God. God is the Center, Source and Basis of all. Ps. 149:1-3— "Praise ye the Lord! Sing unto the Lord a new song, and His praise in the congregation of saints. "Let Israel rejoice in Him that made him; let the children of Zion be joyful in their King. "Let them praise His Name in the dance: let them sing praises unto Him with the timbrel and harp.'* David here invites the Children of Israel to rejoice as he reigns over God's Kingdom in Jerusalem. But it has a higher application to the Messiah of whom it is written— "My praise shall be to thee in the great congregation.** The world has not yet seen this great sight when Christ gives the signal for an outburst of praise such as never heard on earth. Psa. 149:4—"For the Lord taketh pleasure in His people: He will beautify the meek with salvation.** God is pleased with the meek, those poor in spirit, who in their lifetime gave glory to Him. In the acknowledgement of God's greatness, we are humbled, made meek. There is no room for pride of the flesh. Meekness is patience, calm, gentle, humble; not aggressive or self-assertive. It is cheerfully putting up with wrong and present disadvantages for the sake of eternal good. Meekness is self-control. It is crucifying the lusts of the flesh and learning the spirit of Christ (who was meek and lowly of heart). 1973 Berean 57 Psa. 149:5-9—"Let the saints be joyful in glory: let them sing aloud upon their beds! "Let the high praises of God be in their mouth, and a two-edged sword in their hand. "To execute vengeance upon the heathen, and punishments upon the people; "To bind their kings with chains, their nobles with fetters of iron; "To execute upon them the judgment written: this honor have all His saints. Praise ye the Lord!" The honor of saints is to execute judgments on the nations. They will go against the Russian Gog and the Roman Harlot, putting down all wickedness and setting up God's Kingdom in Jerusalem with Christ as their King. With such promises, with such a glorious hope, such a high calling, let us "Praise the Lord!" Psalm 150 is summed up in verse &— "Let everything that hath breath praise the Lord." Wisdom calls our attention to the lessons found in the Tehillim. We are shown the unescapable conclusion that hope, joy and praise are appropriate among the company of saints—God's Elect. Therefore let us, as described in Psalm 147:7— "Sing praises WITH UNDERSTANDING." This is the whole spirit of the Psalms. The Psalms speak certainly upon every phase of the divine purpose and human welfare. They turn every aspect into praise and glorification of God. To worship in holiness and to praise with understanding is the highest destiny and joy we can attain to. We have the supreme example, at the heart of many psalms, in the one we are to remember this morning, Christ "In the volume of the book it is written of me, I DELIGHT TO DO THY WILL, Ο GOD!" May we faithfully remember these words, and may we ever delight ourselves in doing God's will. —D.C. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "Out of the heartproceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries, fornications, thefts, blasphemies"—Matt. 15:19 HOW THE MORMONS GROW. With 16,000 young missionaries at work around world, Mormon Church one of most aggressively evangelistic in world. All young men & women expected to put in 2 yrs. as missionaries at own expense. Church has grown from 1 million to 3 million in 12 years. Mormons spent $18 million on welfare in 7 1 ; $8 million was raised by monthly fast days in which price of missed meals is given to poor. Welfare recipients must work in Mormon welfare industries if able-bodied. Blacks of African ancestry cannot enter "priesthood," the full-fledged membership to which all other adult Mormon males are entitled. US Blacks have been assured they'll some day be given right to be Mormon priests. Prophet Harold Lee, the "Revelator" (head of Church) could theoretically receive word from God any time. (Tm 10:23) 1973 Berean 58 NOTE: There are"great and humbling lessons to be learned from the diligence of the children of this world. How does OUR zeal and labor for the REAL, glorious, divine Truth compare with the dedication these people give to promoting their teachings? Do we expect any reward if we do less? God reasonably demands ALL our heart, mind, and strength in His service— making everything else utterly unimportant and secondary. Anything less is belittling the greatness of His love and promised blessing to the faithful. KING OF NORTH MOVING INTO POSITION. Since its ouster from Egypt, Russia placing its bets elsewhere in Mideast. They've just mounted a spectacular 5-day, 2000-ton airlift of military supplies to Syria, & are giving greater attention to Iraq. For first time, Russia recently lined up 4-square behind Palestine guerrillas. In past fews weeks, guerrilla leaders have been in Moscow, & Russia has let it be known they're giving them arms. Russia's complex Mideast policy part of even larger geopolitical strategy. Moscow's original move into Egypt was to secure a strategic foothold in Mediterranean & outflank NATO on Europe's south front. The plan has been eminently successful. Russia has compelled world to recognize realities of her global power status. Now she's moving into new policy phase. Having established themselves in Mediterranean, they're putting pressure on Turkey & expanding their role in oil-rich Persian Gulf. Sadat's hasty expulsion may work to Moscow's advantage. They still have naval facilities in Egyptian ports, & now run less risk in being dragged by Egypt into confrontation with US. Egypt has become a relatively minor factor to them. (Nwk 10:23) NOTE: It is interesting that an apparent setback to Russia may actually be to her advantage. Certainly its effect is to bring her much more into line with where she belongs. Syria is the ancient "King of the North/' where Russia must be to fulfil that role in the latter days. And Iraq is the ancient Assyria, the fierce enemy and destroyer of God's People of whom Russia is the latterday counterpart. "This man—the Bethlehem-born Mighty One— shall be the peace when the Assyrian shall come into our land" (Mic. 5:2-5). WORLD'S BIGGEST BUSINESS DEAL-now being discussed by US & Russia: plan to bring 3 to 4 billion cubic feet of natural gas per day from Russia to US. Up to $10 billion involved. Pipe 56" in diameter would be laid across 4000 miles of most inhospitable country in world to Russian harbors, where it would be liquified at 259 degrees below zero. Then 35 huge refrigerated tankers would bring it to US. Cost of tankers alone would be over $4 billion. (USN 11:6) NOTE: Can US be so utterly stupid as to put itself at the mercy of a power that is dedicated to destroying it and ruling the world alone ? But big money is to be made, and US must have the gas to support its decadent life-style of lust and luxury. If Russia can get control of Mideast oil, and also get US dependent on her for gas, what can stop her? US STREET CRIME. A million Americans physically attacked this year. Thru '60s, violent crime rose from 1600 per million inhabitants per year, to 4,000; murder rose 70 pet.; rape 113 pet.; robbery 212 pet. Crime up 30 pet. since Nixon took office. Big change is in degree of viciousness. Police tend not even to record crime they have little or no chance of solving. Even more misleading is fact that many—perhaps most—crimes never reported to police. Odds against catching a burglar 50 to 1. (Tm 10:23) NOTE: We do not rejoice in the ever-growing prevalence of evil and violence, but we do exceedingly rejoice in this evidence that these present days are the terrible, long-foretold "Last Days" of evil human rule on earth. AMERICA'S ORIGINAL OWNERS. Average income of US Indian families is Vz US average. Majority of Indians exist on substandard incomes & in squalid conditions. Some are reduced to near-starvation diets. (USN 11:20) NOTE: These people were here first. They had their own culture & way of life. But "progress" & the white man's plundering has swept them into a miserable corner of neglect & broken agreements. Clearly, under human rule, might makes right. 1973 Berean 59 ARAB OIL POWER. The major oil companies, after 9 months of talks, have agreed to terms on which 5 Persian Gulf states will become part owners of the oil operations. The Arab producers get 20 pet. ownership immediately, rising to 51 pet. by 1980. Settlement underlines recent historic shift of power from companies to Arabs. (Nwk 10:16) NOTE: How marvelous, & interesting, & unexpected—the way the details of the final picture are developing! Arab oil and Jewish "holy places" are more & more irresistibly focusing the attention & schemings of the world powers on the Mideast. By controlling Arab oil, Russia could quickly strangle US & the West. The promise of Jerusalem & its "treasures" will bring the Pope α-running by Russia's side. DICTATORSHIP IN S. KOREA. Last wk. Pres. Park proclaimed martial law; dissolved National Assembly; banned all political activity; closed universities; imposed tight press censorship. Move came as embarrassing surprise to Washington, which in past 2 yrs. has watched Cambodia, S. Vietnam, Thailand & Philippines—once known as "Free Asia "—shed last vestiges of democracy.US gives Park $240 million yr. It's an odd turn of events in a land where 20 yrs. ago 34,000 Americans died in "defense of Free World" (Tm 10:30) NOTE: All our lifetime we have seen people being asked to die for "freedom" and "democracy"—ever since WW I, which was hailed as the "war to end all wars and make the world safe for democracy." But clearly "democracy" under any human rule is a sham—weak, corrupt, and inefficient. The only political reality and possibility is the selfish national strivings of the Sin-Powers of the earth, and one generation's "enemy" is the next generation's "ally." RUSSIA TOUGHER ON JEWS. Russia still charging emigrants as much as $64,000 to leave Russia. Harassment of Jews on upswing. Climate of public opinion being created in which physical attacks will be acceptable. Specter has been raised again of deporting Jews to Birobidzhan, the desolate territory in Siberia along Chinese border that 38 years ago was officially set aside as "Jewish Autonomous Region." Grim days lie ahead for beleaguered Jews of Russia. (Nwk 10:30) NOTE: The latter-day Assyrian is filling up his cup of wickedness and malice against God's people. Nations who have oppressed Israel have each in their turn been desolated and destroyed. Russia's turn will come. RESCUE MISSIONS. Shivering men, shoulders hunched against the chill, standing in line at a rescue-mission door. Picture hardly seems to belong to an affluent society. But it is a contemporary reality, as 450 rescue missions in N. America can testify. The rescue mission is very much alive. They served 14 million meals last year. Mission's love goes to a segment of humanity we like to ignore. Startling drop in average age of derelicts—from upper 50s a decade ago to lower 30s today. Rising number of drifting young with no place to sleep. Far from being out-dated, rescue mission of 70s will be jammed to doorsills. (Tm 11:20) NOTE: A sobering picture, & a provocation to deep thought. The eternal realities of life are not lust & greed & pleasure & entertainment, but kindness & service & true love. Often the children of the world are wiser & kinder in these things than the supposed "children of light," smug & self-centered in their "righteousness." It is so easy to separate "religion" from goodness. HISTORY'S COSTLIEST CAMPAIGN. Record total of $400 million poured out for 1972 US elections. (USN 11:13) 1973 Berean 60 NOTE: How can there possibly be justice & true "democracy" under such conditions? And this is the best alternative that can be offered to the iron shackles of Communism! Man is in a sad way, trying to rule himself. WORLDWIDE TURMOIL HITS CHURCHES. An era of religious turmoil & rebellion. Interest of young in institutional churches declining. Attendance falling. Less than 15 pet of Anglicans in Britain attend any given Sunday. Last yr. France's ''Protestant Federation" called capitalism & its ideology "unacceptable", and urged Christians to take "bold reforms or revolutionary opposition." In W. Germany, young pastors — 10 in one State alone — are joining Communist Party. Within the past yr., majority of Spanish Catholic hierarchy has denounced Spain's political & social injustice, & called for end to traditional ties of Church & State. In a Church poll, 48 pet. of priests favored Socialism. Several yrs. ago Castro said "US shouldn't worry about Russians in S. America; they should worry about the Catholic revolutionaries." Today his prophecy is coming true in vast area beset by illiteracy, political corruption, & wide gap between poor & rich. In many places, priests, ministers & bishops are speaking out against capitalism. Many churchmen endorse socialism. Some say violent revolution is inevitable. In Buenos Aires, a Methodist said: 'At our seminary here, Che Guevara is more of a hero than Christ.' Not long ago, 400 priests & bishops from Latin American nations met in Chile to form "Christians for Socialism." They endorsed alliance with Marxists to achieve socialism, & called for "revolutionary action by the proletariat & a strategy to take over power." Africa has over 100 million Christians, & they're increasing over 5 pet. yr. — double the population growth. Continuation of this trend would mean that by end of century Christians will outnumber Moslems in Africa, & "Third World" Christians of Asia, Africa & S. America would outnumber those in US & Europe. Church leaders foresee turmoil in Christianity, with rebels trying to push Church into an expanded world role, colliding in the process with authority both spiritual & temporal. (USN 12:11) NOTE: This trend of the church masses away from democracy and capitalism toward communism and revolution is very significant, and— prophetically speaking—very encouraging. The Churches must go back to Rome (as they rapidly ARE going), and Rome and Russia must join in a world wide campaign to establish a manmade millennium. NEW INTERNATIONAL TERROR. Exploding parcels suddenly turned up in Arab mailboxes last week, only month after similar wave of deadly letter-bombs had been sent from Amsterdam to Israelis around world. So went the continuing underground war between Arabs & Israel. The war is played most dangerously in Europe, where agents of all sides can move about with relative freedom. Israelis stationed overseas have come to feel like front-line combatants. Embassies & consulates have been converted into fortresses. Blind terror demeans both sides & gains neither any advantage in their long & painful war, but once it has begun, terror becomes increasingly difficult to contain. (Tm 11:6) NOTE: "Evil shall go forth from nation to nation" (Jer. 25:32). How evil is natural man, who in his hatred will destroy indiscriminately! And all nations are guilty of this. Remember Hiroshima—man, woman and child alike: 100,000 destroyed; 100,000 more condemned to every horrible degree of maiming, disfigurement and painful, lingering, hopeless living death. GARBAGE. National throwaway continues unchecked: 71 billion cans, 38 billion bottles, 7 million autos, 35 million tons of paper—in all over 5 billion tons of garbage—piled up last yr. alone. Pile is growing twice as fast as gross national product. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE: What an age!— when all things, both physical and moral, are building up to a dead-end of utter corruption. How man has abused and polluted the beautiful earth! 1973 Berean 61 DICTATORSHIP IN ZAMBIA. When Zambia gained independence from Britain 8 yrs. ago, it was said to have 2 specific advantages over its neighbors: rich copper mines & idealistic leader Kaunda.Both now look tarnished. Kaunda has just taken the drastic step of abolishing all opposition parties. In recent months, he has treated his political opponents with increasing severity. Over 100 opposition leaders, including his own former Vice President and boyhood friend, have been jailed without trial. Kaunda has changed from mild-mannered man who led Zambia to freedom. (Tm 11:6) NOTE: One more once-promising new nation discards "democracy" for repression and power-hungry dictatorship. Men in high position succumb almost inevitably to the lust of power. Natural man is not fit to rule either himself or others. U.S. SLIPPING IN ASIA. The Thais, edging away from "togetherness" with U.S., are actively seeking closer contacts with China. Continued U.S. use of Thai bases may depend on China's attitude. U.S. is deeply distrusted in India, has little influence in Pakistan, suffers continual & officiallyinspired anti-USism in Bangladesh. Russia's close ties with India worry U.S. For yrs., Russia has been India's main ally, major arms supplier & biggest market. New agreement just signed will make even closer economic ties. U.S. does not want to see India's 520 million completely under domination of Russia. In Bangladesh, a drift toward political chaos is evident at same time Russia is consolidating its position there. Australia no longer can be regarded as an automatic U.S. ally. (USN 11:27) NOTE: The world scene is changing quickly and, while there are zigzags, the general broad trend is all in the right direction as prophetically foretold. A weakened, decadent Tarshish, defending Israel, must be confronted by a united Roman-Russian world. RUSSIA OFFERS "ONE-WAY DOOR." Russia already has Western agreement that E. Europe will be run by Communists. They have already made it clear, by what they did to Czechs in '68, that they will decide what does & what does not constitute a Communist govt. There has been no corresponding acceptance by Russia that W. Europe will be run by non-Communists. There can't be, since West's political systems allow Communists to come to power if they win enough votes. That is why "acceptance of political realities in Europe," as Russians like to call it, means accepting a one-way door. (USN 12:11) NOTE : Clearly things are moving Russia's way, and time is on her side. Communism is becoming more and more respectable, and less and less feared. It is now a major political power in France and Italy, key nations of the Catholic Beast. People choose to forget its dictatorships & repressions, Czechoslovakias and Hungarys. And the terrible desolation and destruction and horrors of Vietnam make them wonder if there's much to choose. PARK TIGHTENS HOLD ON KOREA. Park last wk. moved to make himself permanent dictator, after dissolving National Assembly. (Tm 11:6) "TOTAL WAR." Terrorism is developing into a form of total war — the kind of war in which there is no distinction between combatants & noncombatants: all are on the firing line. Modern methods of terror affect many people's lives & gnaw at the system of communications that binds countries together. Modern society is wide open to fanatics with bombs or poisons — perhaps one day with germs & atomic devices. (USN 12:11) NOTE; This is the direct result of modern man's "wisdom" and "enlightenment" in rejecting the wholesome restraints of divine authority, and instead glorifying the lusts and selfishness and natural animal thinkings of the flesh as the supreme goal of life. 1973 Berean 62 LIVING WITH CRIME, USA. Crime's grip on US today is both a reality & a state of mind. Fear's chilling effects have become a grim part of daily life for millions in & around US cities. Fear of crime is escalating into a fortress mentality. Fear itself is helping to create the conditions that permit crime to fester-deserted streets, atmosphere of suspicion, no confidence in police. Americans have good reasons to be afraid. No one is safe. Recent street crime victims include many well-known public figures. Today's thief is far more prone than in past to assault & kill. The nightmare continues despite what is probably the most costly and comprehensive assault ever launched against crime. Unfortunately, results are debatable. A frightening 11 pet. rise in suburban crime last year. Less than 1 / 3 of all crimes ever reported. A prosecutor recently asked a jury how many had been involved in a mugging or burglary: 8 of the 12 raised their hands. Especially disturbing is an upsurge of crime & violence in schools. During one recent 16-day period, at least 14 NY City teachers were robbed or assaulted inside their schools. Colleges are same. Once-tranquil Harvard Square is now scene of 30 thefts & half-dozen assaults monthly. Students & faculty find it dangerous to linger too long in library or office. Fortress America is paying high price for its security. Barred windows, identification checks in schools & apts., police helicopters hovering with glaring searchlights—these are hardly the makings of an open society. And growing mental toll is perhaps even more damaging: suspicion of every strange face, withdrawal into "defensible space," shriveling of social contacts. It's only natural that Americans should turn to bolstered police & stronger locks to fight fear & criminals. But danger is that in end they'll have put themselves in prison. (Nwk. 12:18) NOTE. What a sad picture of civilization's dismal failure. Such is the peak of men's proud accomplishments. Such is the sad state of the richest, most prosperous, most powerful, and supposedly most "advanced" nation on earth. But it's EXACTLY as must be in the last days before man's evil rule is abolished forever by the Kingdom of God, governing the earth in righteousness from Jerusalem. "LYING WONDERS" & "CHRIST MASS." St. Nicholas, who was a 4th century bishop in Asia Minor, came to town last week in Flushing, NY. Relics of the saint—fragments of his skull & a vial of oily substance said to have oozed from his skull—were formally enshrined in St. Nicholas Greek Orthodox Church in Flushing. A gift from Roman Catholic Church to Greek Orthodox Church, the relics were sent from cathedral in Bari, Italy. Legends of his good works, combined with local folklore, eventually produced the St. Nicholas (Santa Claus) of European tradition. (Tm 12:18). NOTE. 1. Observe first the abominable and benighted superstition, in modern 1972—not medieval 1072. 2. Note it was a fraternal gift fromGreek Orthodox superstition to Roman Catholic superstition: they are drawing closer. 3. Above all, could ANYONE who has any real perception of the Truth of God in its depth and beauty have anything to do with the Catholic Christ Mass superstition? RISING THREAT OF WIDESPREAD HUNGER. People increasing faster than crops. World food production suddenly shrunk close to point of global crisis. Food production in many poor countries did not improve enough this year even to keep pace with population rise, let alone to improve substandard diets. (USN 12:11) NOTE: The renewed specter of famine looms larger and larger over the world. For a few years, there were hopes and boasts that the "green revolution" of newly-developed "miracle" gains had reversed the trend, but hope has dimmed and the shadow has returned. Yet, properly managed, and without selfishness and greed, the earth could support much more than its present population. What a failure is proud man! 1973 Berean 63 INHUMANITY IN AUSTRALIA. A report by an Australian: Australia's aborginal citizens historically have been one of world's most oppressed & ill-used minorities. We Australians are condemning a whole race of our fellow citizens to short, brutish & miserable lives. Their plight is as desperate as any in world. Black Australian babies dying by 100s, & most who survive are forced to live in despair—men as drunks, women as prostitutes. They're physically mistreated, deprived of human rights, & cheated by a White majority whose attitude toward them is that of a vermin exterminator to a rat plague. We don't actually murder Blacks as we once did, but we go out of our way to make them wish they'd never been born. We even tried outright genocide in past stages of our history. In Tasmania we managed to shoot or poison every Black man. We still had mass poisonings in the '30's, & at beginning of WW II, aboriginal population (300,000 200 yrs ago) was down to 40,000. Most of the grim statistics are known to Australians. The Australian aborigine is most over-surveyed & under-cared-for person in world. Their infant mortality rate is 10 times that of Whites. They suffer more from leprosy than almost any other community known. Respiratory infections and gastro-intestinal diseases are so prevalent that 4 / 5 of all children have obvious abnormality. We're producing a race of cripples—children who will never be able to live normal lives. Aborigines are far likelier than Whites to wind up in jail for the same crimes. Courts are viciously biased against Blacks. Twice as many Blacks as Whites are jailed for drunkenness: Whites are more often let off with just a fine. Why has so little been done? Because we have learned to hide much of our nastiness from view. If you are Black in Australia, you are likely to lead a precarious existence in the Outback, or in city slums paying high rents for crowded quarters. Typical is a family of 6 who share a 9-room house with 58 other residents. They pay $34 a week—xk their income—which should get them a nice flat in a middle-class area, but Blacks are not allowed to live in such areas. Recently Chicka Dixon, an aborigine leader who has spent over 11 yrs. in jail for his activities, visited China to publicize their plight. "In China, for first time," he says, "I felt like a man. You wouldn't understand what it was like, not being a 'dirty Abo' after 44 years of it in Australia." These are the people who owned the whole land for millenniums before White man came. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE: Australia is no exception. This is the normal treatment of weak, divergent minorities all around the world. Many nations, even the most "Christian" and "civilized," have the same shameful story of their miserable second-rate citizens, from US to N. Ireland to India to Japan. And often they are the land's original owners, victims of "progress" invading them at the muzzle of a gun. SPECTACULAR RISE OF COMMUNISTS in France. If revitalized Socialists & Communists maintain their pace thru coming elections, they'll be a dominant force in French politics. Stunning degree of support for Left indicates more & more French voters have lost fear of "Red specter"—& are now willing to accept Communist participation in govt. If Left Bloc actually comes to power, it could provoke an economic crisis of confidence in France & thruout Common Mkt, & shake Western Alliance at time of crucial negotiations with Communist world. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE: The growth of the power and respectableness of Communism in France and Italy is surely one of the clearest signs of the trend of events in Europe. In both W. and E. Europe, the process of mutual accommodation between Communism and Catholicism moves on apace, and this is the necessary foundation of the Rome-Russia alliance that is to lead Europe against Christ. 1973 Berean 64 A VIRTUAL POGROM in progress against the 22,000 Jehovah's Witnesses in the African nation of Malawi. Pres.-for-Life Banda, a staunch elder in the Presbyterian Church, has become increasingly angered by the Witnesses' unwillingness to join his ruling Congress Party, their refusal to take loyalty oaths, & their exclusive claims to religious truth. Congress Party in Sept. demanded Witnesses be expelled from their jobs & property, & since then the mandate has been carried out with fervor: homes burnt, many killed. Many have fled to a crowded refugee camp in Zambia, where several die daily, mostly children. (Tm 12:18) NOTE. Religious persecution is far from dead in this self-styled enlightened age, and those who have suffered oppression themselves seem quick to oppress others when they rise to power. The "Witnesses" here represent independent religious thought, and that is anathema to both Communism and Catholicism. Dictators dare not tolerate any freedom or divergence. STUMBLING BRITAIN. One of worst inflation rates in Europe. Fall of pound's value to alltime low. 22 million workdays lost by strikes in first 9 mos. of '72. Strikes & inflation have curbed exports & made pound world's sickest currency. (Tm 11:20) ECCLES1AL NEWS (Continued from Inside Front Cover) Her faithful and regular attendance at meeting from a distance of 35 miles is an example to us all. On Feb. 26 she was laid to rest. Bro. Fred Higham spoke words of Truth before a large assembly. We rejoice to have bro. & sis. Jimmie Summerville and bro. & sis. David Carrol from Houston as members of this ecclesia. We regret that bro. & sis. Charles Banta Jr. have returned to Houston. Bro. Andrew Marshall is out of the hospital and attending the meetings. His great love, zeal and enthusiasm for the Truth is a spiritual lift for us. We are again having a public lecture once every month, but it seems those about us are not interested in the Truth. The Lord willing, we plan to have a meeting in Lampasas on June 8,9 & 10. We extend an invitation to the brethren and sisters to be with us on this occasion to build one another up in our most holy Faith. The meetings are scheduled for Friday at 8 pm; Saturday at 11 am, 2 pm & 8 pm. And on Sunday at our regular time: Sunday School at 10 am, and Memorial at 11 am. Those who plan to come may contact bro. Ross Wolfe, 1802 Rumley Rd., Lampasas, Tex. 76550. Phone 512-556-5249. May we each build characters that will stand at the last day. As we build day by day, let us not spare in the use of Faith, Hope, and Love. —bro. Ross Wolfe WHANGAREI, New Zealand—ΥWCA Hall, Rust Ave.—Memorial 10:30 a m ; Lecture 7 pm—Bro. M.J. Griffin, PO Box 55, Whangarei. LOVE and greetings to the Household of Faith scattered abroad. The old year is quickly drawing to its close—a year that has witnessed the fulfilling of many of the prophetic signs that the "Times of the Gentiles" have almost run their course. Let us remember, as we witness a spirit of new-found optimism in the world that envisages a time of peace ahead, that Christ said— "As a snare shall it come on all them that dwell on the face of the whole earth." The great warning to us is to "WATCH AND BE SOBER," that that day should not overtake us as a thief. We recently had the pleasure of the company of our bro. & sis. Ray Hodges from Western Australia, who were with us for nearly 3 weeks in October. Such visits to our small and isolated ecclesia are a source of joy and encouragement to all. As we enter the new year, may we press forward to the mark of our high calling in Christ Jesus with renewed energy and zeal, praying that it may bring the long-looked-for return of our Lord—and above all, that we may be found of him in peace, without spot and blameless. RECEIVED LATER:— Our many brethren and sisters scattered abroad are continually in our thoughts and prayers in these last difficult days, as we witness the pattern of events presaging the return of our Lord taking form and shape in the world around us. The current negotiations in Vietnam are, to the world, a hopeful augury of peace and prosperity in the years ahead, but to us they are perhaps but the lifting of one of the restraints that God has placed on the development of the Middle East crisis, for— "There is NO PEACE, saith the Lord, unto the wicked," and . . "The whole world lieth in wickedness." Whatever the nature of day-to-day events, we know that the world is moving steadily and irrevocably to that "Day of the Lord" portrayed by Zechariah. May we ponder deeply on these things while it is called today. We are happy to report that, after a full examination, we welcomed into fellowship on Jan. 28, bro. BRIAN RILEY, who had previously been a member of another group. With love in the Truth to all, from Whangarei, —bro. M. J. Griffin Bible Questions "Who is wise, and he shall understand these things?"—Hos. 14:9 HOMES AND NATIONALITIES Write number of each name in List 1 beside home or nationality in List 2. LIST ONE l.Agag 11. Sihon 21. Oman 31. Talmai 41. Potiphar 2. Doeg 32. Nahash 12. Heber 42. Dionysius 22. Mesha 3. Ittai 33. Bildad 43. Barzillai 13. Titus 23. Elijah 34. Sargon 4. Gaius 24. Hushai 44. Sanballat 14. Hiram 5. Uriah 25. Zophar 35. Ahijah 45. Trophimus 15. Phebe 6. Jesse 46. Ebedmelech 36. Joseph 16. Abram 26. Darius 7. Cyrus 37. Abishag 47. Belshazzar 17. Hobab 27. Geshem 38. Eliphaz 8. Micah 48. Ahithophel 18. Simon 28. Gideon 9. Nabal 49. Aristarchus 39. Eliezer 19. Elihu 29. Naaman 10. Nahum 50. Chedorlaomer 40. Sopater 20. Haman 30. Pilate Mede Roman Amorite Edomite Greek Syrian Kenite Persian Archite Of Elam Arabian Agagite Of Tyre Shuhite Tishbite Hebrew Buzite Gittite Hittite Moabite LIST TWO Of Derbe Egyptian Temanite Ammonite Gilonite Ephesian Assyrian Jebusite Of Berea Cyrenean $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) Horonite Ethiopian Abiezrite Carmelite Amalekite Elkoshite Of Geshur Shilonite Midianite Gileadite Areopagite Naamathite Morasthite Shunammite Babylonian Macedonian Of Damascus Of Cenchrea Of Arimathea Bethlehemite Printed in U.S.A. VOL 61, NO. 3 MARCH, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed9'—-Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: Baltimore, Canton, Miami Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: According to the Pattern Shown Thee 65 REAPING THE EARTH'S HARVEST (Bro. Thomas) 67 SECOND VOYAGE TO AUSTRALIA (Bros. Roberts) Part 27 71 TRIBULATION WORKETH PATIENCE (Acts 16) 78 Fraternal Gatherings: Lampasas, Hye 85 IN THE IMAGE OF GOD MADE HE HIM (Part 3) 86 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY 92 Bible Questions and February Answers Back Cover We are anxious to send Hie Berean FREE to any desiring if that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News BALTIMORE, Maryland—Memorial 10:30 a.m.—Bro. Russell Frisbit, 3417 Forest Hill Road, Baltimore 21207. Phone (301) H4-3I70. We are happy to announce that SANDRA LEE BOWERS was examined and immersed on February 17, 1973. On March 19, bro. Wesley R. Frisbie and sis. Sandra Lee Bowers were united in marriage. We pray that they may be a help to each other in their walk in the Truth. —Your brother in Christ, Russell C. Frisbie CANTON, Ohio—YMCA, 205 Second St. NW—Sun. Sen. 10 a m ; Memorial Service 11 a m ; Bible Class Tues. in homes—Bro. Braden T. Edwards, 6060 Homeworth Rd., Homeworth, Ohio 44634; phone (216) 586-4411. LOVING Greetings in Christ Jesus. This past year we were blessed with the following visitors, who have been a pleasure and a comfort to us in these trying times: brethren and sisters Paul Neely, Cedell Caldwell, Fred Higham Jr., Charles Banta Sr., Nicholas Mammone; and sisters Grace Frisbie, Eva Banta, Carolyn Thompson. We deeply appreciated and enjoyed the labors of the brethren who gave comforting and instructive words of exhortation to help us on the pathway to the Kingdom. We invite any who can to visit us, that we may share together the joys of companionship in the Truth, and be mutually strengthened and upbuilt. With much love in the bonds of the Truth, your brother, —Braden Edwards M I A M I , Florida 33155—3428 SW 65th Avenue; phone (30S) 6*7-7W·—Mem. 10:30 a m ; S.S. 11:30 a m ; Class Wed. 7:30 pm—Bro. Thomas S. Lumley (same address). GREETINGS to all in the bonds of Love and Truth. It is with deep sorrow we report the falling asleep in Christ Jesus of sister Emma Lumley on Feb. 18,1973. Sis. Lumley was immersed into the Saving Name on Oct. 26,1926, in Worcester, Mass. She now awaits the call of Christ to resurrection, being confident and steadfast in the Faith through all the trials we must endure. We wish to thank all in the Brotherhood for their letters of love and encouragement during our sister's prolonged illness. We feel a great sense of loss with the absence of our beloved sister, wife, and mother. But we sorrow not as others who have no hope, and we take comfort from the fact that the night is far spent, and the Lord will soon appear. May we all be found one in Christ Jesus. Since our last ecclesial news we have had the pleasure of the association and fellowship of the following visitors: bro. Bob & sis. Rose Philip (Burlington. Ont.), bro. Victor & sis. Ruth Gilbert (Buffalo, N.Y.), bro. Pat & sis. Marie Cassidy (Lampasas, Tex.), bro. Herb & sis. Jean Ricketson, bro. Arthur & sis. Nellie Coye, and sis. Patricia Coye (Boston, Mass.), and bro. Bob. Martin (London, Ont.). We were comforted by the word of exhortation by bro. Ricketson and bro. Gilbert. Your brother in Christ Jesus, —Thomas Lumley Please notify us promptly of address changes. If the Berean is received unwanted, please mark the envelope, "Refused, return to sender," and drop it in a mailbox. Some of the sweetest words of Christ were delivered in the immediate prospect of arrest and death (John 14, 15, 16, 17): and some of Paul's sweetest epistles were written when he was suffering bonds and imprisonment (Ephesians, Philippians, Colossians, Philemon. 2nd Timothy).—Christadelphian, 1884. "We are God's workmanship, created in Christ Jesus unto good works, which God hath before ordained that we should walk in them"—Eph. 2:10. According to the Pattern Shown Thee "And Moses did look upon all the work: and, behold, they had done it as the Lord had commanded, even so had they done it: and Moses blessed them"—Exodus 39:43 Among the things written for our instruction, there are none more interesting and beneficial than those pertaining to the Tabernacle which was constructed and set up in the vicinity of Mount Sinai. While in the mount, Moses received the pattern, or plans, and the detailed specifications, and the authority was granted him to proceed at once. Like many things of divine origin, the Tabernacle served a two-fold purpose. Its immediate need was, of course, to form the centre of Israel's national life, but it had a deeper significance as Paul brings out so beautifully when he says (Heb. 9:9-10)— "It was a figure for the time then present, in which were offered both gifts and sacrifices that could not make him that did the service perfect, as pertaining to the conscience; which stood only in meats and drinks, and divers washings, and carnal ordinances, imposed on them until the time of reformation" Such a structure, intended to serve so great a purpose, must of necessity be constructed with meticulous and reverent care. Therefore it was not left to the discretion of Moses to build the sanctuary according to the dictates of his own conscience, but he was ". . admonished of God when he was about to make the Tabernacle; for, See, saith He, that thou make all things according to the pattern showed to thee in the mount''—Heb. 8:5. When reading the 25th, 26th and 27th chapters of Exodus, we cannot fail to observe the exacting and detailed specifications both of the Tabernacle and its furniture. Nothing was left to guess work. Moses was not even permitted to proceed with the work of construction until God had taken special precautions to ensure that it would be fabricated according to divine standards. This was done by selecting Bezaleel, of the tribe of Judah, and Aholiab, of the tribe of Dan. 1973 Berean 65 "They being filled with wisdom of heart, to work all manner of work, wrought with every wise hearted man, in whom the Lord put wisdom and understanding to know how to work all manner of work for the service of the sanctuary, according to all that the Lord had commanded"—Ex. 35:35; 36:1. In due time, the mandate was fulfilled, and the work completed— ". . according to all that the Lord commanded Moses, so the children of Israel made all the work. And Moses did look upon all the work, and, behold, they had done it as the Lord had commanded, even so had they done it; and Moses blessed them. Then a cloud covered the tent of the congregation, and the glory of the Lord filled the Tabernacle"—Ex. 39:42-43; 40-34. Moses and his co-workers had been faithful in all things, with the result that God's blessing rested upon the fruit of their labor. Let us now go back to our quotation from Romans 15:4. The reason we use the R.S.V. is because f(didaskaliai} is there rendered "instruction" instead of "learning" as in the A.V. Learning is knowledge acquired by systematic study, while instruction is a more forceful expression, and signifies the act of furnishing with authoritative direction, and that is just what the Bible does. What then do we learn from the instruction given us with regard to the construction of the Tabernacle? Well, there are many things to observe and learn, but due to limited space we will only be able to look at a few. However, it all depends whether we are willing to learn. We can be like those mentioned by Jesus, who— ". . seeing see not; and hearing they hear not, neither do thev understand"—Matt. 13:13. or we can— ". . hear instruction, and be wise, and refuse it not"—Prov. 8:33. If we are in the latter class, we will learn that as Moses followed the pattern set for him, so we must follow the pattern set for us in the Scriptures. God is the Author of salvation, and if we expect to find favor before Him, we must conform to His requirements. If we say, "There is no harm in doing this or that/' and go about to establish our own form of righteousness, we will find out to our own bitter sorrow that we have been offering "strange fire" that will bring the wrath of God upon us. Let us be wise and follow the divine standards. Another very plain and important lesson that comes to us is the freewill basis upon which the materials were supplied. In fact, that was the only manner in which they would be accepted: "Speak unto the children of Israel, that they bring Me an offering: of every man that giveth it willingly with his heart ye shall take My offering"—Ex. 25:2. Upon reflection, it will be noted that in God's dealings with the human race, freewill has always been a dominant feature. Although we live subject to the law of Christ, we are free to exercise our voluntary will. To be a faithful servant, there must be first, as Paul says, a willing mind. It would be of little use to us if we kept God's commandments because we were afraid of Him. The only effectual incentive to keep them is a faith that works by love, and "This is love," says John, "that we walk after his commandments." An outstanding feature of the Tabernacle is the faithfulness with which the specifications were observed. Moses says "they had done the work as the Lord had commanded." And that is exactly what we are expected to do. Suppose some of them had said, "Why be so particular? Why make 50 loops in each curtain, when 40 will do?" Another might have said, "Why make the boards 10 cubits long, when they will be easier to handle if they are only 6 cubits long?" However, if they had not shown care and attention to detailed instructions, the result would have been an imperfect Tabernacle, and such could not have served as a symbol of the Mosaic example, and shadow of heavenly things. The lesson is clear. In the erection of the Tabernacle, Moses was a wise master builder. Paul uses this term with respect to himself, when he says, 1973 Berean 66 "According to the grace of God which is given unto me, as a wise master builder, I have laid the foundation, and another buildeth thereon. But let every man take heed how he buildeth thereupon"—I Cor. 3:10. We are builders, too. But how well do we build? Are we wise, or foolish builders? Do we build upon the sand, or upon the rock? And, finally, when shaping our materials that are to be used, do we follow the pattern shown to us in the Scriptures of Truth, or are we attempting to set our own standards by altering the specifications? No man can afford, nor has he any right, to trifle with divine precepts, for we are admonished (Heb. 2:2-3)— 'Tor if the word spoken by angels was steadfast, and every transgression and disobedience received a just recompence of reward; how shall we escape, if we neglect so great salvation?" It is a fact to be faced, that both individuals and communities rapidly decline in moral and spiritual qualities if the things written for our instruction, and guidance, are not maintained as the standard for our walk in the Truth. The pattern is essentially high, but the reward is transcendingly great. "Whoever is wise, let him understand these things; whoever is discerning, let him know them; for the ways of the Lord are right, and the upright walk in them, but transgressors stumble in them"—Hos. 14:9 (RSV). —Editor. Reaping the Earth's Harvest "And I looked, and behold a White Cloud, and upon the Cloud One sitting like to a Son of Man, having upon his head a golden stephan, and in his hand a sharp sickle. "And another Angel came out of the Nave, vociferating with a loud voice to him sitting upon the Cloud, Thrust in thy sickle, and reap, because for thee hath arrived the hour of reaping, for the harvest of the earth hath been ripened. "And he that is sitting upon the Cloud cast his sickle upon the earth, and the earth was reaped"—Revelation 14:14-16. BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "AND I looked,"saith John. Previous to this his ears, not his eyes, had been addressed. He had just been listening to the "Voice from the Heaven/' and the comment of the Spirit upon it. Having finished the writing of it in the book before him, he very naturally looked up, and thereupon perceived that the scene had been changed. When he last wrote the words, "I looked, and behold," he introduced us to a scene upon Mt. Zion, where the Lamb with the 144,000 are seen standing. This is a Pentecostal scene, and exhibition of First Fruit. But, before Pentecost comes the Passover in its fulfilment in the Kingdom of the Deity (Lk. 22:15-18). We had not been informed whether the Lamb and the 144,000 had entered Zion without a conflict, or as the result of a great disaster inflicted upon the enemy. 1973 Berean 67 The reader will perceive a remarkable transition from the subject treated of in the latter half of Rev. 13 to the beginning of 14. They are altogether different and unconnected. The former treats of the Name of the Beast, and the manner of its establishment in the earth: the latter, of the Name of the Father, and what it effects after its apocalypse. But as to how it established itself in Zion, this 14th chapter has hitherto afforded us no information. Before the Lamb can enter Zion with the 144,000, it will be necessary for him to expel the enemy. He comes to redeem Zion from the power of the foreigners, who have "come in like a flood," and afflicted her with "desolation and destruction, and the famine, and the sword." At this crisis of Zion's history, coeval with "darkness covering the earth, and gross darkness the people" Yahweh enquires thru the prophet (Is. 52:5)— "What have I here, that My people is taken away for nought? They who rule over them make them to howl, saith Yahweh, and My Name continually every day is blasphemed." Joel 3:2—"They have scattered Israel among the nations, and they have parted My Land.*' And (Daniel 11:45)— "The King of the North hath planted the tents of his entrenched camp between the seas to the mountain of the glory of the Holy One." Such are Zion's relations—domestic and foreign, social, civil, and spiritual—at the crisis immediately preceding the appearance of the Lamb and his company within her walls. Being assembled in the Valley of Jehoshaphat, and having laid successful siege to Jerusalem, the enemy rifle its houses, ravish its women, and send half its population into captivity, many of whom they sell to the Greeks for slaves at the vilest prices (Zech. 14:2; Joel 3:3). This prostrates Jerusalem in the dust, and fastens bands around the neck of the captive daughter of Zion. The uncircumcised and the unclean, then in possession of Tyre and Zidon, and the coasts of Palestine, are in high feather over their success. This will truly be the day of Jacob's trouble, in which there will be none to help, nor any to uphold (Isa. 63:3; Jer. 30:7). But Zion's extremity is her Redeemer's opportunity— "When" (saith Moses) "He seeth that their power is gone, He will repent Himself for His servants" (Deut. 32:36). , ,„ . , . Λ Λ ν 1973 Bereart 68 And, saith Joel (2:18-19)— "He will then be jealous for His land, and pity His people, who shall no more be made a reproach among the nations." "The Harvest of the Earth"—according to Joel, and John's Angel that comes out of the Nave (Rev. 14:15)—hath been ripened: "for their wickedness is great." The Harvest is composed of vast multitudes of ripened wickedness in the plain, or valley, of judgment, unconsciously awaiting a terrible overthrow. Joel in vision saw them all assembled there, as expressed in the words: "Multitudes, multitudes (hamonim, hamonim) in the Valley of Judgment, for the Day of Yahweh is near in the Valley of Judgment" These hamonim are the hamon-gog of Eze. 39:11—the Multitude of Gog, which is buried in the valley of the judgment executed, and gives name to an adjacent city called Hamonah, that is, Multitude. This and the preceding chapter of Ezekiel (38 & 39) are parallel with Joel 3, and with John's vision of the reaping. The prophet is indignant at their wickedness (Joel 3:13). He does not pray for their conversion, nor for their salvation, but for their sudden and complete overthrow, in the words (Joel 3:11)— "Thither cause to come down with violence Thy Mighty Ones, Ο Yahweh!" Nor will JoePs prayer be in vain, for, referring to the same crisis, Zechariah says (14:5)— "Yahweh Elohim shall come in, and all the Saints with Thee." This "coming in" to Jerusalem will be with violence, and a terrific outpouring of wrath upon the multitude in arms. In the words of Eze. 38:18-22— "Adonai Yahweh saith, My fury shall come up in My face, for in My jealousy and in the fire of My wrath have I spoken: "Surely in that day there shall be a great shaking in the land of Israel.. and all the men that are upon the face of the land shall shake AT MY PRESENCE. "And the mountains shall be thrown down, and the towers shall fall, and every wall shall fall to the ground. "And I will call for a sword against Gog throughout all My mountains, saith Adonai Yahweh: every man's sword shall be against his brother. "And I will plead against him with pestilence and with blood. And I will rain upon him and upon his bands and upon the many people that are with him, an overflowing rain, and great hailstones, fire, and brimstone." Thus Yahweh goes forth and fights against these multitudes "AS IN THE DAYS OF OLD" (Zech. 14:3). Such is the Harvest of the Earth, and its reaping. John looked, and beheld it in symbol. He saw a "white cloud" (Rev. 14:14)—a cloud of Mighty Ones habited in fine linen, which represents the righteousness of them that are clothed with it (Rev. 19:8, 14). A "cloud" indicates a multitude; and such a cloud, when looked upon in reference to its intrinsic excellence, would look "white" to the eye of faith. "All the Saints with Yahweh Elohim" are "Yahweh's Mighty Ones," numerically represented by 144,000. These are the "white cloud," or Cherub, upon which the Spirit rides (Psa. 18:10). or, in the language of the Apocalypse (14:14)— "Upon which One like to a Son of Man is sitting." Here the Spirit sits upon the White Cloud, while in Rev. 10:1, he is 'clothed with a Cloud/ This 10th chapter is introductory to the 14th. The Ancient of Days must descend from heaven before He can be "clothed with a Cloud," or ride upon a Cloud of Saints now sleeping in the dust. Hence the scene beheld represents events SUBSEQUENT to the descent of Christ Jesus and the resurrection and immortalization of the 144,000; and BEFORE they obtain possession of the Holy City. This is the epoch of the vision, and synchronizes with the concluding period of the Sixth Vial, and coeval with the gathering of the kings of the earth and their armies (Rv. 16:16)— "Into the place called in the Hebrew tongue Armageddon*' The "One like the Son of Man" sits upon the Cloud— "Having upon his head a golden STEPHANOS/' —rendered "crown," but not a diadem. This indicates that he is the Generalissimo of the Cloud of Mighty Ones, but not yet in possession of David's diadem, which was removed from David's House when Zedekiah, the profane wicked prince of Israel, was abased by Nebuchadnezzar (Eze. 21:26) The "stephan" indicates that he is going to compete for a prize which he has not as yet acquired. If he had been seen with a "diadem" upon his head, it would have implied that he was the ruling monarch of one kingdom at least, or that such was his destiny. On the contrary, the scene before us exhibits him in the outset of his military career, whose course will be that of a strong man to run and win a race (Ps. 19:5). The prize set before him is not one, but "MANY diadems" (Rev. 19:12). And these he acquires by— "The energy whereby he is able to subdue all things to himself." He transfers the diadem from the Ten Horns to his own head, when their kingdoms have become his by right of conquest. He is then seen sitting no longer on a Cloud, but "upon a throne set in the heaven"—the throne of his father David, which Yahweh Elohim hath given him(Rv. 4:2; Lk. 1:31-33). The "sharp sickle" in his hand (Rv. 14:14) is symbolical of his power to reap down the multitudes which have assembled in the valley or plain of their destruction. The sword called for throughout the mountains of Israel, their mutual slaughter, the pestilence, overflowing rain of hailstones, fire and brimstone, the panic and blindness of the horses, and the madness of their riders (Zech. 12:4; 14:12-15)—all illustrate the sharp sickle cast upon the earth for its reaping at the appointed hour. 1973 Berean 70 "And the earth was reaped" (Rev. 14:16). The "Little Horn of the Goat," the King of Fierce Countenance, is broken without hand; the Image of Nebuchadnezzar is smitten by the Stone; the Gog Multitude is prostrate upon the mountains of Israel; the King of the North hath come to his end without anyone to help him; and Judah is delivered from the Assyrian by the Bethlehem-born Ruler of Israel whose goings forth are from of old, from everlasting (Mic. 5:2-7; Dan. 11:45; 8:9,23,25; 2:34). This Confederacy against the East is shivered to pieces as a potter's vessel, and Jerusalem is delivered. From henceforth she will be no more trodden under foot of the Gentiles; nor will the uncircumcised and the unclean be permitted to enter. Zion hath now put on her strength, and Jerusalem her beautiful garments. She is no longer rebellious against her King, but blesses him as her Redeemer who has come in the Name of Yahweh. She had thrown open wide her gates, that the King of Glory, Yahweh Tz'vaoth, strong and mighty in battle, might enter in. Standing with his feet upon the Mt. of Olives, he beholds the Passover fulfilled in the Kingdom—the Assyrian is slain, Zion is redeemed, and the Lamb with the 144,000 stand on her Holy Mount— "Henceforth Jerusalem shall be holy, and no strangers shall pass through her any more** (Joel 3:17). Second Voyage to Australia BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS 'To the Law and to the Testimony: if they speak not according to this Word, it is because there is no light in them"—-Is. 8:20 PART TWENTY-SEVEN TUES.,JULY26: AQUICKTRIPTO NGARUAWAHIA: BRO. STARR FINDING there was no other public appointment till Thursday, a need having arisen for my running over to Melbourne before sailing for England, I began to wonder whether we could not put Ngaruawahia into the blank: days instead of waiting till next week, and so getting away a week sooner. Ngaruawahia (which we tried to remember by thinking of the "narrow way, eh ho!") is a small township about 80 miles to the south of Auckland, reachable by rail—where dwells an excellent family circle in the Truth by the name of Starr. By telegraph we ascertained it would be possible to hasten the lectures there by a week, so we started on Tuesday morning and got there in 4 hours. 1973 Berean 71 Ngaruawahia is one of the quiet corners of the earth. Its leading features are a river, a hill range, wooded to the summit on the west, a railway bridge crossing the river, a few houses, and a wide wooded plain to the east—a strange place for the Truth to have got to. We stayed at the house of young bro. Starr—married a few months previously to one of the daughters of bro. Connolly, of Auckland. (By the way, they told me this marriage was the result of my last visit to New Zealand. I was all unconscious. How could it be if I knew nothing of it? A riddle that I dare say some may guess.) A TRAGEDY IN THE CONNOLLY FAMILY: "LAY HOLD ON LIFE" I found the family under the shadow of a great and recent grief. A son of bro. Connolly had been killed by the falling of a tree in this neighborhood. Bro. Connolly had taken up 300 acres of bush-land near Ngaruawahia for his 2 sons, and they had been nearly 2 months engaged clearing the timber, when this accident happened. What made it specially sad was that the youth was interested in the Truth, but had not made that submission which he had intended. The other son was there during our stay, but had lost all heart in the work in which they had been jointly engaged. Time will heal all wounds. There may be a blessing in the evil, not at present visible. The rest are quickened, at all events, in their resolution to "lay hold upon eternal life." 2 LECTURES (TUES. & WED.): PRESBYTERIAN OBJECTIONS There were 2 lectures—the one on "The Coming" and the other on "The Kingdom of Christ"—held in the Public Hall of the place. Bro. Starr Sr. presided. There was not a large audience judged by ordinary places, but considering the bad state of the weather (for it rained and thundered heavily), and considering also that there had been only one day's notice of the meetings, the attendance was wonderful. At the first meeting a Presbyterian preacher was present, and could not restrain the antagonism stirred within him by what he heard. He shouted a question in the midst of the lecture. I said it would be time for questions at the close, but at the close he rose and said I had proved nothing, I had refused to answer questions. I could only say that I had advanced nothing without ample proof. "Yes," said he, "to your own satisfaction." "Well," said I, "whose satisfaction, other than my own, should I speak to?" I ought, he said,"to speak to other people's satisfaction also." I said I had done so in thousands of cases, all over the world. All this time he was moving out, and finally disappeared through the door. It was supposed he would return in full panoply next day, but he left the place by the midday train. It was said he was a preacher belonging to Huntley, an adjacent town. THURS., JULY 28,1898: RETURN TO AUCKLAND: A LECTURE We left Ngaruawahia on Thursday morning, July 28, and returned to Auckland in time for the evening lecture in the Odd fellows' Hall, on "The Kingdom of Christ." The night was very tempestuous, but there was a good audience. 1973 Berean 72 FRL, JULY 29: A MEETING AT BRO. TANFI ELD'S HOUSE On the Friday night there was a private meeting at the house of bro. Tanfield, at which I delivered an address, and answered questions on the unscriptural state of things prevailing in the denominations. A Mr. Wylde was present, who holds the Truth in great part, but fraternizes with the Wesleyans and others, and was disposed to advocate temporizing measures. I put some questions to him, which he found a difficulty in answering. SUN., JULY 31: AT AUCKLAND: A LETTERTO THE PAPER On Sunday, July 31, we had our 2 last meetings in the midst of storm—breaking of bread in the morning, and lecture at night at the Masonic Hall. There were good attendances, and farewells with regret. The brethren made an unexpected "love offering/' out of "the abundance of their joy and deep poverty/' I told them in thanking them through bro. Harrison, that it was some offset to the bitter things that had to be borne in the service of the Truth. During my presence in Auckland, there was a controversy in the local press, on the widely interesting question, of whether and why the popular church system was a failure. Perceiving an opening for a voice, I penned the following contribution, which appeared in the New Zealand Herald for Aug. 2, 1898— "To the Editor, Sir—Perhaps you will allow a stranger passing through your beautiful town to contribute a word to the controversy that has been going on in your columns on the question of whether the Church is a failure. "I perceive that one of the preachers admits the partial failure, and has various suggestions as to the cause, and a word as to the remedy. The remedy is more important than any explanation of the undoubted failure. He thinks the cure lies in 'getting back to Christ's teaching and thought.' 'Truth/ saith he, 'must come.' "In the abstract this is good. But how is this to be got at? How are we to get back 'to Christ's teaching and thought?' If we had no official record of Christ's teaching, it would be impossible to get back to it. But we have such a record in the New Testament, which has been in the hands of believers in an unbroken line of transmission since the first century. "If the rank and file of the Churches would begin the regular and attentive reading of the Bible, there would be some hope of getting back to the original teaching of Christ, as many have already done. "I say 'the Bible' advisedly, meaning the Old Testament as well as the New, for the Old Testament was as much commended to the attention of the people by Christ as his own commandments. If the people were to cultivate the habit of reading the Bible for themselves, independently of denominational bias, we should soon witness a revolution in popular theology, for the Bible does not teach popular theology in any of its fundamental doctrines and principles. Popular theology is a conglomerate of Platonic philosophy and ecclesiastical tradition, alias human speculation and invention. "The Bible promulgates divine revelation. It teaches the mortality of man, the unity of God, and the bodily, terrestrial nature of the salvation that God is now working out by Christ. Many of the preachers recognize this, but hold back from its public avowal for fear of results. 1973 Berean 73 "I fear there is little likelihood of the people adopting the plan of Bible study, if the views expressed by Mr. Badewell in your issue of Friday prevail—as they do, and are likely to do, more and more from their plausibility and palatability—that is, as regards the mass. A few will doubtless always be found, whose knowledge of the Scriptures will never allow them to consent to the suggestions that the Bible embodies 'the myths of an eastern people,' and who will be prepared to maintain without reserve, and in the full exercise of reason, that it is 'to be received and accepted as God's inspired Word.' This view is not disposed of by the quotation from a Jesuit father, not by the consensus of a whole hierarchy of clerical erudition. "When the Bible is UNDERSTOOD, the objections that weigh so readily upon Mr. Badewell's class fall to the ground. The mere reading of it, in any systematic manner, is enough to dispel the notion of superstitious or even a human origin. The 'six days hypothesis,' the creation of light, and Adam and Eve's advent in the garden of Eden, and all the other details supposed to be so damaging, are all matters of exegetical detail and fall into harmony with the general scheme of divine (and scientific) truth, when the Bible is allowed to give us this scheme in a 'strictly literal interpretation,' carried out with due regard to obvious figures of speech where they occur. "The huge mistake that is driving the people into irreligion is the assumption that clerical theology and Bible revelation are identical. "The two things are as wide as the poles asunder. Many have found out this to their joy, and if the discovery could only be extended to the public in general, we should soon have a different attitude on the part of the New Zealand public to the Book, to which even now they unconsciously owe so much. I am, etcM Robert Roberts." MON., AUG. 1: SAILING FROM AUCKLAND FOR SYDNEY We left Auckland on Monday, August 1, in the s.s. Mararoa for Sydney—1,000 miles over the stormy sea. Properly speaking, the return voyage to England began on the day sis. Roberts and I left Melbourne for New Zealand—which was May 26. The visit to New Zealand was the first part of the return voyage so far as I was concerned. The expectation was that when we had gone through that long straggling country, (nearly 1,000 miles from south to north, and 150 irregularly—from east to west) we should part at Auckland—sis. Roberts going west to Sydney on her way to Melbourne, and I eastwards, to San Francisco, on my way to Birmingham. But when we got to Auckland, it became evident that it would be expedient for me to revisit Melbourne before starting for England. So, as recorded in the last chapter of notes, I sailed with sis. Roberts in the Mararoa for Sydney, instead of the Moana for America. A ROUGH VOYAGE: LABORS FOR THE TRUTH ON BOARD The voyage (about 4 days) was a very rough one—the ocean always seems stormy between Australia and New Zealand—sis. Roberts was a little upset by the uncomfortable motion of the vessel, coming on the back of the fatigue resulting from something like a 6 hours' levee among friends before starting (you see the steamer did not sail for some hours after the advertised time—which caused what is expressively called "hanging about") 1973 Berean 74 Notwithstanding the discomforts of sea-sickness, sis. Roberts did good service for the Truth in her conversations with lady passengers. One case was quite interesting. The lady had seen our Auckland lectures advertised before starting, and had purposed attending; but being unable herself to go, she had pressed upon a grown-up son and daughter to do so. They attended, and brought her back a glowing report of what they had heard. She was now surprised to find us on board the same vessel. Sis. Roberts afterwards visited her in Sydney and arranged for her to have a copy of Christendom Astray. FRI.,AUG.5: ARRIVAL AT SYDNEY: REST AND RELIEF We reached Sydney on Friday, August 5, early in the day—an hour or two before our time, nearly too soon for 2 sharp friends who were on the outlook, though with a scramble they were on the wharf as soon as the steamer. Once in the hands of bro. Jackson and bro. Bell, our anxieties for the time were at an end. We were packed off in a literally packed conveyance to bro. Jackson's friendly house, 4 miles off at Marrickville, while our 2 brethren departed for the duties of the day. The rest of a stable habitation was very acceptable after the turmoil of the sea. It had been arranged that I should go forward to Melbourne, leaving sis. Roberts at Sydney till my return to that port in 2 weeks time to sail for San Francisco. She had not been to Sydney before, and there was a mutual desire on the part of herself and the brethren that she should embrace the opportunity of making the acquaintance of the largest ecclesia in the colonies. SUN.-MON., AUG. 7-8: MEETINGS AT SYDNEY: ON TO MELBOURNE I stayed over the Sunday, meeting with the brethren, and addressing them, morning and evening, departing for Melbourne by the Monday night's express. I had not known till the last moment whether I should be going to Melbourne by sea or land, otherwise I might have arranged to stay at Albury on the way. However I made up for this on the way back. The train had to go through Wagga Wagga, where bro. Payne now lives, but at such an unseasonable hour (4 a.m. I think) that a visit could not well be arranged. I had an interesting letter from him afterwards, mentioning encouraging prospects for the Truth in his new neighborhood, especially at a quiet place about 40 miles off—I forget the name—where a company of men had come to a knowledge of the Truth through reading Christendom Astray, and had sent to know how they could be assisted in the obedience of the Truth. At Albury station, 7 o'clock, I saw sis. Frew and bro. Kaye for a few minutes. 1973 Berean 75 Being a day before my time, and not wishing to arrive prematurely at Melbourne, I stayed off at Benalla (my ticket admitting of this), and gave the day to writing in a temperance hotel. WED., AUG. 10: ARRIVAL HOME: A LONELY COMPANY: 2 LECTURES I arrived at Melbourne on Wednesday, August 10, and found all well with our lonely little company at the Orient House, except that another horse had died, and water was going short. I spent a pleasant fortnight with them, attending the meetings, and lecturing 2 Sundays on "The Voice of God in History/' and "The Voice of God in Prophecy." THURS., AUG. 25: THE FINAL FAREWELL: LEAVING MELBOURNE I bade them a reluctant adieu early on Thursday, August 25, and took the train at Glenroy for Albury, where it had been arranged I should lecture on my way to Sydney. The arrangement was made under peculiar circumstances. For some considerable time, bro. Dinsmore had been in the habit of inserting a weekly advertisement in one of the local papers, setting forth some element of the Truth, in a brief form, with proof-texts accompanying. Nobody had a right to say a word against it. Still, the clergy did not like it. They would have had no objections to bro. Dinsmore advertising himself as the agent of Cockle's pills or Mother Siegel's syrup, but to have the Scripture-supported Truth held up weekly before the eyes of the community was not at all soothing to their feelings. At last, a rocket was fired off by a Roman Catholic priest in the shape of a letter denouncing the heretical stuff, and the paper that could lend itself as a medium for it. This brought out a cordial response from an Episcopalian clergyman, who warmly seconded his Roman Catholic brother's protest. Then came a letter on the other side, putting in a plea for liberty and fair play, and suggesting, if I remember rightly, that the clerical objectors should take the British way of dealing with heresy by arguing it down instead of fulminating a condemnation which nobody in these days of freedom could be expected to take any notice of. This commenced a newspaper war which did not go to a great length. It ended in the clericals trying to "boycott" the paper. They publicly declared their intention to induce their people to cease taking a paper that lent itself to diffusion of such rank infidelity—as if a paper could be held responsible for the things said be advertisers. No doubt some would be intimidated for a time, but in the end, the stream would resume its natural course. 1973 Berean 76 It was suggested that the state of mind caused by this newspaper breeze would be favorable for obtaining the public ear for the hearing of the Truth. So it was arranged that I should deliver one lecture—the circumstances not favoring more. FRI.,AUG.26: ALECTURE AT ALBURY: ON TOSYDNEY I arrived at mid-day on the Friday, rested at the house of bro. Dinsmore in the afternoon, and in the evening delivered the lecture. There was a large audience for Albury, and a very attentive hearing, and at the close, a great number of questions were put. The meeting was considered as interesting and successful as such a hurried effort allowed. Two hours after the lecture, I took the night express for Sydney, where I arrived next day about 11 o'clock. SAT., AUG. 27: A DAY AT MANLY WITH SIS. ROBERTS After a certain amount of writing I spent a very enjoyable day with sis. Roberts at Manly, a seaside resort at the lower side of the harbor, just outside "the heads." We could not help some degree of sadness at the prospect of separating so soon for so long a time. SUNDAY, AUGUST 28 Next day (Sunday), we had a profitable day with the brethren, morning and evening. The lecture was on "The Meaning of God's Dealings with Mankind Past and Future." MON., AUG. 29: SAILING FROM SYDNEY FOR NEWZEALAND On Monday, having done the needful packing, we sent my part of "the things" down to the s.s. Alameda, and then went for the few last hours together. At 4 o'clock there was a good muster of brethren and sisters at the wharf of the Union Steamship Co., at the foot of Margaret Street. (Sis. Roberts was to sail next day in the coasting steamboat for Melbourne.) Having said farewell, the gangway was unshipped punctually at 4 o'clock, and the Alameda slowly left her moorings and was soon moving down the harbor among those handkerchief wavings which sadly mean so much more than can be expressed, a curious mixture of reminiscences, friendship, sorrow, and hope. In less than half-anhour we were out on the great ocean, in a heavy swell, with the head of the vessel pointed to New Zealand, 1000 miles away. The night closed in darkness and roughness, and most of the passengers were banished to their cabins by the distressing sensations caused by the heaving and rocking of the vessel. As I am happily not affected in this way, I was able to commence at once to pull up the arrears of writing into which I had fallen during the last or mg . T H E D | F F E R E N C E S 0 N A N AMERICAN BOAT The s.s. Alameda is an American boat, and therefore differing in several respects from those in which I have been accustomed to travel. The differences I must say are all in favor of the American. I cannot adduce more conclusive evidence than this, that whereas I have invariably been put out of order in all previous sea voyages, in this instance I preserved a proper equilibrium of health during the entire 3V2 weeks or so I spent on board. 1973 Berean 77 The explanation lay partly in the fact stated by the head steward, "We have no red tape here." In English ships there is a rigid adherence to system from which one finds it difficult to depart in the midst of a crowd of people, and if the food does not happen to be suitable in every particular, you are helpless. On board the Miowera, for example, the last time I crossed the Pacific, the etiquette was as high almost as at a nobleman's table. The dishes came in regular courses. If you did not care for what was offered, you let it pass. If you wanted something else you must wait, and probably could not even have it by waiting. On the Alameda there was system, of course (for nothing could be done without system), but it was a flexible system that could be adapted to everyone's particular needs. Many of the dishes were placed on the table for you to help yourself; and as regards those not on the table, but on the bill of fare, you could have anything you liked, in any order. (By the way, they said "bill of fare" and not menu. English people should certainly speak English. These lordly ways are burdensome to plain men, and all true men are plain men—even as the little children who Jesus prescribes as the ideal.) Then the American officials are more sensible and humble and cheery than their English confreres, who are liable to be austere and stand-off. Tribulation Worketh Patience "I will show him how great things he must suffer for my Name's sake"—Acts 9:16 IN Acts 16 and 17 we are again travelling with Paul. At the close of ch. 15 he set out with Silas on the second of his three great journeys of proclaiming the Gospel to the world. It was about 50 AD, 20 years after Jesus' crucifixion and resurrection. He suggested to Barnabas that they revisit the ecclesias they had established in western Asia Minor on the first journey. From this arose the dispute over taking Mark, who had left them and turned back on the first journey. This disagreement between Paul and Barnabas could not be settled so, after working together for over 15 years, they parted. Paul and Barnabas had been close from the beginning. It was Barnabas who introduced Paul to the brethren at Jerusalem, when they were afraid of him. And it was Barnabas who got Paul to go to Antioch to help him with the work there. Both these men had the Holy Spirit in great measure. Of Barnabas it is said he was "full of the Holy Spirit" (Acts 11:24). At the beginning of the first journey, the Holy Spirit specifically selected Barnabas and Paul (mentioning Barnabas first) to go forth together to preach to the Gentiles (Acts 13:2). 1973 Berean 78 Yet still, they could not solve this point at issue between then, and this divinely appointed team broke into two. There is much food for profitable thought here, and much comfort for our present dark day. Why did they not appeal to God, and why did not God settle it for them by the direct guidance of the Spirit? Doubtless they DID fervently appeal to God, and doubtless He DID settle it, but not necessarily in the way we might desire or expect. Of another trouble of another kind at another time, Paul said it had worked out "to the furtherance of the Gospel" (Ph. 1:12). So here. Two expeditions set out instead of one. Of Barnabas we do not hear again, but this is no reflection on him, for the record is concerned with Paul and we hear very little about any other at all. Of Mark, Paul later speaks very highly more than once. In Col. 4:10-11, he was with Paul in his first imprisonment in Rome, and Paul says he was a "comfort to him." And in 2 Tim. 4:11, at the very end of Paul's life, again in prison in Rome, the one person he tells Timothy to bring to him is Mark, and he speaks of him as "profitable to him for the ministry." Of these two Holy Spirit-filled men, Paul and Barnabas, which was to blame? Which was wrong? Not necessarily either. Nor is there any evidence that either behaved in an unChristlike way. The word in Acts 15:39, translated "contention," is more often used in a good sense than a bad one. It denotes very strong feeling, but not necessarily wrong feeling. It is the word translated "provoke" in— "Provoke unto love and good works" (Heb. 10:24) It is the word used for "stirred" in Acts 17:16 where Paul's heart was compassionately and zealously stirred by the ignorance of the Athenians' pitiful, intense worship of what they knew not. There was very strong feeling on both sides of this disagreement, each for his own unshakably determined course of action. Paul was determined he would not take Mark on this trip. Barnabas was determined he would not go without Mark. Both may have been perfectly right in their judgment. We are not specifically told their reasons, but they seem quite clear and both legitimate. Paul would not take him because he had failed them on the first trip. Paul's reason may have just as much out of love and consideration for Mark as Barnabas' was. The hardships of this second trip were greater and more prolonged than those of the first. We have only to think of the terrible beating with iron rods the apostles suffered in Philippi, and the mob uproars and vicious treatments at Thessalonica, Berea and Corinth. He would know young Mark was not ready, and another failure could be disastrous for both Mark and the expedition. 1973 Berean 79 Barnabas, on the other hand, would not go without his nephew Mark. He too was probably right. Clearly Mark wanted to go. Clearly therefore he regretted having abandoned them on the first journey. Clearly he was anxious to redeem himself. To deny him the opportunity might have destroyed him by remorse and disappointment. So 2 expeditions would clearly be the answer, dividing the proposed field of visiting the ecclesias they had established, one by Barnabas and Mark to more familiar and less hazardous territory, until Mark was more fully matured as a soldier of Christ. There are many lessons for us, but what surely is the great one? That even very outstanding apostles filled with the Holy Spirit may sincerely and irreconcilably disagree. God does not always choose to give all the answers to everything, for He is testing us to see how we react to problems and difficulties. If we always react with gentleness and kindness and fairness and meekness and patience and brotherliness and love, all will at last be well for us, and God will in His good time clear all the clouds away. But if the flesh comes to the surface, and we react with harshness and bitterness and rudeness and unkindness, and believe and spread false reports about our brethren, then woe betide us, for our just condemnation will be terrible indeed! We shall never know all the answers to all problems. But if we do not consistenly manifest the meek and loving spirit of Christ in all our dealings with our brethren, and scrupulous truth and fairness in what we say about them, then we might as well forget everything and join the world, for we are the world's biggest hypocrites. We cannot possibly be right if our spirit is wrong, for God will only guide those of the right spirit. If we cannot control our own tongue and temper, then that—and that alone—is our number one life-anddeath problem, and we had better worry about ourselves and forget about condemning others. So Paul starts out on Journey Two with Silas, a new companion. This time they went by land across the mountains into eastern Asia Minor, to Derbe, Lystra, Iconium, etc. The first incident, beginning ch. 16, is the addition of Timothy to the party. It is clear that a devoted young man, to take care of the many details of traveling, would be a tremendous advantage in the work, and the loss of such, in the middle of the journey, a great blow and handicap to them. Twelve years later, Timothy is still especially noted for his youth, so at this time he must have been very young indeed, most probably in his teens. The first thing Paul does is to have him circumcised, though he taught, to these very same ecclesias, in Gal. 5:2, that— '7/ye be circumcised, Christ shall profit you nothing." There are always those who are eagerly looking for "inconsistencies" to condemn in their brethren, and here indeed is a perfect example— 1973 Berean so "Paul! You said, 'If ye be circumcised Christ shall profit you nothing.* But here when faced with a problem yourself, you directly violate that principle, just as an expediency to save yourself trouble with the Jews!" We know there was no inconsistency. We know Paul's motives in both cases were perfectly correct, and completely harmonious with each other. We see the picture clearly. But how can you convince"" someone who is seeking for something to find fault with, and to use to discredit someone?/The scriptural command is, over and over— "JUDGE NOT, THAT YE BE NOT JUDGED." With our puny little limited minds, it is impossible for us to judge fairly, even if we should have all the facts. And we never have ALL the facts. This is not to say that there must not be a strong fellowship stand, strongly adhered to. Otherwise we would all be still in the Catholic Church. We must decide where the fellowship line is, and we must faithfully adhere to it, very gently and kindly, but very firmly. But we must never judge motives, or seek occasions of faultfinding, or believe and peddle hurtful rumors, or talk behind peoples' backs, or speak of sins—either real or supposed—TO ANYONE EXCEPT THE PERSON INVOLVED. In doing such, we condemn ourselves. The stern penalties of the law of Christ are very fearful against any of these fleshly abominations— "AS YE JUDGE, SO SHALL YE BE JUDGED/' Many do not seem to realize the terrible judgment in store for those who accept Christ, and then violate his laws of brotherliness and kindness. So Paul circumcised Timothy, even though he said the circumcision would cut a man off from the salvation of Christ. The next few verses (6-10) are very interesting. We remember that these men—especially Paul—had the power of the Holy Spirit in tremendous measure, that Spirit which Jesus said should "lead them in all truth." In these verses, we are reminded of Abraham, who, Paul says (Heb. 11:8)— "Went out, not knowing whither he went" God just said to him, "Leave home; start out; I'll tell you later where you are going." We tend to get impatient. We tend to worry about what is coming, and what to do about it. But— "Sufficient unto the day is the evil thereof." God doesn't have to tell us what to do until the time comes to do it. All we have to be concerned about are the problems of today. That is the big lesson we find so hard to learn. We worry about so many things that haven't happened, and never will happen. When shall we ever learn that God knows what He is doing, and we can very safely leave all the worrying to Him? ν 1973 Berean si But getting back to Acts 16:6. These men were filled with the power of the Spirit, and they were out doing the Spirit's work. But what do we find? They must stumble on their way by trial and error. They made the circuit of the ecclesias, confirming the disciples. Then they considered where to go next. Did the Spirit guide them? Not at all, except negatively. They apparently first considered going to Asia. This refers to the western end of Asia Minor, centered around Ephesus. This would be the logical move on the basis of Paul's pattern of moving gradually west by way of great cities. But the Spirit just forbad them to go to Asia. So they headed north for Bithynia, but again the Spirit said no. They had tried west and north, and been barred, so they tried northwest, in between, and this time they were permitted to proceed. Why did God act like this? And why are we told about it? Surely to teach us essential lessons. We have got to have patience, and we have got to have faith, and we have got to have complete, calm, unworried dependence. Answers will come, when they are needed. So they finally by trial and error, reached the coast at Troas, at the northwest tip of Asia Minor, opposite Europe. And still the destination God had in mind for them has not been revealed. But after they reached Troas, Paul had the vision of the man of Macedonia, calling for help. Even then there was no direct instruction. How easy for God to have said at the very beginning— "Don't waste your time trying this direction and that direction. Go straight to Macedonia." But God, in His Own good wisdom, did not choose to do it that way. They still, by putting everything together, had to reach the conclusion that this appeared to be what God wanted them to do. And this time they were right. Surely this whole impressive train of events is to emphasize our day-to-day dependence on the guidance of God. As soon as He tells us too far ahead, as soon as we begin to confidently plan for the future, as soon as problems seem to be clearing up and answers seem to be coming, we begin to lose touch—to lose the urgent sense of the need of daily guidance. Right away we relax. Our m i n d s released from pressure—turn to worldly things. We begin to build sepulchres on high, as if this were our eternal resting place. The next deeply instructive event is the beating and jailing of Paul and Silas. Up to the time he wrote 2nd Corinthians (which was about 2 / 3 through his life in the Truth), Paul had been beaten 3 times with iron rods by the Romans, and 5 times lashed with 40 stripes by the Jews. The beating with iron rods was a terrible punishment, not only at the time but in its long painful crippling effects afterward. Often it broke bones and did great permanent injury. Why did Paul have to suffer these things? Why did Christ have to suffer as he did? Why is it—as Paul told the Lycaonian brethren after his own stoning at Lystra—that (Acts 14:22)— 1973 Berean 82 "We must through MUCH tribulation enter the Kingdom of God.*' Of Christ himself it is said (and it is one of the deepest statements of Scripture), that (Heb. 5:8)— "He LEARNED OBEDIENCE by the things that he suffered." How could a perfect, sinless man "learn obedience"? From the very beginning he was sinless: but he was untried, unexperienced, undeveloped in character. He had not * Overcome." At the end he was tried, and experienced, and established—having perfectly overcome all trials and sufferings. Suffering is the crucible in which character is purged and purified and beautified, and then fired to indestructible permanence. In our original, natural state, we are rotten, ugly, fleshly, animal creatures. Some of us never get to be anything else but rotten, ugly, fleshly, animal creatures all our lives, though we are given the inestimable privilege and responsibility of living, like Judas, in the presence of divine beauty. Suffering takes many forms, and only God knows what each suffers, and how much. Suffering does not NECESSARILY beautify and purify. Sometimes it makes us even worse than our original natural ugliness was. It is a matter of how we are exercised by it. If we really believe God—and sadly there is much less REAL belief than there appears to be on the surface—if we really believe God, then we really believe that— "All things work together for good to them that love God." "All things"! If we haven't got that connection, we haven't got ANYTHING. And if we have got it—how can we ever be unhappyhow can we ever be disappointed—how can we ever wish things to be different than they are? Truly we wish them to be different in the sense that we wish them to be working in a certain direction of change and accomplishment. But they ARE doing that! We KNOW they are, for— "All things WORK TOGETHER for good—toward good—for them that love God." All we have to be concerned about is that we are among those that truly "love" God—in the scriptural sense of complete and unrestrained devotion and obedience. And this is indeed a tall order, a lifetime effort, a fulltime project. It consists mainly of always doing what God wants, and not doing what WE want—of always acting in harmony with the beauty of the Spirit and not the ugliness of the flesh. That's our main concern—our own character and conduct, or we are just hypocrites. But why should Paul need more suffering than anyone else? We would think it was terrible if we were nearly beaten to death once, but Paul experienced this at least 8 times, and never knew when it Was COming again. 1973 Berean 83 It was not because he deserved or needed it more. There is another aspect to suffering, another marvelous and beautiful aspect. Jesus said of Paul at the very beginning— "I will show him what great things he must suffer for my Name/' Of Peter, Jesus spoke concerning the death whereby he should glorify God. And of himself it is recorded— "With his stripes we are healed." How does suffering serve the Name of Christ, and glorify God, and heal others? These are strange and wonderful divine things. There is much we do not know, but there is also much we can dimly perceive, and somehow feel rather than actually comprehend. Paul speaks of striving to participate in the fellowship of Christ's sufferings, and there IS indeed a "fellowship of suffering" that is far deeper and closer than any fellowship of mere joy could ever be. If we are Christ-like and compassionate, and kind to one another, we shall come through all problems more closely knit together in love, for we shall have experienced the beautiful "fellowship of sufferings. " The reaction to suffering is the key to its value. It is the beauty of character born of bitter tribulation that makes all worthwhile. If Paul had just endured these things stoically and courageously, it would have been commendable, but it would have had no living power. Many do that, and yet they are nameless and forgotten. But let us consider the apostles' reaction. First, their clothes were torn off and they were beaten severely with iron bars. The record specifically says that "many stripes" were laid upon them—that is, more than usual—especial severity. They would be in constant severe pain for many days after; any movement would be agony. Then they were thrown—literally thrown—into prison. The jailor, being specially charged with their safety, in turn "throws" them into the inner prison—the dungeon, and fastens their feet in stocks. These stocks were an instrument of torture to create a position of great diSCOmfort. 1973 Berean 84 All this time they would be wounded and bleeding, with their wounds completely unattended to. But the main thing is, what was their reaction to all this? All down through earth's dark history of man's wickedness this has happened (and still happens) countless times to countless millions. Natural man is a vile, jungle creature of hatred and vindictiveness and backbiting and vicious falsehood. "And at midnight Paul and Silas prayed, and sang praises unto God." They were not putting on an act. This was the true, deep, spontaneous reaction of their hearts. These men were really IN the Truth. They really knew what it was all about. Their minds were thoroughly and inseparably in tune with God. They knew that all was of God, and all was for some great eternal good, and that they were a privileged part of that great purpose of at last filling the earth with God's glory. Let us not be sorry for them. Let us rather be sorry for ourselves that in this day of ease and comfort and luxury and self-indulgence, we are so pitifully out of touch with those glorious realities the apostles' experienced. How many of us are really IN the Truth, as they were? They did not seek martyrdom. They fled from it whenever they faithfully could. They did all they faithfully could to avoid it. But when it came, they knew it was of God for some strange and glorious purpose, and they rejoiced in tribulation, they "rejoiced that they were considered worthy to suffer" for the great Name of Jesus. One result was the conversion of the jailor—the one who just previously had cruelly added to their misery by roughly throwing them into the dungeon and putting their feet in stocks. Was it worth it? Would we consider it worth it, if we could save a soul from death? Here is the key to the whole matter. Here we can test our hearts to see if we really are in the Truth and have any idea what it is all about. To them it WAS worth it, worth all the suffering, because they were driven by the mighty power of love for their fellowman. They were not self-centered. They thought nothing of themselves. To what extent are we driven by that power? Is it a vital overwhelming force within us so that we are constantly seeking to do good, and willing to suffer anything for it? Are we really IN the Truth—God's glorious TRANSFORMING Truth—or do we just have a religion? "Let a man examine himself," says Paul, as he turns our hearts and minds to this great sacrifice for mankind, this supreme manifestation of love—"Greater love hath no man than this"— "Let a man examine HIMSELF/* To examine ourselves is an ugly, stomach-turning task. Few indeed are willing to face what they see, but those few are God's eternal jewels. —G.V.G. Fraternal Gatherings If the Lord Will LAMPASAS, TEXAS: FRIDAY to SUNDAY, JUNE 8 to 10 Bro. Ross Wolfe, 1802 Rumley Rd., Lampasas, Tex. 76550; (512) 556-5249 HYE, TEXAS: SUNDAY to SUNDAY, JULY 29 to AUGUST 5 Bro. N. Mammone, 2200 W. No. Loop, Ap. 129, Austin, Tx. 78756; 512-453-1048 'One thing have I desired of the Lord, that will I seek after; that I may dwell in the house of the Lord all the days of my life, to behold the beauty of the Lord, and to enquire in His temple"—Psalm 27:4. One thing. One thing is needful. Complication is unrest, but simplification is peace. One thing in life must stand in majestic isolation like the mountain of the Lord, and all other things must be grouped in complete subjection at its base. 1973 Berean 85 In the Image of God Made He Him "In heaven their angels do always behold the face of my Father which is in heaven"—Matthew 18:10 PARTTMREE THE SPIRITUAL CONFIRMS THE LITERAL We do not find ANYWHERE Truly, in the New Testament, in Scripture that spintual lesthe "image of God" is also used sons and applications disprove in a much higher sense than the actual, literal facts they are external form, but rather than patterned from. destroying the simple literal foundation, the spiritual appliPassages using this expression cation is BUILT UPON and conor thought in a spiritual sense firms it. are: 2 Cor. 3:18—"We all, with open face beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord, are changed into the same image from glory to glory" (Amer. Rev. Vers.: ". . . are being changed into his likeness from one degree of glory to another.") Col. 3:10—"Put on the new man, which is renewed in knowledge, after the image of Him that created him." Eph. 4:24 (Amer. Rev. Vers.)—"Put on the new nature, created after the likeness of God in true righteousness and holiness." It will be clearly seen that the "image of God" in these passages is a likeness to Him in mind and character. This is a legitimate and scripturally supported spiritual application, pat- terned on the natural, as many spiritual teachings are. It is quite clear and understandable and—while based upon the literal meaning—there is no confusion or confliction with it. CLEAR DISTINCTION BETWEEN LITERAL AND SPIRITUAL THERE is plainly a vast difference between the simple, literal "image of God" in which man was made at the beginning and all men have been made in since, and the image referred to in these passages which is a matter of developed character, tried faith, growing in knowledge, obedience learned through things suffered, spiritual transformation of the mind, etc. The natural image is bestowed upon ALL from creation forward; the spiritual image is a matter of lifelong effort and gradual a t t a i n m e n t . THE SCRIPTURES DO NOT CONFUSE THE TWO. James 3:9 could not possibly be referring to the same thing as 2 Cor. 3:18. The first is natural, involuntary and universal; the second is spiritual, voluntary and individual. The first is applied to all men; the second only to the faithful believers. It is essential to PERCEIVE THIS DISTINCTION, and not mix these references together. It is the meaning of the former—the natural, universal image—with which we are concerned. This meaning we believe we have conclusively demonstrated by a thorough examination of what the original words used by God really mean, and the way they are consistently used to fix that meaning beyond question. Also by other Old Testament foundation references to the subject of the form of God. The abandonment of this essential truth will soon lead to 1973 Berean 86 a broad disintegration of the scriptural picture concerning the spiritual body, and a long step toward the bodiless, immaterial, immortal soul conception. The Scriptures nowhere give any support to the theory that the image of God in which man was — and still is — made is "dominion" or "spiritual dis- cernment that Adam had but Eve hadn't," etc. Nothing of this kind is included in the simple, natural meaning of the words used. These are groundless and unsupported suppositions, the fallacy of which should be obvious by the fact that such a wide range of meanings must be given a simple term in order to make it fit all references. HEBREWS 1:3 Heb. 1:3—"His Son . . . the brightness of His glory, and the express image of His Person." This is the AV, and it seems points out in Phanerosis, the to represent the meaning of the engraving of a substance points original words as accurately as strongly to a form, specially any, unless "substance" (RV) when it is tied in with such a is a closer rendering than "pervisual aspect as "the brightness son." We believe this verse to of His glory." be a strong support of the truth However, as bro. Roberts menconcerning the form of God. It tions (Chdn. 1892), the case appeals to us in that way, but does not rest on this verse. To we do not insist upon this exact those who feel the force of the meaning here, because it is not other testimony, this reference absolutely literally conclusive. adds strength, but they would The "express image" is in the not use this verse exclusively as Greek charakter, literally "ena primary proof. graving," and, as bro. Thomas COLOSSI ANS 1:15 Col. 1:15—"His Son . . . who is the image of the invisible God." "image" itself here is not conThe specific introduction of clusive, for the Greek word the word "invisible" surely directs our minds to the aspect of (eikon) is used both literally s i g h t and appearance. This and figuratively in the New seems inescapable. To us, thereTestament, though more often fore, this verse is another clear in the primary sense of an aclink in the chain. The word tual, visible similitude. SETH IN ADAM'S IMAGE, AS ADAM IN GOD'S WE would like to direct attention to the exact parallel between Gen. 1:26— "Let us make man in our image (tselem), after our likeness (demuth). And Gen. 5:3— "Adam begat a son in his own likeness (demuth), after his image (tselem)." It will be noted that the original words are identical. Surely these identical expressions—used in similar relation and so close together, and further tied together by Gen. 5:1— must mean the same simple thing. Surely it is highly forced and unnatural to suggest that we must interpret them in two entirely different ways, according to our own ideas of what they should mean. REFERENCES TO BODILY PARTS THERE is another aspect which we do not present as absolutely conclusive in itself, but 1973 Berean which to us adds great supplementary strength to the picture. Beside the continual and natural 87 references to God as a person a s we know such—"Father," "He," etc.—there are the many allusions to Him that imply a form similar to man's—His face, His hands, etc. It is argued that this is all "symbolic" and that on this basis, He must also have wings (Psa. 17:8) and feathers (Psa. 91:4). True, much is symbolic and figurative. Many such expressions are used of men in other than a literal sense, as to "hold something in the hollow of one's hand," or to "grind the faces of the poor." But, on the foundation already given, we believe the many places which refer quite naturally and apparently literally to God as an actual person with a form like man's carry great weight in presenting a consistent picture. It is just what we would expect, on the basis of Gen. 1:26. We know "wings" are quite obviously figurative, but we experience no more difficulty with this than we do when we ourselves use the expression "take someone under our wing." Such clearly figurative expressions— employed freely by men themselves—cannot be used as an excuse to brush aside all the natural and simple references to God's face, hands, eyes, etc., without some very real evidence that none of this is intended to convey the idea that it quite naturally and simply does convey. If God is very anxious and concerned that we should NOT get this impression, it is surely strange that ALL the references to Him, from Genesis to Revelation, when accepted in their ordinary sense, so strongly lead TO that impression, whatever aspect of the subject we consider. We are well aware that Christendom considers a literal sitting down in a literal Kingdom of God to partake of literal food with Christ as a gross and absured notion, but — believing what God has said—we are quite unmoved by an apostate Christendom's views, or the views of the "wise" of the world. The same applies to this question. VERSES USED IN ATTEMPT TO DISPROVE THE TRUTH There are some verses that are quoted in an effort to prove that the form of man is not patterned after the form of God: Deut. 4:15—"Ye saw no manner of similitude (temunah) on the day that the Lord spoke to you." and worship images. But of Even on the face of it this Moses—in whom there was no does not in any way support the such danger—God said, "The above contention. It is a perfectsimilitude (temunah: s a m e ly true statement of fact, and it word) of Yahweh shall he beis emphasized to guard them hold" (Nm. 12:8). And we are against their very prevalent given an instance of this happening (Exo. 33:20-23). weakness of desiring to make * * * Jer. 10:23—"It is not in man that walketh to direct his steps." The argument from this is as if we said, "It is not in man that laboreth to direct his labor rather obscure and hard to dearight." Consider a very similar fine. It lies in the suggestion expression (Psa. 89:48)— that the phrase "that walketh" is given as a distinguishing "What man is he that livcharacteristic of man, as coneth, and shall not see death?" trasted with God. Surely the Could this be used to prove simple, reasonable meaning lies that God has no life, simply on in the connection between "that the ground that man is spoken walketh" and "his steps," just Of as living? 1973 Berean Eccl. 7:29—-"God hath made sought out many inventions." It is inferred that this verse refers to the making of man in God's image and man's subsequent decline from that image. Apart from the fact that this suggestion contradicts the clear meaning of "image" in Gen. 1:26, we believe the clearest proof that this interpretation is impossible lies in the distinction that Paul makes in 1 Cor. 11:7 between the man and the woman as related to the image of God— "Man is the image and man upright; but they have glory of God: but the woman is the glory of the man. Both man and woman were made "upright." Both were "very good" before transgression. If we say that being made "upright" was being made in the image of God, then we deny that the woman was made upright. If woman was not "upright" or "straight" when made, then the statement that they were "very good" would not be true, and God would be made the originator of sin. Rom. 1:23—"They changed the glory of the uncorruptible God into an image made like unto corruptible man." We would like to call atten—they followed the tendencies tion first to the fact that this of their own lusts and desires, in no way states or proves or and created false gods, patterned after themselves. indicates that man was not made in the image (form) of "They changed the truth of God. This should be clearly God into a lie, and worshipped realized, for much has been and served the creature more made of this by inference. than the Creator" (v. 25). It is simply a perfectly true That was the sin. The fact statement of fact that — forthat—patterning idols after men saking the true and pure wor—they would approximate the ship of the Creator—they made form of God, would be quite inand worshipped gods patterned cidental. It was creatures, with after vile and corruptible men. all their vile passions and propensities, they were the patterns WHETHER OR NOT MAN IS and ideals they were copying MADE IN THE FORM OF GOD for their objects of degraded DOES NOT AFFECT THE SIN worship. HERE SPOKEN OF. Bro. Roberts, says, in answer Forsaking the true God—putto exactly the same objection in ting Him from their minds (v.28) the 1892 Chdn., pg. 133— "The allegation in Rom. 1:23 against the fools who had 'changed the glory of the uncorruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man* has reference to nature rather than shape, as shown by the emphasis on the terms of the contrast—'corruptible' and 'uncorruptible* in connection with 'glory.' The mythology of the Greeks and the idolatries of the Canaanites may illustrate what is meant. They reduced the glowing fountain of Eternal Power to a mere creature like man with his weaknesses and passions." Some have thought, on the This is emphasized by the basis of v. 18 ("Who hold the following verse: "Wherefore Truth"), that this first chapter God gave them up to uncleanof Romans refers to believers ness through the lusts of their who have gone partly astray. own hearts." 1973 Berean I But the Rev. Vers. here has, "Who hinder the Truth." The original word is katecho, and while it admittedly is and may be translated "keep, possess, hold fast," it is also just as accurately rendered "seize, stay, withhold, let, restrain." Surely it will be quite evi- dent from a careful reading of this chapter that it is the whole mass of the Gentiles that is being spoken of, as chapter 2 speaks of the Jews. The whole scope and frameword and plan of the epistle demand this. Paul says (3:9)— "We have proved both Jews and Gentiles that they are ALL under sin." John 5:37—"Ye have neither heard His voice at any time, nor seen His shape/' witness of me, ye have neiThis is interpreted to mean, ther heard, etc . . ." "nor seen anything of similar shape." This is not sound interThe point at issue is WITpretation; it takes all the point NESS, testimony, evidence. and meaning out of the passage. It is God's OWN authentic The passage says, "Ye have not voice or visible manifestation seen His shape" (eidos—form, that is in question as a matter appearance). Consider the conof genuineness and witness. text. Jesus says in the first half Whether or not they had seen of the same verse— countless men fashioned after His shape is entirely irrelevant. "The Father hath borne It will be noted that all the foregoing "proofs" are based on inference. Not one of them actually says what they are used to try to prove. This is true also of Psa. 73:20, which was considered earlier. MALE AND FEMALE FORMS passing with the essential and AS a further objection, it is lasting. Let us take a larger, said that if we accept the nattruer view. ural and literal sense of Gen. To say that apart from sex1:26 we immediately introduce ual differences there is no disthe question of sexual charactertinction between the male and istics (because of the distincfemale forms is just not true. tion of 1 Cor. 11:7). This is a (This argument is put forward train of thought—in relation to in an attempt to show that 1 God—that we are very relucCor. 11:7 cannot refer to form, tant to even consider, much less because there the man is said discuss. Jesus said (Mt. 22:29): to be the image and glory of "Ye do err, not knowing God in distinction to the woman the Scriptures . . . who is but the glory of the man "They which shall be acand not the "image of God.") counted worthy to obtain that Male and female are two disworld, and the resurrection tinct forms. All general proporfrom the dead, neither marry tions, and many important denor a»e given in marriage . . tails, vary. Examine any book "They are the children of on figure drawing or anatomy. God, being the children of The facts of the case are just the resurrection." what we would expect to find in the light of Paul's words in But still they are real, 1 Cor. 11:7—similarity throughactual, perfect spiritual bodies, out with just sufficient differwith head and limbs, etc. Let us ence to create a clear distincnot be like the Sadducees who tion between the two forms and confused the incidental and 1973 Berean 90 to show that one is the original creation and the other is a modified reflection of it. This point, instead of weakening the case, when examined beautifully strengthens and illustrates it. Mere sexual characteristics—a temporary provision for p r e s e n t necessities (Luke 20:35)—need not, and should not, enter into the consideration for a moment. Those who accept the true scriptural picture experience no difficulty in this respect, and no desire to presumptuously pry beyond the limits of divine revelation, or introduce unseemly aspects. It is only the contrary view that insists on raising this aspect. ARE WE IMAGE-WORSHIPPERS? IN support of this theory, it is constantly and repeatedly charged against the brethren and sisters and Ghristadelphians generally: "If you have any knowledge of God's form, you have created an 'image in your mind.' You are worshipping that, instead of worshipping God Himself, and you are therefore an image-worshipper." Surely it is obvious to any reasonable person that this is an utterly illogical confusion of thought. It could just as reasonably be argued that if you have any conception of God at all "in your mind"—whether it be of form, nature or attributes— then you are worshipping something "in your own mind." It is essential to have some conception of God "in the mind"— "This is life eternal—that they might know Thee, the only true God . . ." "We know what we worship." This conception, to be "worshipping in truth," must consist of what God has been pleased to reveal concerning Himself—no more, no less. God has revealed the fact that He patterned man after His own form, and its is pure nonsense to say that by believing this one becomes an image-worshipper. We do not know what God looks like, beyond the general revelation that man's form is patterned after God's. We do not seek to know. We feel no obligation or liberty to speculate on the matter at all. We desire to learn as much as we can about the vast store of knowledge that God has revealed—not waste time in dangerous and profitless speculation about what He has not. But even if we had been told exactly what God's appearance is, to say that this would make us image-worshippers and that we would immediately be "worshipping an image in our mind" is self-evidently absurd. We know exactly what our friends look like. When we love them, does that make us imagelovers, just because we have a picture of their form in our mind? Are we loving them, or an image in our mind? When we write to them or send them a message, are we addressing them, or an image in our mind? Surely the fallacy of the whole thing is obvious! The disciples knew exactly what Christ looked like. They were with him for years before, and 40 days after, his glorification. They necessarily had an exact picture in their mind of his appearance. Were they praying through an image in their mind when they prayed through Jesus to the Father? It is recorded (Heb. 1:6)— "And again, when He bringeth in the first begotten into the world, He saith, And let all the angels of God worship him." Christ had a form which 1973 Berean 91 was intimately revealed to men and to angels. Is this command therefore 'image-worship"? Let us learn to distinguish things that differ and not make these groundless charges of "imageworship" just because the simple testimonies of God are accepted in their natural and obvious sense. We are not wiser than God. True believers worship God Himself. They ascribe honor a n d gi o r y to Jesus Christ whom they know on infallible testim , o n y to be a real, tangible spirit body in human form. To Call this image-worship is a meaningless confusion of words, (Continued next month, if the Lord will) Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "The corruption that is in the world through lust"—2 Pt. 1:4 MAINLINE CHURCHES IN TROUBLE. Even warm Christmas season cannot hide fact that progressive, "Mainline" Protestant denominations are in trouble. Unlike fundamentalist churches, they've suffered a decline in membership & influence in recent years. Trendy philosophies — as "secular theology" & "God is dead" fad — have sapped faith of liberals, while conservatives have hardened into social indifference. Many young, meanwhile, are gorging themselves on lush diet of noninstitutional experience, ranging from yoga to "Jesus freak" phenomenon. US Catholicism has fared no better. A recent Harris poll shows only 30 pet. of Americans have "great confidence" in nation's religious leaders, down 10 pet. in 5 years. California'a Episcopal Bishop Myers says, "People today want holy priests — gurus." To his own image as a social activist, Myers has added a touch of the mystical, including Zen & Sufi meditations. (Nwk 12:25). NOTE: The Churches of the world are "in trouble/* and rightly so, because they (claiming to have the key of knowledge) have cast aside the pure and holy light of the inspired Word of God, and have run after every foolish, flesh-pleasing modern theory to pander to the fickle masses. People want gurus, so Episcopal "Bishop" Myers throws in "Zen and Sufi meditations" to tickle their ears. And to obscure the Divine Word, the Churches are busy foisting on the people a host of new very freely paraphrased "versions" which completely obscure the Gospel of the Kingdom, and lower the Scriptures to the human level. SAUDI ARABIA has proposed a deal giving their oil a special place in US market free of restrictions & duties in return for Arab investment in oil industry & guarantee of regular oil flow to US. US interested. (USN 10:16) ALARMING COMEBACKS BY "CONQUERED" DISEASES. Measles, long considered vanquished, increased every year from '68 to 71. Mumps went up in '71 & again in '72. Hepatitis continues to baffle the doctors. Venereal disease, once thought conquered, making frightening comeback—2% million new cases a year—a new case every 12 to 15 seconds. This curve is that of a classic epidemic of a disease out of control. Influenza defies best brains in medical science: viruses causing it change form quickly. Vaccine against one won't work against another. Increased use of blood transfusions & mounting tide of drug abuse have combined to increase serum hepatitis from 1500 cases in'65 to 10,000 in '72. A drug user injecting himself with an unsterile needle is likely to get it. If he sells his blood to support his habit, his infected blood will be transferred to an innocent victim. This is a growing concern. (USN 12:25) NOTE: The only way man can beat the curse is by OBEDIENCE to God, this he will not do. So God rightly frustrates all his labors. 1973 Berean 92 FORGOTTEN UN. Almost unnoticed, UN's 27th session adjourned last week, after 500 meetings, 1500 hours of debate, & 153 resolutions. US is increasingly at odds with General Assembly. This year it voted for only a few resolutions. By comparison, some African states voted with majority 92 pet. of time; Russia 60 pet. UN resolutions make little difference, because the 97 nation majority of small poor countries that pass them have no clout. These 97 nations pay only 14 pet. of UN costs, while US alone has always paid over 30 pet. of total. UN is becoming irrelevant on matters of peace & security, & runs risk of being converted into a sort of international institute of technology, or into an ineffective chapter of International Red Cross. A US proposal for a convention to curb skyjacking & terrorism never came to a vote. Torture & repression of political dissidents by such countries as Russia, Brazil & Greece are out-of-bounds because they are "internal matters." The Assembly condemned White racism in S.Africa, but completely ignored Amin's plundering & expulsion of Uganda Asians. (Tm 1:1) NOTE: Did the leaders of the world ever believe that this modern Tower of Babel could ever be anything more than a mocking repetition of all man's past high-promise failures to bring universal peace on human terms, without righteousness? How sad is this hopeless reliance on ricketty human means, and complete ignoring of the one, only way—obedience to God's Word! RED OPPRESSION. While they court their new trading partners in West with cordiality, East-bloc regimes are cracking down on their own societies with uncommon force. Russia is leading way with a drive on personal freedoms & intellectual life that is fast approaching Stalin-era dimensions. Moscow has cut back on all sorts of civil & cultural liberties. Producers must stage politically oriented works, mail censorship has been tightened; library privileges are harder to obtain; it is a crime to use telephones 4 'against state interests"; citizens are limited to one trip abroad in 10 years. The East bloc leaders' fearful approach to detente reflects the desperate gamble they're taking. They decided on limited accommodation with West because they hungered for access to Western capital & technology, to rescue their economies to prevent serious social upheavals at home. (Tm 12:25). NOTE: We may wonder why the nations of Europe cannot see the red light in all these events, as the Russian shadow creeps inexorably over them. The only explanation to much of the nations' conduct today is that God is making them foolish to their own destruction, as He says He does. ISRAEL SLIPPING IN AFRICA. Israel aid programs to Black African nations undercut the Arab world. Now Arabs are fighting back with oil money from Libya, Arabia & Kuwait, with pressure on African states that contain Moslems. Uganda broke with Israel first: then Niger, Chad, Congo & Mali did too, ousting Israel missions, welcoming Arab loans. (USN1:12) NOTE: As Mideast oil becomes more vital, Arab wealth and influence will be able to buy more and more world discrimination against Israel. NEW RUSSIAN NUCLEAR SUB armed with an undersea-launched missile with a 5000-mile range — almost double that of US Polaris & Poseidon weapons. (A 5000-mile missile could reach any spot in US from Barents Sea off Norway, or from waters around Kamchatka in Siberia). These new subs will be able to stay on patrol for 70 days, as against 45-55 days for present subs. (Nwk 1:8) NOTE: It is a giant chess-game, played in deadly earnest for world control. The giants—offensive and defensive—circle and watch each other continually, making their devious moves, and sparring for position. When Russia feels she has secured the advantage and US is sufficiently weakened and obstructed, she will strike. 1973 Berean 93 IS END NEAR? Jews have recaptured Jerusalem. Soviet power threatens Mideast. Nine nations now in Common Mkt. To growing 1000s of Christians, these facts are portents of doom, a detailed scenario for the Apocalypse. Most Christians have to deal somehow with the Second Coming of Christ because tradition & Scripture seem so certain of it. Both the Apostles' & Nicene Creeds attest to belief in a returning Christ who will judge living & dead. There are mentions in all 4 Gospels. Old Testament abounds with related prophecies in Isaiah, Daniel & Ezekiel. Most important is the Revelation, that stunning piece of apocalyptic biblical literature that has fascinated & frustrated interpreters for 19 centuries. It is Revelation that has given art & literature the most vivid images of mankind's terrible last days: the Four Horsemen, the Scarlet Beast & the Whore of Babylon, the monster Antichrist, and Christ's 1000-year reign. In modern times, much of mainstream Protestant scholarship has virtually dismissed idea of a real Second Coming, preferring to view apolcalyptic literature as a metaphor, a prefiguring of an eventual victory of Christ's redemptive power over forces of evil. Catholicism generally tends to accept ancient creedal statements at face value, but in interpretation holds a multitude of views. (Tm 1:8) NOTE: A remarkable admission and confirmation of the clear testimony of Scripture as to Christ's return and reign, and of the pitiful convolutions and contortions of the Churches who try to get rid of it, or to fit it into their pagan, heaven-at-death superstitions. POPE REVIVES THE DEVIL. Covering 2 of the 8 pages of Vatican's newspaper one day last week was a special report by 7 theologians arguing existence of Devil, & assuring the faithful of his continuing malevolence in modern world. Indeed, Satan is so essential to entire body of Catholic belief, one scholar warned, that if this "pillar" of faith is removed, "then certainly other parts of the structure will collapse." The articles were commissioned by Pope himself, in effort to underscore his deepening conviction that Satan is very much at work these days, particularly in Catholic Church. Pope warned that "the smoke of Satan has entered the temple of God through a fissure in the Church." He was anxious to correct Catholic scholars who deny reality of Devil. (Nwk 1:1) NOTE: He is correct: the whole structure of Catholicism would collapse without the essential pillars of devil, hell, purgatory and torment. APARTHEID MOVES NORTH. Harder times ahead for Rhodesia's Blacks. Parliament recently adopted a series of harsh new measures of S. African style apartheid on its 5 million subjugated Blacks. (Tm 1:1) NOTE: This course of repression can only in the end result in terrible violence. To preserve their own selfish interests and privileges, the Whites have no other alternative. They took the land by force wherever they went, they herded the natives into the poorest parts, they subdued and oppressed them, and used them as cattle for their own aggrandisement. With this long, bitter background, there is no turning back. But they are building a dreadful bomb for the future. All this plays into Russia's hands, who waits her time. MORAL CORRUPTION. More than half of all British women are pregnant when they are married. (Tm 12:25) NOTE: This is a terribly sad statistic, made especially so because in its better days Britain was a place where decency and morality were honored and respected, and life had some meaning other than Amoritish animalism. With such disgusting Canaanite abominations and depravity in the supposedly ''better" parts of the earth, how much of this world's population will be fit to be spared for the pure and holy Kingdom of Christ? No wonder God must make terrible "desolations in the earth" (Psa. 46:8) before He can begin to build anything clean and wholesome. 1973 Berean 94 RED IS RESPECTABLE. A "new look" has emerged in recent years among Communist parties in many non-Communist nations of Europe, Asia, & Latin America. Even Russians, sniffing winds of detente, have encouraged "united front" approach as only practical way for their foreign comrades to gain a political foothold. Today, the Communist parties in W. Europe, Asia & Latin America increasingly seek to project an image of themselves as patriotic, democratically-inclined movements willing to work within conventional parliamentary framework. As result, many have become part of the local political establishment, & voters have begun to lose fear of "Red menace." With over IV2 million members, the Italian Communist Party is by far the world's largest non-ruling Communist Party. In last May's national election, it captured over lA of vote, & elected 179 of the 630 Deputies. "New majority" of Leftists, including Communists, is foreseeable. With elections only 2 months off, polls show Socialist-Communist combine in France well ahead of ruling Gaullists. With prize of power seemingly within reach, new Communist slogan is: "We can be trusted." In India, Communist Party received boost toward respectability with signing of India-Russia Friendship Treaty in '71. Since then, India's Communists seem to be gradually merging with Mrs. Gandhi's Congress Party. By plugging away at everyday issues in overcrowded, underserviced Japan, the Communists astonished country by doubling their Parliament strength to 38 seats (out of a total of 491) in November elections. In Tokyo & Osaka, 1 in every 5 voters went Communist. In Chile, the Communist Party has already attained a level of political power that other Communists in the Free World can only dream of. It is the best-disciplined & most relentlessly hard-working party in Chile. (Nwk 1:8) NOTE: Surely there is much evil and corruption in the world and in all its govts. and political institutions for the Communists to point out and belabor, promising a manmade millennium if they are given power. And surely many under present govts. have little to lose in giving Communism a chance to alleviate their miseries. All is going Russia's way. Chile was a great breakthrough—a Communist govt. getting to power by the ballot and recently strengthened and confirmed by another national election. FORCE "REDUCTIONS." Russians quietly beefing up forces in E. Europe, so, if agreement reached on mutual reduction of East-West forces in Europe, they can make cuts agreed to & still have same amount of power they've had for years. (USN 1:1) NOTE: "Mutual Force Reductions'* is another Russian-set trap that US is blindly walking into. And there is very strong feeling in US itself to pull out unilaterally and leave Europe to the mercy of Russia. Time favors Russia. The cards are all hers. All she needs do is wait her time. BEYOND THE CEASE-FIRE. Hanoi's fundamental objective is to rule all of Indo-China, & even push beyond. Chances of keeping Hanoi in line—even with lure of massive foreign aid—are virtually nil. Hanoi's ambitions are causing increasing worry all way to Singapore. In Cambodia, even optimists are convinced the Communists, already in control of V2 the country, could take rest any time they chose. Laos, too, presents a dismal picture. Communists occupy V2 the nation & are positioning themselves for a further grab for power. (USN 1:8) NOTE: US, having failed to stop the Communists in Indochina by force, is trying to buy them off with promises of massive reconstruction aid. The result can only be to build them up for renewed and greater aggression. We well remember how successive attempts to buy off Hitler only added to his strength and appetite for aggression. Hanoi's rulers, backed by Russia and China, are unchangeably dedicated to enforcing Communist dictatorship over all S.E. Asia. 1973 Berean 95 SOVIET AMBITIONS touch all parts of globe. After their ouster from Egypt, they moved to build up influence in Syria & oil-rich Iraq. A new Friendship Treaty with India gives Moscow foothold for Asian expansion. But it is W. Europe where US-Soviet aims come into sharpest conflict. Russia is trying to create a false sense of security in Europe—utilizing conferences on security & armed forces reduction—in hopes of inducing US to withdraw its troops, & encouraging indifference to W. Europe defense. W. Europe enjoys best of 2 worlds at expense of US. Once weak & divided, it's now economically powerful enough to challenge US in trade, yet it remains largely dependent on US for military security. (USN 1:8) NOTE: The prophetic picture is working out so amazingly that we tend to take it for granted, and lose our sense of wonderment. But how wonderful and reassuring that bro. Thomas, in his deep prophetic studies, could so unerringly put his finger on then terribly backward Russia of his day as the ambitious world Colossus of our day. With Vietnam defused, at least for the present, W. Europe is the current focus of the US-Russia world struggle. THE NEW"3 R's." US schools fast developing an ominous new set of 3 R's: rape, robbery & riot. For teachers & students alike, the issues are no longer learning but survival. Nearly 1000 assaults on students & teachers in '72 in Miami. Los Angeles confiscated guns from 40 students in one recent month, & homecoming parade at L.A.'s Jefferson Hi ended with a shoot-out in which 5 students—including homecoming princess—were wounded. "Our whole society is based on violence, even within the family," says one principal, "Then people expect youngsters to be above all this." In many cities, the drug trade flourishes on corners near schools. Bands of knife-wielding nonstudents roam school corridors with impunity, shaking down 7-yr.-olds for their lunch money, & using the rest rooms for sex assault. Desperate educators turning bldgs. into fortresses. (Nwk 1:15) NOTE: "Our whole society is based on violence, even within the family." Like Caiaphas, they blindly speak here afar deeper truth than they realize, that encompasses the whole human race. The whole educational system is partaking of the nature of these evil times, and is becoming a rat-warren of vermin and corruption. INDIA-US WARMUP? Relations between US & India taken sudden turn for better. First hint of thaw came last month in exchange of unusually warm telegrams between Mrs. Gandhi & Nixon. Last year's Friendship Treaty with Russia made India's traditional "neutrality" highly suspect, & placed India in Moscow's corner in its quarrel with China. India has grown very uncomfortable by its identification with Moscow. Mrs. Gandhi has become aware that India's options on an international scale have been reduced rather than expanded. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE: India is a big question mark. Bro Thomas (who has been so incredibly accurate) saw it as an essential part of the Tarshish Power. Many things have changed since his day, but we believe India will be found on the right side at the right time. The rapidly-shifting kaleidoscope of "friend*' and "foe" in human politics should teach us not to draw conclusions from day-to-day appearances. The basic trend, the overall picture, is the key. BRITAIN JOINS MARKET. After decade of on-again, off-again talks & an unseemly amount of cross-channel bickering, Britain will formally abandon its traditional insularity & enter Common Mkt. But even before first trumpet blasts are sounded, some sour notes have crept in. On eve of the big event, polls showed 49 pet. of British still against entry; only 37 pet. in favor. (Nwk 1:1) NOTE: It is a measure of once proud and independent Britain's weakness and extremity that she is forced into this distasteful & humiliating alliance. But it cannot last. 1973 Berean 96 SOCIETY AT WAR. Friction today is the outstanding mark on our national life. Group fights group. Race fights race. Creed fights creed. The poisoned shafts of intolerance & distrust are carried to the inner recesses of everyday life. Class wars have become commonplace in our times. They have infected our politics as they have poisoned the minds of men who carry responsibilities in our economic life. Hate has become intensified. The sullen thought of labor, of capital , of management, of governmental officials—each nurturing the hurt of wounds inflicted by others, each blaming the other as source of their frustration — only serve to disintegrate rather to integrate the national spirit. (USN 1:1) NOTE: "Whence come wars and fightings among you? Come they not of your lusts?" (Jam. 4:1). Such is the root of mankind: selfishness and hate. "In my flesh dwelleth no good thing" (Rom. 7:18). And in these last days all shame is being cast aside, all restraints and barriers being broken down. INDIA'S CHANGE OF HEART. A yr. ago, US-India relations drifting from bad to worse. Mrs. Gandhi had chosen to sign a 20-yr. "friendship" pact with Russia. When India & Pakistan went to war, US aid to both was cut off. "Not a bad thing," she said, declaring India now 'self-sufficient' in food. A long drought cut into India's dreams of self-sufficiency. By Nov., Mrs. Gandhi found it politic to send Nixon a warm message of congratulations on his re-election. By that time India's food needs were known — also Russia's shortages. So expect US-Indian relations to improve — fast. (USN 1:1) NOTE: In spite of all its problems, in spite of all the obvious advantages & attractions of stream-lined dictatorship over bumbling self-rule, India is a democracy, and apparently the principle is well rooted. This is strange and rare in a world that lives mainly under the lash and the gun of dictatorship. It is by far the world's largest democracy—2}£ times the population of US. General world trend is to dictatorship: 3/4 of world already under it. OMINOUS CHANGES IN JAPAN. Possibility of stunning new realignments of military power in Far East. Japs casting sceptical eye on US-Jap Security Treaty, & US's 180 bases in Japan. List of complaints against the bases is formidable. In last week's elections, Leftists scored surprising gains. Socialists gained 31 seats, & long-dormant Communist Party increased from 14 to 38, making it 2nd-largest opposition party. Many voters plainly unhappy about results of 25 yrs. of conservative rule. Communists, having won over 20 seats, are now eligible to participate in parliamentary steering committees. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE: In its courting of former enemies Russia and China, US has shamefully ignored and by-passed and embarrassed its faithful ally Japan. It may be planting seeds for bitter fruits in the future. Japan today is infinitely more powerful that it was 30 years ago when it came very close to seizing control of the entire Far East and West Pacific. END OF YUGOSLAV EXPERIMENT? Yugoslavia's "Communism-witha-difference" is faltering. In 71, as inflation spiraled upward 15 pet, industries sank into red—unable to meet payrolls, fill orders, or attract vitally needed capital from West. So Belgrade had no choice but to rely more on Moscow than at any time since it split with Stalin over 20 years ago. It is negotiating for $1.3 billion Russian credits. Soviets, who have long been lecturing their satellites that only true Communism is Russian Communism, are jubilant. (Tm 1:15) NOTE: Yugoslavia has held out valiantly against Russian domination, but its days of freedom appear to be numbered. Tito is very old, and the country is badly splintered by deeply antagonistic nationalities. Its submission to Moscow and return to the fold would give Russia the whole east Adriatic coast for naval bases, many times multiplying its Mediterranean power. Italy's position would become very precarious. CROWDED SPACE. Since '58, US has launched 815 unmanned satellites— 115 civilian & 700 military-cost $27 billion: 337 still orbiting. (USN 12:18) NOTE: Six times as many military as civilian.''Prepare war!" Bible Questions If we did not know any more about our daily job than we do about the Word of God, how long would we hold our job? Write number of each question in List 1 beside answer in List 2. WHO... LISTONE 1. Made havoc? 18. Fled into Egypt? 35. Under pomegranate tree? 2. Loved David? 19. King had leprosy? 36. Bound with 2 chains? 3. Hid 100 men? 20. Gershom's brother? 37. Life saved by animal? 4. Taught Paul? 21. Gershon's brother? 38. Taught men of Succoth? 5. Killed John? 22. Born at Alexandria? 39. King slew all brethren? 6. Judged Paul? 23. Famous for his ear? 40. Prated malicious words? 7. Killed James? 24. Child of the devil? 41. Father had bloody flux? 8. Killed babes? 25. King's chamberlain? 42. Mentions Job's patience? 9. Had vile sons? 26. Killed by Sharezer? 43. Called Paul pestilent? 10. Anna's father? 27. Tetrarch of Abilene? 44. Was injured when infant? 11. Born in Pontus? 28. Suffered in a dream? 45. Died on king's birthday? 12. Hid her nephew? 29. Was hewed in pieces? 46. Walked in house to & fro? 13. Drove the cart? 30. Slain at winepress? 47. Born day grandfather died? 14. Captured Debir? 31. Under fig tree? 48. Cared for none those things? 15. Shaved his head? 32. Under oak tree? 49. King of Judah died in Egypt? 16. WalkedwithGod? 33. Under palm tree? 50. Was mourned at 17. A leprous woman? 34. Under juniper tree? Abelmizraim? LIST TWO Eli Peter Miriam Publius Tertullus Job James Balaam Othniel Jehosheba John Hiram Elymas Blastus Diotrephes Saul Aquila Apollos Malchus Sennacherib Mephibosheth Noah Uzziah Phanuel An angel Ahio Gideon I c ha bod Lysanias Pilate's wife Paul Elisha Jehoram Jehoahaz Herod Great Herod Antipas Zeeb Merari Eliezer Jeroboam Agag Gallio Obadiah Gamaliel Herod Agrippa I Jacob Elijah Deborah Nathanael Herod Agrippa II F e b r u a r y Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. \A 11 ir Agag—Amalekite Doeg—Edomite Ittai—Gittite Gaius of Derbe Uriah—Hittite Jesse—Bethlehemite Cyrus—Persian Micah—Morasthite Nabal—Carmelite Nahum—Elkoshite Sihon—Amorite Heber—Kenite G V}OSr ~~ i?k Τ γ β m B i i °£ κ Ptjeoe—Cenchrea Γβ> If* ί^™Ζί?ξ£ 17 Χ · Hobab—Midianite HOMES AND NATIONALITIES 18. Simorv-Cyrenean 19. Elihu—Buzite 20. Haman —Agagite 21. Oman—Jebusite 22. Mesha—Moabite 23. Elijah—Τishbite 24. Hushai—Archite 25. Zophar—Naamathite 26. Darius—Mede 27. Geshem—Arabian 28. Gideon—Abiezrite 29. Naaman—Syrian 3°· Pilate—Roman 31. Talmai of Geshur 32. Νahash—Ammonite 33· Bildad—Shuhite 34. Sargon—Assyrian $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) 35. Ahijah—Shilonite 36. Joseph of Arimathea 37. Abishag—Shunammite 38. Eliphaz—Temanite 39. Eliezer of Damascus 40. Sopater of Berea 41. Potiphar—Egyptian 42. Dionysius—Areopagite 43. Barzillai—Gileadite 44. Sanballat—Horonite 45. Trophimus—Ephesian 46. Ebedmelech—Ethopian 47. Belshazzar—Babylonian 48. Ahithophel—Gilonite 49. Aristarchus—Macedonian 50. Chedorlaomer of Elam . Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO.4 APRIL, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited oiuf Published by: G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed99—-Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: Lenexa (Kans.).... Inside Front Cover Bible Questions and March Answers Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Love Not the World 97 THE WINEPRESS OF THE WRATH OF GOD ( Bro. Thomas).. 99 SECOND VOYAGE TO AUSTRALIA (Bro. Roberts) Part 28. ,103 IN THE IMAGE OF GOD MADE HE HIM (Part 4) 108 Fraternal Gatherings: Lampasas, Hye 113 GOD'S PURPOSE IN THE DEATH OF CHRIST (R.R.) ...114 THE BIBLE USE OF "SOUL" AND "SPIRIT" .117 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY .122 We ore anxious to tend the Berean FREE to any desiring it that way. Pleas· do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send as their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News LEHEXA, Kansas IT IS with sorrow we report the falling asleep in Christ of our brother James Ross, on March 26. He was 93. He was buried beside his sister-wife near their former farm in Nebraska. Bro. & sis. Ross spent all of their married life in isolation on their farm in Nebraska. The Truth was always uppermost in their minds, and they were great lovers of the works of brethren Thomas and Roberts. They now lie peacefully together, awaiting the Master's call. Bible Questions "Thy testimonies also are my delight and my counsellers"—Ps. 119:24 IDENTIFY THE OTHER NAME Write number of each name in List 1 beside matching name in List 2. LIST ONE — QUESTIONS 1. 2. 3. 4. Luz Mark Saul Esau 11. 12. 13. 14. 5. Sela 15. 6. Mary 16. 7. Peter 17. 8. Judas 18. 9. Herod 19. 10. James 20. Simon Jebus Javan Laish Horeb Israel Benoni Sirion Uzziah Thebes 21. 22. 23. 24. 25. 26. 27. 28. 29. 30. Didymus Tabitha Pontius Sergius Porcius Azariah Mishael Matthew Lebbeus Eliakim 31. 32. 33. 34. 35. 36. 37. 38. 39. 40. 41. Jerubbaal Calvary 42. Mattaniah Chittim Memphis 43. Gennesaret Palmyra 44. Kirjatharba 45. Belteshazzar Jedidiah Barjesus 46. Kirjathsepher Barnabas 47. Jegarsahadutha Barsabas 48. Tiglathpileser Apollyon 49. Zaphnathpaaneah Claudius 50. Hananiah LIST TWO — ANSWERS Zedekiah Put Jacob Daniel Hermon Bethel Meshach Iscariot Dan Debir Gideon Galeed Hebron Zelotes Abednego John Petra Thomas Paulus Festus Azariah Boanerges Paul Sinai Elymas Dorcas No-Amon Benjamin Magdalene Edom Joses Tadmor Justus Agrippa Golgotha Jehoiakim Levi Joseph Cyprus Pilate Solomon Shadrach Jerusalem Noph Cephas Greece Lysias Abaddon Thaddeus Chinnereth March Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. Made havoc—Paul Loved David—Hiram Hid 100 men—Obadiah Taught Paul—Gamaliel Kill John-Herod Antipas Judge Paul—Agrippa II Kill James—Agrippa I Kill babes-Herod Great Had vile sons—Eli Anna's father—Phanuel 31. 32. 33. 34. 35. 36. 37. 38. 39. 40. n. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. 18. 19. 20. Born in Pontus—Aquila 21. Hid nephew—Jehosheba 22. Drove cart—Ah io 23. Capture Debir—Othniel 24. Shaved head—Job 25. Walked with God—Noah 26. Leprous woman—Miriam 27. Fled to Egypt—Jeroboam 28. King had leprosy-Uzziah 29. Gershom brother—Eliezer 30. Under fig tree—Nathanael Under oak tree—Angel Under palm tree—Deborah Under juniper tree—Elijah Under pomegranate tree—Saul Bound with 2 chains—Peter Life saved by animal—Balaam Taught men of Succoth—Gideon Slew all brethren—Jehoram Malicious words—Diotrephes 41. 42. 43. 44. 45. 46. 47. 48. 49. 50. Gershon brother—Merari Born Alexandria—Apotlos Famous for ear—Malchus Child of devil—Elymas Chamberlain—Blastus Sharezer kill—Sennacherib Tetrarch Abilene-Lysanias Suffer dream—Pilate wife Hewed in pieces—Agag Slain at winepress—Zeeb Father bloody flux—Publius "Patience of Job"—James Paul "pestilent"—Tertullus Injured infant—Mephibosheth Died king birthday—John Walked to & fro—Elisha Grandfather die—Ichabod Cared none things—Gallio King die Egypt—Jehoahaz Mourned Abelmizraim—Jacob If the Berean is received, unwanted, please mark the envelope, "Refused, retUrriio"Mender," and drop it in a mailbox. EDITORIAL Love Not the World "Know ye not that the friendship of the world is enmity with God? Whosoever, therefore, will be a friend of the world is the enemy of God"—James 4:4. The above words of James are in no way doubtful or uncertain as to meaning; nor are they capable of being understood in either two or more senses. They are positive and, therefore, explicitly expressed. Some, however, might question the manner by which we have expressed ourselves, and say that the statement of James is ambiguous, and must remain so until we have clearly defined what he means by the world. If we concede this to be reasonable, then it will be our duty to investigate the question in order to determine what the word signifies. In the first place we will discover that "world" is used in more than one sense, because it is translated from several Hebrew and Greek words with various shades of meaning. Our purpose at this time will be adequately served if we examine the three Greek words most commonly used: 1. AION. This signifies an age, indefinite time, or dispensation, as in Titus 2:12, "Teaching us that, denying ungodliness and worldly lusts, we should live soberly, righteously, and godly in this present world." 2. OIKOUMENE. This appears 14 times, and denotes the habitable earth or land, as we read in Rev. 16:14, "Which go forth unto the kings of the earth, and of the whole world." 3. KOSMOS. This means order or arrangement. In the majority of texts, the word rendered "world" in the New Testament, is Kosmos. It is found 167 times, and is the word used by James in the quotation set forth above. In Elpis Israel, bro. Thomas defines it as "that order of things constituted upon the basis of sin in the flesh (Rom. 7:17), and styled the 'kingdom of Satan/ as opposed to the kingdom of God . . . Satan's kingdom is the kingdom of sin. It is a kingdom in which 'sin reigns in the mortal body/ and thus has dominion over men." 1973 Berean 97 This definition is in complete harmony with the Scriptures of Truth, for John is very emphatic in his instruction (1 John 2:15)— "Love not the world, neither the things that are in the world. If any man love the world, the love of the Father is not in him. For all that is in the world, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life, is not of the Father, but is of the world. And the world passeth away, and the lust thereof: but he that doeth the will of God abideth for ever." It should be carefully noted that John is writing to first century Christians, a people who had come out of the world, and separated themselves from its institutions. "Love not the world/' says John, and he makes it clear that "the love of the world" is one thing, and "the love of the Father" is another, with a sharp dividing line between them. When a person crosses the line from the "love of the world" to the "love of the Father" and becomes obedient thereto, he is in the state described by Paul (2 Cor. 5:17)— "Therefore if any man be in Christ, he is a new creature: old things are passed away; behold, all things are become new" From that time on, he is expected to, and MUST "walk in newness of life" or as Paul expresses it in another place, 4 'But you have not thus learned the Anointed One; if indeed you heard him, and were taught by him, as the Truth is in Jesus; to put off, according to the former course of life, that old man, corrupted by deceitful desires; and to be renewed in the spirit of your mind; and be you clothed with that new man. who, according to God, has been formed in righteousness and holiness of the Truth"—Eph. 4:20-24 (Diag.) Thus he discovers that, being a new creature, he must confine his friendships to those of "like precious faith," for his love is bounded by the Truth. Although he must not cultivate amity with those who know not God, he realizes that he is to do good unto all men, as the opportunity arises. By this he is able to be courteous to the people of the world, without joining affinity in their schemes of pleasure or friendship. Some may look upon this as being very "narrow" or obstinately and blindly devoted to one's own belief. But that is an illusion due to lack of knowledge regarding the way of life. The teaching of Jesus is perfectly plain, and requires no technical or scientific education to understand— "Enter ye in at the strait gate: for wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat: because strait is the gate, and narrow is the way, which leadeth to life, and few there be that find it." In this passage it will be noted that "strait" adds to "narrow" the implication of closeness, or restriction, and that is characteristic of the obligations placed upon those who believe and obey the gospel; and it was also a distinguishing feature of the Law of Moses. After the 10 commandments were given, Moses said: "Ye shall observe to do therefore as the Lord hath commanded you: ye shall not turn aside to the right hand or to the left." Truly, the way of life is narrow and restricted, but it is founded upon divine wisdom; while the way of death is wide, free and easy, and voluptuous, and full of danger, as it lures its victims into its net. Many are in danger of drifting into the way of death, because they seem to think that they can retain their friendship with the world as long as they profess to wholeheartedly subscribe to, and adhere to, the doctrines as set forth in our Statement of Faith. Should there be any of this mind, it would be well for them to refresh their memory by reading the Statement again. If they do, and are serious about their profession of faith, they will stop and ponder well the substance of Clause 16, which reads, "That the way to obtain this salvation is to believe the Gospel they preached, and to take on the name and service of Christ, by being thereupon immersed in water, and continuing patiently in the observance of all things he has commanded, NONE BEING RECOGNIZED AS HIS FRIENDS EXCEPT THOSE WHO DO WHAT HE HAS COMMANDED." This shows us plainly, that while it is indispensable to believe the truth concerning the nature and sacrifice of Christ, there are other doctrines that must be adhered to, or such belief is of no value whatever. Doctrine means teaching, and there is much comprehended in apostolic teaching that many seem to overlook. 1973 Berean 98 John says "if we love the world, the love of the Father is not in us," and James says "if we are friends of the world, we are enemies of God." So, if we are devotees of this world's pleasures; are members of business men's clubs; accept the honors of this world by way of academic titles, by which we are grouped with the great men of the world; if we are members of cultural societies, or other worldly organizations, what can we expect to receive at the judgment seat of Christ? Apostolic teaching gives us the answer. What if the path that leads to life is narrow, and we are subject to severe discipline? Is not the joy set before us glorious and beautiful, when the garment of praise will replace the spirit of heaviness? The day is not far distant when (Isa. 52:10)— "The Lord will bare His holy arm in the eyes of all nations; all the ends of the earth shall see the salvation of our God." Who would not, in view of such a glorious future, choose rather to suffer affliction with the people of God, than to enjoy the fleeting pleasures of this present evil world? Now is the time to decide whether we will be lovers of pleasure, more than lovers of God, for— "God is not mocked: for whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap. For he that soweth to his flesh shall of the flesh reap corruption; but he that soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap life everlasting"—Gal. 6:7-8. —EDITOR. The Winepress of the Wrath of God "And another Angel came out from the Nave, which is in the Heaven, he having also a sharp sickle. And another Angel came out from the Altar, having power over the fire. "And he shouted with a great outcry to him having the sharp sickle, saying, Thrust in thy sharp sickle, and cut off the clusters of the earth, for her grapes are fully ripe. "And the Angel cast his sickle into the earth, and cut off the Vine of the Earth, and cast it into the great Winepress of the wrath of God. And the Winepress was trodden without the City"—Rev. 14:17-20. BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "AND another Angel came out of the Nave." This is the same form of expression as in v. 15. The word "another" in v. 15 implies that the One sitting upon the Cloud was an Angel, or MessengerPower, also. The Angel of v. 17 is, doubtless, identical with the symbolic Son of Man. This is to be inferred from the fact that they both have possession, or command, of a "sharp sickle." The power of the sickle is vested in the Commander-in-Chief, who executesthru his officers & brigades-the behests of the Supreme Power. In v. 17, the holder of the sickle is styled an "Angel"; and "another" in relation to the One on the Cloud who reaps the harvest, because the situation of the sickling executive is changed. Thus, the symbolic Son of Man— 1973 B e r e a n " "Whose voice is as the sound of many waters" (Rv. 1:13Ί6). —sickled the HARVEST for the purpose of "opening a door" through which the Mighty Ones of the Spirit, the Elohim of Israel, might enter in the heaven and set up a throne therein (Rv. 4:1-2). In this work, or labor, they succeeded gloriously. They opened a door, entered amid the acclamations of the people, planted themselves on Mt. Zion, and established the throne of the Deity, before and around which they circle in faultless myriads (Rv. 14:1,5). But the OTHER Angel that sickles the VINE of the Earth comes OUT of the Nave "which is in the heaven." The Angel-Power of the Harvest and of the Vintage belongs to the Nave, or Temple, in Most Holy manifestation. But between the Advent and the Harvest, it is the Nave "which is NOT in the heaven''; while AFTER the Harvest and before the Vintage, it is the Nave "which IS in the heaven," or Air, where it will continue evermore. The reaping of the Harvest of the Earth, which puts the Saints in possession of the "City of the Great King," is only the beginning of national judgment. It is the smiting of the Babylonian Image upon its Russo-Gogian clayey feet by the Stone-Power. This shatters its homogeneity as a political organization under one imperial ruler. But though the continuity of its political elements is broken, the dynasties represented by the gold and the silver, the brass, the iron and the clay, do still exist; so that the work remaining for the Mighty Ones of the Spirit is that of reducing the broken fragments of the Image to the condition represented by the chaff of the summer threshing floors, which the wind carries away into nonentity (Dn. 2:35). This is the work of the Vintage in its simplest illustration. The Harvest (vs. 14-16) and the Vintage (vs. 17-20) of the earth are still further distinguished in Daniel's vision of the 4 Beasts of the Great Sea (Dn. 7). First, there is the slaying of the 4th Beast, a process the beginning of which is the Harvest. Then there is the destroying of his body in the burning flame, and the taking away of the dominion of the other 3 Beasts—which consummates "the Judgment written," and constitutes the Vintage of the Earth, which the Angel Son of Man with the sharp sickle is to gather and tread without the city. But before this Angel issues forth from the heaven, the proclamation of the Aionian Gospel is made through midheaven (v. 7). It announces that the "Hour of the Judgment," or the time of the treading of the winepress by the Angel, is come. 1973 Berean 100 When these causes and its result are manifested, it is found that the political organization symbolized by "the Beast and the False Prophet, the "Kings of the Earth," and the "Ten Horns" (making in the aggregate the powers within and "without" the Great City Babylon) refuse to comply with the demands. In evidence of this— "The Beast and the Kings of the Earth and their armies gather together to make war with the Lamb and them that are with him" (Rev. 19:19; 17:14). Affairs having arrived at this crisis, the Deity determines to exercise forbearance no longer. This decision is evinced by "another Angel" coming out of the Temple from the Altar, having power over fire (v. 18). The Angel is said to come out u from the Altar." He issues thence as the avenger of those whose blood had been poured out beneath it. Hence, the Altar is symbolical of the apostles, prophets and saints, and of all the slain upon the earth for the witness of Jesus and the Word of the Deity (17:6; 18:20,24; 6:9,10; 20:4). All of these, accepted at the Tribunal, are constituents of the avenging minister. They live again; and judgment being given to them, they have "power over fire"; over that fire— With which Babylon is utterly burned*' (18:8); Into which the Beast and the False Prophet are cast alive (19:20); With which the worshipers of the Beast & his Image are tormented; Which is mingled with the Crystal Sea (15:2); and The smoke of which ascendeth to the end of the "1600 furlongs" (14:20). This is the "fire," or "wrath of the Deity poured out unmixed in the cup of his indignation" at their command. Their tribulations, sufferings, and down-treading have continued and accumulated for ages and generations, so that the cry for vengeance in the day when the Deity avenges His elect is truthfully represented as the shout of a great outcry (Rv. 6:10). The cry of Abel's blood, though faint as that of one man, was loud enough to reach the ear of Deity. Hence the loudness of the cry proceeding from the Angel of the Altar (14:18) is not because the Avenger is hard of hearing, but symbolic of the multitudes to be avenged— "A great multitude which no man can number" (Rev. 7:9); "A great Cloud of witnesses . . of whom the world is not worthy" (Heb. 12:2; 11:38). But the Angelhood of the Altar, though possessing power over the fire, does not apply it to judicial purposes of its own accord. It appeals to the Angel of the Sickle, the Head of which is Christ the Lord. He being the Commander-in-Chief, all things await his mandate. Hence the loud outcry must be understood, not as a command, but as an entreaty, that he would now— 1973 Berean 101 "Thrust in his sharp sickle, & gather the clusters of the Vine of the Earth.** Remembering their former sufferings in the flesh, which they endured without retaliation, and seeing that the day of vengeance has come and that they are now in power, they long to begin the work of vindicating the Truth—which cost many of them their lives—by overthrowing Babylon, destroying the Beast, and grinding to powder the broken fragments of the Image, so that these evil and accursed powers being abolished, they may enter upon— "The Rest that remainethfor the People of God. ** —in which there is abundant peace so long as sun & moon endure. "The Vine of the Earth" is a phrase representative of the civil, military, and ecclesiastical constitution of what is called "Christendom." The grapes of this Vine are the nations clustered together into empires and kingdoms upon it. To "gather the clusters" of the Vine is to cause the armies of the nations to assemble together for war, so that they may be cut off and trodden down. Wherever the trampling of them occurs, there is the "winepress" into which they are cast— "The great Winepress of the wrath of the Deity" (Rv. 14:19). The great outcry shouted forth by the Angel of the Altar is promptly responded to by the Angel of the Sickle, who puts his forces into motion against the enemy. The sickle he handles in the sanguinary Vintage of the Earth is the "Remnant of Jacob" who are then— "Among the Gentiles in the midst of many people as a lion among the beasts of the forest, as a young lion among the flocks of sheep; who, if he go through, both TREADETH DOWN and teareth in pieces, and none can deliver. "And I will execute vengeance in anger and fury upon the nations, such as they have not heard" (Mic. 5:8,15). Such is the instrumentality of the Spirit in the down-treading of the Winepress. Judah and Israel in their dispersion are handled by the King of the Jews as his sword, bow, arrow, battle-axe, sickle, fan, and so forth. "Behold," saith the Spirit (Isa. 41:15-16)— "I will make thee a sharp new threshing instrument having teeth. "Thou, worm Jacob, shall thresh the mountains (empires) and beat them small, and shall make the hills (lesser states) as chaff. "And thou shaltfan them, and the wind shall carry them away, and the whirlwind shall scatter them. "And thoushalt rejoice in Yahweh, and glory in the Holy One of Israel" THIS HAS NEVER COME TO PASS SINCE WRITTEN. It will, however, assuredly be fulfilled when he who hath been Raised up— "Shall come upon princes as upon mortar, and as the potter treadeth clay" And in Psalm 44:4-5 they say— "Thou art He, Ο Elohim my King: command thou deliverances for Jacob. Through Thee will we push down our enemies: through Thy Name will we TREAD THEM UNDER that rise up against us." Then (Psalm 58:10-11)- 1973 B e r e a n 1 2 ° "The righteous shall rejoice when he seeth the vengeance. He shall wash his feet in the blood of the wicked, so that a man shall say: "Verily there IS a reward for the righteous: verily there is Elohim judging the earth!" Jesus and his Brethren in command of the Twelve Tribes of Israel are the sickle of the Spirit by which he cuts off the Vine of the Earth, and treads its clusters in the great Winepress of divine wrath. Behold them all in battle array in Rev. 19:11-16! There is the Faithful and True One, the Commander of the forces, who "makes war in righteousness/' There are his Brethren in arms, who are the "called and chosen and faithful." And their hosts: the horses they ride, and the sharp sword of their warfare. These constitute the instrumentality symbolized in Rv. 14 by the Angel of the Sickle who treads the Winepress. This is evident from the fact that his mission is the same as theirs, which the reader may see by comparing Rev. 14:19 with Rev. 19:15 where it is written— "He treadeth the Winepress of the fierceness of Almighty God." Thus (Malachi 4:2-3) those who— "Go forth and grow up as calves of the stall" shall— "TREAD DOWN the wicked, for they shall be ashes under the soles of your feet in the day that I shall do, saith Yahweh Tz'vaoth." Second Voyage to Australia BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS "My soul, wait thou only upon God.. Surely men of low degree are vanity, and men of high degree are a lie"—Psa. 62:5-9 PART TWENTY-EIGHT WELCOME RELIEF FROM THE "TOFFS" AND "SWELLS" ANOTHER circumstance that tended greatly to the comfort of the voyage was that my cabin was on deck, with free admission to air and light of heaven through door and window. Usually I have been packed away down "in the sides of the ship" in some stuffy, narrow, four-bedded chamber, sometimes without even a port-hole. In this case, by the kindly offices of friends at headquarters (for bro. Bell has a brother in the head office at Sydney), I had a cabin all to myself as far as Honolulu. Not only so, but it was well "aft" in the vessel—that is, towards the stern end of the ship—which had the advantage of taking me away from the society of the class variously designated as "toffs" and "swells." This class are all pompous, with a solemnity or a jerky buffoonery which makes their society burdensome. I was among the steerage folks, though a saloon passenger. That is, the steerage people, in the intervals of their meals, were given to congregating and squatting on the deck outside the deck cabins, where my quarters lay; so that when I walked on deck, I was among them. I do not say they are much to be preferred to the other sort, but I was at least more at my ease than when herding with the lordly inanities of the saloon. I was eligible for their society if I liked, but I was not obliged to be in it. 1973 Berean 103 It is another point in favor of American traveling that there is not the hard and fast line between the classes that exists on board British vessels. In theory, the Americans are all one class. In practice, "birds of a feather" flock together. Still, it is not the awful sacrilege that it is on board an English ship if one of the steerage people should be found straying beyond limits. On an English ship, there are boundaries and barriers. Here on the Alameda there is a free run, though little intermixing. It is left pretty much to natural gravitation and the occasional authority of the stewards. All these circumstances tended to make the voyage comparatively enjoyable. There was rough weather most of the time, which was unfavorable to free intercourse among the passengers, or incident of any kind. AUSTRALIA TO NEW ZEALAND: LIFE ON BOARD life on board was pretty much the same thing from day to day. My own time was filled in with great regularity. I had a certain amount of work to get through which required sticking to. I had to finish the November Christadelphian, write an analysis and index for The Law of Moses, and get ready the Christadelphian for December, besides writing letters at various points. After breakfast and reading I devoted the morning to Christadelphian work, and the evening to indexing and letters—afternoon to reading and rest. At the beginning of the voyage, I had given a copy of Christendom Astray to the purser (a real typical Yankee of the better sort, free, humorous, well-informed, sensible and ready to talk with anybody, yet with a certain amount of reserved official dignity). This book he appeared to have shown to several of the passengers as a curiosity. One of them was a young Englishman whom I had observed with interest, a student on travel with a view to service in the Colonial office. He went out of his way to get into conversation with me. This was on the second day out from Sydney. THE DOCTRINE OF A FUTURE LIFE IN THE OLD TESTAMENT He particularly wanted to know if there were plain recognitions of a future life in the Old Testament. He fully recognized that the doctrine of immortality was advanced in the New Testament, but had his doubts with regard to the Old Testament. I said if he meant the doctrine of the Greeks, which was also the doctrine of the present day, namely, that man lived in death and was in fact immortal by native constitution—his doubts were well founded, not only with regard to the Old Testament, but to the New Testament as well. The Bible doctrine of a future life was life by resurrection invariably, and of this future life there were nearly as many recognitions in the Old Testament as in the New. He was surprised to hear this. 1973 Berean 104 I promised to make him out a list, and we were getting into the subject when the dinner bell interrupted our conversation. I afterwards drew out a list of 140 references under the heading— "Passages in the Old Testament in which either by figure, by implication, or by express statement, the doctrine of a future life is taught." In going through this list it struck me that it would make a good subject for a book some day if time permitted. I handed him the list and received thanks, but heard no more of it. FRI., SEP. 2: ARRIVAL AT AUCKLAND: FRATERNAL VISITS We reached Auckland, New Zealand, on Friday, Sept. 2. Here I landed to post letters. While in the hall of the Post Office, a gentleman saluted me with surprise; I did not know him. "What! back again! How nice it must be, going about the world like this!" I replied that that was only one side of the subject. There was another side. I would rather be at home. Traveling was all very well for a few days. After that it ceased to be an enjoyment. On returning to the ship I found bro. Tanfield and bro. Leitch had separately called. In the afternoon, met bro. Gold on the wharf; he had come up from Stratford to spend a few days in Auckland. Auckland was his place of residence years ago; he now found it so much changed as to be unrecognizable in many parts. We live in a world of change, "So doomed to change are we," but "There is that changeth not." In Christ we are linked with the eternal—a comfort unspeakable when white hair and feeble health, as in bro. Gold's case, tell of the inevitable decay of things mortal. Afterwards, I went over the Devonport ferry and called on bro. Tanfield. I had intended this call independently of his visit to the ship, for the purpose of reporting, on behalf of sis. Roberts, the result of a visit on her part to a daughter of sis. Tanfield's, in Sydney, whom sis. Tanfield was anxious to interest in the Truth. I was able to present a favorable report. I spent a pleasant hour-and-ahalf with bro. & sis. Tanfield and family. 1973 Berean 105 They are all becoming interested. A lady in the church which they had been in the habit of attending had given the girls a copy of Clemance's "Christadelphianism Exposed," in the hope of weaning them away from its further consideration. It was having the contrary effect. They were going carefully through the pamphlet at a home Bible class, along with the answer in the "Vindication." Afterwards, later in the evening, I went to see bro. Leitch, at whose house I stayed the first time I was in Auckland, but in the absence of arrangement—(which could not be made in the case of a short and uncertain call at a seaport) he was from home. SAT., SEP. 3: SAILING AGAIN: THE FINAL VISITS Next day (the steamer not sailing till 2 o'clock), I called on bro. & sis. Walker, and attempted to call on bro. Harrison at Mt. Eden railway station, but had to relinquish the endeavor in consequence of uncertainty as to the whereabouts, the heat of the day, the steepness of the roads, and the danger of over-running the time. I returned to the vessel for dinner. Bro. & sis. Connolly, in their heavy bereavement, I would have called on if I had thought of it in time. I obtained the newspapers for the 4 days that had elapsed since our departure from Sydney. One never knows what may happen in such times as we are living. There is nothing like the Truth for making public life interesting, though on another side, it robs the present world of much of the interest it has for its own children. I found the British expedition for the capture of Khartoum was on the point of making a final dash for that famous place, and so planting England permanently in Egypt; and also that the Czar had made a proposal to the governments for mutual disarmament—seriously made, but not seriously received; how could it be? A little before sailing time, bro. & sis. Leitch, and bro. & sis. Walker, Jr., came to the steamer to see me off. As the wind was blusterous and cold, and no satisfactory intercourse was possible in a bustling throng of people coming and going, I persuaded them not to wait the actual sailing of the boat. So we parted (regretfully) to meet again another and better day, if God permit. At 2 o'clock the steamboat moved out of the harbor—the "beautiful harbor" of Auckland, but not so beautiful as Sydney, though having a beauty all its own in another way. All parts of the earth are beautiful enough, if the people were only wise and good— which they will be some day. AT SEA: ON THE WAY TO U.S.: AN INTERESTING 17-YEAR-OLD For the first 2 days the sea was fairly smooth and life on board fairly regular. At Auckland we had parted with one or two of the more inane of our company, and had taken on board some fresh passengers who were an element of interest. One of them was soon prominent in the whole ship. There are people that you can no more keep back than you can prevent cork from floating. Such was one of the new passengers—a young man who was seated next to me at the table, and of whom I saw a good deal. He turned out to be a relative of Louis Stevenson, the popular novel writer who recently died at the Samoan Islands. He was on his way to the States, to which by birth he belonged, but from which he had been absent the most of his life, spending 6 years in the Sandwich Islands, 6 months at the Samoan Islands, with Mr. Stevenson aforesaid; 3 years (educationally) at Wellington, New Zealand, from which he was now returning to his mother in San Francisco, and father in New York. He was active, alert, well-informed, and courteous to every one. He was at home with the captain and officers, and worked his way into the deepest recesses of the vessel. He knew everything and talked with everybody. He was much younger than he looked. You took him for 25; he was only 17. 1973 Berean 106 While full of the confidence that distinguishes the Americans, he had none of the American accent, or (shall I say) the American swagger. (I would say it, only for the fear of hurting Americans who have none of the swagger.) He was free of the vices that characterize the educated youth of most countries. He did not smoke: detested the doctrine of "wild oats": and had, as the one ambition he set before him in life, the purification of American politics. I told him he was setting before him an impracticable enterprise, and that the world was incurable, except in God's way. What was that? This led to the Gospel of the Kingdom. He soon discovered where I was, and he told me where he was—a Roman Catholic. "Why, Mr. Roberts," he said, "we are natural enemies!" I admitted it, and said I felt sure that when Christ came, he would find he was on the wrong side. He looked rather serious. "It is all a matter of opinion, isn't it?" Yes, I replied, so far as our relation to the matter was concerned, but there was an actual right and wrong in the matter, that could not be altered by our opinions. There was such a thing as Truth, whether we knew it or not. An earnest man would set himself to find out what this was. If God had not spoken, we could not know; if He had, it was not only a mistake, it was a crime to be indifferent. Many such conversations we had. WED., SEP. 7: ATTHE SAMOA Ν ISLANDS: A BRITISH OUTPOST When we got up on Wednesday morning, Sept. 7 (after duplicating Sunday, to square with our longitude), we found ourselves in smooth water, close to the Samoan Islands. We were approaching the harbor of Apia—the capital of the Islands (pronounced Ah-pee-a). The town, seen from the sea, looked like a slender white streak, at the foot of high green wooded hills behind. When we came to anchor, we were not in much of a harbor, but in a bay about half-a-mile from the shore. The only other shipping was Her Majesty's gunboat Ringdove, moored to our left as we looked ashore, and a Norwegian barque on the other side. There were small boats and canoes in plenty, to take the passengers ashore if they chose, at a shilling a head; or to supply them with fruit if they chose to buy ("nothing for nothing in this world," except the supplies from heaven, which come to the just and the unjust). 1973 eerean 107 There was just one other object that struck the eye of the visitor, and that was a huge rusty wreck, well in-shore. This was the dismantled and broken hull of the German warship that was blown ashore by the hurricane that suddenly burst on the Samoan Islands about 10 years ago. The same hurricane sank 2 American warships on the same station, and would have sunk the Calliope, a British gunboat, also, but for the alert seamanship of the captain, who got up all his steam and made a way out in the teeth of the gale and got clear away. The matter was reported in the papers at the time. Neither the Germans nor the Americans have replaced their destroyed ships; the British alone remain in possession. ASHORE FOR A VISIT: MEETING A PHILISTINE: BUYING BREAD As the steamer was to stay 6 hours, I went ashore to post letters and see the place. It consists of one long street skirting the beach. The houses are mostly of the Colonial type—wooden frame houses with verandahs; but they are mixed with native huts. I looked into one where 12 or 15 men and one woman were at work making mats. The head of the company, who spoke a little English, beckoned me to come in. I went in and sat down in the centre. I tried to converse, but without much success. The headman's range of English was very limited, my knowledge of the Samoan dialect, nil. I asked him what he was in religion. He said, ''Nothing; I am a Philistine." "Believe nothing?" said I. He gave a grunt. I replied we must all go DOWN, indicating by an earth-dig. "Yes," he said. "But," I said, "God would bring up again" (with a dig-up gesture). The man shook his head. The other men were all attention with a grin. I said I wished I could speak to them. They offered me a native bludgeon—which I brought away as a memento. The street might be a mile long; I went right to the end of it, and then returned. A native boy joined me; and soon some others. The boy (who spoke a smattering of English) was quite amusing in the earnestness of his dramatic representation of the wreck of the ship. I saw a seat under a tree in a well-kept enclosure, and went in to sit down. They came with me, but were uneasy, and said they were afraid of "the mishonary"—every syllable slowly pronounced. I talked with them about school, and such other topics as our limited vocabulary allowed. They were principally concerned about "kiki," which I discovered meant bread. They were delighted when I took them into a shop and bought them some bread. At last, the hour came for departure, at which they expressed sorrow. In the Image of God Made He Him PART FOUR THE GLORIOUS BODY OF CHRIST OUR GROUND OF HOPE The present, real, glorious spirit body of Jesus Christ is the anchor and foundation of our hope and belief. If we allow these various sure landmarks of revealed Truth to be tampered with and nullified to fit private views, we shall soon find that we have no solid body of Truth left at all. The suggestion that Jesus merely assumed a human form when he appeared after his resurrection, and that he himself —his real spiritual identitywas something different from and independent of that body, has no support in Scripture and is a wide departure from what is revealed. "Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I myself. "Handle me and see, for a spirit (such as they thought they saw—v. 37) hath not flesh and bones as ye see me have" (Luke 24:39). To say that Jesus just assumed a body for the occasion 1973 Berean 108 is to make a mockery of his words here. It was the real, bodily Jesus that died; the real bodily Jesus that rose from the dead, and was changed from a mortal body to an immortal body. If we hold fast to the simple record of the Scriptures, where do we find these ideas about an immortal, immaterial essence independent of a body? That has no place in the scriptural record, and is not the Jesus we know. "Jesus showed HIMSELF again to the disciples" (John 21:1). If it was not the real "himself" they saw, but just a temporary body that the "himself" was using, we can see the f o u n d a t i o n s disintegrating under such passages as "Dust THOU art." We use this passage to prove that the living body was the real Adam. "Thou wilt not suffer Thine Holy One to see corruption" (Acts 2.27). If the body that was raised and glorified was not the real, permanent Jesus, but only a form he took for the occasion, what happens to the resurrection of the body? It becomes meaningless. "We must all appear before the judgment seat of Christ; that everyone may receive the things in body, according to that he hath done, whether good or bad" (2 Cor. 5:10). The good, as well as the bad, receive their reward IN BODY. "The Lord Jesus Christ shall change our vile BODY, that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious BODY" (Phil. 3:21). This is how the faithful attain to immortality—by having their BODY made like Christ's, their Elder Brother. To say that he has no body, but assumes a body on certain occasions, is completely foreign to—and destructive of — the scriptural picture— "So also is the resurrection of the dead. It is sown a natural body; it is raised a spiritual body. "There is a natural body, and there is a spiritual body; and so it is written: The first man Adam was made a living soul1 (a natural body); the last Adam was made a quickening spirit (a SPIRITUAL BODY). "The first man is of the earth, earthy: the second man is the Lord from heaven. As is the earthy, such are they that are earthy; and as IS the heavenly (Christ), such are they that are heavenly. "And as we have borne the image of the earthy, we shall also bear the IMAGE of the heavenly. "For this corruptible must PUT ON incorruption, and this mortal must PUT ON immortality'1 (1 Cor. 15:42-53). The foregoing is the true picture as we have always believed it. This plainly teaches: (1) That Jesus Christ, the last Adam, was made a SPIRITUAL BODY—that is what he actually IS—his real identity—he IS a spiritual body, not a bodiless essence that just assumes a body as it desires. The Scriptures know nothing of such. (2) That the faithful will be made like he is by their mortal BODY being changed to an immortal BODY. He is the firstfruits and example, the head, the firstborn, the first among many brethren. It is a false and dangerous specutotion, wholly unscriptural, to say that the real Jesus is 1973 Berean 109 something different from his body— "This SAME JESUS, which is taken up from you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye have seen HIM go into heaven'* (Acts 1:11). Of Stephen we read (Acts 7:55): "He being full of the Holy Spirit, looked up stedfastly into heaven, and saw the glory of God, and JESUS STANDing on the right hand of God" And of Paul— "Have I not seen Jesus Christ our Lord? (1 Cor. 9:1). "Last of all he was seen of me also" (1 Cor. 15:8). And it is specifically testified— "This MAN, after he had offered one sacrifice for sins forever, SAT DOWN on the right hand of God" (Heb. 10:12). "If ye then be risen with Christ, seek those things which are above, where Christ SITTETH on the right hand of God." (Col. 3:1). This is the way the Scriptures present the matter to us. These are God's words. Simple humility and wisdom will accept what God says, and not try to improve on it. Where do we get any license to nullify and deny these testimonies, and presume that they do not mean what they say? What floodgates of uncertainty would be opened by treating Scripture this way! We are very much afraid of these speculations concerning Christ as a bodiless essence. These assumptions (and others, are afraid, as the future will unfold) arise from refusing to ac cept the clear foundation God lays in the beginning— "In the image of God created He him." This is the beginning of the divine plan to create a family for Himself for His glory and pleasure, of which His only begotten Son was to be the Head and Elder Brother. We greatly prefer the safe and solid and scriptural conclusions of bre. Thomas and Roberts— BROTHER THOMAS' VIEW "Having affirmed that man stands related to two kinds of BODY, the apostle gives us to understand that in the arrangements of God the spiritual system of things is elaborated out of the animal. In relation to human nature, two men are presented as its TYPES in the TWO PHASES it is to assume. These Paul styles 'the First Adam' and 'the LAST ADAM', or 'the first man' and 'the second man.' "The former he terms 'earthy/ because he came from the ground and, goes thither again; and the latter, 'the Lord from heaven,' because being 'known no more after the flesh/ he is expected from heaven as the place of his final manifestation in 'the body of his glory.' "Then, says John, 'we shall be like him.' If, therefore, we have been successful in depicting the Lord as he IS NOW, while SEATED AT THE RIGHT HAND OF GOD; namely, an incorruptible, honorable, powerful living person, SUBSTANTIAL AND TANGIBLE, shining as the sun and able to eat and drink, and to display all mental and other phenomena in perfection: if the reader be able to comprehend such an 'IMAGE OF THE INVISIBLE GOD/ he can understand what THEY ARE TO BE who are counted worthy to inherit His kingdom. "Therefore, says Paul, 'As we have borne the image of the earthy, we shall also bear the IMAGE OF THE HEAVENLY/ or 1973 Berean 110 'Lord from heaven.' This CORPOREAL change . . is an absolute necessity before they can inherit the Kingdom of God. A man . . must be 'changed into spirit,' put on incorruptibility and immortality of BODY." (Elpis Israel, p.44). "The Bible has to do with things, not imaginations; with BODIES, not phantasmata; with 'living souls' of every species; with CORPOREAL beings of other worlds; and with incorruptible and undying men" (Same, p.46). AND BROTHER ROBERTS' VIEW "The angels, in FORM AND FEATURE, resemble human beings. They eat and drink, and walk and talk, and deport themselves in general like ourselves; but, unlike us, they are incorruptible, deathless, perfect, and strong in the might with which God has invested them for the execution of His purpose. "In the angels we behold an exemplification of WHAT THE SAINTS WILL BE after resurrection, for Jesus says:— 'They that shall be accounted worthy to obtain that world and the resurrection from the dead neither marry nor are given in marriage; neither can they die any more, for they are equal unto the angels and are the children of God' (Luke 20:35-6). "It is a state in which they will be real, SUBSTANTIAL, HUMANLIKE IN FORM, of flesh and bone, yet incorruptible, glorious, powerful, and never-dying" (Christendom Astray, p.132). "Paul points to Christ AS HE NOW IS as a specimen of the spiritual body (1 Cor. 15:44-5). Here is an unmistakable clue to the simple and glorious truth of the matter. The righteous are to be MADE LIKE TO CHRIST. "Now, concerning Christ, we have the plainest information on this point. The BODY THAT WAS CRUCIFIED ON CALVARY was the body that was put in Joseph's tomb, and that came out alive on the morning of the third day. When Jesus appeared alive to his disciples, it was an ACTUAL BODILY MAN that so appeared . . Here was Jesus, after his resurrection, possessing flesh and bones. "In 40 days, he visibly left the earth in the presence of his disciples; and it was said to them by two angels, 'THIS SAME JESUS, who has been taken up from you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye have seen him go.' "Consequently, Jesus at his return will be a REAL AND BODILY person, possessing flesh and bones; for HE IS SO NOW, AND HAS BEEN EVER SINCE HE WENT AWAY. Paul saw him several years after his departure to heaven. He is a living illustration of what a spiritual body is . . as tangible as the bodies we now possess, yea, more so" (Finger Post 31, 'What is a Spiritual Body?'). THE DANGEROUSNESS OF THE THEORY ALL this is undermined by the theory that actually the angels and Christ are spiritual essences independent of b o d i e s . The scriptural picture of salvation is eternal life manifested through incorruptibility and perfection of body, and Christ and the angels are presented to us as examples. Surely the dangerousness and unsoundness of a theory is selfevident when it requires such a complete revision of the scriptural picture, and such groundless assumptions that the real facts of the case are quite different from the way the Bible 1973 Berean 111 invariably presents them to us! The Bible always presents angels and Jesus Christ to us as real, actual, substantial bodies in human form, Jesus the very same body that was laid in the tomb. The theory presented requires us to believe that from beginning to end this is all one big deceptive appearance—that actually they are bodiless, immaterial identities, and that the bodies that have been seen and handled and presented as evidence of reality were just assumed for the occasion. NO DESIRE TO PRY OR SPECULATE THE revealed fact that we are "made in the image of God" does not enable or entitle us to picture God, and none of us desire to. We realize that this is both dangerous and irreverent. God's visible appearance is inconceivable. "Glory" is an inseparable element of His nature and substance— "The GLORY of the celestial is one, and the glory of the terrestrial is another . . . so also the natural and spiritual bodies" (1 Cor. 15:40-4). "They changed the GLORY of the uncorruptible God into an image made like to corruptible man" (Rom. 1:23). Jesus is now both "the brightness of His GLORY, and the express image of His person." Israel was denied any visible manifestation, and the reason strongly impressed upon them — that they should be fenced against the everpresent danger of pictorializing God— reducing the GLORY of the great Majesty of the Heavens to an image or picture. THE VALUE OF WHAT HAS BEEN REVEALED It has been revealed to us that we are patterned after Him. This is a great and gracious revelation. We cannot presume on it or beyond it, but we can humbly accept it. It inspires us with a sense of direct relationship to our Father in heaven. It emphasizes and ennobles the truth that our bodies are His temple, and that they are a vital and important part of His purpose. This revelation points FORWARD to the glorious communion of the divine family in the eternal ages of the future. It is fitting and beautiful. It also entails upon mankind great responsibility before Him. Formed intimately as SONS, bearing the DIVINE IMPRESS, it is men's destiny and duty to comport themselves as sons. God could have made us any shape, mere creatures for His pleasure. But how inspiring and ennobling and uplifting to learn of the destiny He has planned for us as eternal sons of His glory! How much deeper and richer and fuller has He made the possibilities of our love for and communion with Him by this evidence of kinship! Picture it otherwise, and the great excellence and fittingness of the way His wisdom has planned it will forcefully impress us. This is the profitable avenue of thought to follow. Not prying backwards along the revelation, and speculating concerning the details of God's being, but advancing with it in the direction of what it means as regards our relationship to Him, and our ultimate destiny. Paul says to the Atheneans:— "Forasmuch then as we are the OFFSPRING OF GOD, we ought not to think that the Godhead is like unto gold, or silver, or stone, graven by art and man's device" (Acts 17). Here again is a direct rela1973 Berean 112 tionship between God and man implied, a relationship so strong and direct that certain facts concerning God are inferred on the basis of it. Man is never represented as a mere unrelated creation of God, as the animals or the trees or the planets, but always as His CHILDREN. THE BEAUTY AND NECESSITY OF THIS TRUTH INASMUCH as God's own Son Truly an 'Image of God" was to be born as one of the must not be made or worhuman race—i d e η t i c a 1 with shipped—in the mind or anythem—a very real and close rewhere else. None of us have any lationship between God and man desire to do so. To attempt to is is necessitated. And when we to "change His celestial glory" realize—as we do—that the presto terrestrial standards. ent form of man is to be eterWe are simply concerned nally perpetuated in glorious with learning and believing spirit-nature, we see the beauty the necessary things that God and necessity of the primary desires us to believe—in the revelation concerning the relaplain, simple way that God tion of that form to God's. desires us to believe them. Just so much has been reWe cannot understand God's vealed. Just sufficient to form nature and being. We realize the necessary foundation. At the pitiful limitations of our inthis point we must stop, for we tellects in this matter. But we are on holy ground. To attempt CAN, in humble faith, believe to peer further than is revealed, what He tells us. He has chosen, or to speculate concerning God for reasons of His own love and or to pictorialize Him is the wisdom, to tell us in the plainheight of presumption. est of words that He has been We all well realize this and pleased—in the furtherance of are heartily in accord with the His own glorious purpose — to necessity of caution in this refashion man after His own form. spect. There is no subject where "In heaven" said Jesus, "and e l i c a c y and discretion are yels do always behold the face more essential. We do not forget of my Father." the lesson of the fifty thousand who were slain by God for havThis beautifully and simply ing looked into the Ark, and the sums up the understanding and people said in awe and fear— hope that God desires us to have "Who is able to stand beconcerning Himself. May we fore this holy Lord God?" (1 have the wisdom to accept it in Sam. 6:19-20). simple faith. Fraternal Gatherings If the Lord Will LAMPASAS, TEXAS: FRIDAY to SUNDAY, JUNE 8 to 10 Bro. Ross Wolfe, 1802 Rumley Rd., Lampasas, Tex. 76550; (512) 556-5249 HYE, TEXAS: SUNDAY to SUNDAY, JULY 29 to AUGUST 5 Bro. N. Mammone, 2200 W. No. Loop, Ap. 129, Austin, Tx. 78756; 512-453-1048 "That ye might be filled with the knowledge of His will in all wisdom and spiritual understanding; that ye might walk worthy of the Lord unto ail pleasing, being fmitful in every good work, and increasing in the knowledge of God; strenghtened with all might, according to His glorious power, unto all patience and long suffering with joyfulness"—Col. 1:9-11. 1 9 7 3 Berean 113 God's Purpose in the Death of Christ "God, sending His Own Son in the likeness of sinful flesh, and for sin, condemned sin in the flesh1"—Romans 8:3 BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS Nothing is more notorious than the fact of Christ's death by crucifixion in the reign of Tiberius. Not only is the fact circumstantially related by the apostles who were eye-witnesses of the event, but Tacitus, the Roman historian who flourished in the reign of Nero, only 30 years after, records it in his annals, in connection with the burning of Rome. A "Christian world," full of crosses today, is an evidence of it. What is the meaning of this strange event? For a strange event we must account it, that, a man who went about doing good, and against whom no possible charge of sin could be brought, should be executed as if he were a felon. As regards the motive of his executioners, there is no obscurity in the tragedy. Jesus deeply wounded the pride of the ruling classes of the Jewish nation, by his open denunciation of their evil ways. The Romans, who garrisoned the country, were but their instruments in executing a man whom they had no power themselves to destroy. This is what we may call the human side of the event. But there is a divine side to the event, as explicitly affirmed by Christ when he said— "No man taketh my life from me. I lay it down of myself. This commandment I have received of my Father." "I lay down my life for the sheep.'* "The Son of man is come to give his life a ransom for many." "I give my flesh for the life of the world." It will be a profitable enquiry to ask: first, How an event can be both human and divine at the same time? And second, Being divine as well as human, what were the divine objects aimed at in the sacrifice of the sinless son of God? As regards the first point, the Bible is a continued illustration. The divine and the human were blended notably in 3 leading instances where there are hundreds— Joseph, who was sold into slavery by his brethren, says— "It was not you that sent me hither, but God" (Gen. 45:8). Israel—who were overpowered by natural enemies—are made by the prophet Isaiah to enquire (42:24)— "Who gave Jacob to the spoil, and Israel to the robbers? "Did not the Lord, He against Whom we have sinned?" Thirdly, God says by the same prophet that He would send Sennacherib against Israel, and adds— "Howbeit he meaneth not so, but he saith, By my wisdom and the strength of my hand I have done it" (Isa. 10:7-13). 1973 Berean 114 See also Dt. 32:26-27. It is easy to comprehend this duality of operation, when we remember that man lives in God, and can be controlled by Him without man being conscious of the operation, as Solomon says— "The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, and he turneth it about whithersoever He will." And again— "God ruleth in the kingdoms of men" (Dan, 4:17). On the face of it Christ's death was wholly a human event; but by the testimony of the apostles afterwards, as well as of Christ beforehand, its divine side was its strongest side, so strong that the human side would not have existed but for the divine aims in the case (Acts 2:23)— "Him being delivered by the determinate counsel and foreknowledge of God, ye have taken and by wicked hands have crucified and slain" "To do whatsoever Thy hand and Thy counsel determined before to be done."(Acts 4:28). The chief question is: What were the divine objects in so apparently cruel an arrangement? We have all been made familiar with the popular view: That the death of Christ was a vicarious punishment of all the sins that men ever committed; and that all that men have to do in order to get the benefit is to believe—*'only believe." There are several difficulties and confusions in this— 1. The punishment of sin is supposed to be eternal torments in hell. How could Jesus endure endless agony in a brief moment, and how could he on earth suffer what belongs to hell only? 2. The sinning part of man is supposed to be the immortal soul. But it was in Christ's mortal body that he made a sacrifice for the sins of the world. 3. It was death that Jesus endured in the process of taking away the sin of the world. But according to the popular theory he could not die. 4. On what principle of justice is it possible to understand a righteous person being punished for a wicked person? All these difficulties, inconsistencies, and obscurities disappear, when we realize the Scripture testimony in the case. There are various features to this testimony, and we must blend them all. One is that the death of Christ was an arrangement of favor, for granting salvation by the remission of sins. Another feature is that justice was done, while favor was shown; "that He (God) might be just," etc. (Rom. 3:25-26). Another is that while salvation is offered through forgiveness for Christ's sake, its attainment is contingent on individual obedience and faithfulness, even to the extent of said individuals being judged and rewarded "according to their works." 1973 Berean 115 All is intelligible when the mortal nature of man is recognized and sin understood as the cause of the entrance of death into the world. What we have to ask is, In view of the reign of death, in what way did the death of Christ contribute towards its removal? On the surface of things it would seem as if a living Christ would be more suitable to the needs of dying man than a Christ given over to death. We can only get at an answer by the testimony, and it is explicit. We are not only told that it was by means of death in the flesh and blood of the children that Christ was to destroy that having the power of death (Heb. 2:14); but we are admitted into an insight into the divine aims in the c a s e To condemn sin in the flesh (Rom. 8:3). To declare the righteousness of God for the remission of sins. That God might be just, while the justifier of him that believeth. (Rom. 3:25-26). As to the further question—how these things were accomplished in the death of Christ—we cannot see it unless we recognize the identity of his human nature with the nature that sinned in Eden, and was sentenced to death because of sin. This identity is expressly affirmed in the apostolic writing— "Likeness of sinful flesh" (Rom. 8:3). "Made sin for us" (2 Cor. 5:21). "Flesh and blood—the same" (Heb. 2:14). "Seed of David according to the flesh" (Rom. 1:3). "Made in all things like his brethren" (Heb. 2:17). "Came in the flesh" (1 Jn. 4:1-3). If we consider him as a representative man, sharing with us the very nature that has an inherited death from Eden, and the nature that is in us the cause of sin, we may understand how his death was a virtual repudiation of sinful human nature, and an assertion of the supremacy of God, and the enforcement of His righteousness for our recognition and identification in baptism, as the condition of a favor that bends to us in kindness without the compromised authority of righteousness. But his death was the death of a righteous man, and therefore resurrection could take place conformably with the righteousness of God. The victory is Christ's alone, but he is empowered to share the fruits of his victory with all those who, in humility and true repentance, come unto God by him. Forgiveness is none the less free forgiveness because Christ died. Still it is forgiveness based on the enforcement of righteousness and submission to this enforcement on the part of those forgiven. We are forgiven "for Christ's sake," and thus "the blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth us from all sin." "Christ also loved the Ecclesia and gave himself for it; that he might sanctify and cleanse it with the washing of water by the Word, that he might present it to himself a glorious Ecclesia, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing; but that it should be holy and without blemish"—Eph. 5:25-27. 1973 B e r e a n 116 The Bible Use of 'Soul' and 'Spirit' "That which befalleth the sons of man befalleth beasts: as the one dieth, so dieth the other; yea, they have all one breath (ruach— spirit. All go to one place; all are of the dust, and all turn to dust again"—Ecclesiastes 3:19-20 The Hebrew word nephesh is the original word in all places where "soul" appears in the Authorized Version of the Old Testament. Nephesh occurs 754 times. Of these, it is translated "soul·' 472 times. It is translated the other 282 times by approximately 43 different English words, including: life, creature, thing, breath, fish, her, persons, any, man, men, one, yourselves, themselves, himself, he, herself, beast, pleasure, lust, appetite, greedy, mind, heart, will, hearty, desire, thyself, myself, him, his own, thee, ghost, the dead, dead body, body, etc. The basic meaning of nephesh is, as a verb, "to breathe, to respire," and as a noun, "a breathing frame, the body which by breathing is sustained in life," "a living creature," "a breathing animal." In all the 754 times it occurs, there is not one mention or hint of immortality, but always the reverse. Parkhurst (a believer in the "immortal soul") says in his Hebrew Lexicon— "As a noun, nephesh has been supposed to signify the spiritual part of man, or what we commonly call his soul. I must for myself confess that I can find no passage where it has undoubtedly this meaning. "Gen. 33:16: 1 Kings 17:21-22; and Psa. 16:10, seem fairest for this significance. But may not nephesh in the 2 former passages be most properly rendered 'breath' and in the last 'a breathing or animal frame'?" Young's Analytical Concordance translates nephesh as "animal soul." The Latin equivalent for nephesh is anima from anemos—"air or breath" (compare "animal"). The Greek equivalent is psuche. This is the word translated "soul" in the New Testament. Young's Concordance also renders this "animal soul." The derived adjective psuchikos is translated "natural" in contrast to "spiritual" (1 Cor. 15:44)— "There is a natural (psuchikos) body, and there is a spiritual body." The natural (psuchikos) body is said to be corrupt, dishonorable and weak (see vs. 42-42 of this 1 Cor. 15). Nephesh is also used of the functions and characteristics which distinguish an animal body, as: life, power, appetite, desire, vitality, etc. For example— L^ev. 17:10-12—"I will set my face against that soul (nephesh) that eateth blood, and will cut him off from among his people; for the life (nephesh) of the flesh is in the blood: and I have given it to you upon the altar to make atonement for your souls (nephesh)" . . "No soul (nephesh) of you shall eat blood." Isa. 29:8—"It shall be as when an hungry man dreameth, and, behold, he eateth; but he awaketh, and his soul (nephesh) is empty; or as when a thirsty man dreameth, and, behold, he drinketh; but he awaketh, and, behold, he is faint, and his soul (nephesh) hath appetite." Prov. 6:30—"Men do not despise a thief, if he steal to satisfy his soul (nephesh) when he is hungry." 117 1973 B e r e a n Exo. 12:16—"No manner of work shall be done in them, save that which which every man (nephesh) must eat." The word nephesh is applied in the Bible indiscriminately to both man and animals. It is used of animals 4 times BEFORE it is used of man at all— Gen. 1:20—"And God said, "Let the waters bring forth abundantly the moving creature that hath life (nephesh)." Gen. 1:21—"And God created great whales, and every living creature (nephesh) that moveth, which the waters brought forth abundantly." Gen. 1:24—"And God said, "Let the earth bring forth the living creature (nephesh) after his kind, cattle, and creeping things." Gen. 1:30—"And to every beast of the earth, and to every fowl of the air, and to everything that creepeth upon the earth, wherein there is life (nephesh), I have given every green herb for meat." In addition to these 4, it is applied to animals 6 times in the next 9— Gen. 2:19—"Whatsoever Adam called every living creature (nephesh) that was the name thereof/' Gen. 9:4—"But flesh with the life (nephesh) thereof, which is the blood thereof, shall ye not eat." Gen. 9:10—"Every living creature (nephesh) that, is with you, of the fowl, of the cattle and of every beast of the earth with you." Gen. 9:12—"Every living creature (nephesh) that is with you." Gen. 9:15—"Every living creature (nephesh) of all flesh." Gen. 9:16—"Every living creature of all flesh that is upon the earth." Beside the last 2 instances above, where it refers to both men and animals without distinction, it is also used of both men and animals together indiscriminately 5 times more— Lev. 17:11—"The life (nephesh) is in the blood." Lev. 17:14—"For it is the life (nephesh) of all flesh; the blood of it is for the life (nephesh) thereof . . . for the life (nephesh) of all flesh is the blood thereof." Num. 31:28—"One soul (nephesh) of five hundred, both of the persons, and of the beeves, and of the asses, and of the sheep." In 32 places souls (nephesh) are spoken of as killed by man, as— Josh. 10:28—"And that day Joshua took Makkedah, and smote it with the edge of the sword, and the king thereof he utterly destroyed, them, and all the souls (nephesh) that were therein." See also vs. 30, 32, 35. 37, 38, 39. Josh. 11:11—"And they smote all the souls (nephesh) that were therein wilih the edge of the sword, utterly destroying them." Eze. 13:19—"And will ye pollute Me among My people . . . to slay the souls (nephesh) that should not die, and to save the souls (nephesh) alive that should not live?" Deut. 27:25— "Cursed be he that taketh reward to slay an innocent person (nephesh)." 1 Sam. 22:22—"I have occasioned the death of all the persons (nephesh) of thy father's house." Lev. 24:17-16—"He that killeth any man (smiteth the life—nephesh— of a man) shall be put to death. He that killeth a beast (smiteth the life—nephesh—of a beast) shall make it good; beast (nephesh) for beast (nephesh).'* Num. 31:19—"Whosoever hath killed any person (nephesh).'· In 13 places souls (nephesh) are spoken of as being actually DEAD. Examples— Num. 5:2—"Whosoever is defiled by the dead (nephesh)." Lev. 19:28—"Ye shall not make any cuttings in your flesh for dead (nephesh)." Lev. 21:1—"There shall none be defiled for the dead (nephesh) among his people." Lev. 21:11—"Neither shall he go in to any dead body (nephesh)." Lev. 22:4—"Who so toucheth anything that is unclean by the dead (nephesh)/· 118 1 9 7 3 Berean Num. 6:11—"He that sinned by the dead (nephesh).'» Num. 9:6—"Defiled by the dead body (nephesh) of a man." Num. 9:7—"Defiled by the dead body (nephesh) of a man." Num. 9:10—"Unclean by reason of a dead body (nephesh)." Num. 6.-6—"He shall come at no dead body (nephesh)." Num. 19:13—"Whosoever toucheth the dead body (nephesh) of any man that is dead." Hag. 2:13—"If one that is unclean by a dead body (nephesh) touch any of these, shall it be unclean?" In 13 more places souls (nephesh) are spoken of as going to the grave— Psa. 30:3—"Thou hast brought up my soul (nephesh) from the grave (sheol)." Psa. 89:48—"Shall he deliver his soul (nephesh) from the band of the grave (sheol)?*' Psa. 16:10—"Thou wilt not leave my soul (nephesh) in hell (sheol—same as 'grave' above)." Psa. 86:13—"Thou hast delivered my soul (nepheah) from the lowest hell (marg: grave)." Job 33:18—"He keepeth back his soul (nephesh) from the pit" (Also vs. 28 and 30). The creation of a soul is described in Gen. 2:7— "And itthe Lord God formed man of the dust of the ground, and breathed Into his nostrils the breath (neshamah) of life (chaiyim); and man became a living soul (nephesh dial)." In the above passage, a "living soul" (nephesh chai) is a body of earth with the breath of life. A "dead soul" (nephesh muth—Num. 6:6) is a body of earth without the breath of life. This same "breath of life" (neshamah chaiyim) that was breathed into man was also possessed by the animals as shown by Gen. 7:21-22— "And all flesh died that moved upon the earth, both of fowl, and of cattle, and of beast, and of every creeping thing upon (the earth, and every man: all in whose nostrils was the breath of life (breath of the spirit of lives—neshamah ruach ohaiyim), of all that was in the dry land, died." * • * The word ruach appears 398 times in the Hebrew Old Testament. Except for two cases (Job 26:4; Prov. 20:27), this is the word in the original wherever the word "spirit" occurs in the Authorized Version. * Ruach is translated "spirit" 237 times. It is translated "breath" 28 times, and "wind" 99 times. The other 25 times it is translated several ways, as "mnd, blast, air, tempest," etc. This word primarily means "the action oi breathing of the air in motion," and, more broadly, is used to signify "invisible power." It is used the same way as neshamah to mean the breath of man, the power of life, vitality. When a distinction is made between "soul" and "spirit" they mean respectively "body" and "life," although in general use the secondary meanings overlap. Examples of the use of ruach in connection with man are as follows. These show that it is used to denote the mind, character, energy, disposition, life— Gen. 26:35—"Which were a grief of mind (spirit—ruach) unto Isaac and to Rebekah." Gen. 41:8—"And it came to pass in the morning that his spirit (ruach) was troubled." Exo. 6:9—'They hearkened not unto Moses for anguish of spirit (ruach)." Num. 5:30—'The spirit (ruach) of jealousy." •"Familiar spirit" (Lev. 20:27; 1 Sam. 28:78; 1 Chr. 23:6; Isa. 29:4) is a different word. 1 1Q 9 77 33 B B ee rr ee aa n n 1Ί 19 Ί 9 Oeut. 2:30—"The Lord thy God hardened his spirit (ruach), and made nis heart obstinate." Josh. 2:11—"Our hearts did melt, neither did there remain any more courage (spirit) in any man.'1 Judges 8:3—"Then their anger (ruach) was abated toward him." 1 Kings 10:5—"And when the queen of Sheba had seen all Solomon's wisdom . . . there was no more spirit (ruach) in her." 1 Kings 21:5—"Why is thy spirit (ruach) so sad?" Psa. 34:la—"Such as be of a contrite spirit (roach)." Psa. 51:10—"Renew a right spirit (ruach) within me." Prov. 15:1$—"By sorrow of heart the spirit (ruach) is broken." Prov. 16:19—"A humble spirit (ruach)." Prov. 16:10—"A haughty spirit (ruach)." Eccl. 7:8—"The patient in spirit (ruach)." Eccl. 7:8—"The proud in spirit (ruach)." Eze. 11:5—"I know the things that come into your mind (ruach)." Ruach is used of animals as well as of man, to indicate the breath of l i f e Gen. 6:17—"I do bring a flood of waters upon the earth, to destroy all flesh, wherein is the breath (ruaoh) of life (chaiyim), from under heaven, and everything that is in the earth shall die." Gen. 7il4-<15—"They, and every beast after his kind, and all the cattle after their kind and every creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth after his kind, and every fowl after his kind, every bird of every sort And they went in unto Noah into the ark, two and two of all flesh, wherein is the breath (ruach) of life." Gen. 7:22—"And all flesh died (that moved upon the earth, both of fowl, and of cattle, and of beast, and of every creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth, and every man: all in whose nostrils was the breath (ruach) of life, of all that was in the dry land, died." The Bible expressly says that man and animals have the same spirit (ruach)— Eccl. 3:19—"For that which befalleth the son of MEN befalleth BEASTS; even one thing betalietb them: as the one dieth, so dieth the other; yea, THEY HAVE ALL ONE BREATH iruach); and man hath no preeminence above the beasts: for all is vanity. "ALL GO UNTO ONE PLACE; all are of the dust and all turn to dust "Who knoweth the spirit (ruach) of man, whether it goeth upward, and the spirit (ruach) of the beast, whether it goeth downward to the earth?" The foregoing will show that there is no support for the false pagan tradition of the "immortal soul" in the use of the words "soul·' (nephesh) and "spirit" (ruach) in the Bible. * • • The following passages will be further conclusive proof that the popular orthodox belief in the immortal soul is contrary to the teachings of the Bible, that man is mortal, that in death there is no consciousness, that heaven-going at death is a false myth, and that apart from the resurrection at the last day, the dead have perished— Only God Hath Immortality 1 Tim. 6:15-1)6—'The blessed and only potentate, the King of kings and Lord of lords, Who only hath immortality." Immortality to Be SOUGHT FOR, Not Now Possessed Rom. 2:7—"To them who by patient continuance in welldoing SEEK for glory and honor and IMMORTALITY (he will render) eternal life." 1 Cor. 15:51-«3--"We shall afll be changed . . . at the last trumpet . . . for this corruptible must put on incorrupuon, and this mortal must put on immoxitaility." Phil. 3:21—"He (Jesus) shall change our vile body, that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious body." Man Is of the Dust, Returns to Dust Gen. 3:19—"Dust thou art, and unto dust shalt thou return." Psa. 104:2»—"Thou takest away their breath (ruach), they die, and return to their dust." 1973 B e r e a n 120 Job 10:18—tfWherefore then hast thou brought me forth out of the womb? Oh that I had given up the ghost (gava—expire) and no eye had seen me! I should have been AS THOUGH I HAD NOT BEEN; I should have been carried from the womb to the grave.'* Job 34:15—"If he set his hear* upon man, if he gather unto himself his spirit (ruach) and his breath (neshamah) . . all flesh shall perish together, and man shall turn again unto the dust." Souls Die, Are Destroyed, Go to Grove Eze. 18:4, 20—"The soul (nephesh) that sinneth, it shall die." 1 Cor. 15:22—"In Adam all die." Psa. 89:48—"What man is he that liveth and shall not see death? Shall he deliver his soul (nephesh) from the power oi the grave?" Matt. 10:28—"Fear Him which is able to destroy both soul (psuche—life) and body in hell (gehenna)." Rev. 16:3—"And every living soul (psuche) died in (the sea." Isa. 33:12—'Ήβ hath poured out his soul (nephesh) unto death." No One (Except Christ) Goes to Heoven Acts 2:34—"David is not ascended into the heavens." John 3:13—"No man hath ascended up to heaven." Some Never Awake From the Sleep of Death Jer. 51:39—"They shall sleep a perpetual sleep, and not awake, saith the Lord." Pro. 21:16—"The man that wandereth out of the way of understanding shall remain in the congregation of the dead." The Dead Are Asleep in the Ground Job 3:11, 13—"Why died I not from the womb? Why did I not give the ghost (gava—expire) when I came out of the belly? . . . For now shoiL· I have lain still and been quiet, I should have slept; then bad I been at rest." Acts 13:36—"For David, after he had served his own generation by the will of God, fell on sleep, and was laid unto his fathers, and saw corruption." 1 Thess. 4:14—"Them also which sleep in Jesus will God bring with Him." 1 Thess. 4:13^-"I would not have you ignorant, brethren, concerning them which are asleep." The Dead Know Not Anything Psa. 6:5 "For in death there is no remembrance of thee, in the grave who shall give thee thanks?" Eoc. 9:5-6—"(For the living know that they shall die, but THE DEAD KNOW NOT ANYTHING." Psa. 146:3-4—"Put not your trust in princes, nor in the son of man, in whom there is no help. His breath (ruach) goeth forth, he retumeth to his earth, in that very day HIS THOUGHTS PERISH." Ecc. 9:10—"Whatsoever thy hand findeth to do, do it with thy migiht; for there is no work, nor device, nor knowledge, nor wisdom, in the grave whither thou goest." Resurrection (at Last Day) the Only Hope of Life 1 Cor. 15:20—"Now is Christ risen from the dead and become the firstfruits of them that slept." 1 Cor. 15:16-18—"If the dead rise not . . . they also which are fallen asleep in Christ are perished." Dan. 12:1-2—"And at that time (the time of the end) . . . many of them that sleep in the dust of the earth shaJil awake, some to everlasting life, and some to shame and everlasting contempt." John 11:24—"I know that he shall rise again in the resurrection at the last day." John 5:2»—"The hour is coming in the which all that are in the graves shall hear His voice, and shall come forth, they that have done good unto the resurrection of life, and they that have done evil unto the resurrection of damnation." Hos. 13:14—"I will ransom them from the power of the grave, I will redeem them from death: Ο death, I will be thy plagues: Ο grave, I will be thy destruction." (Compare with 1 Cor. 15:54^5—"THEN (at the last trumpet) shall be brought to pass the saying that is written . . . "O death, where is thy sting: Ο grave, where is thy victory?") There is absolutely no support in the Bible for the pagan tradition of the immortality of the soul. All the Bible's teaching on the subject is to the contrary, Berean 121 lxt7Z Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "Moreover I saw under the sun the place of judgment, that wickedness was there; and the place of righteousness, thatiniquity was there"—Eccl. 3:16 CRUSHING NEW MONEY CRISIS. When Smithsonian agreement signed in D e c , 71, Nixon hailed it as "most significant monetary agreement in history of world." But last wk., new full-scale monetary crisis exploded. Billions of speculative $s poured into currency markets around world. Stakes involved were enormous. International monetary cooperation has been hallmark of Western alliances since WW II. If mechanism is in disrepair too long, tariff barriers could cripple trade, & plunge world into depression, as in '30s. (Nwk 2:19) NOTE: With countless millions being made overnight by the big money interests in these international monetary shenanigans, at the expense of the common taxpayers and consumers, one cannot help but wonder how much of these "crises" is deliberately contrived. But whatever lies behind the scenes, it is obvious that the world's monetary stability—once proudly taken for granted as a natural concomitant of modern man's great maturity and civilization—was a mere circumstance of passing events. When first Britain, and then US, dominated the financial world and backed their own money with gold, there was an illusion of world stability. Today the pound is one of the weakest and least meaningful of the world's currencies, and the dollar has lost all stability in utter, spendthrift confusion. One more sign of the need for Christ's Kingdom—worldwide justice and stability under ail-wise immortal rulers. . A CITY IN SINAI. In next 2 months, Israel surveyors—followed by bulldozers & construction workers—will begin building a new city in a 40-sq. mile area on coast below Gaza in Sinai Peninsula. Plans are for VA-million residents by yr. 2000. This land still legally Egyptian. In 1909 a band of Jewish families followed Meir Dizengoff out of Jaffa to a deserted stretch of dunes. They listened in hope & disbelief as he prophesied that a Jewish community of 25,000 would rise on the sand where they stood. Today that spot, Tel Aviv, has 1.2 million population, & has completely swallowed up Jaffa. Rest of Israel growing almost as rapidly. Present 3.1 million population expected to be 5 million by year 2000. In order to secure its borders, Israel, since '67 War, has been building permanent settlements in captured territories. On Golan Heights, there's new town, Benei Yehuda. Sharm el Sheikh, overlooking Straits of Tiran in south Sinai, has been renamed Ophir, & is being developed as an Israeli town. Dayan's concept in northern Sinai is to build up area with Israeli settlements, not only to provide needed Israeli housing but also to make Egyptian attack impossible. (Tm 1:22) 1973 Berean 122 NOTE: This is a direct provocation to the Arabs. Israel's actions make it clear that they are irrevocably committed to permanently holding much of the conquered Arab lands. This is doubtless militarily sound policy, and perhaps their only practical option, but it makes a final showdown inevitable. Arab oil wealth growing enormously; with wealth comes power. RACE RIOTS IN NAVY. From a recent Congressional report: "Discipline is keystone of armed services of any nation. If discipline collapses, a military force become a leaderless mob, capable only of its own destruction. "US Navy is now confronted with pressures, within & without, which if not controlled will surely destroy its discipline. Recent instances of sabotage, riot, disobedience, contempt for authority—with increasing frequency—are clear-cut symptoms of dangerous discipline deterioration." (USN 2:19) NOTE: How ominous!—when this troubled, fractured, unsteady sword of US military power is all that stands between Russia and world conquest! WHY MAN'S EVIL RULE CAN NEVER BRING JUSTICE. From report by NY Commission on Police Corruption: "We found corruption widespread, & strikingly standardized. Plainclothesmen collected regular payments (biweekly or monthly) of up to $3500 from each gambling establishment in area under their jurisdiction, & divided it in equal shares. Monthly share per man ranged from $400 in Manhattan to $1500 in Harlem. Supervisors received 1M> shares. "In each area investigated, almost every plainclothesman in the division, including supervisory lieutenants, was implicated. Corruption payments in narcotics enforcement could be staggering; largest we found was $80,000. "Uniformed police on street duty did not receive money on nearly so grand or organized a scale, but the large number of small payments they got present an equally serious problem. Uniformed patrolmen get regular payments from construction from after-hours bars, bottle clubs, tow trucks, motorists, cab drivers, parking lots, prostitutes, & defendants in court cases. "A code of silence brands anyone as a traitor who exposes corruption. Any policeman violating this code did so at his own peril. The rookie faces a sit uation where it is easier to become corrupt than to remain honest. "The problem of corruption is not new. Investigations have occurred about every 20 yrs. since 1900. Yet conditions exposed by one investigation seem substantially unchanged when next one makes its report. "In every area where police corruption exists, it is paralleled by corruption in other agencies of govt., in industry, in labor, & in professions. "The most serious roadblock to any attack on police corruption is a stubborn refusal at all levels of Dept. to acknowledge that a serious problem exists. First, Dept. morale requires there be no official recognition of corruption, even tho practically all members know it's extensive. Second, Dept's public image & effectiveness requires official denial of this truth. This makes it difficult, if not impossible, to make any meaningful attempts at reform. Pressures gradually convert an idealistic rookie into an increasingly bold finder of bribes & payoffs. "The present situation is just like that existing at close of previous investigations. A considerable momentum for reform has been generated. After previous investigations, the momentum evaporated. (USN 1:29) NOTE:This is not barbarous Russia, or some dark, backward African state, but the biggest and most influential city in what considers itself the world's "leading" country. Surely this dismal report, covering—be it noted—the whole of the past 75 "modern'* years, reveals the utter hopelessness of any justice or dependable honesty under human rule—just as the Scriptures have declared for 3500 years. PRAYER BREAKFASTS. In most major US cities, midweek prayer breakfasts are fast becoming preferred form of Christian fellowship— especially for busy executives who want to make room for God in their profit picture. "We pray to do the right thing," says a Chicago banker, "because the right thing is usually the profitable thing. We want God to show us the right way to success." No one seems to look harder for heavenly guidance that the govt. officials who have turned Washington into the prayer-breakfast capital of world. Some question whether the prayers served up at breakfast are directed to the proper deity. In a handbook for organizers of prayer breakfasts, groups are urged to thank the God who gave us the "blessings of living in US, & for free enterprise." (Nwk 2:19) NOTE: This is a strange phenomenon, disgusting in one sense as one equates it with the callous corruption of human politics typified by Watergate and all its similar associated activities, but it is a hopeful sign in another sense as it indicates a vague recognition by evil man that there is a power higher than himself which he wants to get on his side and working to his advantage. 1973 Berean 123 RUSSIA GAINS ADVANTAGE. The subtle volleying between East & West in chilly new phase. Actual Europe Security Conference talks haven't yet begun, but Russia seems to have grabbed an advantage—one that will force some sharp reassessments of West's ability to translate detente into genuinely relaxed tensions. Russia had pressed for ESC for years, arguing they wanted to "help Europe establish its security on the basis of cooperation & mutual trust." But last wk. they turned aside several West proposals designed to do just that. Russia totally rejected a series of "confidence-building" measures for greater intercourse. Warning that East bloc would allow "no room for the dissemination of anti-culture," Russia said West proposals for increased flow of ideas & people between East & West would go nowhere. Russia also struck back at West on other great European negotiations front—armed forces reduction, making demands that seemed calculated to ensure talks would accomplish nothing. Russia's abrupt treatment of force reduction issue suggests that West may have less leverage than it thought when it comes to prying concessions out of Russia. Russia has already got most of what it hoped to get from the proposed conferences, including recognition of E. Germany, & Western acceptance of Moscow's sway over E. Europe. Moscow has always been loath to trim East bloc's over-muscled forces (91 divisions, 48 of them Russian, facing 61 NATO divisions). These forces are basis of Russia's power in East, & of its demands to be heard in West (Tm 2:5) NOTE: Bro. Thomas saw a Roman Europe under the lordship of Russia as an essential step in developing Armageddon. For 10 years a combination of trends—political, military, economic and religious—have all been moving steadily in this direction, and the pace quickens. CATHOLIC CHANGES. "Extreme unction" has long had ominous meaning: patient given up for dead. It will hereafter be used, not only for those in imminent danger of death, but for any seriously ill. Will no longer be given to persons who die before priest arrives, because Church now emphasizes recipient should have positive faith in sacrament's grace. (Tm 2:5) NOTE: The "infallible" Church of Rome has veered and changed in so many ways lately! How do they explain it to the faithful? Was everything wrong that they have enforced for centuries? But these modernizations will bring her into position for her role of regathering the Harlot Daughters of "Christendom/* and uniting the world against Christ. THE INIQUITY OF THE AMORITES. At 40, Michael Thevis is a multimillionaire. A former altar boy, he's one of the growing number cashing in on new permissiveness. He made his millions peddling smut. US Commission on Obscenity reports that the business runs up to $2V2 billion a year. Much of it is controlled by Mafia. The financial harvest from sexual explosion doesn't seem likely to soon end, despite all moralizing from critics, & widely publicized police crackdowns. "The first time a newspapers mentions a title," says Thevis, "you'd better reorder. Everyone wants to see what it's all about." (Nwk2:12) NOTE: The divine command to Israel was, "Destroy the vile Canaanites— man, woman and child, for their abominable corruptions." A greater and vastly more terrible Joshua is at the door to flush the fetid sewers of modern mankind, and make the earth a place of wholesome beauty to the glory of Yahweh. •«-«—•»»—·——«——— SMOKING MOTHERS. Yet another hazard of smoking: significantly increased mortality rate among babies of women who smoke during pregnancy. Women who smoke have 30 pet. higher rate of stillbirths, & 26 pet. higher rate of infant mortality within first few days of birth. (Nwk 1:29) NOTE: No comment is needed. Holiness and purity have promise in this life, as well as in the life to come. 1973 Be rear» 124 GROWING SEEDS OF CONFLICT. US Blacks remain disproportionately poor. Nearly 1/3 live in poverty; nearly V2 below bare-minimum subsistence line. And Black poor have been largely left behind. Black unemployment rate runs persistently double the White rate, & in ghettos it's frozen at Depression levels—18 pet. in Watts; 20 pet. in San Francisco slums; 25 pet. in Chicago's slums. The ghettos have grown physically worse with neglect & aging—a deterioration everywhere visible. Distance between ghettos & outside world is widening. The '68 Riot Commission report pictured a future US divided between Black cities & White suburbs, & warned that to do nothing about this trend was a decision to accept "urban apartheid." That choice has now effectively been made. The drift apart has gone on unabated. During '60s, 3V2 million Blacks moved into central cities & 2V2 million Whites moved out to suburbs. Six major cities now have Black majorities; 8 more are over 40 pet. Black. (Nwk 2:19) NOTE: We see it developing before our eyes, but perhaps too gradually to grasp its portents: an increasingly frustrated and ghettoized Black minority, and increasingly hostile and selfish White majority. What wonder that crime and violence are increasing by leaps and bounds, and every man is becoming afraid of his neighbor? Man has miserably failed. Only Christ can solve the world's fast-multiplying miseries. ANOTHER MONETARY CRISIS-one of most disturbing on recordexposed US $ as alarmingly weak. It also showed that whole world monetary system is ominously unstable, despite all "progress" supposedly made toward reform. Worst of all, the crisis seemed to be first in a new series—of type that nations try to quiet by curbing freedom of money movements. Worst aspect of these repeated crises is that each seems to end with less freedom for international movement of capital & goods. Tho such controls & restrictions are supposed to be "temporary," there's a natural tendency to extend & tighten them with each crisis. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: We remember the long, proud, stable years of the "almighty dollar"—the unchanging benchmark by which all world monetary values were haughtily measured. In those days the world's monetary "experts" who handled the control buttons seemed very wise and sure. But suddenly everything has fallen apart, and man finds he fenows nothing about a sensible and stable world monetary system, just as he knows nothing about a stable world political system. And endless, clammering, self-serving solutions are put forward, none of which work, and the world slips into monetary chaos and barbarism and a multitude of narrow, nationalistic restrictions, harmful to all alike. Where are the wise and unselfish men who know the answers, and seek the common welfare? There are none. EVANGELISTIC CAMPAIGN. Last month 150 denominations (from Catholics to Canada Bible League) opened a yr.-long evangelical campaign "Key 73." to "Call our continent to Christ." Its goal is to "Give every person in US & Canada a real chance to say yes to Jesus, & to become a dependable member of his church." The Jews fear its possible consequences. In the days when evangelical Christianity & US nationalism were considered synonymous, Jews were second-class citizens. Jews were barred in some states from voting or holding office well into 19th century. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: Jews are becoming very touchy concerning "Christian" proselyting. They are even considering banning it by law in Israel. One can hardly blame them, considering their 20 centuries' experience of "Christian" persecution and discrimination, and the repugnant polytheistic "Trinity" theory that "Christians" press on them. But all this can only intensify the shock and mourning they will go through when they finally are forced to recognize their rejected and crucified Messiah—returned to them in the flesh. 1973 Berean 125 WORLD BOOM IN ARMS SALES: surging to record levels; no end in sight—double 10 yrs. ago. Likely to double again by '80. A fiercely competitive business between US, Russia, France & Britain. Nations sinking more & more of national incomes into war materials. In 71.120 nations spent $216 billion on defense—up 82 pet. since '60. In same period, men under arms rose from 19 to 23 million. Warplanes are % of arms business. Since '55, US sold $17V2 billion; gave away $36 billion. Russia is biggest supplier to developing countries; since '55 they've provided $22 billion worth. Arms market growing fastest in Mideast. Italy & France are selling arms to Libya. Israel has a $500 million credit for arms with US. Britain in $236 million deal with Egypt. Iran & Saudi Arabia are largest immediate markets; both building forces rapidly. With end of Viet War, many sophisticated weapons developed for that war by US will be available to buyers around world. While world leaders talk of "generation of peace," world goes right on buying & selling weapons at record rate. (USN 1:22) NOTE: Even worldly observers can see the sad contradiction between the peace talk and the war preparations. But both are essential as vital prophetic signs of the last days. And "the arms market is growing fastest in the MIDEAST." _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ ^ ^ RISING COST OF AIR PIRACY. Next week, tough new federal regulations to guard against skyjacking take effect. Each airline will have to search every package & bag carried on to an airplane. The lines must equip all boarding areas with electronic metal-detecting devices. Airports must hire 4000 armed guards for all boarding areas. Cost will be $46 million a yr. to airports & $300 million a yr. to airlines. This is more than whole industry's yearly profits. (Tm 1:1) NOTE: Another huge useless burden and restriction on society because of man's wickedness, with which man is unable to cope. All this will be different in Christ's Kingdom: "They shall not hurt nor destroy in all My holy mountain: for the earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as the waters cover the sea" (Isa. 11:9). The prophecies gain more and more force as the conditions among men increase which the Kingdom is to abolish. CRIME INGHETTOS. Crimes like drug peddling, prostitution & gambling are major moneymaking activities in ghettos. Turnover from these & other rackets is $5 billion a year. In 70, Black population of Brooklyn's BedfordStuyvesant area spent $88 million in drugs & gambling—$11 million more than it collected in Welfare. The numbers operation there had annual payroll of $15 million, making it biggest private employer in area. Today the figures are much higher. Ghetto criminals buy up legitimate businesses, suck them dry, then take tax losses when they fail. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: Let us ever remember these sobering things as we see the gaudy, tinseled, luxury-mad, Disneyland charade of the upper surface of US society. . WARS & RUMORS OF WARS. Ever since Japan attacked Pearl Harbor in '41, US has been caught up in throes of world's convulsions—civil wars, rebellions, & full-scale wars. Since '41, US at peace only 3 yrs., with none of its military forces involved in foreign conflicts. US forces have intervened in past 32 yrs. in nearly every corner of the globe—Europe, Africa, Mideast, Asia & S. America (USN 2:12) NOTE: Only 3 years of "peace" for US in past 32! And yet man dares to make the ridiculous claim of civilization and maturity and dedication to the rule of law and not the savage bludgeon rule of "Might is right." Modern man looks back with condescending pity and disdain on all previous generations of lesser "civilization" and "development," but :;hat generation was ever as barbarous as this one? 1973 Berean 126 DETROIT'S SCHOOLS HEAD FOR DISASTER. Across US, crises over money & schoolroom violence threaten to overwhelm city schools. In NY & LA, assaults on teachers & students at alltime high. All these problems, & more, are reflected in Detroit, 4th largest in US. School system close to collapse: may be forced to close Mar. 15. New school construction halted; existing schools seriously overcrowded. Cass Tech, built in '17 for 2500 students, has 4800. For lack of a studyhall, students spend free periods lounging in graffiti-smeared corridors, whiting away time pitching pennies. Yet Cass is one of Detroit's elite schools, housing city's top students in music, science & arts. Broken equipment often not repaired: nonessential maintenance, as painting, has been deferred for 2 years. Intruders, some armed with knives or revolvers, find it easy to roam buildings, selling drugs, shaking down students for money, or snatching teachers' purses. When one principal chained the doors to keep out intruders, he was fined $100 for violating fire laws. Children graduate from high school who can barely spell their own names. Many teachers simply walk thru their jobs. Problem pupils are passed to get them out of school quickly as possible regardless of achievement. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: Education is the country's only hope for a stable and peaceful society—not only mental education, but moral. But schools in US's big cities are becoming no more than battlegrounds and jungles of passion and violence, and those most affected are underprivileged Blacks. A terrible, violent, lawless, unrestrained generation is rising, and a terrible harvest looms ahead. ^___«««—i—__—... RENEWAL OF A VICIOUS WAR. After 4 yrs. & over 700 deaths, N. Ireland seemed, for few weeks, to be calming at last. But then terrorism broke out more savagely than ever. Once again it seems drifting to civil war, its population caught helplessly between 2 bands of extremists murdering in name of religion. Last wk., Protestant gunmen fired indiscriminately on a funeral procession of several 100 Catholics. Same afternoon, a Convent & a Catholic school for handicapped children were attacked by mobs hurling stones, bricks & bottles. A Catholic church was ransacked. Three Catholic families were fire-bombed from their homes. A militant Protestant leader claimed day's "success" had been spoiled by British Army. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: The more we read of Northern Ireland, where our own gentle and "enlightened'* Anglo-Saxon kin is making—on the vile pretext of religious grounds—such a dreadful mockery of man's claim to decency and "humanity," the more we are impressed with the Scriptures' revelation of unrestrained human nature as fundamentally vile. Suppose ye that these wanton, ruthless murderers of children are sinners above all mankind? Not at all. N. Ireland but manifests the reality of human depravity when circumstances inflame it and turn it loose to run its full course unchecked. BLACK OPPRESSION IN S. AFRICA. Last wk., a series of strikes crippled Durban. Among the 50,000 Black strikers were 16,000 municipal employees. White authorities feared the Durban strikes would spread to the vital minefields, where average White workers earns $475 a month & average Black $30. In Parliament, the opposition party described wide gap between Black & White wages "a source of shame." (Tm 2:19) NOTE: The benighted Europe-centered White man looks upon himself as something special, entitled to all luxury and power, while the Black & Asian humbly serve his whims and recognize their "place" of inferiority. What ignorance! What seeds of future cataclysm! The "White" man is a latecomer, an upstart, and a precariously small minority in a fastchanging world. The first great empires of Sumeria and Egypt were Hamitic, of the Negroid race. For millenniums Hamitic Egypt dominated the world in learning, science and engineering. 1973 eerean 127 LIQUID GOLD. With US oil demand spiraling upward, & with bulk of nonCommunist reserves lying under Arab soil, the potential clout of Arab oil nations is nothing short of awesome. By '80, US will be dependent on Mideast for 55 pet. of its oil imports; Europe & Japan for 80 pet. of theirs. Such a lock on the market will flood Arab states with cash. Saudi Arabia alone will have $30 billion in gold & hard currency by '83. (In contract, US today has only $13 billion in monetary reserves). For immediate future, the fulcrum of Mideast oil leverage will lie in Iran (Persia), & in Saudi Arabia. Saudi Arabia's proven reserves are 30 pet. of world's total. At present, U.S.-S.A. relations more than cordial. (Nwk 2:19) NOTE: The Moslem oil nations are gradually tightening a grip— economic, financial and political—on the Western world. Russia's interest in this developing picture is very obvious. They are intensely wooing these nations. Their growing alliance is natural and almost inevitable. We have EzekieVs VERY significant prophecy that Persia and Libya—2 of the 4 biggest oil producers—MUST be active allies of Russia when she comes like a cloud. Few prophecies are so specific as to name and identity. ISRAEL'S STAND. Israel firmly believes that only its military might & toughness in negotiations have kept Mideast peaceful for almost 3 yrs. in absence of a formal treaty. Mrs. Mier says, "I can't imagine any Israeli so mad as to give up Golan Heights. Sharm el Sheikh is of absolutely no value to Egypt except to block Israeli shipping: but for us it's a lifeline to Africa & Asia." As for Jerusalem, she says, "Arab sovereignty in Jerusalem just cannot be. It will NOT BE DIVIDED! The only way we will lose Jerusalem is is we lose a war, & then we lose it all." (Tm2:19) NOTE: Israel's stand is the only intelligent one. Their annexations have given them a great advantage, and a measure of safety. Before, all their vital areas were under the muzzles of a tight ring of enemy guns. They know that in the ultimate issue they can trust no nation and no agreement. US will support them as long as it believes it suits US interests; and God has caused US to believe it is. But look at the treatment and betrayal they experienced in 1939-1948 from their one-time "friend" Britain. And they trusted US when Eisenhower promised them a guaranteed open Suez and Tiran Straits if they would withdraw from their '56 victory. It did not suit US to honor that promise. So how can they withdraw now? But their adamant stand puts them in direct defiance and opposition to the almost unanimous mandate of UN to make themselves defenseless and give everything back to the Arabs who want to destroy them. The clear prophetic picture is "all nations against Jerusalem" (except the Tarshish ally). How beautifully it is all developing! FAREWELL TO DEMOCRACY. Bidding a disparaging farewell to democracy, Marcos last wk. formally ended Philippines' 26-yr. US-style Govt. In a nationwide broadcast, he announced a new Constitution that gives him dictatorial powers for as long as he chooses. Even as he announced the new Constitution, he declared one of its key provisions—immediate convening of an interim National Assembly—null & void. Marcos alone will act as President, Premier & Parliament. (Tm 1:29) NOTE: "Democracy"—an idealized conception of all the people having a say to select a just and competent and unselfish government—once seemed to be the "wave of the future," and bro. Thomas' pessimism on this score seemed crabbed and out-of-date. But the corruption and inefficiency and terrible expense of "democracy" are luxuries few nations can afford. Again we are impressed that the ONLY solution to man's woes is the Kingdom of Christ. "Democracy" is a pitiful shambles, and "Communism" is a cruel sham, and the bitter and practical reality of Dictatorship which actually rules most of the earth is a hopeless nightmare of bondage to the worst elements of the flesh. Financially, the Berean is covered thru the June issue. 1973 Berean 128 US-EUROPE STORM WARNINGS. For past y4 century, every US Pres. has supported concept of unified W. Europe. But of late, magic has gone out of vision of transatlantic partnership. Comforting notion that US, Canada & W. Europe are locked in common cause & mutual dependence no longer automatically accepted. Instead, a widening chasm of anxiety, doubt & distrust, as each side scrambles to press its own special interests. New abrasive relation between US & Europe could lead to economic & political confrontation—with grave implications for survival of Western Alliance. A new atmosphere of East-West detente has greatly diminished Europe's fears of Russia & its intentions. A tariff wall around Europe is bad enough, in US view, but even more worrisome are Common Mkt. efforts to extend preferential trade agreements around world. If permitted to go unchallenged, Europe could create a global trade system that effectively fences out all competition from US. Last yr., US trade deficit hit $6.4 billion, & for first time US trade balance with Europe was in red. (Nwk 2:12) NOTE: A significant change in US-Europe relations, and one that fits perfectly into the prophetic picture of Tarshish-Europe estrangement and Europe-Russia alliance. ZAMBEZI NEW BATTLEFRONT? Escalating guerrilla activities could lead to full-scale conflict between Black & White Africa along line of Zambezi River. There's a sudden improvement in weapons & tactics employed by insurgents. They're winning support among local populations. "In old days," said a Rhodesian official,·4'our own Blacks in tribal areas were about 100 pet. loyal. Now things are different." With Viet War's end, world attention will be focused on African conflict as only war still in business outside of N. Ireland—& this will incite Black Africa to mount increasingly intensive military operations against Whitecontrolled areas. (Nwk 2:5) NOTE: Over 200 million oppressed or recently-liberated Blacks against less than 10 million Whites, and Russia in the background. Another explosive modern legacy of the Tower of Babel. The battlelines are hardening. How long can the explosion be postponed? BLACKBOARD BATTLEGROUNDS. Security in schools is No. 1 education problem today. Armed robberies, assaults & purse-snatchings occur with depressing regularity in many city schools. A L. A. principal said, "For teachers & students alike, issue is no longer learning but survival." His own school is known as "Fort Crenshaw" because of its armed guards & Draconian security measures. Especially alarming aspect is growing number of violent assaults on teachers: NY had 541 in 72, double '71; Detroit averages 25 a month. Gang fights frequently spill over into school buildings. Vandalism alone costs schools $200 million a year. In NY's Bronx, a youngster was nearly stomped to death recently. Increasingly, students carry knives & guns. At a Los Angeles high school, a 17yr.-old armed with a gun & knife demanded money from a 16-yr.-old. The victim drew his own gun & shot the extortionist dead. (Tm 2:19) NOTE: It is hard for us to realize the dreadful and increasingly hopeless conditions of violence and destruction that exists in US's big city schools. They are increasingly becoming—not facilities of learning and training—but breeding grounds of crime, violence and immorality. Personal testimony and experience corroborates these official reports. Those who know God's Word know that this is a necessary part of the evil of the last days, but what can those think who are ignorant of God's purposes, and whose only hope is in evil man himself? Their only recourse is to blind, sense-drowning "pleasure" seeking—"Let us eat, drink, and be merry." And that's what's happening. THE POPE & ISRAEL. Pope has never been willing to recognize Israel, partly for fear of offending Arabs; partly because of objections to Israeli control of Christian sites in Holy Land. Three yrs. ago, a Vatican committee drafted plan for improving Christian-Jewish relations. Pope has never seen fit to release the document—probably never will. Pope has stalled before on subject of Jews. In '38, Pope commissioned an encyclical attacking anti-Semitism; it was never published. After Golda Meir's recent visit, Pope issued a surprisingly harsh statement (Nwk 2:5) NOTE: This brings into clear focus the age-old Rome-Zion controversy, soon to be settled by Christ to the annihilation of Rome and the eternal glory of Zion. The nations of the earth must gather under Rome's standard, and come against Jerusalem to battle. POLLUTION IN "PARADISE." As in other industrial nations, cost to Russia's ecology has been very great. For yrs. Russia maintained a news blackout about the relentless exploitation of its natural resources. Now blackout is lifting. Reporters & scientists have recently been allowed to describe & criticize Mother Russia's sins against Mother Nature, presumably because environmental troubles now too serious to hide. Extent of damage seems to horrify Soviet reporters. A mine was described as so destructive that "to restore fertility would need 50,000 years." A stripmine manager said, "We are waging an insane war with the earth." Even in a nation with 30 pet. of world's timber, overcutting means that "the exhaustion of forests reaches farther north every year." Results: Erosion is intensifying, river levels falling, & climate changing for worse. Fifty years of headlong industrial development have left Russia with a gigantic cleanup problem. (Tm 1:29) NOTE: It is very interesting to see the common pollution problem suddenly surfacing as a crisis in Russia, the self-proclaimed model paradise that is destined to fill all the earth and cure all its ills. Poor, bumbling man— with all his so-great pretensions! PORTENTS OF FAMINE. Millions of Asians faced with specter of famine. In India, fall grain harvest 60 pet. below normal; 200 million people affected. In China, drought threatens worst food shortage in years. Things will grow worse. Near-riot conditions in many India towns. (Nwk 12:25) NOTE. How true our hymn, "The famished crave in vain their fill, while teems the fruitful earth." 3 million US farmers can feed over 200 million Americans, and have vast surpluses to sell abroad, and have to keep cutting back on acreage planted to keep up prices—while at the same time much of the earth verges on starvation because of man's greed, selfishness and oppression. More food is wasted in US than would feed most countries. How sorely Christ is needed to suppress all evil and greed, and to put this tortured, twisted, upsidedown world right! GOLDA MEETS POPE. Pope clearly worried that meeting would be interpreted by Arabs as pro-Israel. In a deliberately frosty statement, Vatican spokesman stressed that meeting was "not a preferential gesture & did not imply any change in Pope's attitude on Holy Land." Mrs. Meir said to Pope: "Do you know the very first memory in my life? A pogrom in Kiev." She said later she "felt that I was speaking to the man of the cross, who heads the church under which Jews were killed for generations. I could not escape this feeling." (Nwk 1:29) ο NOTE: Why did Mrs. Mier want to meet Israel's arch-foe the Pope? Surely she had no hope of any good coming from it! Her own words make it clear she felt she was in the presence of a deadly and implacable enemy of her people. But as an event of divine significance to dramatize on the world stage the Rome-Zion controversy, no event could be more striking. $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO. 5 MAY, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscnptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edit·* and Published by: G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"~—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS Bible Question and April Answers Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: The Greatest of These Is Love 129 HE POURED HIS VIAL INTO THE AIR (Bro. Thomas) SECOND VOYAGE TO AUSTRALIA (Bro. Roberts) Part 29 CONTINUALLY PRAISING AND BLESSING GOD WRITTEN FOR OUR INSTRUCTION CURRENT EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY 132 136 141 146 155 We ore anxious to send Hie Berean FREE to ony desiring it that way. Please do net hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Bible Questions WHAT CHAPTER BEGINS . . . Write number from List 1 beside answer in List 2 LIST ONE — QUESTIONS %& My heart is inditing /. God Who Jt«r. The words of the 3^. The beginning of the Χ Ο foolish l#. How doth the city C Comfort ye M. Who hath believed ^rf: Again there was a day Jt. The former # . And Hannah prayed 3& From whence come wars jf. The Lord is # . Forasmuch as many 30. Therefore leaving the β. Who is this 28\ Blessed is the man #f. The burden of Nineveh 'Ψ, Adam, Sheth )A. I am the true Vine af. Behold, I will send My - # Now faith is 2X. The Lord said unto 42. ^nd there was given ΪΆ& X Go to now, ye jie: Praise ye the Lord #ί. And ISaul, yet breathing 10. The vision of aff. There was a man in 44. Therefore thou art inexΗ. Lord Thou hast 2». Why do the heathen ^ And seeing the multitudes JZ. My God, my God ^ Then was Jesus led 46. And I stood upon the sand >£f. Though I speak 30. Let brotherly love 47^And the 5th angel sounded ] # And I saw a new 31. Behold what manner φζΚηά there appeared a great yg. Now the serpent 3Sf. Then 14 years after & The book of the generation ψ. Dare any of you j&. The heavens declare yg. Now king David was old }/. In the beginning ^4. Now after the death 1 Chr. 1 LIST TWO — ANSWERS 1 Jn. 3 Obad. Lam. l Gen. 3 Matt. 1 Psa. 23 Isa. 40 Job 1 Gal. 3 Λ . Jam. 4 Acts 9 Rev. 21 Heb. 13 Psa. 90 Job 2 Nah. 1 Jam. 5 1 Sm. 2 Isa. 63 Rev. 12 1 Kgs. l 1 Cor. 6 Heb. 1 Psa. 2 Heb. 6 Psa. 45 Heb. 11 Matt. 5 Psa. 1 Mai. 3 Luke 1 Josh. 1 Psa. 19 John 15 Psa. 110 Gal. 2 Rev. 9 John 1/? Rev. 11 Rev. 13 l' Isa. 53 1 Cor. 13 Acts 1 Rom. 2 Mark 1 Eccl. 1 Matt. 4 Psa. 22 Psa. 150 A p r i l A n s w e r s OTHER NAMES 1. Luz—Bethel 2. Mark—John 3. Saul—Paul 4. Esau—Edom 5. Sela—Petra 6. Mary—Magdalene 7. Peter—Cephas 8. Judas—Iscariot 9. Herod—Agrippa 10. James—Boanerges 11. Simon—Zelotes 12. Jebus—Jerusalem 13. Javan—Greece 14. Lalsh—Dan 15. Horeb—Sinai 16. Israel—Jacob 17. Benoni—Benjamin 18. Sirion—Hermon 19. Uzziah—Azariah 20. Thebes—No-amon 21. Didymus—Thomas 22. Tabitha—Dorcas 23. Pontius—Pilate 24. Sergius—Paulus 25. Porcius—Festus 26. Azariah—Abednego 27. Mishael—Meshach 28. Matthew—Levi 29. Lebbeus—Thaddeus 30. Eliakim—Jehoiakim 31. Calvary—Golgotha 32. Chittim—Cyprus 33. Memphis—Noph 34. Palymra—Tadmor 35. 36. 37. 38. 39. 40. 41. 42. 43. 44. 45. 46. 47. 48. 49. 50. Jedidiah—Solomon Barjesus— Elymas Barnabas—Joses Barsabas—Justus Apollyon—Abaddon Claudius—Lysias Jerubbaal—Gideon Mattaniah—Zedekiah Gennesaret—Chinnereth Κirjatharba—Hebron Belteshazzar—Daniel Kirjathsepher—Debir Jegarsahadutha—Galeed Tiglathpileser— Pul Zaphnathpaaneah—Joseph Hananiah—Shadrach CAMBODIA'S CAPITAL UNDER SIEGE. Night after night, 100s of B-52s & fighter-bombers from Guam & Thailand drop their enormous loads; 3000 tons every 24 hrs. The intensive bombing campaign is measure of US concern for survival of pro-US Cambodia Govt. If Cambodia falls to Reds, they can bring in military supplies by sea, greatly reducing reliance on Ho Chi Minn Trail, & building immense military pressure on S. Vietnam. (Tm 4:16) NOTE: Cambodia's situation seems hopeless, especially with the handcuffs Congress has now put on Nixon to stop the bombing. The Greatest of These Is Love "My little children, let us not love in word, neither in tongue; butin deed and in truthft—Uohn 3:18 IN the first chapter of his second letter, Peter speaks of our precious faith, and to show that faith alone is incomplete, we must add virtue, knowledge, temperance, patience, godliness, brotherly kindness and, finally, love. In v. 8, he tells us the reason for these additions to our faith: "For if these things be in you, and ABOUND, they make you that ye shall neither be barren nor unfruitful in the knowledge of our Lord Jesus Christ. In v. 9, he brings out a sharp contrast— "But he that lacketh these things is blind, and cannot see afar off, and hath forgotten that he was purged from his old sins.*' It should be carefully noted that Peter is not writing to unbelievers, but to those who have come into covenant relationship with the Lord Jesus by their belief and obedience of the Gospel. This shows us the stern necessity of being on the alert daily because of the dangers that lie in the path of those who are endeavoring to walk in that newness of life to which the Gospel has introduced us. One of the grave dangers we face is one that some have developed: a narrow conception of our responsibilities to one another as brethren of Christ. They do this by selecting one particular portion of Scripture, and let it become the guiding principle of their lives to the exclusion of other parts that are equally important, and, in many cases, are of far greater determinative value with respect to pur eternal welfare. That is particularly true about love. When a certain lawyer asked Jesus— "Which is the greatest commandment JeSUS replied— in the Law?" 1973 Berean 129 "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind. This is the first and great commandment." This shows us that love, in the true scriptural sense, is not a gushing sentimentalism, as the world looks upon it, but a clear, precise and careful adherence to specific divine instructions, based upon a fervent zeal, and affection of God, and His beloved Son Jesus. There are two sources, in particular, in the Bible to which we can turn for explicit instructions on this elevated subject. These are 1 Cor. 13 and John's first epistle. In 1 Cor. 13:3, Paul says— "Though I bestow all my goods to feed the poor, and though I give my body to be burned, and have not love, itprofiteth me nothing." In the world, giving to the poor is considered as a high type of Jove, but Paul dispels the idea that it is any substitute for a character of holy, divine love. The point he makes is, we cannot buy salvation by giving to those in need. Our giving must be based upon and rooted in enlightened scriptural love to be efficacious and acceptable to our heavenly Father. In v. 2, Paul shows the folly of great education without love. We should note carefully the qualifications he specifies— "Though "Though "Though "Though I I I I have the gift of prophecy. understand all mysteries. understand all knowledge. have all faith/' Now note the magnitude of the faith he speaks of—a faith so great that he could remove mountains. With all these, says Paul, still— "Without love I am NOTHING." Where do we stand in relation to Paul? We do not have the gift of prophecy; we do not understand all mysteries; our knowledge is puny compared to that of Paul; our faith is insignificant; and so is our love. Therefore we have nothing to boast about, nor to glory in over others. v 4. (<Love suffereth long and is hind» That is, it has great patience and sympathy and fellowfeeling with others, and endures many things. Is our love kind? "Love envieth not." It does not worry about what other people have. It rejoices to see them have it, though itself may lack. "Love is not puffed up." It does not become conceited, and full of foolish pride, and satisfied with itself, and disdainful of others. Does ours? V. 5: Doth not behave itself unseemly." It has no place for outburst of temper, or rudeness, or irritableness. It is always gentle and courteous. "Seeketh not her own." —her own desires, or rights, or honor; her own anything. Love is not concerned with self at all, except to be holy and to rejoice in God. "Is not easily provoked, and thinketh no evil." Where do we stand in relation to these NECESSARY things? V. 7: "Love believeth all things." Infinite capacity for belief of ultimate good is a thing of great power and beauty. Faith sees the best, and sees to the end. "Endureth all things." Stands firm and unmoved in the Truth. Holds to the old landmarks. Builds on the old foundation. Does not get tossed around with every wind of doctrine, by the sleight of men whereby they lie in Wait tO deceive. 1973 Berean 130 V. 11: "When I was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a child: but when I became a man, I put away childish things." Have we imitated Paul, or do we still cling to childish things? There is much that is childish and immature and foolish in the world, and in all of our hearts. Are we constantly searching them to put it all away, and to grow up to the perfect, mature man in Christ Jesus, our hearts filled with spiritual things? There is much more in this chapter, but let us look briefly into John's first letter. His words throughout are beautiful and sublime; pure and holy and spiritual. If we could lift up our minds to continually live in their atmosphere, we would be indeed new creatures! "Behold, what manner of love the Father hath bestowed upon us, that we should be called the sons of God"—1 John 3:1. What greater honor could we have? But, at the same time, what a great responsibility rests upon us! Does our manner of life reflect the nature of our calling? "This is the message (or commandment) that ye heard from the beginning, that we should love one another"—1 John 3:11. That takes us back to the day before the crucifixion, when Jesus said to his disciples— "A new commandment I give unto you, that ye love one another; as I have loved you, that ye also love one another. "By this shall all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to another"—John 13:34-35. Dare we ask ourselves if we measure up to that high standard? Loving our brethren is not just something desirable; it is something that is absolutely essential. John repeats this over and over again. "There is no fear in love; but perfect love casteth out fear: because fear hath torment. He that feareth is not made perfect in love" Surely, there is no more beautiful statement in the Bible. Jesus referred to the last days saying, "all men's hearts failing them for fear." The two greatest powers on earth live constantly in mortal fear of each other. Even though we are not of the world, yet we are in it, and these things affect us before we realize it, and we too become fearful. We should therefore pray daily for strength and increased faith and deepest, purer love, so that we will be able to cast out fear. The Spirit's teaching on love should be presented to our minds over and over again, so that we will not lose sight of it. When one adds something to what they already have, it becomes an increase. If we can add to what we already have in faith, hope and love the result will be— "That Christ may dwell in your hearts by faith; that ye, being rooted and grounded in love, "May be able to comprehend with all saints what is the breadth, and length, and depth, and height; "And to know the love of Christ, which passeth knowledge, that ye might be filled with all the fulness ofGod"—Eph. 3:17-19. Editor Please notify us promptly of address changes. 73 Berean 131 He Poured His Vial Into the Air "And the Seventh Angel poured out his Vial into the Air: and there came forth a great Voice from the Nave of the heaven, from the Throne, saying IT IS DONE! "—Rev. 16:17 BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS THE Seventh Vial is the concluding period of the Seventh Seal, and of the Seventh Trumpet, In other words, the Vial, Trumpet, and Seal all terminate at the same time.The Seventh Seal began with: "Silence in the heaven about the space of half an hour/' (8:1). —AD 323. The Seventh Trumpet (which is called in 1 Cor. 15:52, "the last trump*') began to sound with the issue of the Great Voice, AD 1790. But when, or at what date, the Seventh and last Vial shall begin to pour out its wrath, I am unable to say. This however may be assuredly affirmed: that it will not begin until after the resurrection period, or "time of the dead"; the capture of Jerusalem by Gog's forces; and its recovery by YAHWEH ELOHIM, the "Great King." The casting out of the enemy from Jerusalem is followed by the establishment of the Nave, or Most Holy, and the Throne of David, therein. This must precede the outpouring of the wrath into the Air, because "a Great Voice" goes forth from the Nave-Throne, saying, "IT IS DONE," which could not be if the Throne had not already been set up. The crowning events of the Sixth Vial put the Lamb with the 144,000 in possession of the Holy City. Their throne is the "Great White Throne" of the Yahweh Name, "from whose face, the earth and the heaven"—by the judgments of the Seventh Vial—will be caused to "flee away." For when the White Throne receives its full dominion, noplace or room "will be found for them" (Rv. 20:11; Jr. 3:17). The Gentile "heaven and earth" will be made to give place to the "New Heavens and New Earth" in which Jerusalem will be a rejoicing, and her people a joy (Isa. 65:17). The Seventh Angel is the ETERNAL SPIRIT clothed with the white linen and golden-girdled company of "Splendid Ones," Jesus and his Brethren, who—though incorruptible and deathless—do not let themselves out in their brightness, until they have accomplished the work of this Seventh Vial upon the "Air." I am led to affirm this upon the authority of the Spirit of Christ in Zee. 14:5-7, as follows in the original— 1973 Berean 132 "And Yahweh my Elohim shall come in; all the Saints with Thee. "And it shall be in that day there shall be no brightness, the Splendid Ones drawing in. "And it shall be one day that shall be known to Yahweh, neither day nor night. But it shall be at the time of evening there shall be brightness." At the "Time of evening," the Day of Glory begins. When the judgments of the Seventh Vial are all exhausted, the time of evening will have come. All the— "Smoke from the glory of the Deity, and from His power." —will have cleared away. And then the Saints, who have been executing the "judgment written," will rest from the labors of the war of the great and terrible day, and no longer drawing themselves in, will (Mt. 13:43)— "Shine forth as the Sun in the Kingdom of their Father" Or, as Daniel expresses it (12:3)— "As the brightness of the firmament, and as the stars for the Olahm and beyond." The judgments of the Seventh Vial are all in the future. They are the voices uttered by the Seven Thunders, which succeed the lionroar of the Rainbowed Angel (Rv. 10:3-4), and which issue from the Throne (Rv. 4:5). John was commanded not to write their utterances, but to seal them up. Apocalyptically, thunders are significant of wars. Hence 7 thunders are 7 wars, which collectively make up— "The War of that Great Day of the Omnipotent Deity." The details of the Seven Thunders are not given, but the general results are specified in the prophecy of the Seventh Vial. The ecclesiastical and secular constitution of Antichristendom is the obnoxious subject of divine vengeance. The Powers-that-be having answered the purpose of their permitted existence, the time has arrived under this vial for their abolition. This can only be accomplished by divine power. Hence the War of the Deity, by which Babylon the Great (the ecclesiastical constitution of the world), and the "Cities of the Nations" (the "islands" and the "mountains," or kingdoms, empires, and states of all sorts) are transferred to the Saints, so that the wicked who now sit in the heavenlies are hurled from their thrones and sent empty away (Lk. 1:51-53). % * ^ 1973 Berean 133 "He poured out his Vial into the Air"—v. 17. The Air is the political firmament, or heaven, of the world. That "air" and "heaven" are regarded as synonymous appears from Mt. 13:32, which speaks of the "birds of the air" as equivalent for what both Matthew and Luke style the "birds—or fowls—of the heaven." But better authority than James' Version informs us that the "firmament" between the clouds and the earth's waters—which is the air or atmosphere—Elohim called "Heaven" (Gn. 1:6-8). When we look into this expanse, we see the sun, moon, stars, and constellations, which—though far beyond it—appear to be in the air, or heaven. Now, the political world has its air as well as the natural. Like the natural, the political "air," or firmament, "divides the waters," or people who rule, "from the waters," or people ruled. And whatever constitutes this division is the "Air" or Heaven. If there were no air in the natural world, there would be no clouds, or "waters above the firmament," but simply "darkness upon the face of the deep"—all waters would be commingled without order or distinction. Such would also be the case in the political world, if there were no political Air or Aerial. This Air divides the ruling class from the common people or "waters"—called also the "sea," and sometimes the "earth." The Air, or Heaven, is therefore that which divides; or in modern phrase, the constitution or constituted order of things among the nations. When the Saracens made their irruption into the Dragon, or Greco-Roman-Constantinopolitan Empire in the 7th century, the "Sun and the Air were darkened" (Rv. 9:2) in all the countries they subdued. In other words, the political authority and constitution which placed them in subjection to the Byzantine Dynasty in Constantinople were eclipsed; as also the kingdom of the Beast was "darkened" by the judgments of the Fifth Vial (Rv. 16:10), but which afterwards became light again when the darkening power passed away. Paul refers to the Air or Heaven of the Gentile world, or constitution of things, in Eph. 2:2, where he says— "Ye who were dead in trespasses and in sins, in time past walked according to the aion of this kosmos.." —or course of this order of things— ".. according to the chief of the authority of the Air, (which is) the Spirit which now worketh in the children of disobedience." The spirit that works in the disobedient is the spirit of the flesh, or King Sin. He is chief, ruler, or prince, of "the authority of the Air." The constituted authority of an empire, kingdom, or republic, is "the authority of the Air" in those several dominions or states. The Powers-that-be are the Sin-Powers of the Air, styled by the apostle: "Principalities and authorities, world-rulers of the darkness of the course of things (aion), the spirituals of wickedness in the heavenlies" (Eph. 6:12). These all belong to the "authority of the Air." The spirituals of the wickedness in his day were the civil, or secular, and the ecclesiastical, world-rulers, who were either Jewish or pagan. But in our day they are emperors, kings, magistrates, popes, priests, and parsons, called "the clergy," of all orders and degrees of imposture and blasphemy, pretending to be Christian. 1973 Berean 134 These spirituals of wickedness all, as the demons, foul spirits, and unclean and hateful birds (Rv. 18:2), are the ephemera which roost in the branches of the widespreading upas which poisons the air of the Great City in which it grows. This Air of the Seventh Vial is the Air or Heaven of Daniel's Four Beasts, or dominions. In Dan. 7:27 it is styled "kol shemayah" (all the heavens) under which the kingdom, dominion, and greatness exist, which are to be given to the chosen people of the saints. The Air of this vial comprehends all these heavens or aerials. It is the same air, or heaven, in which a door is opened, and a new throne established (Rv. 4:1-2). This door will be opened, and the throne set therein, when the Armageddon victory shall have cast out the enemy from Jerusalem, and have planted the Lamb and the 144,000 on Mt. Zion. The denouement of the Sixth Vial opens the door and sets up the throne. There is THEN a throne in the Air which the air of heaven does not contain at the present time. All other thrones will continue to exist in the Air contemporaneously with this new throne (which is the Throne of David restored) until they shall be all taken possession of by the Saints of the Most High, when (Rv. 11:15)— "The kingdoms of the world become our Lord's and His Christ's." The Air of this Seventh Vial is the "Heaven" of Rv. 20:11, which in consequence of the wrath poured out into it, u flies away" with the "earth" that stands related to it. Both earth and heaven, as now constituted in church, state, and general society, will all be broken up and abolished. And a New Air, or firmament, will be constituted in which will shine only the "Splendid Ones"—the Sun of Righteousness and the Kings of his Rising—who obtain— "The victory over the Beast, and over his Image, and over his Mark, and over the Number of his Name'* (Rv. 15:2). These will all meet together with the Lord "in the Air" (1 Th. 4:17), as the "New Heavens," styled also "the Heaven" in Rv. 18:20 which rejoices over Babylon in the disaster of her fall. This New Air, I remark again, is the Air in which, and for which, the chosen Saints are convened. Paul tells us in 1 Th. 4 that when "the time of the dead that they should be judged" arrives, the living Saints will not anticipate the dead. That is, they will not be gathered together into the presence of Christ before them. When Christ comes, the living will have to wait until the reproduction of the dead Saints is complete. Be the time of this reproduction long or short, the "how long" is not revealed. This however is certain, that— "The dead in Christ shall be restored (anastesontai) FIRST." He then tells us (v. 17) what is to happen next— "After that, we the living who remain, TOGETHER WITH THEM, shall be hurried away in clouds for a convention of the Lord in an Air, and so (in that Air) we shall be always with the Lord." 1973 eerean 135 Thus the dead are the subjects of "anastasis" or "restoration" to what they once were. And then, in company with their fellow earthborns in Christ of the generation contemporary with the great anastasis, they go to report themselves for better or worse at the Judgment Seat in Teman. All of them who are approved, or "accounted worthy to obtain that aion" (course of things, or Air) are "clothed with the house from heaven" (2 Cr. 5:2), and henceforth appointed to be with the Lord always in the Air. Second Voyage to Australia BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS "He giveth His beloved sleep"—Psalm 127:2 PART TWENTY-NINE JOURNEY RESUMES: SAILING TO SANDWICH ISLANDS (HAWAII) THE Alameda resumed her voyage at noon. We had some days fair sailing in a northerly direction towards the Sandwich Islands— our next place of call. It was now so hot that we had to dismiss underclothing, and ordinary upper garments during the day. And as for the night, there would be no blanket trade with such a temperature all over the world. However, time wore on, especially in my case, as I was fully occupied. SAT., SEP. 10: ASKED TO CONDUCT SUNDAY SERVICES On Saturday night, the question of Sunday came up for consideration. There was no clergyman on board, and I was asked if I would conduct a service or preach a sermon. I said there were reasons why I could not do so, but I might be able to give a lecture that would interest them. 4 On what subject? You know that we are all sorts here and you must not tread on anyone's toes." 1973 Berean 136 I said I could say something on prophecies that had been fulfilled. It was agreed that it should be so—young Mr. Strong acting the part Mr. Watson did on board the Oruba—making the arrangements, obtaining the captain's consent, pinning up a notice, etc. SUN., SEP. 11: A LECTURE ON PROPHECY, WELL RECEIVED Next day, at 10:30, one of the stewards, by the captain's orders, went around with the dinner gong, announcing the meeting. A considerable company same together in the music saloon. Mr. Strong rose and introduced me without any ceremony. I said there were many differing views about the Bible. Whatever the present company might think about it, they were bound to recognize that there was that about it which did not characterize any other book. It claimed to be a book of divine authority, employing the phrase "Thus saith the Lord God" at least 2,000 times; and asserting, as one of the proofs of this claim, a knowledge of futurity which man did not possess. The test of prophecy lay in fulfilment. The Bible was full of prophecy, and we were able to apply this test in a very extensive and thorough manner because of its prophecies covering so extensive a ground, and applying to matters that it was out of human power to foresee. There were prophecies in the Bible not as yet fulfilled. I did not propose to speak of them, but of those whose fulfilment was in the past, and which were notorious to every one having knowledge—from their knowledge of which they ought to be able to draw valuable conclusions concerning those parts of the prophetic word relating to the future. I then proceeded to speak of the Jews, of Babylon, of Egypt, of the four great empires and of Christ—reciting the facts and producing the prophecies. When I concluded, a number came forward and thanked me heartily, especially a public singer—I think of the name of Durward-Lely. He said he had nearly read through Christendom Astray, which the purser had lent him; and it certainly seemed to him to present the most reasonable view of religion he had ever met with. He hoped I would lecture again. The weather became rough and remained rough for several days—scattering the passengers to their berths. WED., SEP. 14: AT HAWAII (RECENTLY ANNEXED TO U.S.) On Wednesday we reached Hawaii, the chief of the Sandwich Islands. The crew of the vessel took special interest in this arrival, as Hawaii had been annexed to the United States since the last visit of the Alameda to Honolulu, the capital of Hawaii. But the people on shore made no demonstration, as another American steamer had been before the Alameda, and received the ovation which the Alameda expected. The possession of Hawaii will be of great value to the United States as a coaling station on these wide seas so far from her own coast—at least 2,000 miles. A coaling station in the Pacific had become important to her with the development of her naval power within the last 20 years; but now that she has become an Asiatic power with the conquest of the Philippines, it has become a matter of necessity. The annexation of territory outside the limits of the States is a departure from the policy hitherto recognized, but has been forced on her by the stress of circumstances. There is a greater stress at the door, under the pressure of which—surrender—not annexationwill be the new experience of the Stars and Stripes. All Gentile power on sea and land will be swept into Judah's lap. To Shiloh shall the gathering of the people be. 1973 eerean 137 We moored at a wharf in Honolulu about 3:30 a.m. In the harbor, there was a considerable assembly of shipping, including a U.S. battleship Philadelphia, anchored mid-stream. The formidable craft was naturally an object of much interest, at the present time, when the war between America and Spain is just over. An interesting incident occurred just before we left. An American troopship, the Scandia, sailed for Manila with some troops and treasure on board in succor of Admiral Dewey. As she passed the frowning battleship, the large crew of the latter broke out into loud roars of hearty cheering, to which the crew of the Scandia responded. The effect was quite thrilling. 8 HOURS AT HONOLULU: AN INSPECTION TOUR ASHORE The Alameda stayed about 8 hours at Honolulu, which gave the passengers ample time to go ashore. I made a tour of the streets, but did not enjoy it much, as I had a bad night the night before, through excessive motion of the vessel and oppressive heat. I visited the grounds of the palace, or the beautiful building which was the palace of Hawaii when the deposed queen reigned, but is now turned into administrative offices. The surroundings were as lovely as carefully trained tropical vegetation could make them. I exchanged not a single word with anyone, and returned after 4 hours ramble. As the time of departure grew near, the number of people on the wharf increased greatly, and they were quite an interesting study for a long time. Though there was a large sprinkling of natives, they were mostly European residents come to see friends off. Their gay attire was quite striking. They were mostly dressed in white, which of itself was very pretty, but besides, this, almost everyone was lavishly decked with garlands of brightest hues—yellow, red, green, of the loudest color. These garlands were thrown around their shoulders and twisted round their hats in the most lavish manner. I asked if the people always dressed like that. 1973 Berean 13s "Well, yes, pretty much; when they come to see their friends off. There were plenty of flowers and they used them freely." There was an hour of great and hearty bustle, as 40 new passengers and bands of friends trouped aboard and filled the decks and saloons. The general type was inferior as you came to look at them closely; and the Creole element predominated. How interesting the human race will be, when not only gaudy color, but grace and excellence bearing the closest inspection will characterise the populations everywhere, blessed with Abraham and his seed. LEAVING HONOLULU: AN INTERESTING CABIN-MATE We steamed out of Honolulu harbor about 5 o'clock in the evening. The ship was much livelier with the addition of over 40 new saloon passengers; but the rough water soon quieted things down. An unwelcome change was the addition of a clergyman, and also the intrusion of a companion into my sleeping cabin. The presence of the former blocked the way on Sunday for any further exhibition of the Truth. The addition of the latter put an end to the privacy which is desirable in travel. However, the latter disadvantage was compensated by the interest of my companion. I could not imagine when I first saw him who he could be. He was decked up in garlands on hat and coat like the rest of the people, and so were the friends who came to see him off. It seemed to me he might be a native of Hawaii, but I discovered at last that he was an educated Italian from San Francisco, where he practised dentistry. He had come from San Francisco, intending to go forward to Australia for the benefit of his health, but had been so upset by the voyage to Honolulu, that he resolved to go straight back by the first steamer—which happened to be the Alameda, on the very day of his arrival in the Moana. I found him very interesting company, though compelled to keep his bunk all the time. He had been thoroughly educated, as dentistry in the States requires, and was quite au fait in the scientific theories of the time. While recognizing these theories so far as they rested on demonstrations, he dissented from their dogmatic exclusion of the divine. He said the divine was the ultimate explanation of the evolution of all force. The life-cell might be the material of which all life was organized, but who made the life-cell? Molecular combinations might explain the differentiation of substances, but whence came the combinations? To speak of "force" explained nothing, but only blinded the eye. We had many interesting conversations, and at last got deeply into the Truth; I gave him a copy of Christendom Astray. Whether anything will come of it time will show. Though an Italian, he was a native of San Francisco, born of Italian parents, who emigrated from Genoa in the troublous times of 1849. THURS., SEP. 15: THE STEWARD IS CONVINCEDOF THE TRUTH On Thursday, Sept. 15,1 found a note pushed under my cabin door, signed by the captain's steward, saying that with surprise he had just discovered the author of Christendom Astray was on board, and he had read that book (though not under that name) 4 years ago, and was convinced it set forth the Truth, but had not followed it up for one or two reasons, as to which, he desired some conversation. I replied by note, and an interview came off in the saloon at a convenient hour two nights afterwards. I found him an earnest young man of about 30, who had taken to a steward's life for the benefit of his health, but found ship life unfavorable to spiritual wellbeing, and had resolved to give it up in due course and return to business in Sydney, to which he belonged. His people were Wesleyans, and strongly opposed to the Truth, but he felt sure it was right and was desirous of getting into the right association. We had a long and interesting conversation, which ended in my giving him a note of introduction to bro. Bell and bro. Jackson. 1973 eerean 139 About the same time, the bath steward asked me if I was not Mr. Roberts of the Christadelphians. He said he had met our people in South Africa and was impressed by the strength of their arguments. But for himself, he had been inclined to accept the Theosophic view, life seemed a great mystery, and it was a rather pleasing thought that we were passing through this evil state merely to gain experience. I replied in brief that a view might be pleasing, but not true. The great question should be, What is Truth? On such a matter as God's purpose with human life upon the earth, we could know nothing apart from information God might be pleased to communicate. He had communicated His mind freely. The record was in the Scriptures, and our only hope in the question lay in familiarity with them. The Theosophist and every other class started with a speculation with which the Bible was at war—to the effect that man was an immortal being and continued to live after he was dead. The Bible doctrine was that man was mortal because of sin and that hope lay through Christ by resurrection. I advised him to look into it. SUN., SEP. 18: THE LAST SUNDAY: CLERGY BLOCKS LECTURE Sunday, Sept. 18, was our last Sunday at sea. I would have been asked to lecture again, but a clergyman blocked the way morning and evening—not to the satisfaction of the passengers, who used very disrespectful, but not untrue words, in describing his sermonic performances. MONDAY, SEPTEMBER 19, 1898 Next day, the passengers were all bright and cheerful at the prospect of landing. Passed the Coptic, a large steamer outward bound from San Francisco for Honolulu and Hong Kong—the first vessel we have seen on the wide waste of waters for 3 weeks. When we left Auckland, we had a flock of sheep penned away on deck at the stern—in the very worst position—just over the screw and where there is the greatest heave of the vessel. I spoke to them frequently during the voyage. They werequietly responsive with ear and eye to the voice of sympathy. They thinned in number as the time wore on. Yesterday, they were all gone. I asked what had become of them. "We have eaten them," was the answer of a gentleman, who suggested early in the voyage that perhaps they had souls. In that case, I remarked, we are cannibals. He gave the kind of squirm that signifies a nonplussed state of the intellect. "GOD WILL REDEEM MY SOUL FROM THE POWER OF THE GRAVE" But on the serious side, I thought to myself, the men around us will all disappear as completely, though not in the same way. The very figure is used by the Spirit of God— 1973 Berean uo "Like sheep are they laid in the grave: death shall feed on them.** It may be retorted, "So will you." It might have been so said to David. What would have been his rejoinder?— "GOD WILL REDEEM MY SOUL FROM THE POWER OF THE GRAVE/* "THE UPRIGHT SHALL HAVE DOMINION OVER THEM IN THE MORNING!ft This is the end of bro. Roberts' account of his travels and labors. He died suddenly four days later in a hotel in San Francisco. His life was wholly devoted to just one purpose, and he labored fervently in that purpose right to the end. He had a very deep and balanced knowledge of the Truth and its spirit, far greater than any living today. He was undoubted a man raised up by God for a purpose—to lay a sound foundation. May we be given the wisdom to fully appreciate the value of his labors and writings, and to thankfully learn from them, and to follow his example. Continually Praising & Blessing God "Did not our heart burn within us, while he talked with us by the way, and while he opened to us the Scriptures?"—Lk. 24:32 LUKE CHAPTER TWENTY-FOUR WE are ever grateful and thankful to our Heavenly Father for providing us opportunity to reverently worship Him and to partake of the emblems in remembrance of the death, burial and resurrection of our beloved Savior "until he come." Christ's great ordeal of suffering, persecution and severe trial is now past. He has risen, having cast off the shackles of the grave, and is soon to appear in great glory, honor and power. Repeating the words of our beloved bro. Roberts: "How sweet is the calm of the bright and tranquil morning that comes after a night of tempest and suffering!" Christ surely did suffer; nevertheless, he patiently endured the cross, looking forward steadfastly to the joy set before him (Heb. 12) : "Looking unto Jesus, the Author and Finisher of our faith: who for the joy that was set before him endured the cross, despising the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of God. "For consider him that endured such contradiction of sinners against himself, lest ye be wearud and faint in your minds.'* "Despising," that is, looking upon it as a light thing, disregarding or paying no heed to the shame he had to endure. The bright and tranquil morning of resurrection will soon be experienced by the saints, raised to honor and glory after a night of tempest, suffering and death. The long period of Gentile night, full of sorrow, sighing and suffering, will then be passed. As it is written, "the former things are passed away." 1973 Berean 141 Let us consider the circumstances surrounding Christ's resurrection. Very early in the morning just before sunrise, a little company of women make their journey toward the tomb. They are very special and peculiar. Why? Because they are different from all other women around them. They were faithful to Christ in his lifetime, and were eager and attentive to hear every word which dropped from the Master's lips. They followed Jesus wherever he went before his death and resurrection. Remember the words, "Ye are a peculiar people, a chosen generation" is applicable to us too, brethren and sisters. Among this little company was Mary Magdalene and Joanna, whom we find in Luke 8:3 was the wife of Chuza, Herod's steward, and Mary the mother of James. Mark makes mention (16:1) of Salome being with the number, the same apparently being the mother of James and John, Zebedee's children. It would seem there were others with them (v.D— "Now upon the first day of the week, very early in the morning, they came unto the sepulchre, bringing the spices which they had prepared, and certain others with them.*' Verse 10— "It was Mary Magdalene, and Joanna, and Mary the mother of James, and other women that were with them, which told these things unto the apostles. This little band of women came prepared with spices and ointments to anoint the body of Jesus. They loved him even as he loved them. Never did they suspect what had happened. So they were bewildered and astonished to find the stone removed and the body of Jesus absent from the sepulchre. Their fear was increased when two men stood before them in shining garments (vs. 5-6)— "And as they were afraid, and bowed down their faces to the earth, they said unto them. "Why seek ye the living among the dead? He is not here, but is risen; remember how he spake unto you when he was yet in Galilee." This is the way he spoke to them while he was yet in Galilee— "From that time forth began Jesus to show unto his disciples, how that he must go unto Jerusalem, and suffer many things of the elders and chief priests and scribes and be killed, and be raised again the third day" (Mt. 16:21). Verse 8, the beginning of a great awakening— "AND THEY REMEMBERED HIS WORDS." So these few women returned to inform the apostles. Hearing these words, Peter and John had to see for themselves and hastened to the sepulchre. John 20:4— "So they ran both together; and the other disciple did outrun Peter and came first to the sepulchre." Here we catch a glimpse of the difference in these two men. John is apparently younger and more agile. 1973 Berear 142 At this point, Luke tells us (v. 13) that two of them walk to Emmaus (about 7 or 8 miles from Jerusalem). And now Jesus joins them, although their eyes were held that they should not know him. Just imagine the delightful feeling of Jesus, breaking in upon their conversation and knowing they were talking of him, and prepared to make himself known at the right moment. So he asks them, "Why are ye so sad? " To this they inquire if he is a stranger. He was by no means a stranger, yet they were not aware of this. Thus, they relate to him the things which had taken place. "Then he said unto them, Ο fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the prophets have spoken: "Ought not Christ to have suffered these things, and to enter into his glory? "And beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself" (vs. 25-27). Sometimes certain quotations seem a trifle confusing and need searching out in order to understand them correctly, for we know God is not the author of confusion. It may appear in v. 25 that Jesus is chiding them for believing all that the prophets have spoken. Such is not the case. He is chiding them for being slow of heart to believe, not very quick to grasp, understand or accept what was written. A similar case is Pr. 4:14-15— "Enter not into the path of the wicked, and go not in the way of evil men. Avoid it, PASS NOT BY IT, turn from it, and pass away." "Pass not by it" in some cases would imply to stay with it or hold fast to it. Yet in this case the direct opposite is meant. Many times will require a verse or two before and after to be read in order to get the proper meaning. The words preceding and following this phrase make it self-explanatory: "Avoid it, turn from it, from all that is evil, pass nowhere near it." "And beginning at Moses and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself" (v. 27). Now what did Moses write concerning the Messiah? Dt. 18:15— "The Lord Thy God will raise up unto thee a Prophet from the midst of thee, of thy brethren, like unto me; unto him shall ye hearken." Israel refused to hearken unto Moses, neither would they listen to the Greater Prophet. But they SHALL do so in the very near future! During such a pleasant journey and conversation they almost reach their destination, whereupon Jesus begs to take leave of them (v. 28). But they would not hear of it, and as it is reaching toward evening, he consented unto them. A meal is prepared and all sit down together. So comes the joyous occasion and most pleasant surprise of all (vs. 31-32)— "And their eyes were opened, and they knew him. And he vanished out of their sight. And they said one to another, "Did not our heart burn within us, while he talked with us by the way, and while he opened to us the Scriptures?" 1973 Berean 143 Note the words, "Did not our heart burn within us, while he talked with us." Yes, they knew he talked in a different strain from that of ordinary man: "never man spake like this man." Still they were held from recognizing him. How pleasant it is to converse with those of a spiritual mind who talk of nothing but the Truth! From thence, returning to Jerusalem, they were again terrified to see him standing in their midst, supposing him to be an apparition, a phantom or ghost of some sort. However, Jesus immediately proves to them otherwise (vs. 38-39)— "And he said unto them, Why are ye troubled? and why do thoughts arise in your hearts? "Behold my hands and my feet, that it is 1 myself; handle me and see; fora spirit hath not flesh and bones as ye see me have." This at once destroys the theory that the redeemed are bodiless phantoms, or "spirits" in the popular sense— "There is a natural BODY, Scthere is a spiritual BODY"(lCr.15:44). "Jesus shall change our vile BODY that it may be fashioned like unto his glorious BODY" (Ph. 3:21). Yet this is not enough. Jesus impresses the point further— "Have ye here any meat?*' (v. 41). And he proceeds to partake of food before them manifesting that a spiritual body may eat (though not, of course, requiring food). Then (v. 44) he explains to them that all things must be fulfilled concerning him that were written in the Law of Moses, which was a type and shadow of better things to come, a pattern of the heavenly things. ". . and in the Prophets . ." It would take considerable time and many pages to make reference to all the Prophets. Isaiah alone is full of prophecies relating to Christ, and devotes all his 53rd chapter to his great offering for sin. We do well to read it over and over again, thanking God with burning hearts for the great love and wisdom so manifested on our behalf "while we were yet sinners." And so all the prophets. Jeremiah says (23:5)— "Behold, the days come, saith the Lord, that I will raise unto David a righteous Branch, and a King shall reign and prosper, and shall execute judgment and justice IN THE EARTH." What outstanding words: "judgment" and "justice"! Something that sadly cannot be found in the earth today, with all its wars and oppressions and corruptions. But soon it will be different, when, in the glorious words of another prophet (Mai. 4:2)— "Unto you that fear (reverence) My Name shall the Sun of Righteousness arise with healing in his wings" (Mai. 4:2). Surely there will be a great and sorely needed "healing," both to the saints of God and to the troubled world around us! ". . and in the Psalms, concerning me." 73 Berean 144 The Psalms are full of Christ, both in suffering and in glory, and they are repeatedly so quoted in the New Testament, by Jesus himself and the apostles whom he is here instructing, as Ps. 45:7 "Thou lovest righteousness, and hatest wickedness. Therefore God, thy God, hath anointed thee with the oil of gladness above thy fellows." Then (v. 45), in preparation for their great work— "He opened their understanding, that they might understand the Scriptures . ." Let us fervently pray and study that he may likewise open ours!— "And he said unto them, Thus it is written, and thus it behoved Christ to suffer, and to rise from the dead the third day: "And that repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his Name among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem. "AND YE ARE WITNESSES OF THESE THINGS." Many lay claim to the title of "Witnesses," yet they are not, for they do not proclaim the Truth of the Gospel. It is quite obvious from these verses who his true witnesses are. From this time forward Jesus instructs them (v. 49) to— "Tarry ye in the city of Jerusalem until ye be endued with power from on high." Now sadness would be their lot as he was parted from them (v. 51): "And it came to pass, while he blessed them, he was parted from them, and carried up into heaven." Nevertheless, they were not left comfortless, they were assured of his return. Our attention is directed to Acts 1:9-11— "And when he had spoken these things, while they beheld, he was taken up, and a cloud received him out of their sight. "And while they looked stedfastly toward heaven as he went up, behold, two men stood by them in white apparel; "Which also said, Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up into heaven? this same Jesus, which is taken up from you into heaven, shall so come in like manner as ye have seen him go into heaven." The same Jesus shall return in the same manner as he ascended. This is the day we have waited for, we shall be glad and rejoice in it— 'This is the Lord's doing, and it is marvelous in our eyes." We too, brethren and sisters, hold this Hope firmly within us, and now every sign is that it is very near—the soon return of our great Redeemer to deliver us from the ungodliness and corruption that is fast increasing on all sides. Finally (vs. 52-53)— "And they worshiped him, and returned to Jerusalem with great joy. And were continually in the Temple, praising and blessing God. Amen." Paul says— ,, K n o w ye nottnat ye are the Temple of God?" If such be the case, then we too—like the prophets, the apostles, and all the faithful of old—must continually be in that Temple, our every thought, word and act "praising and blessing God," even unto the end. Amen. —F.P. 1973 Berean 145 Written for Our Instruction "His delight is in the law of the Lord, and in His Law doth he meditate DA Υ AND NIGHT"—Psalm 1:2 THE BENEFIT OF DAILY BIBLE READING WAITING for the appearance of Jesus in this evil age is a severe trial of our faith, when all we have to guide us is the written Word, and the power of prayer. It was Jesus who said— "When the Son of man cometh, shall he find the Faith on the earth?" Therefore, we must accept this challenge. We know what the Faith is. We know what the commandments are. And we know what it means to walk in the Truth. May we then give absorbed attention to this divine purpose that has brought us together, that our love for God and our love for each other may be strengthened. If we do, it will help us greatly towards being rooted and grounded in the Faith, and will bring us closer together in fellowship with each other, and with God and His beloved Son. We believe, as bro. Roberts said— "SALVATION DEPENDS UPON THE ASSIMILATION OF THE MIND TO THE DIVINE IDEAS, PRINCIPLES AND AFFECTIONS EXHIBITED IN THE SCRIPTURES." And that is the key to, and vital importance of, this subject: "Daily Bible Reading." But why should we read the Bible daily? In what way will we benefit by it? If we have read the Bible through several times, why should we keep on doing so? Can we not depend upon our memory to retain sufficient information, and not have to spend so much time reading the same things over and over again? We think these are serious questions, in the light of the many warnings that are given in the Scriptures, and the earnestness and force with which they are stated. Therefore, let us examine the matter, in order to satisfy ourselves that the reasons submitted are sound, and that we will truly benefit, in more ways than one, by systematic daily reading of the Bible. That, in fact, such a course IS vital to our salvation. 1973 Berean 146 In the first place, we ask another question: What is the Bible? To this question we receive a prompt and authoritative answer, because the Bible PROVES itself to be a revelation of God. It reveals the character of God: infinitely good and beautiful and holy and wise. It reveals what He has done in the past, and the reason for it. It informs us concerning what He plans to do in the future. In fact, if we pay strict attention to its message, there is only one conclusion that we can come to, and that is: "The Bible is the Word of God." In the New Testament, we feel sure that we will all agree that Paul is the greatest authority next to Christ. With this fact believed, we open his 2nd letter to Timothy, and read vs. 15 & 16 of ch. 3— "From a child thou hast known the Holy Scriptures, which are able to make thee WISE UNTO SALVATION thru faith in Christ Jesus. "All Scripture is God-inspired, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness." For what purpose? Verse 17 tells us— "That the man of God may be perfect (complete, whole, entire)." Are WE "perfect" or complete? We know we are not—yet. But this is that to which we constantly strive. This is the whole purpose of our present probation. Nothing else matters. And it is the Word of God that must accomplish this in us. One of the strong cords that holds us together as a Body, and forms the basis of our Hope, is our unshakable belief in the divine inspiration of the Bible. Although we are willing to accept Paul's declaration that "the Bible is wholly God-inspired," nevertheless we must individually satisfy ourselves that his statement is true. This cannot be done by merely acknowledging the Bible to be the Word of God. There must be a vigorous determination to know WHY we believe it so. The only way this can be determined with unwavering conviction is to READ THE SCRIPTURES, and KEEP ON reading the Scriptures, keeping them ever fresh and powerful in our minds. Our minds are fleshly, and the Scriptures are spiritual. For mental transformation, the one must be forcefully and constantly subjected to the influence of the other. One of the foremost reasons why we should constantly read the Word is given in Ps. 138:2, where the psalmist declares— "Thou hast magnified Thy Word above all Thy Name." The magnification of God's Word could not be better illustrated than it has been in John 1:14— "The Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the Father), full of grace and truth." This helps to better understand Paul's statement to Timothy that— "God was manifested in the flesh" (1 Tim. 3:16). And further, it helps us greatly to understand the relationship between the Father and the Son, and the SUPREME IMPORTANCE OF THE WORD. Now, if Jesus were to come into your home, how would you feel? Just stop and think of that question.. remembering that Jesus is the Word made flesh, and a direct manifestation of the Father. Therefore, to have God's Word in our home is to have God there, and His beloved Son Jesus. 1973 Berean 147 Now that we have them there, where are we going to place them? Are we going to leave them on the book-shelf, or are we going to place them in our hearts? Do not forget that where you place your Bible, you place Jesus and the Father. Therefore, if we neglect the Bible, we neglect them. That is an impressive thought, is it not? The place God demands of us is to be foremost and always in our hearts and minds. Jesus brings that forcibly to us when he quotes from the Law, saying— "Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with ALL thy heart, and ALL thy strength, and ALL thy mind" (Mk. 12:30). It is only fit and reasonable that God should demand the first and highest place in all our affairs for, as Paul said in Athens— "In Him we live, and move, and have our being." When Samuel was a child— "The Word of God was precious in those days: There was no open vision" (1 Sam. 3:1). Should it not be just as precious now, in this dark Gentile day, when there is no "open vision"? One of our brethren has said— "When we are thinking of God, we are drawing closer to Him, but when we're thinking of our own affairs we're getting farther away." That well expresses the thought emphasized in Jm. 4:8— "Draw nigh to God, and He will draw nigh to you." Having, then, become convinced that the Scriptures are the Word of God, and wholly inspired by Him, we will want to know HOW they are "able to make us wise unto salvation." We introduce this part of our consideration with another statement by Paul, in Rm. 15:4— "Whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for our instruction, that we through patience and comfort of the Scriptures might have hope." It is evident, then that the Scriptures that were written for our instruction are the Scriptures that will make us wise unto salvation. And Paul says "whatsoever"—that is, everything so written was for our instruction. For wholesome, balanced development of the spiritual mind, that the "man of God may be complete," it is evident that no portion of Scripture can be ignored, as some do according to their own preference or fancy. 1973 Berean 148 Now one thing is certain: if we leave our Bibles on the book-shelf, we will not learn anything that has been written for us—for our guidance, for our comfort, and for our welfare. Therefore, we must READ, in order to learn. If we have a genuine desire to— "Grow in grace and in the knowledge of our Lord and Savior." —we must first realize that we are mortal creatures subject to sin, disease and death. We must know what we are: what is our hopeless, joyless natural condition and destiny. We must face this maturely, not ignore it like the giddy, thoughtless world around us. And as a strong incentive to read for instruction and direction, we must have a good understanding and awareness of the salvation that God has offered through the Gospel. These must be real, living things to us, absorbing our hearts and desires. When we reach that stage of intelligence and maturity, we should be so grateful that an intense thirst for the joyful wisdom of God will develop within us, such as David, the "man after God's Own heart/' expressed— "My soul longeth, yea, even fainteth, for the courts of the Lord, My heart and my flesh crieth out for the living God" (Ps. 84:2). This WILL come, yea, MUST come, if we will apply ourselves to the Word as diligently and faithfully as the world applies itself to its desires and ambitions. What vast efforts the flesh puts forth for such miserable little perishing goals! Are they "wiser in their generation" than we? The voice of wisdom speaks in the book of Proverbs (another precious portion "for our instruction"), and tells us about an orderly and systematic way that we must follow if we are to find the knowledge of God— "IF thou incline thine ear unto wisdom, and apply thine heart to understanding . . "Yea, IF thou CRIEST after knowledge, and liftest up thy voice for understanding . . "IF thou seekest her as silver, and searchestfor her as for hid treasures.. "THEN shalt thou understand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God" (Prov. 2:2-5). The effect of this agonizing effort is shown in vs. 10-11— "When wisdom entereth into thine heart and knowledge is pleasant unto thy soul, discretion shall preserve thee and understanding shall keep thee." In ch. 3, we are carried a step further, and shown "the depth of the riches of the wisdom and knowledge of God" (13-15)— "Happy is the man that findeth wisdom, and the man that getteth understanding. For the merchandise of it is better than the merchandise of silver, and the gain thereof than fine gold. "She is more precious than rubies: and all the things thou canst desire are not to be compared unto her" (Pr. 3:13-15). O, that this could be stamped upon our minds with a fire that would never grow cold, and cause our hearts to swell with grateful emotion as we contemplate the infinite goodness of God! If we must search for wisdom "as for hid treasure," does it not signify that the wisdom of God is hidden in the Scriptures, and is only obtainable by those who study the Word ploddingly and prayerfully? For Paul said— "He that cometh to God must believe that He is, and that He is a Rewarder of them that DILIGENTLY SEEK Him" (Heb. 11:6). —not only "seek" but "DILIGENTLY seek"—indicating a determined and dedicated and full-hearted search, above all else in life. The same thought comes to us in Ps. Ill :2-4— "The works of the Lord are great, SOUGHT OUT of all them that have pleasure therein. His work is honorable and glorious: and His righteousness endureth forever. "He hath made His wonderful works to BE REMEMBERED. The Lord is gracious and full of compassion" (vs. 2-4). 149 1973 B e r e a n It is intensely interesting and instructive to note the meaning of the word "sought" in v. 2. The prime meaning is— "To tread or frequent, usually for pursuit or search; to diligently inquire; to search and seek out." For any hope of eternal life, we MUST realize that the Truth of God cannot be a part-time hobby, but must involve the complete dedication of every fiber of our being and every aspect of our activities. It is a far greater, more absorbing thing than many realize. And this is a great tragedy. The reason for the diligent searching of v. 2 is stated in v. 4— "He hath made His wonderful works to be REMEMBERED.'* Remembrance of God is not an occasional and periodic recalling to mind: rather it is a constant and continuous awareness of Him in all we do: a doing of everything as unto Him, in pure and joyful_ sacrifice of thanksgiving. We have God's Own words given by Isaiah: "To this man will I look, even to him that is poor (humble and meek), & of a contrite spirit, & trembleth at My Word" (Is. 66:2). Could any instruction be plainer? Is that not sufficient to show us that our Bible reading should be done daily? And not only so, but it shows us that it must be done in a spirit of self-searching reverence and "trembling." Do we tremble at the Word of God, constantly searching it for guidance, fearful of any displeasing of the One we love, anxious to avoid the slightest semblance of any infraction of the divine will? Let us face these questions. We are wasting our time, deceiving ourselves, and mocking God, if we do not face them and bring ourselves into line with them, whatever the flesh wants us to do. You will recall that when the children of Israel gathered manna (the heavenly bread), they did it SYSTEMATICALLY—a certain amount each day. This was enforced by God. Infractions were punished. It was not to be left over to the next day. The prescribed quantity gathered was to be eaten the same day. Is that not marvelously typical of our system of Bible reading as regulated by the Bible Companion? If we follow it faithfully, we will become familiarly and lovingly acquainted with every part of God's precious Word, and will therefore be guided by— "The WHOLE COUNSEL of God." It has been said by some that they are so "busy" they do not have the time to read every day. To such, we suggest they sit down for a few minutes and make a list of the things they do each day, and the time involved—the things they DO have "time" for. Such a form of self-examination will be a great surprise, because they will discover (if they are honest) that they spend time on things that could much better and more profitably be devoted to the Word of God. Let us decide what we are here for, what our ultimate goal and ambition is, and what we are doing to reach that goal. 1973 Berean 150 If these "busy" ones would read the Word daily, there would come a day when they would read the first chapter of Proverbs, where Wisdom speaks in vs. 24-28. This is a call to those who have been "too busy," who have neglected the loving counsels that were written for our eternal wellbeing— "Because I have called, and ye refused: I have stretched out my hand and no man regarded, but ye have set at nought all my counsel and would none of my reproof . . "I also will laugh at your calamity: I will mock when your fear cometh. When your fear cometh as desolation, and your destruction cometh as a whirlwind; when distress and anguish come upon you: "Then shall they call me, but I will not answer: they shall seek me early, but they shall not find me." What a sad and unnecessary tragedy! And how graphically Jesus depicted this in the parable of the 10 virgins. According to Jesus, there are but 2 classes of saints: the wise and the foolish. He speaks of "oil in their lamps." What is that but the Scripture of Truth, f or— "The entrance of Thy words giveth light*' (Ps. 119:130). All of the virgins had oil in their lamps at one time. But when the bridegroom came, the foolish found their supply was low so they said to the wise— "Give us some of your oil, for our lamps are going out!" They were going out because they had failed to replenish them. They had presumed that what they had once had was enough. They had felt no urgency, no desire, to get more. What a picture to contemplate! The Master in the earth again—and some of us unable to greet him, because our lamps are going out! The foolish will then turn to the wise, and look upon their lamps as they burn brightly before the Lord, and will cry out in despair. But it will be too late. As they turn to their flickering lamps, they will watch them sorrowfully as the light grows dimmer, and finally goes out—forever. My beloved brethren and sisters, IF we love the Lord as we PROFESS to, we will love His Word. And if we love His Word, we will read it eagerly and joyfully and constantly, and meditate upon it, watching daily at the gates of Wisdom— "For whoso findeth wisdom findeth life, and shall obtain favor of the Lord" (Prov. 8:35). 'When shall I read/ is a question that has been asked many times; but it is one that must be answered individually by each one of us, because our circumstances differ. Whatever we do, let us not sit down to read the Bible late in the day when we are tired and sleepy. It is much better to arrange our daily course of action so that we can give our best time and attention to God's Word with a clear mind, and meditate profitably upon wJiat We r e a d . I 9 7 3 Berearv 151 We must always read in a self-searching spirit: How do I stand in the light of these instructions, examples, promises, and warnings? Said Paul to Timothy— "Meditate upon these things: give thyself WHOLLY to them." That "wholly" is the key to success in this endeavor. "Open Thou mine eyes" (prayed the Psalmist), may behold wondrous things out of Thy Law." "that I It is God that opens the eyes of our understanding, and reveals Himself to those who seek Him with all the heart. There is a rich blessing in store for those whose delight is in the Law of God after the inward man, for we read in Ps. 1— "Blessed is the man that walketh not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners, nor sitteth in the seat of the scornful. "But his delight is in the Law of the Lord, and in His Law doth he meditate DAY AND NIGHT. "And he shall be like a tree planted by the rivers of water, that bringeth forth his fruit in his season. His leaf also shall not fade, and whatsoever he doeth shall prosper" (Ps. 1:1-3). Some have asked WHY we have to read so much. A good answer comes from Paul, and we do well to realize its searching truth— "For I know that in me (that is, in my flesh) dwelleth NO GOOD THING" Ponder that well. Accept it frankly and unreservedly, and you are on the way to life. Paul declares further (Rom. 8:7-8)— "The carnal mind is enmity against God, for it is not subject to the Law of God, NEITHER INDEED CAN BE. "So then they that are in the flesh CANNOT please God." This indicates that we are in mortal peril if we rely, like the world, on the natural mind, on our own natural thoughts and desires. This is seriously emphasized in Jer. 10:23— "O Lord, I know that the way of man is not in himself. It is not in man that walketh to direct his steps." Brethren and sisters, THAT is why it is essential that we read and meditate upon God's Word DAILY. We MUST overcome the mind of the flesh—our own natural mind—by the efforts of the mind of the Spirit. It is an internal warfare that must be waged daily, and THIS is our greatest and most urgent concern. It is written that— "EVERY WORD OF GOD IS PURE." Therefore it is the purifying, cleansing, transforming influence of the Word of God that dispels the darkness of the natural evil mind. Said Paul (Col. 3:16)— "Let the Word of Christ dwell in you RICHLY." But it cannot dwell in the mind of the flesh. Therefore we have to overcome that mind by the sword of the Spirit, "which is the Word of God" (Eph. 6:17). 1973 Berean 152 If, then, we do our daily Bible readings faithfully, and meditate on them, we will soon discover that the application of the mind to the divine ideas, principles and affections that we will find richly stored in the Scriptures, will give us the necessary strength to overcome the Old Man of the flesh. If we PERSIST in it, the principles and affections, the desires and interests, of the natural mind of the flesh become weakened, as we fill our minds with those— "Things that are pure, and lovely, and of good report." As a result of this, we will be able to "set our affections on things above," so that our speech and conduct will always be gracious, and seasoned with salt. There is no secret about the salting process, says bro. Roberts— "Those who are salt are so for one reason only. And that which makes them salt will make others salt also." They are salt because they are steeped in salt. The continual reading of the Word saturates their minds with the Spirit Word, and changes the insipid, purposeless, Old Man of the flesh into a New Man, full of interest, and beauty, and noble, godly qualities. An attentive reading of the Bible keeps in play a class of mental forces which enables us to overcome, and to live as— "Good stewards of the manifold grace of God." Therefore, says Paul in Heb. 2:1— "We ought to give the MORE EARNEST HEED to the things which we have learned lest at any time we let them slip (RV:lest we drift away)." If we forget, or neglect, what we have learned, we shall (imperceptibly to ourselves) "drift away," and when the Lord Jesus appears, we shall suddenly find that our lamps have gone out. Then, it will be too late. NOW is the day of opportunity, to lay strong hold on the promise of an eternity of joyful life. It is written that— "Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God" (Deut. 8:3). We MAY live—like the animals and like natural man—by "bread alone." But it requires the daily eating of the "Bread of Life" and drinking from the "Fountain of the Water of Life" to enable us to store up in the heart an abundance of good treasure that has been extracted from the Word of God. The wisdom of faithful and prayerful daily Bible reading cannot be too highly rated. It is the difference between death and life, for by it we will be able to keep in remembrance the things that were written for our instruction, and so render a good account, having, like our Master, "overcome the world." To sum up then: The Scriptures, being wholly God-inspired, come before us as a revelation from the Deity. If He had not given us such a revelation, we would know nothing of His great power, and what He requires of us. By reading the Bible daily, and meditating upon the things we read, our minds are kept occupied wholesomely and constructively; they do not sink to the corruption and insipidness of the natural man. 1973 Berean 153 As our knowledge and understanding increase, we find ourselves evelling in the past work of God in the earth. Then we come to observe and understand the present, and joyfully anticipate the future. The things of the Kingdom and the Name of Jesus are kept constantly before the daily reader: therefore his mind is healthy and vigorous. We soon discover that the purpose of God began to unfold with the covenant made in Eden, where a Seed of the Woman is promised that ultimately would overcome the power of sin, and finally conquer death. This great purpose comes to light again in the promises made to Abraham, who is informed that his Seed should overcome the world, and bring blessing to all families of the earth. Again, the golden thread of the Gospel appears as God informs Moses of a Prophet and Deliverer who would appear in Israel. At Sinai, the people had just been formed into a nation, and given a code of laws that have never been equaled in all the earth. Incorporated in this law was an elaborate system of worship which included a tabernacle, priesthood, sacrifices and offerings. All these typified and foreshadowed that which should be revealed in substance. The New Testament shows, beyond all doubt, that the substance is Christ; that his life was a wonderful fulfilment of the types of the Law in every detail; and that these types reveal doctrinal truth and lessons which form the foundation of true religion. As we look back upon the Mosaic constitution, we realize that these things are not apparent on the surface: they have to be searched for as for hid treasure. That is the lofty purpose of daily Bible reading: to search for the hidden treasures of the mind of God. By it, we come to understand God's plan of redemption, as our minds become attuned to divine things. The wisdom that comes from above takes away the veil of darkness and superstition that covers the faces of men and women. As the wisdom of God is daily impressed upon our minds, we get understanding. And as we look beneath the surface, we discover the ''unsearchable riches of Christ." A faithful student of God's Word, who reads it daily, systematically and prayerfully, will come to know more about the Bible than any other book in the world, and will be able to say with David (Psa. 119)— "Thy Word have I hid in mine heart, THAT I MIGHT NOT SIN AGAINST THEE. I will meditate in Thy precepts, & have respect to Thy ways. "At midnight I will rise to give thanks unto Thee because of Thy righteous judgments. "Through Thy precepts I get understanding: therefore I hate every false way. Great peace have they who love Thy Law, and nothing shall offend them" (Psa. 119). What a great salvation is revealed in the Bible! In our joy we cry OUt With Paul (Rm. 11:33)— 1973 Berean 154 "0, the depth of the riches both of the wisdom and knowledge of God! How unsearchable His judgments, and His ways past finding out!" Yes, our Bible is a book of Wisdom—the divine Wisdom that gives life and joy for evermore. Therefore, says Solomon— "Get Wisdom! Get Understanding! Forget it not.. Wisdom is the principal thing: therefore get Wisdom, and with all thy getting get Understanding" (Prov. 4:5-7). Paul's solemn instruction to Timothy was (1 Tm. 4:13)— "Till I come, give attendance to reading, to exhortation, to doctrine." It is important we look at this word * 'attendance." The word means: "To hold the mind, to pay attention to, to be cautious about, to beware, to give heed, to have regard." We must discipline our minds; we must "gird up the loins of our minds"', we must "bring every thought into captivity to Christ; we must school our minds constantly in divine things. That is the essence of our message. The Lord Jesus sums it up in this manner— "Whoso readeth, LET HIM UNDERSTAND." If we are to understand the teaching of Jesus, we must adjust our way of thinking to his: perfect purity, perfect justice, perfect mercy, perfect kindness. We make a fatal mistake if we try to force his message into our own pattern of thought. —G.A.G. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "The people of the earth grope in the dark without light, and God maketh them to stagger like a drunken man"—Job 12:25 RED NAVY: AIMING TO BE No. 1. Already potent in subs, Russia beginning to build aircraft carriers: giant stride in Russian sea challenge. US defense experts convinced Russia has master plan to control world's major sea lanes. Red Navy now positioned to isolate US from trading partners & allies in both Pacific & Atlantic: establishing powerful presence along vital oil routes to Japan & Europe in Indian Ocean & Mediterranean. At start of WWII, Germany had only 57 subs: Russia has 380 modern subs, & 193 missile-firing surface ships. Russia has 42 nuclear-powered subs, each with 16 missiles that can be fired from under the sea; building 9 to 12 more per year. (US has 41). Russia is launching one new missile cruiser each year: began constructing present fleet 12 yrs. ago, after Suez crisis & Cuban missile crisis. They have 160 subs & 40 surface ships stationed in Barents Sea, from which they can sweep through Norwegian Sea & into Atlantic east & west of Iceland to sever the Atlantic sea routes. (USN 3:12) NOTE: Who rules the seas controls the activities of the world. In 12 brief yrs., Russia has risen to a close 2nd place, & is straining every muscle to become supreme. Only a faltering, divided, insolvent US stands in her way. MONETARY PANIC. Less than 3 wks. after it was put together, the patchwork agreement to realign major currencies came unglued. Once again, massive run on US $ as billions were exchanged for European currencies. The new crisis hit Europe with lightning speed. In one frantic day, 3V2 biHion $s were exchanged for European currencies stronger than $. (Nwk 3:12) NOTE: God is showing man his hopeless condition, & the need for a powerful worldwide reign of righteousness & wisdom. The wise will get the message. 1 9 7 3 Berean 155 WORLD TRADE WAR? Out of troubles buffeting $ is emerging a menace the free world has been dreading for years: all-out trade war. Deteriorating US trade picture: turn for worse everywhere. US threatening to raise barriers against foreign goods. In Europe & Japan, fears growing that such action by US would provoke retaliation & counter-retaliation—setting off crescendo of hostility, & shattering many commercial ties. There are no winners in a trade war. Political & economic alliances that have held non-Communist powers together since WW II are at stake. In French view, US & Europe are on a collision course toward a trade war. (USN 3:5) With wisdom & self-restraint, US today could still have been the sound financial rock on which a stable monetary world could be built, & Russia would not have a chance. But it is not God's will that the world build on US, but on Russia. So God causes US to weaken & discredit itself, & alienate its allies. . . . _ _ . _ . . . MILESTONES IN $'s DECLINE. In '50s: US shifts from surplus to deficit in financial dealings with world: first warning crack. In '63: Gold reserves shrinking, international debts soaring. In '70: US running deficit of $10 billion a yr. in world finance dealings. Spring, '71: First US world trade deficit since 1888. $10 billion. Summer, '71: Run on $; US won't redeem $s in gold; gold reserve below Winter, '71: US devalues $ 8 pet. In Feb., '73: After another massive US trade deficit in '72, another massive run on $; another 10 pet. devaluation of $. (USN 3:5) NOTE: 20 yrs. of warning & danger signals, but US & its pleasure-mad people preferred the siren-song of the "good life"—wallowing in debt & childish baubles. .^^^,^..^^..^^..^^..^^....». LATEST TEEN DRUG: ALCOHOL. In recent yrs., increasing numbers of teen-agers have been experimenting with dangerous drugs: LSD, Speed, barbiturates, heroin. Perhaps most frightening aspect: age of experimenters steadily drops: heroin addiction cases in elementary schools. Latest fad in juvenile drug abuse has familiar ring: alcohol. Now spreading to lower grades: in Boston, 36 pet. of 8th grade have been drunk, 14 pet. of 6th grade. Older students are pushing booze for younger kids. One reason for the proliferation of young drinkers is widespread tolerance by parents, themselves drinkers. Alcohol is a drug with high potential of addiction. One teen ager of every 20 in S. Calif, has a drinking problem. National Alcohol Council reports that in '72, age of youngest alcoholics dropped from 14 to 12. For those who add alcohol to an existing drug habit, result can be tragic. But despite risks, teen-agers taking to bottle in growing numbers. And because teen-age use is patterned after adult use, there's no way kids will stop drinking till adults do. (Nwk 3:5) NOTE: It is utter hypocrisy to pretend to be concerned about children & drugs while there are 2 or 3 or more saloons on every business block, & the whole nation worships Lord Alcohol as the great socializer. 1973 Berean 156 SECOND THOUGHTS ABOUT MAN. There's impending sense of change in world of ideas. The reigning wisdom that informed or impelled the past few decades is under attack. Man's confidence in his power to control his world is at low ebb. Technology seen as a dangerous ally; progress is suspect. Optimism had bred false enthusiasm that this method or that system was somehow the answer. Now growing skepticism questions any system can ever surmount recalcitrance & perversity of man.(Tm 4:2) NOTE: One year's "wisdom" is next year's folly. Man must be brought to realize his own ignorance and helplessness and the folly of his natural thoughts, that he may in humility accept the unchanging wisdom of God. ARMY COUP IN URUGUAY. Until last wk., Uruguay—alone in Latin America—could boast that not in this century had a democratically elected govt. been taken over by military: Now it has happened there too. Few Uruguayans would disagree with Army that enemies were the ''profiteers,usurers,speculators & govt. swindlers." Once most prosperous nation in Latin America, with most advanced social system, it has been slowly sinking into economic & political quagmire. Cost of living up 4000 pet. in 15 yrs. Over 1/5 of the million-man work force is employed by govt.; 400,000 more live on govt. pensions. (Tm 2:26). NOTE: It's same story everywhere. "Democracy" is failing, corruption & confusion multiplying. The Army sees the evil &, having, power, seizes control. But, being human,it cannot solve the problems, but is itself corrupt US-CHINA FORGE CLOSER TIES. Each govt. will open office in other's capital—first step toward full diplomatic recognition. Contacts in all fields to be broadened; a concrete program to expand trade has been agreed on; and mutual exchanges in science & culture fields. Negotiations to start for air transportation links. Trade levels already higher than expected. To negotiate settlement of money claims against each other. Americans & Chinese in growing numbers criss-crossing Pacific on business. It was China's fear of Russia that gave US leverage in China. And China accord increases US's leverage with Russia. (USN 3:5) NOTE: For 25 yrs., US did everything in its power to block & hinder & isolate China. Now it's suddenly falling over itself to build it up. The secret, of course, is their mutual fear of Russia. But how changeable is man! WHITE-COLLAR CRIME. On rise: fraud, bribery, tax evasion, shady business dealings. Losses in billions: costing US many times more than loot taken by all robbers, burglars & muggers. Illegal business growing rapidly. A little man steals a bottle of milk from a doorstep & goes to jail in ahurry; a business tycoon steals millions & probably won't ever see inside a jail. Arrests for fraud & embezzlement up 86 pet. from '60 to 71. A Georgian bank president was convicted a few wks. ago of stealing $4V2 million; he got 10 yrs. jail. Same day in same court, 3 youths convicted of stealing $14,000 from a bank got 16 yrs. jail each. (USN 3:12) NOTE: We each know from our own experience that the general moral & integrity standards of most people—"nice" people—are very low when measured by true righteousness. Where is the workman or businessman who is morally concerned about always giving good & full measure in labor & goods? Rather all seek all they can get by any means, for as little as possible in return. «••«••••••••••••««^«•••••ιββ» CHILDREN WITH GUNS. All over US, more & more children carrying guns. So far thisyr., 15 handguns have been confiscated in Detroit schools; 3 children wounded in gunplay. (USN 2:26) ASIA'S TROUBLE: Too many babies, too little food. Prospects grim. Specter of famine hangs over Asia. Deepening food shortages. Population bomb ticking away faster than ever. Bureaucracy, corruption & inefficiency as much responsible as bad weather for present food shortages. In India, no incentive to produce more because consumers haven't money to buy. Asian food production declined in 72; population increased over 5 pet. between 70 & 72, no sign of slowing. Asia's population will nearly double to 3.8 billion by yr. 2000. (USN 3:5) NOTE: Truly with self-restraint in breeding, & wise, efficient management of world resources, & fair, Christlike distribution according to need & reason, the world could be a joyful & harmonious paradise for all. But this is not to be until Christ rules the world in righteousness & wisdom & infinite power. 1973 Berean 167 ARAB WORLD: OIL, POWER, VIOLENCE. World oil consumption rising 8 pet. a yr.; US consumption (40 pet. of total) rising 9 pet. a year. Mideast (all are Arab states except Iran) control 60 pet. of world's known reserves, & are bargaining with increasing skill. Their yrly. oil income was $4V2 billion 5 yrs. ago; now over $10 billion; by '80 probably $40 billion a year. If that holds true, Arab income will then exceed combined earnings of US's 500 largest corporations. Richest of all, Saudi Arabia, will then have greater monetary reserves than US & Japan combined. In many respect, age of Arab oil wealth & power already here. Arab oil money was major element in monetary crisis that led to 2nd $ devaluation last month. Suddenly the Arabs, 100 million strong—backward, neglected, abused for centuries—have begun to realize the weapon they hold. The recent thrust toward Arab control of Mideast oil began in 70; man who started it was Libya's Gaddafi. Because world's appetite for oil is insatiable, he was able to force oil companies to increase Libya's royalties by 120 pet. in 2 yrs., & 10 pet. more each yr. till '75. He has $3 billion reserves. Most belligerent of Arab leaders, he's spending $200 million on French Mirage fighter-bombers, which inevitably stand as a threat to Israel, the Arab world's frustrating obsession . Gaddafi also spends millions to buy allegiance of African countries. The 11 major oil producing countries have increased prices 72 pet. since 70. Money's not only issue, however; it's control. By '83, Saudi Arabia will control 51 pet. of Aramco, world's biggest producer. Similar deals have been made by other Mideast producers. Last wk., Iran took over operations of US, British, French & Dutch oil companies. By '80s, US will be relying on Mideast for 50 pet. of its oil. Most important new element in Arab world—for Arabs themselves, for Israel, & for world— is the revolution being wrought by oil. Arab policy is to see that good share of oil revenue is channeled into struggle against Israel—to punish Israel's friends & to benefit Arabs' friends. (Tm 4:2) NOTE: Oil is slowly tightening the vice on the US, and drawing all eyes to the Mideast. How wonderfully, & interestingly, the picture is shaping : oil power, money power, & hatred of the Jew. SADAT'S UNCERTAIN TRUMPET. In 71, he declared "yr. of decision" at hand. He marked 72 as yr. for "inevitable" battle. Last wk., Sadat rattling his sabers again, & proclaimed "era of total confrontation" with Israel. He is in serious trouble at home & abroad, & may be desperate enough to go to war against Israel. In event of war, he might encourage Palestine guerrillas to blow up Persian Gulf oil lines, shutting off flow of oil to Europe & Japan. He has apparently been laying such plans for past 16 months. Israel has made it clear its air force will not hesitate to devastate the Egyptians if they start even limited war: they'd have little trouble doing it. Sadat is under increasing pressure from Libya's Gaddafi, whose oil money helps keep Egypt afloat. He's also being urged by Army officers, Palestine commandos, & a wide range of domestic hawks to "do something" to recover territorities from Israel. A desperate, frustrated Sadat could succumb to those pressures & give order to attack. (Nwk 4:9) NOTE: A new & ominous element has been added: the threat of oil cutoff. The Arab producers are now sufficiently strong & united to make this possible. Something must happen to put Egypt on Tarshish's side. Another round of war could destroy Sadat, & bring a new man to the top in Egypt. BRITAIN'S DECLINE. In '58, Britain led Europe in per capita GNP (gross national product). In 70, it lagged behind Holland, Belgium, France, Germany & Denmark, & exceeded only Ireland & Italy. (Tm 3:12). NOTE: Britain once led the world in industry & wealth & power, & ruled the seas with an iron rod. Then she betrayed the Jews. Her abysmal decline SOOn followed. 1973 Berean 158 SCIENCE FALSELY SO-CALLED. Prof. Rosenhan of Stanford U., & 7 associates, had themselves committed to mental institutions to find out how well psychiatrists can distinguish normal from sick. They spend average of 19 days in dozen institutions, public & private, in 5 states. Beyond falsifying names & occupations, they all described their life histories as they actually were. In so doing, they gave the doctors every chance to discern the truth. "I couldn't believe we wouldn't be found out," Rosenhan said. But they weren't. At 11 hospitals they were promptly diagnosed as schizophrenic, at the 12th as manic-depressive. As soon as they got admitted, they studiously resumed normal behavior. They worked hard to convince staff members they should be released. But such efforts were to no avail. Doctors & nurses interpreted everything they did in terms of the original diagnosis. When some of them took notes, the staff made such entries in their records as "Patient engages in writing behavior." The only people who realized the experimenters were normal were patients. "You're not crazy," said one,"You're checking on hospital." The hospital, Rosenhan concluded, distorts the perception of behavior, place is more important than person. If you're a patient, you must be crazy. They witnessed incidents of abuse & brutality. One patient was beaten for approaching an attendant & saying, "I like you." All this, Rosenhan points out, is part of a pervasive depersonalization & helplessness that afflicts patients in a mental hospital. They found much evidence that the staff didn't regard patients as people. From their fellow-patients, they quickly learned, "Never tell a doctor you're well. That's called 'flight into health.' Tell him you're still sick, but feeling a lot better. That's called 'insight.'" You've got to acknowledge you're sick to be considered well enough to release. It took them up to 52 days to get out of the hospital, even tho they had been admitted voluntarily, & law requires mandatory discharge on request in such cases. Three had to finally walk out; other 9 ultimately discharged, but with stigma of the diagnosis: "schizophrenia in remission" (Nwkl:29) NOTE: A sad revelation, but just what could be expected. We could pity and sympathize, were it not for the pompous pretentions of the medical "experts." What a great facade of "knowledge"! What poor little lost creatures hiding behind it! If man would only recognize his ignorance, how much he could learn from the Word of God! DOLLAR'S NOSE DIVE. For 37 yrs., till 71, $ rode high in world; preeminent, & solid as Fort Knox. Now, twice in 14 mos. it has been struck hard, staggering blows. US trade balance gets worse & worse: $6.4 billion deficit in 72. (USN 2:26) NOTE: US had almost infinite power & infinite riches 25 years ago, but there is a national, mindless compulsion to get into debt & load themselves with every new luxury & gadget that perverted ingenuity can invent to tempt lust & pride. Yet there is no happiness, no satisfaction, no peace—only more gnawing lust. • • _ ^ _ _ — . _ _ _ • » ARAB OIL WEALTH. Saudi Arabia within 10 yrs. may have greater financial reserves than those backing US $ & Jap yen combined. (USN 3:5) "RELIGIOUS" WAR. In recent weeks, rioting, arson & murder have brought N. Ireland to new level of terror in its religious war. In 2 weeks, 26 have been killed, bringing total to 718. Extremists on both sides are determined to wreck any settlement. It's quite possible they can succeed. Now the mobs are in control, & are throwing up their own new leaders—wild men. (Nwk 2:19) NOTE: What vile crimes are committed in the name of Christ! Surely these periodic outpourings of violent and murderous evil around the world are to expose and burst the modern conceit that man has "improved" over his benighted ancestors. 1973 B erean 159 US ENERGY CRISIS. US has passed from long period of dirt-cheap energy that made it world's leading industrial power, into an era in which its ability to meet its growing demands for energy come more into question each year. Each ton of coal, each barrel of oil, comes harder at greater cost. Internationally, the crisis could force whole new order of priority in US diplomacy. US could find itself alienating its Israel allies as it tries to improve relations with Arabs who control most of world's oil reserves. US has created the most prodigious energy machine in history. With only 6 pet. of world's population, US guzzles 33 pet. of world's energy. Projections call for far higher consumption by '85. US oil reserves are good for only 10 years at present rate; natural gas for 11 years; uranium for 13 yrs. Given the doomsday implications of the energy plight, how could US have raced so close to disaster so blindly? But with energy so readily available & so cheap, US gave little thought to the huge amounts it was wasting. Autos, for example, shoot 87 pet. of their energy intake out of exhaust pipe. No matter what measures US takes, it can't help but be more & more dependent on foreign sources—meaning Mideast—during next dozen years. That dependency could soar to 65 pet. by '85. Resulting trade deficit for oil alone would be a whopping $20 billion a yr., vs. present $4 billion. Constant worries about security of Mideast oil. Same worries apply to natural gas US plans to import, since biggest deals will be with Russia & Algeria. Increased US dependence on Mideast oil could cause another problem. Europe & Japan also are utterly dependent on Mideast oil, so time could come when world's 3 major industrial areas will be competing, perhaps belligerently, for same energy supply. Energy crisis gaining momentum. Importance of whole situation extends far beyond US borders. (Nwk 1:22) NOTE: Suddenly the US sees the deadend of the mad toboggan ride looming up before it. Most of US's prodigious energy consumption is squandered on lust and luxury, but they will never have the sense and restraint to cut back, any more than drunken Imperial Rome did. US may well have passed her brief zenith of world power, while fresh young Russia grows and grows. It is ominous that US is even considering the necessity of buying billions of$s of natural gas from its sworn and deadly enemies, just to keep its wild merry-go-round of pleasure spinning. How will US pay these mounting billions, with her trade balance already deeply in the red? CORRUPTION IN HIGH PLACES. Strange correlation between a soldier's rank & his chances for a disability pension (which offers a significant tax break). In '71, 48 pet. of the 4-star generals who retired did so with "disability" ratings; 33 pet. of the major generals; 11% pet. of the lieutenant colonels; 9 pet. of the sergeants major. (Nwk 1:29) NOTE: Half of the top men in the army retire under the fake of "disability" so as to cheat on taxes. And so on down the line, in regularly decreasing degree according to position. Clearly, the lower the rank, the harder it is to exert the pressure to get the false rating. No wonder Russia makes disciples daily among the poor! AMIN SEIZES ALL FOREIGN COMPANIES. Having expelled 26,000 Asians in past 4 months, Amin turned last week to Uganda's British community. All foreign agricultural & industrial operations would be taken over immediately, he announced. The takeover affects 26 tea plantations (20 are British), and 15 factories, (14 are British).—Tm 1:1 NOTE: What a comedown for the once-mighty British Empire which within our lifetime ruled this area with an iron hand from London! Yet with all the changes, the basic prophetic picture gets clearer every day—α Roman-Russian-Moslem world against little Israel, with only an everweakening Tarshish friend on her side. All the world's major false religions—Catholicism, Communism, Mohammedanism—united against the purpose of God. 1973 Berean 160 POLITICAL HYPOCRISY. The Watergate & ITT scandals suggest something very wrong with mood & morality of US Govt. Net impression is of a Govt. that figures end justifies means, that tries to hide its transgressions & hamper its own lesser officials charged with seeking the truth. There's an aura of disconcerting chumminess between Govt. officials & corporate executives seeking favors or suspected of violating laws. It's strange conduct for an Administration that has so strongly denounced permissiveness & decaying morality of modern life, & has so often proclaimed its devotion to the law. (Tm 4:2) NOTE: Watergate, like Vietnam, may be a great turning point in US fortunes & relationship to the rest of the world. A country that presumes to lead, & that makes a great show of its rightness & righteousness, must at least preserve an outward appearance of decency at the highest levels of govt. There must inevitably be a world revulsion when the sordid facts are set beside the gilded pretensions. It's one more step in aligning the nations. WHY RUSSIA IS WOOING US. Militarily, Russia is 2nd-greatest power on earth—with nuclear missiles, huge Army, & growing Navy extending Soviet power into Indian Ocean, Caribbean & Mediterranean. Economically, Russia remains a relatively unprosperous nation. Living standard of its 230 million at low end of industrialized countries, far beneath US & other nations. By practically every yardstick, Kremlin up against immense domestic problems of crisis proportions. Agriculture struck by disaster: only massive imports are averting severe food shortages. Industry growth rate is lagging. Consumer goods shunted to back burner, in favor of military machine. Worker discontent growing; labor productivity down. Dissent plagues leadership. Brezhnev trying to build his own authority by creating "cult of personality" like Lenin & Stalin. Is Communist system under gun? No sign of this. Workers even more orthodox & hardline than leaders. Increasingly, many Russians speak of Stalin era as good old days. How can a country still unable to produce paper clips efficiently manage to turn out the most advanced missiles, ships & tanks? Answer is: Russia's system of tight control is well suited to gearing up for what is essentially a 4 'wartime economy." In areas such as heavy industry, transport, communications & armaments, allocation of priorities from a central place is beneficial. The military apply stringent standards: defective or shoddy goods sent into civilian economy; they're not accepted by armed forces. On Mar. 21, US Govt. extended $101 million credit to Russia to finance a truck plant—first US Govt. credit ever given to Russia. (USN 4:2) NOTE: Russia, tho increasingly powerful, is the very opposite of a paradise. If it were so, or gave any appearance of the possibility of ever becoming so, the Scriptures would not be true. Russia is a mighty military dictatorship with tremendous internal pressures & a great lust for power. This is exactly what the prophetic picture requires. And US in short-sighted greed is helping her to build her military power. SPREADING MIDEAST TERROR: piling up new trouble for US. More & more, US caught in middle of underground war between Israel & Arabs that's gaining momentum in Mideast & around world. Arab nations increasingly accuse US of complicity. Outlook is for growing US-Arab hostility. Increasing fear for safety of Americans abroad. (USN 4:23) NOTE: The Arabs have oil & wealth, & therefore the self-serving world sides with them, & boycotts & condemns Israel to curry Arab favors* Increasingly US is isolated as Israel's only friend. But God will continue to overshadow Israel, & tho she must still suffer terribly for her arrogance & godlessness & all hope must seem gone, still she will not be destroyed, but at last be delivered & redeemed. EUROPE IN TRANSITION. Not since turbulent transition from shooting war to cold war 25 yrs. ago has Europe found itself at center of so many different currents of change. Old US-Eun^e "Atlantic community" rapidly evolving into international rivalry, Russia is striking a benign posture of detente, hoping to achieve long-standing goal of a pivotal role in W. Europe. West long since ceased to worry about liberating E. Europe nations. NATO's chief problem: how to maintain its strength and reason for being in an age of detente. Inevitably, the quality of NATO's components has begun to waver more erratically than ever. Italian army is moderately welltrained. French, in contrast, may be weakest of NATO's links. Germany's army filled with slovenly, long-haired draftees on 15-mo. hitches. US's 7th Army more conspicuous for racial battles than for prowess in maneuvers. Many Europe nations, moreover, are shrunken relics of what they once were. Without Congo, Belgium only a way station between Germany & France. Without Indonesia, Dutch find their "swamp" delta uncomfortably confining. Britain's entry into Common Mkt. is one indication of general European identity crisis: "We've lost an empire, so we'll run Europe." But having lost old colonies, Europe's nation-states haven't created a new communion. Much as they talk about unity, they're reluctant to yield national sovereignty, as witness the jealousies that flared in last month's monetary crisis. Even as "new Europe" tries to stitch itself together, old one doing its best to pull Continent apart. For all talk of unity, Europeans haven't surmounted their national prejudices. Even greater threat to unity is persistence of myriad old tribal & regional interests & loyalties. Europe's minorities making increasifigiy noisy -claims for recognition & redress. Hie plbenonieraon spans Europe from Britain (grappling with Welsh & Scottish nationalism & bloody Ulster war), to Russia (troubled by ethnic unrest in Estonia, Latvia & Lithuania). Upset by violent upsurge of Croat nationalism, Yugoslavia's existence directly imperiled. Others have variety of unhappy minorities: Switzerland's Juras, Sweden's Lapps, Rumania's Hungarians, France's Bretons & Corsicans, Spain's Basques, and myriad ethnic groups of Italy. Present Europe map was carved out by warring armies only in past IV2 centuries. Underlying Europe's artificial frontiers is patchwork of ancient tribal & economic enclaves. Europe is a plethora of unassimilated minorities: W. Europe alone embraces 30 different ethnic communities. Ulster's warring Catholics & Protestants, who are still trying to write final chapter to 1690 Battle of the Boyne, aren't the only Europeans with ancient scores to settle. Belgium's Dutch-speaking Flemings & French-speaking Walloons regularly take their differences to the streets. In any given office bldg. in Brussels, it is said, the doorman speaks only Dutch, the secretaries are bilingual, & the managing director deals only in French. There's little indication that Europe's govts. ready to yield significant power. (Tm 3:12) NOTE: Europe is weak & divided, & increasingly coming under the shadow of the ever-growing Russian bear. What a change from Munich, when Britain & France & Germany were proud world powers determining Europe's future, & backward Russia was not even important enough to invite to the council table! ISRAEL TO BAN PROSELYTING? "Jews for Jesus" invasion of Israel has revived Orthodox campaign to expel all Christian missions. Four Cabinet ministers assigned to consider drafting law to "curb Christian Jewsfor-Jesus missionaries." Chief Rabbi demanded Israel "uproot this affliction. There's nothing antidemocratic about such legislation." (Tm 3:26) NOTE: Israel seems to be taking a lesson in oppression from the Pope in his heyday. Caiaphas and Annas would be well-pleased with their modern counterparts. They don't want to take any chances they might learn the Truth. $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO.6 JUNE, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. G. A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Ap. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Ads 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: London, San Angelo EDITORIAL: The Lord Bless Thee and Keep Thee Inside Front Cover 161 AMEN! HALLELU YAH! (Bro. Thomas) WHAT IS YOUR LIFE? (Bro. Roberts) WHAT WE MUST DO TO BE SAVED FORTY—PERIOD OF JUDGMENT (J.T.) CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY Bible Questions and May Answers 163 168 174 182 186 Back Cover We ore anxious to tend the Berean FREE to any desiring it that way. Please da not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News LONDON, Ont.—Christadelphian Hall, 166 Central Ave. (1 block west off Richmond)— S.S. 10:15am; Memorial 11:30 a m ; Lecture 7 p m ; Class Wed. 8 pm—Bro. David Clubb, 42 Oneida Rd., London N5V 2X1, phone (519) 451-4063. LOVE and Greetings to all brethen and sisters of like precious Faith. Though it has been many months since our last ecclesia news, yet we have been striving to be diligent in the things of the Truth. We have in the past 2 years gone through some heart-rending experiences, but knowing all things are for a purpose, we have received daily strength from God to endure. During the past while, we have been particularly blessed in having many brethren and sisters visit with us, helping in the duties of the Truth. We have welcomed the following around the table of the Lord: bro. & sis. Fred Higham Sr., bro. & sis. Fred Higham Jr., bro. Fabris, bro. Growcott (Detroit); bro. Gibson and sister Crone (Toronto); bro. & sis. R. Philip (Hamilton); bro. & sis. Gilbert of (Buffalo); bro. & sis. David Sommerville, sis. H.A. Sommerville, sisters Lois, Becky and Mary Sommerville (Wanaque, NJ); bro. & sis. Paul Neely (Houston). Bre. Gibson, Higham Sr., Growcott, Philip, Higham Jr., Sommerville have several times faithfully exhorted and admonished us to remain steadfast in the Lord, and have lectured on first principles at our public lectures. On Feb. 11, this year, we had our annual Sunday School entertainment in which many of our scholars took part in the form of recitals and hymns. Also the brethren and sisters of London and other ecclesias helped in the singing of several hymns. This took place following the Sunday morning exhortation given by bro. Gibson of the Toronto ecclesia. After the spiritual food, meals were served during which time we enjoyed further fellowship with our outof-town visitors. On Apr. 22, we held a special slide lecture in our hall entitled "These are the Latter Days—the End of Human Rule of the Earth is Near," by bro. Fred Higham Sr. of Detroit Ecclesia. Although there was little attendance by the alien, yet we were encouraged by hearing of the innumerable signs of the times showing the nearness of Christ. Bro. Higham illustrated that all current events point in one direction—to the fulfillment of God's Word culminating in the establishment of God's Kingdom on Earth. The day is not too far distant, brethren and sisters, when things as they are now constituted will come to an end. When that time does come, and it surely will, then we shall realize that for which we have long waited, even the apocalypse of Jesus the Anointed, our Lord and Savior. Also for this day we had the pleasurable company of several from Toronto, Hamilton and Detroit. The following Sunday, Apr. 29, much of the ecclesia accepted an invitation to meet for memorial service at Hamilton, Ont. with the Hamilton and Toronto brethren and sisters. Also in attendance were several brethren and sisters from Buffalo, Detroit, Waterford. A most enjoyable day filled with spiritual upbuilding took place as we assembled with those of like Faith. We are pleased to welcome back into fellowship our bro. Stanley Howard. We are sorry to report the withdrawing from fellowship of bro. & sis. Dan Gwalchmai, sisters Jean Hill, Mary Gwalchmai, and Grace Cartlidge, and bro. & sis. Roy Sutherland on the question of divorce and remarriage. Sis. Marjorie Hudson has separated from us, having chosen the course of suing at law, which is recognized among us as a matter affecting fellowship. We have also had the sad duty of withdrawing from bro. Ralph Howard for continued absence from the Lord's table. We frequently pray that all these will be guided to reconsider their positions. The present writer has been appointed temporary recording brother. Please note above address change. With love and best wishes to the Brotherhood from the London ecclesia, (Continued on inside Back Cover) — bro. David Clubb The Lord Bless Thee And Keep Thee "Thou, Lord, wilt bless the righteous: with favor wilt Thou compass him as with a shield"—Psalm 5:12 The words bless, blessed and blessing occur very frequently in the Scriptures of Truth. They are both significant and comprehensive, because they express an important meaning of large, or extensive scope. Let us examine them briefly. Our dictionaries inform us that the word bless means "to consecrate by a religious rite; to make, or pronounce, holy/* That definition may be suitable to some religious bodies, but if we go direct to the Bible we discover that its applications are too obvious to require much explanation. From the Hebrew ashar we get bless, and from ashere, blessed— in both cases signifying "to declare happy, or very happy." From barak we have "blessed" meaning "to bless, or declare blessed." In general they denote to wish, or do well to, or to speak well of. In the New Testament we have the Greek word eulogeo meaning "to speak well of," and makarios, "to declare happy." When Jesus is said to bless, it signifies (1) to give thanks for food in general (Matt. 14:19), or (2) to gi\e thanks for the bread and wine (Matt. 26:26). In the latter there is no thought of casting any spell upon the bread and wine—he merely gave thanks for it. When God is said to bless it signifies (1) to bestow plenty of temporal good things, to make outward affairs prosperous and successful, as in the case of Laban who said to Jacob, "I have learned by experience that the Lord hath blessed me for thy sake"—Gen. 30:27. (2) To bestow both temporal and eternal good things, as in the promise to Abraham (Gen. 12:2-3)— 1973 Berean 161 "And I will make of thee a great nation, and I will bless thee, and make thy name great; and thou shalt be a blessing; And I will bless them that bless thee, and curse them that curseth thee: and in thee shall all families of the earth be blessed" While the study of etymology is both interesting and fascinating, it is not the motivating influence that prompts us to write on this subject. Our purpose goes much deeper. During our probation, if we are serious about our religion, we will do everything possible to keep ourselves steadfast in our faith, so that when Jesus comes into his kingdom, we may hear those gracious words, "Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world"—Matt. 25:34. It is our practice, when proclaiming the Truth in our public lectures, to seek the divine blessing on our efforts. It is also our usual custom, when entering upon some unusual venture, or undertaking some difficult task, to ask God's blessing upon the definite object we have in view. That is as it should be. We must be extremely careful, however, in the methods we employ, for there are many things in the Scriptures that teach us that the apparent success of an enterprise is not always an indica- tion that God has blessed it. In some cases it will be found that the matter in hand is successful because of our determination to see it through without any deep and serious thought as to whether it is in harmony with divine standards. If we are conscientious about the matter, the only course to follow is to search the Scriptures and find out for ourselves what the divine requirements are. The first notable instance is that of Noah, of whom we read, "And the Lord said unto Noah, Come thou and all thy house into the ark; for thee have I seen righteous before Me in this generation"—Gen. 7:1. The result of his righteousness, based upon his obedience, is revealed in 9:1, where we are informed that "God blessed Noah." The next great example is Abraham who, because of his transcending faith and obedience, is described as the "friend of God"— a supreme honor indeed. Of him, God said, "That in blessing I will bless thee, and in multiplying I will multiply thy seed as the stars of the heaven, and as the sand which is upon the sea shore. "And thy seed shall possess the gate of his enemies; and in thy seed shall all the nations of the earth be blessed; because thou hast obeyed My voice"—Gen. 22:17-18. In both of these cases the divine blessing was given because they had obeyed God's voice. That fundamental principle will always be found as the basis of God's dealings with members of the human race. In His relations with Israel, this governing law of conduct was always foremost. "And it shall come to pass, IF thou shalt hearken diligently unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to observe and to do all His commandments which I command thee this day, that the Lord thy God will set thee on high above all nations of the earth; and all these blessings shall come on thee, and overtake thee, IF thou shalt hearken unto the voice of the Lord thy God"—Deut. 28:1-2. Nothing could be plainer. And the converse is equally obvious to the understanding. "But it shall come to pass, if thou wilt NOT hearken unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to observe to do all His commandments and His statutes which I command thee this day; that all these curses shall come upon thee, and overtake thee" (v. 15). These words were spoken at the end of their wilderness wanderings, and the principle was not new. The same general truth had been given to them at Sinai forty years before, and is recorded in Lev. 26. Now Paul says, "Whatever was written in former days was written for our instruction, that by steadfastness and by encouragement of the Scriptures we might have hope"—Rom. 15:4 (RSV). Briefly, then, we learn that God is unchangeable, and His sententious law is just as applicable today as it was at Sinai. Therefore, if we are to receive God's blessing for anything we do, let us realize that our words and actions must conform to His commandments. And let us be certain that when we pray for guidance, we submit ourselves unto God, and do all in our power to please Him, and not Ourselves. 1973 Berean 162 If we commit our way to Him by magnifying His Word, and give it first place in our lives, He will guide our steps by filling us with the knowledge of His will. But if we hold the treasure of God's wisdom with a loose hand, and dishonor Him by a lukewarm, and half-hearted walk in the Truth, He will forsake us and leave us exposed to the influence of this present evil world which leads to destruction. It is our wisdom, then, above all things, to give earnest heed to the last message of Jesus: "Blessed are they that DO HIS COMMANDMENTS, that they may have right to the tree of life"—Rev. 22:14. ^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^ —Editor. Amen! Hallelu YAH! BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "And after these things I heard a great voice of much people in the heaven saying, Hallelu YAH! The salvation, and the glory, and the honor, and the power, to YAHWEH our ELOHIM! "For true and righteous are His judgments, for He hath judged the Great Harlot who corrupted the earth with her fornication, and He hath avenged the blood of His servants at her hand. "And a second time they said, Hallelu YAH! And her smoke ascended unto the aeons of the aeons. "And the Twenty and Four Elders, and the Four Living Ones, fell down and did homage to the Deity sitting upon the Throne, saying, AMEN! HALLELU YAH!" REVELATION CHAPTER NINETEEN THE words, "a second time," imply a first time, with an interval between the first and second. There is doubtless something intended in the information that they (the "much people in the heaven") a second time said, "Hallelu YAH." Why did they say it in the first instance? They tell us (v.2) that it was because YAH had judged the Great Harlot, and had avenged the blood of His servants in destroying her. In other words, because of the successful issue of the Second Angel's mission announced in Rev. 14:8. The "Hallel" was "Praise to" YAH, because He had caused the fall of the Great City Babylon which had made all nations drink of the wine of the intenseness of her spiritual fornication. But the judgment given to the saints, as the Elohistic agents of the all-powerful YAH, was not finished with the fall of the capital and government of the Roman Babylon. "The Remnant" still remained to be— "Slain with the sword of the King of kings" (Rev. 19:21,16). The "kings of the earth," the merchants ruined by the wreck of their State-ship, and all its passengers and crew, who bewailed and lamented the Harlot's destruction; and who could not, therefore, join in the celebration of her Destroyer's praise, but cordially hated and blasphemed Him in their anguish (Rev. 16:21)—all these were yet unconquered. 1973 Berean ιω As hard of heart as the old Egyptian government, the greatest manifestation of power fails to subdue their pride & haughtiness, so long as they can arm their people and marshal their hosts in the field of battle. "Their wickedness is great"—too great to be forgiven. The Deity, therefore, hardens their hearts as vessels fitted to destruction, and thereby ensures the execution of His purpose upon them. He— "Puts it into their hearts to fulfil His will until His predictions shall be fulfilled" (Rev. 17:17). The work of judgment has to be executed by the Seven-Horned Lamb and his companions, after they have said Hallelu Yah the first time, and before they say it the "second time." The mission of the Third Angel (Rev. 14:9) has to be discharged between the first and second Hallelu YAH. The Third Angel executes his vengeance upon the Harlot's survivors and sympathizers (14:9-11; 16:20-21; 17:14), the smoke of whose torment— "Ascends unto the aeons of the aeons" (14:11; 19:3). —until the worshipers and sympathizers of the Beast, and the Governments of Europe, are completely and thoroughly subdued, and their kingdoms have become the Kingdom of YAH and of his Anointed Bride (Rev. 11:15). It will be remembered that in Rv. 18:20 there is an exhortation: "Rejoice over her, Ο heaven, and ye holy apostles and prophets, for the Deity hath punished your condemnation by her." This exhortation is responded to by the "much people in the heaven." They are the "heaven" that rejoices, and gives utterance with a "great voice" to the Hallelu YAH for the first time. They did not raise the great Hallelu YAH voice when they first established the throne on Mt. Zion. Their great enemy, the Roman Babylon, is then unbroken. They had first to destroy her before they could praise YAH, and ascribe to him the glory, honor, and power of her desolation. And being destroyed, is there not great fitness in the celebration of the event in the Capital of the Great King? When Napoleon the Great fell from his high estate, all the capitals of the kings he had dethroned celebrated his catastrophe with joy. So also in Washington and other principal cities on the fall of Richmond and the Confederacy. How much greater will the rejoicing be in the Capital of the New Government when they, who in the days of their flesh were cruelly tormented and slain by the Roman Power, are able to say— tf She is no more, and shall be found no more at all!" They will acknowledge that the judgments of YAH are true and righteous: and Himself entitled to the loftiest praise. The celebration will be grand, and will be the earnest of the "second" one not far remote. 1973 Berean 164 But before they can apocalyptically say Hallelu YAH a "second" time, all those things must be accomplished which are represented in Rev. 19:11-21. The Four-and-Twenty Elders and the Four Living Ones (the representatives of the Saints before the throne) will THEN be able to say the Hallelu YAH a second time, and to append to it the final "Amen!" for it is written (19:4)— 'They fell down, and did homage to the Deity that sits on the Throne, saying, AMEN: Hallelu YAH!" This verse is synchronical with Rev. 5:14, which points to the time when "EVERY creature shall say" (in deed and in truth)— "Blessing, and honor, and glory, and power be to Him that sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb for the aeons of the aeons." To which the Four Living Ones respond, "Amen!" When this "Amen" is pronounced by them, the "war of the Great Day of the All-powerful Deity" will be ended. The judgment given to the Saints will have been fully executed. The "It is done" of the Seventh Vial will have been attained. There will no longer be any Eighth Head and Ten Horns. The False Prophet will have disappeared in the Fiery Lake. The Dragon will have been chained in the abyss. And no dominions will be left to dispute the sovereignty of the King of kings, from the Euphrates to the ends of the earth— "ALL nations shall serve him, and call him blessed*' (Ps. 72:11,17). All this is apocalyptically implied in the "Amen" of the Four-andTwenty Elders and the Four Living Ones. They will conjoin with it the Hallelu YAH in its second-time utterance, because all these vast and glorious results are referable only to Him Who— "Made the heavens, and earth, and the sea, and the fountains of waters" (Rev. 14:7; Zech. 4:6). But to the Hallelu YAH of Rev. 19:6, the voice of the great multitude, and the voice of the many waters, and the voice of the mighty thunderings, do NOT prefix "Amen." Theirs is the utterance of the Hallelu YAH of the first time. There are no "thunders" connected with the "AMEN hallelu YAH," for all that succeeds THIS celebration is— "Glory to the Deity in the highest heaven, over the earth peace and goodwill to men." The Hallelu YAH of the first time not only celebrates the ruin of the Great Harlot, and the prevailing of the Omnipotent, but gives the reason why they (the "heaven, and the holy apostles and prophets" slain by her) are able to respond to the exhortation to 197 B ea "Rejoice over her." They say (Rev. 19:7-8)— s e^ " 165 "We can rejoice and exult, and we have given the glory to Him: "For the marriage of the Lamb hath come, and his Betrothed hath made herself ready. And to her it hath been given that she may have been clothed with fine linen pure and resplendent; "For the fine linen is the righteous actions of the Saints." All this had been done in Teman, and BEFORE the Bride had been established upon Mt. Zion. It is true that the English Version reads differently. It renders the verbs "rejoice" and "exult" and "give" as imperatives instead of subjunctives; and "came" as a present instead of a past tense; and "beclothed" as a clothing TO BE effected, that "she should be arrayed." But all this is incorrect, and anachronistic. The Betrothed HAD made herself ready by deeds of righteousness, on account of which she had been married or united to the Lamb in being invested with the clothing of incorruption. This enabled her constituents—"the heaven, and the holy apostles and prophets"—to rejoice and exult. And they needed not to be exhorted to "give honor" to YAH, for, as they say— «We HAVE given the g\ory t0 Him." Their investment with the fine linen of incorruption, as the reward according to their pure and resplendent works, was preliminary to judgment being given them for execution upon the Great Harlot and the Ten-Horned Scarlet Beast that carried her. They had been clothed, and had thereby been made invincible. But it was not until the occasion of the first Hallelu YAH celebration, commemorating the destruction of the Great Harlot, that the prowess of the omnipotent YAH, in concert with his previously prepared Bride, was celebrated by the— "Much people in the heaven.** The first Hallelu YAH will be a great festival. John was commanded to write, and to say (Rev. 19:9)— "Blessed are they who have been called—or invited—to the feast of the marriage of the Lamb." There will be two classes that will be blessed. The first will consist of those who, having believed the Gospel of the Kingdom, been immersed, and thenceforth continued patiently in well-doing till death, have been restored to life, and subsequently—on account of the purity and brightness of their character in Christ— been clothed upon with the fine linen of incorruption. And the second class will consist of the "many waters," or peoples, who may have already become joined to YAH as the subjects of his dominion. These, then, blessed in Abraham and his Seed, partake of the— 1973 Berean 166 "Feast of fat things, a feast of wines on the lees, of fat things full of marrow, of wines on the lees well refined, made by YAHWEH Tz*vaoth in Mount Zion** (Isa. 25:6). The destruction of the great harlot corrupter of the earth will prepare many people for the reception of the light. The veil spread over them will be removed, and they will be able to— "Buy wine and milk without money and without price'* (Isa. 55:1). Thus a new world will be in process of development, the "heavens" of which will be the blessed brethren of the Lord Jesus; and the "earth" thereof, the "many waters" of their dominion—the voice of each ascending in praise of YAHWEH Elohim, the Allpowerful, because He hath prevailed (Rev. 19:6). "And he said to me, These a re the true words of the Deity.'' —these words (19:9) delivered to John by the angel, at whose feet he prostrated himself to do him homage. But the angel, or bearer of the words, forbade the reverence, and said (v. 10)— "I am thy fellow-servant, and of thy brethren that have the testimony of Jesus. Do homage to the Deity, for the testimony of Jesus is the spirit of the prophecy'* These words are parallel with 22:7-10, and refer to the time of the fulfilment of the promise— "Behold I come suddenly," or "as a thief." John and the Angel in the scene personate the Brethren of Christ. They were the fellow-servants, brethren, and prophets, who keep the sayings of the apocalyptic prophecy—who keep IN MEMORY the sayings, and who "keep them" in the sense of executing the judgments of the 7th Vial. The angel's refusal of John's adoration was a direct rebuke to those professors who, in the days of the apostles, were beguiling themselves and others of their reward, in a voluntary humility and worshiping of angels (Col. 2:18)—a rebuke which would make the Apocalypse itself quite distasteful to them. The angel's declaration in the scene indicated that the class he represented was restored to life, for he says he was of them. John and he meet in "the time of the dead," and see and hear the things of the prophecy in their fulfilment, which they were before acquainted with only in vision when the Apocalypse was communicated in Patmos. John had not yet attained to the angelic nature. If he had, he would not have dramatically prostrated himself before the angel to do him reverence. All who are "equal to the angels" fall down before the throne, and do homage only to the Deity, after the example of their representatives, the 24 Elders and the 4 Living Ones in chs. 4 & 5, and in 11:16-17, of this wonderful book. EARTH'S GROWING BILLIONS. At birth of Christ, about 250 million people on earth. 1850 yrs. later, reached 1 billion. It took just 80 more yrs. (1930) for 2nd billion; just 30 more yrs. (1960) for 3rd billion; expect to reach 4th billion 15 yrs. after that (1975). Europe grows less than 1 pet. per yr.; US just over 1 pet.; Asia 2.3 pet.; Africa 2.6 pet.; S. America 2.9 pet. By 2000, Africa, Asia & S. America will have 81 pet. of world population—facing widespread famine, violence & upheaval. (USN 3:12) NOTE: All signs focus on the present as the climax of human history. Obviously, with world population exploding as it is, a point of utter universal vatastrophe looms very very near unless God steps in—as He will, & has said He Will. 1973 Berean 167 What Is Your Life? "Lord, so teach us to number our days, that we may apply our hearts unto wisdom"—Psalm 90:12 BY BROTHER ROBERT ROBERTS SOMETIMES what we read—sometimes what we sing—furnishes the starting point of our meditations. This time it is both. We have sung of the ephemerality of our present life; we have read some cheering things touching another life and of the conditions that lead to emancipation from one to the other. Let us grapple with both ideas for a few minutes. They need grappling with; we cannot otherwise grasp them to any practical purpose. Who estimates the vanity of human life as it ought to be estimated? Their number is very few. The appearance of things is against such an estimate. Things appear in the gross as if they were always the same. You go out into the streets and there are always babies and school children, and young men, and middle-aged men and old men. From year to year the picture is the same. There is no apparent change. Things appear fixed and stable, and people in general give in to the power of this appearance, and unconsciously form their purposes on this tacit but not-to-be confessed assumption. It is well to take time occasionally to look behind this assumption and see its utter fallacy. Though the picture of human life is always the same in the mass, take it in the detail and you find a very different state of things. If you have it in your power, go to a place where you have not been for 20 years. Consider the people you were acquainted with before you left. Where are the babies you knew? Nowhere. Some of them are in their graves; the rest are bustling young men and women. Where are the young men and women you knew? You cannot find them. You may find sober middle-aged people on whom time is making its mark, and who show little of the blithesomeness of youth. Where are the middle-aged men? They are dead or old. Where are the old men that interested you and were interested in you in your boyhood or girlhood? They are gone. The grass grows on their graves. The picture saddens, perhaps, but instructs. What has happened to our acquaintance is happening to us all. We are all—young and old, wise and foolish, rich and poor—in one procession, one long ceaseless procession to the grave. We know it in ourselves and in the friends of our bosom. As time goes on we change—slowly, but surely. The light of the eye gets more subdued; incipient wrinkles show themselves in the corners of the countenance; the curve and plumpness of beauty give way to the angularity and attenuation of decay. Gray hairs show here and there. 1973 Berean 168 Follow the process long enough, and it has but one end in the natural order. The flame of the lamp burns low in its socket till, after a few unsteady twinkles, it goes out. The night comes when no man can work. The mourners go about the street. It is no mawkishness that conjures such a picture. It is good sense. It is wisdom. Folly only ignores the dreadful inevitable to which all human life is at present subject. It drinks and forgets its sorrow. It revels and shouts, and sinks deeper in the miserable mire. Rather let ours be the man of God's prayer (Ps. 90:12)— "So teach us to number our days that we may apply our hearts unto wisdom" Rather let us obey the exhortation which speaks to us as to Children— " £ e d e e m tne time because the days are evil" (Eph. 5:16). "Pass the time of your sojourning here in fear" (1 PL 1:17). The exhortation is seated in wisdom. The days ARE evil. Nothing we can do can alter this fact. We may embellish the evil days and make them more comfortable, but we cannot eradicate the constitutional evil in all human matters which leads every man at last to endorse Solomon's verdict— ,<T7 . . . . . „ Vanity and veXation of spirit Of course, if there were nothing else within reach, it would be unwisdom in the highest degree to trouble ourselves. To make the best of our evil days with as light a heart as possible would be the most commendable course, though with our best endeavors, the attempt to realize good in evil must be failure. "Let us eat and drink for tomorrow we die," would at least then be a natural motto. But this is NOT the state of the case! What means our meeting this morning? What mean these emblems on the table? There is a streak of light and hope in human history. We have another relative besides Adam. We have a redeeming as well as an enslaving kinsman. Our glorious Creator, as our reading informs us (1 Pt. 1:3)— "Hath begotten us again unto a lively Hope by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead" (1 Pt 1:3). And this, we are told, i s - «According to His abundant mercy." Let us take comfort from this intimation. We all know what mercy is. It is the exhibition of kindness where it is not deserved. We all appreciate it keenly when it is shown towards ourselves, however we may at any time fail to conceive it towards others. It is not only mercy we have to contemplate in the case before us; it is "ABUNDANT mercy"—mercy that abounds; mercy that is large and liberal and overflowing. It is what Paul elsewhere describes as— "The exceeding riches of His grace in His kindness towards us through Christ Jesus" (Eph. 2:7). 1973 Berean 169 It is something to open our souls to—to rejoice in; to take comfort from. The goodness of God is an inexhaustible fountain of con- solation. It is manifest in many ways, but in nothing so much as in the fact that He hath- ..Begotten us again unt0 a HveIy H o P e." It was "while we were yet sinners" that this arrangement was made. As yet, the arrangement is only a matter of apprehension by faith. When the thing itself comes, we shall realize how much cause there is for the song which ascribes ublessing and honor and glory and thanksgiving'' to the Creator of all things and the Savior by Christ Jesus. Meanwhile, we take from it all that finite, fainting human faculty can draw. It contains provision for all our need—healing for all our woes. Are we weak and imperfect, with souls cleaving to the dust? We shall attain to power of nature and knowledge and spiritual affinity akin with the angels. Do we groan within ourselves, joining in Paul's lamentation— "O, wretched man that I ami" (Rom. 7:24). We shall be delivered from this bondage of corruption, and exchange the spirit of earth-tending heaviness for the gladsome garment of praise in that emancipation from the mortal which is the highest promise and the strongest desire. Are we harassed and overborne with the difficulties and the complications and the vexations incident to the present form of human life on earth? There is peace and rest and tranquility and joy in store when Christ comes to take his brethren to his bosom, overshadowing them with his love and harboring them in his Father's House—the glorious Kingdom of the Age to Come. Are we poor and despised and of no account among men? The day comes when the saints will realize in their exaltation the promise of the Spirit by Isaiah— "Ye shall eat the riches of the Gentiles and in their glory shall ye boast yourselves" (Is. 61:6). Are we lonely and famished of spirit for want of the society of intelligence and nobility and worth? The day of the manifestation of the sons of God will introduce us to a multitude that no man can number of the choicest of mankind, made perfect in their glorification; men of clear eye, and quick intelligent interest and strong faith and devout adoration of God; men whom Jehovah Himself styles "My jewels" (Mai. 3:17). Such society will be a perpetual fountain of living waters, in which we shall bathe and disport ourselves with joy unspeakable and full of glory. 73 Berean 170 There is no good thing to be conceived or desired but what is contained in the hope laid up for us in heaven, with Christ who will bring it unto us at his glorious revelation. (1 Pet. 1:13). With such a "joy set before us," does it not become easy, when we realize it, to endure the evil of present experience, and to submit to the deprivation connected with the profession of our Hope? There is but one answer. It would be madness to turn aside. There is but one wise course, and that is to take Paul's advice (Heb. 10:35)— "Cast not away your confidence which hath great recompense of reward." Just one glimpse at another aspect of the question. For whom awaits all this''glory to be revealed?" Is it for all? We have learned the Truth on this point very clearly. Peter, whose letter we are considering, put the matter plainly by question— "If the righteous shall scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly and sinner appear?" (1 Pet 4:18). The apostles always speak of salvation contingently. There is always an "if." The "if" is not put obscurely— "IF ye do THESE things. ." (2 Pet. 1:10). —things specified. There are "things" which have to be done and attained, the doing of which constitutes the doers "obedient children" and heirs of the good things promised. There are many such "things." We shall look at one of them strongly presented in this morning's reading: the reciprocal duties of husbands and wives. The Truth comes into our houses and tells us how we ought to behave there. It has to do not only with the nature of man and the purpose of God, but with the way husbands and wives carry themselves towards each other. This has a practical interest for us all. We are most of us husbands and wives here this morning. Let us note what Peter has to say to us on the subject. (1 Pet. 3:1-7). The wives are to be in subjection to their own husbands and are to exhibit a "chaste conversation (or behavior) coupled with fear" in illustration of the power of the Word over them. This is the opposite of the brazen-faced self-assertion which finds favor in some quarters in our day. They are to commend themselves to their husbands by their attire, but not their EXTERNAL attire. They are not to aim at effect in this department. "Whose adorning," says Peter— "Let it not be that outward adorning of plaiting the hair and of wearing of gold or of putting on of apparel." This is a very cheap kind of ornamentation. Only poor-minded women would aim at distinction by its employment. Daughters of Sarah can afford to #llow the other daughters to have a monopoly of finery. It can be purchased at so much a yard! Not so with the adorning that Peter recommends— "Let it be the hidden man of the heart in that which is not corruptible, even the ornament of a meek and quiet spirit, which is in the sight of God of great price." 1973 Berean 171 Wise and worthy women can afford to act on this exhortation. Woman is attractive enough in herself to make her independent of trinkets and ribbons. Not that she is to go to the other extreme and be prudish and unsightly; there is a medium in all these things which good sense easily finds. Women of worth will be found on the medium line. The gew-gaws will certainly be left to the fools. It is the same among men. Where do you find dressiness, dandyism, foppery? ALWAYS among the empty-heads—NEVER among the wise and righteous. In fact, it is almost a safe rule of calculation that in proportion to the amount of adornment outside is the want of adornment inside. Wives are to be modest, and discreet, and sober of character and attire. Then the husbands have their part. They are to ''dwell with the wives according to knowledge''—not according to ignorance; not according to unwisdom. A husband of the apostolic type is governed by intelligence in his ways. A wise man is a beauty anywhere, but especially by the side of a good wife. How is he to behave to her? There is something on this point. He is to— "Give honor unto the wife as unto the weaker vessel, and as being heirs together of the grace of life.'* There is a good deal implied in this. The wife is told to be subject to her husband; but the husband is not told to lecture her on her duty to be subject. He is told to "give honor" to her. This is the opposite of telling her she is subject. To tell her of her subjection is to cast dishonor upon her. To treat her as a subject is to make her a slave and not a co-heir of life eternal. Let a man do HIS part, and a woman is very likely to do hers. Where is the woman that would not find it easy to be subject to a man who honored her, who— "Nourished and cherished her, even as the Lord the Church" (Eph. 5:29). There may be women who even in such a case would be insubordinate and untractable; but they would be out of the common run. If a man, however, loves, nourishes and cherishes his wife, he will not be under much temptation to lay down the law to her on the subject of her subjection. In fact, he could not do such a thing, for such a course would be inconsistent with the honor he gives her. If each side would preach and concern themselves with their OWN duty, each would find their own part easier. It is not for a husband to say to a wife, "It is your duty to obey me." It is not for a wife to say to a husband, "It is your duty to honor me." This mode of going to work would frustrate instead of forwarding the end in view. A wife is not likely to be the more obedient for being told it is her duty, but the reverse; a husband's love is not likely to grow for being ordered. Rather let the wife say, "It is my duty to obey you"; and let the husband say, "It is my duty to honor you." Such an attitude, taken sincerely and naturally on each side, and carried out in a practical way, would be a powerful mutual help. The other way is a mutual hindrance and destruction. The right way is the attitude divinely enjoined, and it is the attitude taken by the children of God. 1973 Berean 172 Those who act otherwise are not ''obedient children/' A man knowing the Gospel and able to TALK of it, but acting the part of a tyrant at home, is no brother of Christ, however he may pass current among men. He is what Paul calls a ''sounding brass and a tinkling cymbal." So a woman having understanding of the ways of God, but acting an insubordinate, unloving part in private, is no member of the sisterhood of Christ, however distinctly and decidedly she may be recognized as "a sister" among professors of the Truth. These things concern the spirit of Christ, and— "If any man have not the spirit of Christ, he is NONE OF HIS," It wants just one other element thrown in to complete the picture of the conjugal relation as scripturally defined: an element APPARENTLY incompatible with the mutual concern just considered, yet not at all so. It is the element of a certain sort of mutual uncarefulness, referred to by Paul when he says— "But this I say, brethren: the time is short. It remaineth that they that have wives be as though they had none*' (1 Cor. 7:29). —alluded to also by Jesus when he says (Lk. 14:26)— "If any man come unto me and hate not. . . his wife and children, brethren, sisters; yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple." It seems at first sight impossible to reconcile this with the love that a man is enjoined to bestow on wife and children. It is one of those sayings that is apt to make a man feel as certain disciples felt who left Christ, saying of another matter— "This is an hard saying; who can hear it?" Persistent dwelling on the Word will open this as well as other dark matters. The allusion to a man's "own life" shows the sense of Christ's words. A man is not to value any human thing on a level with the things appertaining to Christ. The things that are seen are all temporal—short-lived and inferior; the things of Christ, not yet seen, are all eternal and lofty and glorious. Christ asks us to hate the one by comparison with the other. He asks us to put him first—before wife and child and life. This is reasonable. The family relation is ephemeral—an adaptation to the needs of a transitory phase of the world's history. Enlightened husbands and wives will recognize this, and while loving each other as is meet, they will each give to Christ the higher place. "Finally," says Peter, going outside of the domestic circle (3:8-9)— "Be ye all of one mind, having compassion one of another. Love as brethren; be pitiful, be courteous: not rendering evil for evil, or railing for railing, but contrariwise blessing." The sons of God answer to this character. Unity, compassion, love prevail among them—even now. Where contrary conditions exist, it is because of the presence of a foreign element. 1973 Berean 173 There will be no foreign element in the perfected Body of Christ. The mustered family will be perfect and entire, lacking nothing. A powerful mutual affection, on the basis of mutual and unblemished excellence, and nurtured by the unfailing strength of the spiritual and immortal nature, will provide a chief and glorious feature in the feast of good things to come that waits the accepted brethren of the Lord Jesus. What We Must Do to Be Saved "But wilt thou know, Ο vain man, that faith without works is dead? Ye see then how that by works α man is justified, and not by faith only"—James 2:20-24 REGARDLESS of what we accomplish in this life, the one allimportant matter that we must all see to is our eternal salvation. If we fail to obtain that, all is lost. So naturally we would ask the question, "What must we do to be saved?"—if it were not the fact that the question is made to seem unnecessary. Easy formulas and short cuts to salvation are offered to us by many, which would seem to make it unnecessary to seek out the "strait and narrow way to life" of which Jesus speaks so solemnly and urgently. But such "easy" assistance, instead of helping us to find the way of life, tends rather to keep us from doing so, and may in the end cheat us out of life itself. Those who earnestly seek salvation must turn to the Holy Scriptures which alone are "able to make them wise unto salvation" (2 Tm. 3:15), and pray for God's guidance to find it. When considering the question, "What must we do to be saved," we think of the words of the angel Gabriel to Mary concerning her son who was to be born, the Son of God and Savior of mankind— "Thou shalt call his name Jesus ("Savior"), for he shall save his people from their sins'* (Mt. 1:21). This is a fact we should keep clearly before us: that SALVATION IS THROUGH JESUS ALONE. Peter said of him (Acts 4:12)— "Neither is there salvation in any other, for there is none other name under heaven given among men whereby we must be saved" This being established, the next question that comes to mind is, "How do we obtain that salvation which is to be had through Jesus?" The Apostle Paul said— "If thou shalt confess with thy mouth the Lord Jesus, and shall believe in thine heart that God hath raised him from the dead, thou shalt be saved" (Rom. 10:9). 1973 Berean 174 We might compare this statement with one regardling fire safety. If one were to say, "You can be saved from a burning building by pulling the fire alarm," you would take for granted that the person who did it would also follow the instructions of the fire company when it came: but if he refused to do so, then pulling the fire alarm would in no way save him. Likewise when we call upon Jesus, we must also OBEY him to saved by him. Jesus said— "Not every one that saith unto me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the Kingdom of heaven; but he that DOETH THE WILL of my Father which is in heaven" (ML 7:21). Jesus said concerning the salvation of people in his Kingdom— "Many will say to me in that day, Lord, Lord, have we not prophesied in thy Name? And in they Name have cast out devils? And in thy Name done many wonderful works? "And then will I prof ess unto them, I never knew you. Depart from me ye that work iniquity*' (Mt. 7:22-23). The question arises: Why is this so? If Jesus is our Savior, if he died on our behalf, if salvation is by the grace of God, then what need is there of works on our part? Did not Paul say— "By grace ye are saved through faith; and that not of yourselves: it is the gift of God" (Eph. 2:8). Yet Jesus said plainly (after 3 chapters of detailed instructions) that a man who did not OBEY HIS WORDS would be like a man who built his house on the sand (Mt. 7:24-27). We cannot disagree with Jesus to agree with Paul. Rather we must find a way of understanding both in harmony. First let us consider a parable of Jesus which will illustrate the matter. It is in John's Gospel— "I am the True Vine, and my Father is the Husbandman. Every branch in me that beareth not fruit He taketh away. And every branch that beareth fruit He purgeth it, that it may bring forth more fruit. "Now ye are clean through the Word which I have spoken unto you. Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can ye, except ye abide in me. "lam the Vine: ye are the branches. He that abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit; for without me ye can do nothing. "If a man abide not in me, he is cast forth as a branch, and is withered; and men gather them and cast them into the fire, and they are burned" (Jn. 15:1-6). That illustration shows us the way to harmonize the words of Jesus and Paul. It teaches us that first of all we must come to Jesus for salvation. We cannot save ourselves. Then—after we have come to him, put on his Name, and become part of him—our works are counted for righteousness, having been done through his help and in his Name. Note that branches that bear no fruit are "taken away"— cut off the Vine. Paul told the Galatians— "Be not deceived: God is not mocked. For whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap. For he that soweth to his flesh shall of the flesh reap corruption; but he that soweth to the Spirit shall of the Spirit reap life everlasting" (Gal. 6:7-8). 1973 Berean 175 It is surely quite obvious here that by "sowing" Paul referred to the deeds performed, and that good deeds are essential for salvation—and not just good deeds done once in a while, but rather a WAY OF LIFE composed of good deeds. Truly, aside from Christ, works could not save us. But IN Christ (like the branch on the vine), our works, if righteous, are credited to us as bearing fruit. We cannot take for granted that once we have put on Christ, once we have become part of the Vine, then our works will automatically conform to his way. Instead, we are constantly exhorted and instructed to make them conform by continuing to walk in the way of life. Paul spoke (and note it was said to baptized believers) of the way to salvation as opposed to the way to death (Rom. 8:13)— "If ye live after the flesh, YE SHALL DIE. But if ye through the Spirit do mortify (put to death) the deeds of the body, ye shall live" This statement in Romans helps to clarify the other statement in Romans regarding belief and confession of Christ, showing that salvation depends upon living after the Spirit, that is, the Word of God. THIS is truly "confessing Christ." Paul said also that God will render to every man according to his deeds. We find this by turning back to Romans 2— "Thinketh thou this, Ο man, thatjudgeth them which do such things (see ch. 1), and doest the same, that thou shalt escape the judgment of God . Who will render to every man ACCORDING TO HIS DEEDS. "To them who by patient continuance in WELL DOING seek for glory and honor and immortality, eternal life. "But unto them that are contentious and do not obey the Truth, but obey unrighteousness, indignation and wrath, tribulation and anguish, upon every soul of man that doeth evil, of the Jew first, and also of the Gentile" (Rom. 2:3-9). If instantaneous salvation were guaranteed on confession of Jesus' Name, there would be no need of "patient continuance in well doing." And Christ's words regarding the rich would not apply— "It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle than for a rich man to enter into the Kingdom of God" (Mt. 19:24). 73 Berean 176 And we could safely forget about his warning that— "Except your righteousness shall exceed the righteousness of the Scribes and Pharisees, ye shall in no case enter into the Kingdom of heaven (Mt 5:20). It ought to be noted here that it is not impossible for those who at first accept Christ to turn away from him. Rather we are frequently warned of this very real danger, as when Jesus said— "The love of many (RV: the many) shall wax cold, but he that shall endure UNTO THE END, the same shall be saved" (Mt. 24:12-13). Even when Jesus was on earth, many followed for a while and then turned away. His parable of the sower illustrates the fact that it is possible to endure for a while, and then fall away (Mt. 13:20-21)— "He that received the seed into stony places is he that heareth the Word and with joy receiveth it. Yet hath he not root in himself, but endureth for a while." Paul warned some (baptized believers) in Philippi about their walk, writing them and weeping because some were headed for destruction— "For many walk, of whom I have told you often, and now tell you even weeping, that they are the enemies of the cross of Christ, whose end is destruction" (Phil 3:18). He wrote to the Corinthians about wickedness among them— "Ye do wrong. Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not inherit the Kingdom of God? Be not deceived: neither fornicators, nor idolaters, nor adulterers, nor effeminate, nor abusers of themselves with mankind, nor thieves, nor covetous, nor drunkards, nor revilers, nor extortioners, shall inherit the Kingdom of God" (1 Cor. 6:9-10). And to the Ephesians he wrote in strong exhortation (5:5-6)— "No whoremonger, nor unclean person, nor covetous man who is an idolator, hath any inheritance in the Kingdom of Christ and of God. "LET NO MAN DECEIVE YOU WITH VAIN WORDS, for because of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience." These scriptural passages (and they could be multiplied manyfold) inform us in trumpet tones that regardless of how much "faith" we have, and how much we have "loved and confessed Jesus," we cannot be saved without righteous living. We must show our faith by our works (Jm. 2:18). James is most specific that faith without works is dead, being alone, and cannot save us without works. He said— "Even so faith, if it hath not works, is dead, being alone" (2:17). He goes on to point out that the men of faith were saved BY WORKS: that is works which manifested their faith— "But wilt thou fenow, Ο vain man, that faith without works is dead? "Was not Abraham our father justified by works, when he had OFFERED ISAAC HIS SON UPON THE ALTAR? "Seest thou how faith wrought (worked) with his worfes, and by works was faith made perfect? Ye see then how that by WORKS a man is justified and not by faith ONLY" (Jam. 2:20-24). Paul listed Faith, Hope, and Charity as the 3 greatest principles of the Christian faith, and he singled out Charity as the greatest, which shows us that more than Faith is needed. He said— "Though I have ALL Faith, so that I could remove mountains, and have not Charity (Love), I am NOTHING" (1 Cor. 13:2). And what did he mean by "Charity"? Did he refer to an instantaneous belief, love, and confession of Jesus—or did he refer to WORKS of love? What he meant comes out clearly as we read along"Charity suffereth long, and is kind; charity envieth not; charity vaunteth not itself; is not puffed up" (1 Cor. 13:4). 1973 Berean 177 So we see that rather than being saved by a momentary con- fession of Christ, we must have a Charity consisting of not only love for Christ but love for others, together with all other principles of righteousness. Let us remember that when Jesus gave an illustration by parable of what the grounds for rejection or acceptance would be, he not only insisted that we must do good deeds toward him, but added: "Inasmuch as ye did it (or did it not) unto one of the least of these my brethren, ye did it unto me" (Mt. 25:40-45). This seems a far cry from walking up and accepting Jesus as one's "personal Savior" at a revival, and being instantly "saved." We have already noted that "Charity suffereth LONG," that "patient CONTINUANCE in well doing" leads to eternal life; so let us consider the scriptural testimony that any failure in this line may prove fatal to our hopes of salvation. Paul said of himself— "I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection: lest that by any means—when I have preached to others—I myself should be a castaway" (1 Cor. 9:27). Jesus warned his apostles to watch and pray lest they enter into temptation, and he prayed for them that their strength would not fail. He exhorted his followers to watch, and not to relax their guard for a moment lest they should be caught off guard at his return— t{ Watchye therefore, and pray ALWAYS, thatye may be accounted WORTHY to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and to stand before the Son of man" (Lk. 21:36). Peter states (1 Pet. 4:18)— "And if the righteous SCARCELY BE SAVED, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?" Here we might ask: What would be so hard about it if all that was necessary was to "confess Jesus"? But when it is understood that we must— <<WORKoutmr salvation with fear and trembling" (Ph. 2:12). —then the matter is revealed in its true and scriptural light. John in vision was shown things that would be hereafter. Of that vision he tells us in Rev. 20:12— "And I saw the dead, small and great, stand before God. And the books were opened; and another book was opened, which is the Book of Life. "And the dead were judged out of those things which were written in the books, according to their WORKS." This will, of course, result in each individual saint being rewarded differently one from another. Paul said (1 Cor. 15:41-42)— "There is one glory of the sun, and another glory of the moon, and another glory of the stars, for one star differeth from another star in glory. So also is the resurrection of the dead." 1973 Berean 178 This variation in reward according to works is further brought out in the parable of the pounds, where one is placed over 10 cities, another over 5, and another over NONE, but loses all he has— showing that works will determine who will be saved at all, and the extent of their reward. Looking back on the lives of various biblical characters, we can see how they were classified according to their works, good or bad. Judas, for example, one of Christ's chosen 12 apostles, with all the opportunities of the others, transgressed. He fell. Therefore he lost all. Adam, when under test, failed. He sinned and lost his standing before God. This principle can also be applied to the first king of Israel who failed his opportunity because of sin. And Jeroboam the son of Nebat, first king of the Ten Tribes, promised blessing by God if he were obedient, was condemned because he sinned and made Israel to sin by worshipping idols. Later Paul lamented the fact that some of the believers in his day had fallen away, like once-faithful Demas who had forsaken him, "having loved this present world." But while the Scriptures classify men as good or bad in regard to whether they hold fast or forsake the Way of Life, they do offer an opportunity for repentance. The prophets long pleaded with Israel to run from their sins, and promised that God would turn from His wrath and have mercy on them. In Eze. 18 we have a detailed explanation of God's way in dealing with sinners, and with repenters (vs. 21-24)— "But if the wicked will turn from all his sins which he hath committed, and keep all My statutes, and do that which is lawful and right—he shall surely live, he shall not die. "But when the righteous turneth away from his righteousness, and committeth iniquity, and doeth according to all the abominations that the wicked man doeth, shall he live? "All his righteousness that he hath done shall not be mentioned: in his trespass that he hath trespassed, and in his sin that he hath sinned—in them shall he die.'* In case one may think that this, being in the Old Testament, does not apply in our day, we refer again to the New Testament where one can read Jesus' own warning of the dangers that lay ahead for his disciples, and then his words (Mt. 10:22)— "And ye shall be hated of all men for my Name's sake, but he that ENDURETH TO THE END shall be saved." This was the rewarding feature of the faith of the worthies of old. Although we read of some who failed after starting out well, it is also recorded that others remained faithful through everything, in spite of all trials. For example, we read of Abraham not staggering at the promises of God because of unbelief (Rm. 4:20); of Moses not fearing the wrath of the king (Heb. 11:27), etc. 1973 Berean 179 By this faithful adherence to God's ways they manifested by works their faith in Him and in the One to come who would be their Savior. Even though Jesus was not yet born in their day, the faithful of old looked forward to the Christ, and believed in him. Jesus in his prayer to God said (John 17:3)— "And this is life eternal, that they might know Thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom Thou hast sent" He told the Jews (John 8:24)— "If ye believe not that I am he (the Christ), ye shall die in your sins." When he used the term "Christ," we must remember that at that time people did not (as today) use the word as though it were Jesus' surname, but rather as a title of office, like "King." The word "Christ" is a Greek word meaning "anointed," and is the equivalent of the Hebrew word "messiah" (masheeach). When the Israelites of Christ's day used the word Messiah, or Christ, they used it in reference to Israel's coming King who would reign in Jerusalem in God's Name, and bring peace, prosperity and righteousness to all the world. The prophets of Israel spoke glowingly of their coming Messiah who would sit on David's throne and rule the world in righteousness after subduing all nations. The "Good News" or "Glad Tidings" of this coming Kingdom was preached by Christ and the apostles as the "Gospel." The apostles preached the Gospel before they knew that Jesus was to die; they preached about the future Kingdom, or the "Gospel of the Kingdom." The Hope of entering the Kingdom and the Hope of salvation were the same things to them, so when they preached the Gospel of the Kingdom they were in fact preaching the way of salvation— especially since belief of that Gospel was, and still is, required in order to obtain that salvation. Paul said he was not ashamed of the Gospel of God for it was the "power of God unto salvation" (Rom. 1:16). This Gospel, as we have observed, is the "things concerning the Kingdom of God and the Name of Jesus Christ" (Acts 8:12). Paul said— "Moreover, brethren, I declare unto you the Gospel which I preached unto you, which also ye received, and wherein ye stand; "By which also ye are saved, IF ye keep in memory what I preached unto you, UNLESS ye have believed in vain" (1 Cr. 15:1-2). Note the qualification regarding salvation. The Gospel saves— UNLESS we have believed in vain, and IF we keep in memory what Paul preached. This "keeping in memory" is an important requisite for salvation. Paul brings this out perhaps even more strongly Writing tO ColOSSe— 19 ?3 Berean "And you, that were sometime alienated and enemies in your mind by wicked works, yet now hath he reconciled in the body of his flesh through death, to present you HOLY and UNBLAMABLE and UNREPROVABLE in his sight: "IF ye continue in the Faith, grounded and settled, and be not moved away from the hope of the Gospel which ye have heard. "And which was preached to every creature which is under heaven; whereof I Paul am made a minister" (Col. 1:21-23). 180 If there were a short formula for salvation, one wonders why Paul did not tell them about it, rather than placing so much stress on lifelong holiness, and continuing in the Faith, and not being moved away from the Hope of the Gospel. This "Hope of the Gospel" was the "Hope of Israel" to which he referred on several occasions. It involves his hope of resurrection to immortality, to which he said he hoped to attain (Ph. 3:11; Acts 24:15). To enter into that Hope, one must enter into Jesus. We put on his Name by baptism. Peter refers to baptism as something that "saves" us (1 Pt. 3:21)— "The like figure (Noah saved by water) whereunto even baptism DOTH NOW SAVE US—not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good conscience toward God—by the resurrection of Jesus Christ" (1 Pet. 3:21). To be saved we must, like Noah, enter the ark of safety—enter into Christ in the only appointed way. And as Peter points out, this is done by baptism. See also Gal. 3:27— "As many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ." We are thus "saved by water," like Noah. Jesus told Nicodemus he had to be born again. And he added, as the conversation progressed— "Except a man be born of water AND of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the Kingdom of God" (Jn. 3:5). Paul compares our baptism or burial in water to burial with Christ. (The word "baptize" comes from a Greek word meaning to dye by submerging in a liquid.) So Paul takes up the theme in Rm. 6, and says we are "buried with him"— "Therefore we are BURIED WITH HIM by baptism into death, that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of Life" (v.4). This is called "baptism for the remission of sins." When we are baptized into Christ, we are saved from our sins. There is no other way to be washed from our sins. Ananias said to Paul— "Arise, and be baptized, and wash away thy sins" (Acts 22:16). But we are still not saved in the ultimate sense until we are also "born of the Spirit" as Jesus told Nicodemus we must be. For— "Flesh and blood cannot inherit the Kingdom of God; neither doth corruption inherit incorruption" (1 Cor. 15:50). This change is to take place "in a moment," after Christ returns, raises the dead, and judges them. Then, in Paul's words, we shall be: "Changed in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye, at the last trump" (1 Cor. 15:52). 1973 B e r e a n 181 First, however, we must (Heb. 1 2 : 1 ) "Run with patience the race that is set before us." Then those who, in Jesus' words, are "accounted worthy" will be transformed into the Spirit-nature, and given dominion over the nations (Rev. 2:26) to reign as kings and priests on the earth (Rev. 5:10), bringing— ''Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace and goodwill among men." They will THEN be "saved," for Jesus says of them (Lk. 20:35-36)— "But they which shall be accounted worthy to obtain that world, and the RESURRECTION FROM THE DEAD, neither marry nor are given in marriage; neither can they die any more: "For they are equal unto the angels, and are the children of God, being the children of the resurrection" (Lk. 20:35-36). Let us conclude with the beautiful description of their condition expressed in symbolic language in Rev. 7:13-17— "And one of the elders answered, saying unto me, Who are these which are arrayed in white robes? And whence came they? "And I said unto him, Sir, thou knowest. "And he said to me, These are they which came out of great tribulation, and have washed their robes, and made them white in the blood of the Lamb. "Therefore are they before the throne of God, and serve Him day and night in His Temple. And He that sitteth on the throne shall dwell among them. "They shall hunger no more, neither thirst any more; neither shall the sun light on them, nor any heat. "For the Lamb which is in the midst of the throne shall feed them, and shall lead them unto living fountains of waters. "And God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes." —D.S. Forty—Period of Judgment By BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "According to the days of Israel's coming out of the land of Egypt will I show unto him wonderful things91—Mic. 7:15· The numeral adjective 40 is used so frequently, and in such connection in the Scriptures, as to leave the student of "the Word of the Kingdom" without a doubt of its significancy in relation to the times appointed, bearing upon the events to be manifested in the closing up of "the times of the Gentiles," and the restoration of the Kingdom of God again to Israel. In the following lines, then, I propose to cite the instances in which it strikingly occurs that we may be able, if possible, to extract the thing of which it is exhibited as the sign. The Noahic deluge, whose incidents were so arranged as to be convertible into a sign of things pertaining to Israel, was the result of rain for 40 days and 40 nights (Gen. 7:4). Noah opened the window of the Ark 40 days after the tops of the mountains were seen above the waters (Gen. 8:16). Moses was in Mt. Sinai in the presence of Jehovah's glory, 40 days and 40 nights (Exo. 24:18). 1973 Berean 182 When he came down the 2nd time from glory, where he had been interceding for Israel, and bringing with him the new tables of the Covenant, it was after an absence of 40 days and 40 nights. On this occasion his face shone intensely with the glory of the divine majesty he had been contemplating; so that the Israelites could not behold it unveiled (Exod. 34:28). The 12 representatives of the 12 Tribes of Israel were 40 days among the 7 nations of Canaan spying out their affairs (Num. 13:25). These 40 days became a sign of the duration of the time in which they should continue to bear their iniquities before entering into the possession of the land under the victorious Jehoshua, the son of Nun. The time signified by the sign was 40 years—a day for a year (Num. 14:34). The great giant-image, Goliath, defied the armies of Israel 40 days, until he was destroyed by the "little stone" out of the shepherd's purse of David (1 Sam. 17:16). Elijah travelled towards Horeb during 40 days and 40 nights, in the strength of one meal of bread and water (1 Kings 19:8). Ezekiel lay on his right side 40 days as bearing the iniquity of the House of Judah. This, with the 390 days he lay on the other side for the Ten Tribes, was "a sign to the House of Israel," that they should eat their defiled bread among the Gentiles during 430 years, from the destruction of Jerusalem by the King of Babylon. Of this 430 years' national vassalage, 40 years were on account of the transgressions of Judah, when the government of the whole nation was in the hands of that tribe, under Solomon, from the foundation of the temple to the revolt of the Ten Tribes from the house of David, in the 4th year of Rehoboam's reign—a year for each day of the sign (Eze. 4:3-13). Jonah announced to the king and nobles of Nineveh, the capital of the great Assyrian monarchy, that if they did not repent, their city should be overthrown at the end of 40 days (Jonah 3:4). Like Moses and Elijah, Jesus fasted 40 days and 40 nights in the wilderness (Matt. 4:2). He was afterwards 42 months, or 1260 days preaching the gospel of the kingdom as Jehovah's "dove" (Matt. 3:16) bearing the olive leaf to Israel (Acts 10:36). John the Baptist preached the same gospel for the same length of time before him, or 2520 days for both. Forty days elapsed between the resurrection of Jesus and his ascent from the Mount of Olives; during which interval he discoursed with his apostles concerning the things pertaining to the kingdom of God (Acts 1:3). The symbolical "Holy City," or "those that keep the commandments of God, and have the testimony of Jesus Christ," that is, the saints, were to be trodden under foot of the Gentile governments for 42 sign-months (Rev. 11:2). These papal powers were to practise their oppressions for 42 similar months (Rev. 13:5). Such are the principal places where 40 occurs in connection with days and months; let us see now what the Bible suggests in rela1973 B e r e a n 183 tion to the phrase— FORTY YEARS Between the first passover eaten in Egypt, and the entering into Cannan under Joshua, the Hebrew nation ate manna 40 years in the wilderness (Exod. 16:35). Moses was 40 years old when he forsook the court of Egypt. He remained in the land of Midian as a keeper of sheep 40 years (Acts 7:28-30). After that he was king in Jeshurun 40 years, during which he showed the wonders of God in the wilderness. "According to the days of Israel's coming out of the land of Egypt, will I show to him wonderful things" (Mic. 7:15). "In the wilderness of the people; where I will plead with them face to face, like as I pleaded with their fathers in the wilderness of the land of Egypt" (Eze. 20:35-36). in bringing them into Gilead and Bashan to feed there as in the days of old (Mic. 7:14). The days of the coming out of Egypt were 40 years. This passage in Micah confers an interest and importance upon this 40 years, additional to what they naturally possess as the transition period between the servitude in Egypt and the encamping in the valley near Jericho, named the valley of Achor, under Joshua. They are converted by the Spirit into a sign of a FUTURE TRANSITION PERIOD OF 40 YEARS, at the expiration of which the Twelve Tribes shall again encamp in the same valley, preparatory to their taking possession of the rest of the Holy Land. The papal countries throughout which the Israelites are scattered, are collectively styled Egypt. The words of the Spirit are, "The Great City, which is called spiritually, Sodom and Egypt, where also our Lord was crucified" (Rev. 11:8). Jesus was crucified in the Roman empire, which was constituted the great municipality or city, by the decree of Caracalla. The demoralized condition and fate of Sodom, and the relation of Israel to ancient Egypt, being significative of the condition and fate of Rome, and of the existing bondage and oppression of Israel in the bounds of its ecclesiastical dominion, and of the Egypt-like judgments that await the kings, priests, and peoples of her communion during the period of Israel's deliverance—the Roman system is most appropriately designated by the names of those ancient sinks of iniquity and abomination. The spiritually-named Sodom and Egypt is the existing place of Israel's exile; and (from the crucifixion of their king to the death of his witnesses) the arena of their conflicts with the Gentile powers, symbolized by the Beast with Seven Heads and Ten Crownedhorns. It is from this Egypt of the West that Israel has to be brought out in these "latter days," and to be transferred into the land promised to Abraham and his seed for a perpetual inheritance. How is it to be done? The answer to this question, not of difficult production, is not the subject of this article. What I want to impress upon the reader's mind at this time is, that there IS a coming out, or future exodus for Israel from the Egypt of the West; and that there is a future entering into Palestine by the way of the ancient Jericho; and that between the coming out and the entering in, there is an INTERVAL OF FORTY YEARS. 1973 Berean 184 The "hour of judgment on Sodom and Egypt" belongs to this period. It is the grand climacteric of Israel's years—the great transition period in which they are passing out of evil into good, exchanging blindness and degradation for divine intelligence, and exaltation above all nations of the earth. The 40 years in the wilderness of Egypt was typical of a future 40 years' sojourn in the ^wilderness of the peoples.19 It will begin under the 7th vial, and end with the exhaustion thereof; when it will be proclaimed, "It is done!" The work of engrafting Israel into her own Olive Tree, upon a principle of faith in Jesus as their king, will have been perfected; a work which only God can accomplish through the agency of Christ and the saints. But, how shall Israel be induced to stand to arms, and in the face of strong powers begin their march towards the appointed wilderness? Ah, saith Jehovah, addressing David's Son and Lord, "Thy people SHALL BE WILLING in the DAY OF THY POWER" (Psa. 110:3). "Behold, I will allure Israel, and bring her into the wilderness, and speak comfortably unto her. And I will give her her vineyards from thence, and the valley of Achor for a door of hope; and she shall sing there, as in the days of her youth and as in the days when she came up out of Egypt" (Hos. 2:14-15). This has never happened since Hosea recorded it in the oracles of God; it therefore remains to be fulfilled. The reader will perceive from these testimonies that the restoration of the Israelites scattered and buried in the nations is indirect. When Moses led them out of ancient Egypt he did not march them direct to Palestine; but led them by marches and countermarches through a waste howling wilderness, indirectly to that glorious land. So the Spirit testifies it shall be in the future exodus. They will be allured from that Egypt into the wilderness; and marched from the wilderness to the Valley of Achor, when, by divine discipline and instruction, they shall be regarded fit. This 40 years in the wilderness of the peoples will precede by 10 years, and of necessity be parallel with, the last "hour" or 30 years of the continuance of "the kingdom of men," which at their expiration will lose all power to practise and make war. The marvellous things to be shown to the Israelites will make them mighty; so that "the nations" of that kingdom— "Shall see and be confounded at all their might; and shall lay their hand upon their mouth, and their ears shall be deaf, and they shall lick the dust like a serpent. "They shall move out of their holes like worms of the earth; and they shall be afraid of the Lord our God, and shall fear because of thee" (Mic. 7:16-17). —for the Lamb shall overcome them (Rev. 17:14). mmmm^^mmmmmmmm^m^mmmmmmmmmmm 1973 Berean FREE BOOK ON VITAL SCRIPTURE TRUTH 185 "Christendom Astray/' a 462-pg. book outlining and scripturally proving all basic Bible doctrines Involved in the Gospel of salvation, which has helped thousands find the Way of Life, will be gladly sent free and without obligation. Write: G. V. Growcott, 12954 St. Marys, Detroit, Mich. 48227. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy i( The heart of the sons of men is full of evil, and madness in their hearts while they live"—Eccl. 9:3 is ISRAEL AFTER 25 YRS. 4000 yrs. of Jewish history have passed since God told Abraham, "Go forth from your country to the land I will show you. And I will make of you a great nation." After centuries of wandering, the people of the Covenant have returned to their Promised Land. For Jews of world, founding of Israel was something of a miracle. So's fact that nation of 3 million, surrounded by implacably opposed Arab states who outnumber it 42 times, has not only survived 25 years of strife & war, but has grown & prospered beyond its founders' wildest dreams. Militarily, it has never been stronger, Economically, it has never been more prosperous. Statistically, its achievements in past 25 yrs. are unparalleled in history. Israel, which had population of 650,000 in '48, now is home to nearly 3 million of world's 14 million Jews. In addition, there are 1V2 million Arabs under its jurisdiction. Gross national product rising 9 pet. a yr. ($3 billion in '50; $28 billion in 72). Exports 48 times greater than in '49. On May 14, '48, David Ben Gurion formally proclaimed State of Israel. Next day, 6 Arab armies invaded new nation. Within wks. they were defeated on every front. All but 160,000 of 750,000 Palestinian Arabs fled from fighting to neighboring states. Israel's military supremacy in Mideast has been in large measure ensured by consistent support of US. But unswerving US support is something Israel may not be able to count on in the new era of oil politics. The new people of Israel, like the old, are quite prepared to face a hostile world all alone. One factor that unites the generations is a profound conviction nation will survive, no matter what. Survival is Jewish sacrament. Even secularminded compelled to regard Jewish survival thru millenniums of repeated exodus & holocaust as one of history's miracles. Israel is that miracle's latest & perhaps most remarkable incarnation. (Tm 4:30) NOTE: "Where much is given, much is required." We, of all generations, have been privileged to witness this tremendous event: rebirth of the dry bones of Israel—jor 20 centuries prayed for & anticipated by all God's people. "When ye see THESE things," said Jesus, "the Kingdom of God is nigh" (Lk. 21:24-31). DOLLAR LOSES MORE VALUE. Until very recently, only a "banana republic" would devalue its money twice in 14 months, but last wk. US did just that, cutting value of once almighty $ another 10 pet. After 71 devaluation (to help trade balance), US trade deficit more than doubled, to $6.8 billion last yr. The dual $ devaluation has hastened creation of a turbulent new world of money in which once fixed values of some currencies are bouncing up & down like acrobats. Root cause of $ weakness is that ever since '50s, US has been living beyond its means. World now lacks any coherent monetary system. Old system of fixed values tied to $ that was tied to gold was destroyed by 71 $ devaluation, Since then, devaluations, revaluations & floats coming with dizzying rapidity. World sorely needs agreed rules so there won't always be series of wrenching crises. Monetary chaos would strangle international movement of money, people and goods. (Tm 2:26) 1973 Berean 186 NOTE; US, as a nation, is like a lustful, greedy, improvident individual, living in luxury & running up enormous debts. All seek pleasure & indulgence beyond their means, & there is not the national will to exercise selfcontrol & self-discipline. This blind folly must surely be of God, to punish them for wickedness, & weaken them that Russia may prevail. JEWS & JESUS. Relations between many US Christians & Jews have progressed over past decade to joint social witness & scholarly collaboration. Encouraged by Vatican II & World Council of Churches, Christian scholars have arrived at a new "theology of Judaism" that places Jews off limits to Christian proselyters, on theory that promises made by God to Israel constitute an eternally valid covenant that, for Jews, was not abrogated by the "second covenant" established thru Jesus. Evangelical Christians, however, still insist there's only one way to reach God—a solid belief in Jesus & his teachings. "They're saying we're rejected & need salvation," says a rabbi, "I'm insulted by that presumption." A Jewish delegation has approached Billy Graham concerning proselyting Jews. Last wk. he acknowledged he was "giving a lot of thought" to what the special relationship between God & Israel might imply for evangelists who want to proselyte Jews. He plans to go before a Jewish audience with a fuller statement on Judaism. "The fact that in God's providence 16 million Jews survive as Jews, despite scattering, is very mysterious to me," he said. The strain between tolerance & evangelism has always been a problem in Christianity, & the "Key 73" proselyting crusade has brought it back into prominence, with all its dangers & sensitivities. (Nwk 3:19) NOTE: This is pitiful confusion, & a destroying of the power of the Gospel for the sake of "ecumenism." The Gospel of Christ as the only possible Way of Life was first preached to the Jews, & is the fulfilment of all the promises of the Old Testament. And they were warned that if they rejected it they were cutting themselves off from salvation. This is the whole message of the New Testament, over & over—how then can so-called "Christians" blasphemously rewrite it to give the Jews salvation while rejecting God's Son, the very Savior He sent them to lead them to life? What confusion! The TRUTH that no Jew can attain to salvation without accepting & obeying Christ is crystal-clear from Paul's inspired words TO JEWS in Acts 13:26-46. See also Jn. 8:24; Acts 2:36-40; 3:19-26; 28:17-28. US-EUROPE ALLIANCE IN TROUBLE. On both sides of Atlantic, future of US's partnership with Europe being questioned as never before. Mutual suspicions & recriminations all too apparent. US faces tough, bitter fight on economic, monetary & military matters—as result of startling change in attitude that has swept Europe in recent years. In '48, when Alliance was formed, Europe openly feared Russian aggression. Russian troops occupied practically all E. Europe. Czechoslovakia had just fallen to Reds. West Europe no longer feels menaced by Russia. Accommodation with Russia, not readiness for war, preoccupies political leaders. Russian domination of W. Europe, with its vast industrial resources, would shift global balance of power disastrously against US. US-Europe partnership entering difficult period. Both sides see real danger that 73 could mark start of disastrous unraveling of Atlantic Alliance. Anti-USism—with fresh & ominous twist—on rise in Germany, long considered one of US's closest allies. Latest anti-US outbursts come from "Jusos" (young socialists) in Brandt's own party. Major goals of Jusos: end financial support ($1 billion a yr.) for US forces; order out all foreign troops; create nuclear-free & demilitarized zone in Central Europe, & make Germany a Marxist state in a Marxist Europe. Anti-US mood in Germany bound to grow. (USN4.16) NOTE: It is significant that newswriters are now beginning to talk seriously of "Russian domination of W. Europe," & its ominous implications for US. Note these realities: growth of Communist strength in W. Europe; growth of Russian "respectability"; growth of Russian (Gog) ties with W. Germany (Magog); growth of Russian power; growth of CatholicCommunist accord; decline of US power & prestige (accelerated by Watergate & $'s collapse). 1973 B e r e a n 187 IRAN SEEKS PERSIAN GULF DOMINANCE. Significant new shift in global power balance. Persian Gulf is one of few areas in world genuinely vital to national interest of every major industrial nation. Japan gets 90 pet. of its oil from Gulf; Europe gets 60 pet. Protection of this supply is clearly a matter of life & death thruout world. Yet since British pulled out 1V2 yrs. ago, a classic power vacuum has prevailed. Shah has set out to become guardian of world's oil lifeline. He has launched world's biggest military buildup since US deployment in Vietnam. Iran has spent $3 billion on war equipment this year alone, & in next 2 years plans to spend more on arms than in all past 15 years: from laserguided bombs & ground-to-ground missiles to jet tankers to refuel fighterbombers fleet in air. Iran moving to control all traffic in Gulf, & they're expanding their control into Gulf of Oman & Indian Ocean, making Persia a South Asian as well as Mideast power. Building a $600 million army, navy & air force base at Chah Bahar, largest in all Indian Ocean, & $200 million complex at Bandar Abbas. Greatest peril in area, & chief reason for Shah's immense buildup, is subversion & aggression among oil-rich nations of Gulf. To Iran, Iraq is "the enemy," US officials convinced Russia seeks to cause trouble in area—using Iraq. Russians already have sprawling naval facility at Umm Qasr in Iraq, & maintain an active Indian Ocean fleet. Gulf has all earmarks of serious trouble spot. Even now, arms race in full swing all over Gulf. Saudi Arabia signed last wk. for $600 million in British air defense equipment, & $350 million in French tanks. Saudis spending $1 billion a yr. on arms. Lifeline that connects Gulf to world—Strait of Hormuz—so precarious that it could be interrupted by a few mines thrown from a fishing boat, or a guerrilla attack sinking a tanker. US is betting on the Shah. In addition to supplying much of his hardware, US has underwritten a vigorous training program for Iranian officers. (Nwk 5:21) NOTE: This is very significant & ominous in the light of the clear prophecy that Iran (Persia) MUST be allied with Gog against Israel (Eze. 38:5). At present, with deep historic irony that only students of prophecy can appreciate, both US & Israel are helping to build Persia's military power with a view (as they see it) to building a buffer & defence against Russian domination of Mideast & Persian Gulf. A powerful Persia, with great new military, air & naval bases along the Indian Ocean coast, & a strong Navy, would be a big factor in the northern confederacy (see map on opposite page). ••__•«_-•,•__,____••_« WATERGATE DAM BURSTS. Most damaging scandal to befall Presidency since Teapot Dome. The tremors shook Govt. to its foundations. US Attorney General & Nixon's 2 top advisers resign: a shattering spectacle for President & Presidency. Nixon's move to save himself reduced his Govt. to anarchy of finger pointing among his top aides. Morality of men running US has become a major issue. The scandal has endangered the office as well as the man. It's no longer save the Party, or even the President; it's save the Presidency. One most sorely hurt of all may yet be Nixon himself. His gamble was that he could recover the moral high ground, portraying himself as betrayed by subordinates. Damage will be grave if he himself is implicated. If it goes to President,we've lost 200 yrs. of US history. Damage can't yet be measured. Watergate is a monument to zealotry that ignored law & morality. Already diminished Nixon & Presidency.Harm may be irretrievable.(Nk4:30) NOTE: A terrible state of affairs, heart-rending to those whose hope & faith is in man & in the chimera of "democracy," but faith-strengthening to those who have the true Bible picture of man & God, & whose faith & trust is in the latter alone. 1973 Berean 188 UMM QASR SOVIET NAVAL BASE KHARK HOVERCRAFT FLEET g BUSHEHR HELICOPTERS, F-5s AND PHANTOM JETS IRANIAN NAVY KISH IRANIAN AIR FORCE PHANTOM JETS, BANDAR ABBAS $200 MILLION MILITARY COMPLEX DAILY OIL SHIPMENTS SAUDI ARABIA . 7,200,000 Barrels IRAN 6,100,000 KUWAIT .. 3,400,000 CHAH BAHAR $600 MILLION MILITARY BASE UNDER CONSTRUCTION ABU MUSA GULF OF OMAN NEW C-130 AIRSTRIP 2 ?° 1 U.S. NAVAL JAPAJM5QAYS ! The Persian Gulf: One of the few places that is genuinely vital to everyone's national interest Newsweek DESTRUCTIVE DOLLARS. If world's finance ministers & bankers are ever to put an end to the monetary crises that continually plague world, their No. 1 task is to figure out some way to mop up excessive supply of dollars sloshing around globe. These so-called Eurodollars are dollar accounts held in foreign banks all around world. They have been increasing at an alarming rate in recent years, right along with the US balance-of-payments deficit. There are $80 billion in private accounts, & $27 billion more in central banks. When US decreed that $ would no longer be backed by gold, there was nowhere for the excess $s to go, & they hang menacingly over world foreignexchange markets. Once there is doubt about holding $s (that is, fear value will drop again), then everything falls apart, and that's what's happening. The underlying economic reality is simple: US is now beginning its 3rd yr. of tremendous deficits in its transactions with rest of the world. As result, world has lost confidence in ability—or will—of world's leading financial authorities to correct the huge & seemingly perpetual US imbalance. US gold hoard has shrunk to $10V2 billion, while there is above-mentioned $107 billion in claims against $. (Nwk 3:19) NOTE: US, in its greed and stupidity, has turned loose a Frankenstein to wreak havoc in the world's markets. And every year of callous mismanagement & selfishness is adding fuel to that fire. It is not difficult to see why Europe in disgust will turn elsewhere. CHURCHES REWRITING GOD'S WORD. Altho each Gospel differs in details & approach, as a whole they amount to prima facie case that Jews were almost totally responsible for Jesus' death. Pilate, by contrast, treated merely as Roman figurehead who washed his hands of whole matter. But today Bible scholars incline to place brunt of responsibility for Jesus' death squarely on Romans. Evidence suggests that Gospel accounts of Jesus' "trial" before Sanhedrin are seriously inaccurate. There are major inconsistencies in Gospel reports: Mark & Matt, mention 2 trials; Luke only one. In various versions of trial, there are 27 violations of Jewish law. Present-day Christians must deal with Bible as document conditioned by time, passions & circumstances. They can't adopt every attitude in Bible just because it appears there. (Nwk 4:23) NOTE: What ignorant & presumptuous blasphemy in the name of ecumenism! And note the best that can be advanced to support the charge of "inconsistencies'*: one trial mentioned in one Gospel, 2 mentioned in another. Where is the contradiction? Luke does not say there was ONLY one. And "27 violations of Jewish law". Where is the contradiction? Jesus himself points out one violation (Jn. 18:23, compare Acts 23:3). Matthew mentions another: false witnesses. In fact, the whole tenor of the Gospel records is that the whole procedure was wicked & illegal. To charge "contradiction" because the Bible portrays the Jews as acting illegally is pitifully absurd. The whole message of THEIR OWN Scriptures is that the Jews as a nation acted illegally from beginning to end, & that is why they were scattered (Dt. 31:16-29; 2 Ch. 36:14-16; Eze. 20; Dn. 9:5-13; Ps. 106; Jr. 32:30-35, etc., etc.). BREZHNEV SHUFFLES; GAINS POWER. Not since Krushchev emerged as top man in Kremlin had Politburo had such a shakeup. In most confident & decisive move of his 8 yrs. as head of Communist Party, Brezhnev last wk. eased out 2 enemies from ruling Politburo, & replaced them with 4 powerful & loyal allies, including Defense Minister Grechko, man who built Russian military machine. (Tm 5:7) NOTE: This may or may not be significant. Certainly the firmer Brezhnev's control, the more freedom of action he has, & the more quickly & decisively he can act. Army Chief Grechko has always seemed to be one of Russia's most hardline & sinister figures, & he now comes into morepower & prominence. 1973 Berean 190 CLOSING IN FOR KILL IN CAMBODIA. Reds control most of Cambodia's land & lk the population. Capital besieged: all major supply roads cut, plus vital river supply line. Army in disarray. Severe shortages of electric power & fuel in capital: food running low. Only US aid & bombing keeps Go.vt. going. Establishment of a Communist govt. in Cambodia would send shock waves far beyond; would strengthen hand of N. Viets, China & N. Korea; give tremendous boost to Reds in S. Vietnam & Laos; & guarantee N. Viets a safe staging area & sanctuary for troops fighting in S. Vietnam, plus an important seaport & supply center. (USN 4:16) NOTE: The US Govt. clearly perceived that a line must be drawn & held if Red dictatorship is to be stopped from gradually gobbling up the world. But it was not God*s will that Red dictatorship be stopped, so US spent vast effort & treasure trying to build a wall on quicksand. Apart from Watergate, Nixon may have been able to rally enough public support to continue the struggle, but the scandal has eroded his influence, & Congress is blindly determined on conceding SE Asia to the Reds. So God works out His purposes. FABULOUS WEALTH IN DESERT. World's largest known oil reserves. At breakneck speed, Saudi Arabia on way to becoming world's largest oil producer, & largest foreign holder of $s. Beneath Arabia's sands & offshore waters lies oil US will need to prevent present fuel crisis from becoming catastrophe by '80. Enormous sums piling up from oil sales giving Saudis awesome leverage on world currency, US trade & monetary stability. Already US has enormous vested interests there: Aramco (owned by Mobil, Exxon & Texaco) is largest oil company in world, has world's biggest inland oil field, biggest offshore oilfield, & biggest oil port. In '69 production was 3 million barrels a day; In '71, 4% million; in '72, 6 million; by end of '73,8 million; by '75,10 million (close to US, now world's No. 1 producer); & by '80, expect an incredible 20 million barrels per day. Proved reserves are 150 billion barrels: further exploration could double this quickly. King Faisal is wary of Russian aims in Mideast, & pursues a pro-Western policy. Saudis consider close ties with US a cornerstone of their foreign policy. Both recognize a mutual need. One of Saudis' biggest fears is the growing presence of Russian influence in the Persian Gulf. Recent new Russian-Iraqi ties, Russian aid to Yemen, & Moscow's anxiety to strike a warm note with United Arab Emirates—all are keeping Saudis warier than ever. US Govt. & private companies in huge program to build up armed forces. There's hardly an Air Force office in country without US military advisor. US is also helping create a Navy & modernize National Guard. (USN 5:7) NOTE: It is remarkable & faith-strengthening that Jordan (Ammon, Moab, & Edom), & Saudi Arabia (Sheba & Dedan) are very anti-Russian & pro-US, as they must be. And especially that Saudi Arabia has the world's greatest oil reserves, in which US has controlling interest. INCREDIBLE SCANDAL OF WATERGATE breaking wide open, creating crisis of confidence in US Govt. One high official said: "I don't know why anyone should ever again believe anything a govt. official says." Burglary & wiretapping of Democratic headquarters was serious crime in itself. But now it has been revealed clearly as part of far broader campaign of espionage designed to give Nixon unfair, illegal advantage in election. It was financed with secret funds, contributed anonymously in cash & never accounted for, in violation of law. Then same funds were used to persuade the caught burglars to plead guilty & keep quiet about higher involvement. Justice Dept. & FBI influenced to limit investigations. (Tm 4:30) NOTE: A sad picture indeed of human govt But if men do not have a true, living, enlightened reverence for God & His holy law, why should they be expected to be anything but self-serving? What other standard of conduct is there? Godless evolution teaches them that strongest & most self-serving survive. 1973 Berean 191 ITT INTERNATIONAL INTRIGUE. Attempt by ITT to overthrow Chile's Marxist Govt. began in Sept., 70, immediately after Allende got plurality of 36 pet. of vote in presidential election, assuring him victory in runoff. ITT officials, fearing for its $150 million Chilean investment, determined that Allende had to be stopped. It tried its best to enlist support of other US companies in Chile, as well as CIA & White House. ITT offered $1 million to US Govt. to "encourage formation of an anti-Allende coalition in Chile." Nearly yr. after Allende came to power, ITT still plotting to discredit him. Pressured US Govt. to cut off US aid & credit, financially support Chile's opposition newspapers, & "get to reliable sources within the Chilean military." ITT officials repeatedly met with CIA to discuss plans.(Tm 4:2) NOTE: This kind of thing—the machinations & pressures of US big money in other countries' affairs—is driving the world into the arms of Russia. Significant to note is that the CIA—a secret US Govt. dept.—"repeatedly met" with ITT officials in their maneuvers. WATERGATE. High Republican & White House officials chose to evade & lie. Last wk. that dam of deceit seemed on verge of collapse, spilling Watergate's contamination more widely than ever. Lack of veracity of high officials suggests disdain for law, for truth, and for public. (Tm 4:2) NOTE: US's moral power & authority is crippled at a time when it is needed most as "leader" of the free world. It horrified the world with its Vietnam excesses, it convulsed the world with its monetary irresponsibility & instability, & now shocks the world with its callous illegality & hypocrisy. These things truly are not exclusive to US, but they make a mockery of its pious pretensions & claims of great wisdom & maturity to guide others. ROME MOVES TOWARD REDS. Last wk. Vatican's staid "Sacred Congregation for Evangelization of Peoples" proclaimed that Mao's thoughts contained "Christian reflections." Icy mood between Pope & Red China has been thawing ever since '70, when Pope in Hong Kong delivered a "message of unity & love to all the Chinese people." Vatican said that message was an explicit gesture to Red China. Pope appears to show more concern for the good works of Red China than for the faith of its still persecuted Christians there. Rome seems to be moving with history. (Tm 4:30) NOTE: How encouraging to see Rome & the Reds edging together for the final coalition against Israel! China is one of the bitterest enemies of Israel, arming & inciting the terrorists, & this makes her a natural ally of the Pope. KIDNAPINGS IN ARGENTINE. Kidnaping of officials & executives by guerrilla groups has become epidemic: 200 in 2 yrs. This yr.l reported case every 3 days; many unreported. Several have cost employers small fortunes—some have paid $1V2 million in ransom. (Tm 4:23) NOTE: Another sign of the lawlessness & violence of our times. HO CHI MINH TURNPIKE. N. Vietnam sending masses of troops & weapons into S. Vietnam, driving south in broad daylight since there's no more danger of US air strikes. Could mean N. Viets plan major offensive, after US withdrawal is complete. (Tm 3:26) NOTE: It would appear much blood & treasure has been spent in vain, & all that has been accomplished is the permanent devastation of the land & massive desolation and destruction of the people. GROPING FOR NEW MONETARY SYSTEM. As world watched, the money men were presiding over nothing less than death of one international monetary system & conception of another. National self interest invariably becomes paramount in negotiations: last wk. made that clear. (Nwk3:19) NOTE:"National interest" is always "paramount" That is why no manmade system can either be fair or can work. 1973 Berean 192 US ERA ENDING. Era in which US dominated all key phases of world's economic life coming to end. Just 20 yrs. ago, US held unquestioned sway over policies that determined world's trade & finance. It made xk the world's steel, held Ms its gold & monetary reserves. In '50,.US produced 37 pet. of world's goods & services: now 28 pet., & shrinking. Between '50 & 71, US share of world steel production fell from 47 to 19 pet. In same period, Russian production quadrupled, passing US in 71 & becoming world leader with 132 million tons. In same period, Jap production climbed from 5 million tons to 97 million. Much same pattern true in autos & general industrial production. US share of world monetary reserves: 42 pet. in '50; 8 pet. in 71. Economists believe US, in relation to other countries, is in period of longterm decline. US losing more & more of world export market it once dominated: once unchallenged, now barely ahead of Germany. (USN 3:26) NOTE: With wisdom, how different it could have been, but it was not God's will it should be different. US has been greatly blessed, & has squandered its blessings. Russia must become powerful enough, & have sufficient world support, to feel safe in attacking Israel. This is rapidly developing. The world will approve. .^mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm^mmm^^mm FRENCH NATIONAL ELECTIONS. Out of 23 million votes, Gaullist coalition got only 100,000 more than Socialist-Communist coalition—too close for comfort. Leftists now have 181 Parliament seats to Govt's 271 (USN 3:26) NOTE: The Communists came very close to gaining control of France by open election—something unthinkable a few years ago. And they now have greatly increased Parliamentary power. The picture is developing. NEW BUILDUP OF RED NAVAL POWER in Mediterranean. Six cruisers & 51 other units. Include "Nikolaiev," first of Kara class of guided-missile cruisers: has unparalleled mix of weapons systems & missiles. (USN 4:2) CORRUPTION IN HIGH PLACES. The Senate confirmation hearings for Patrick Gray as head of FBI revealed among high officials in the Administration and in the President's re-election committee a disturbing callousness toward the law, and toward truth. (Tm 3:19) NOTE: This scandal which with ever-increasing reverberations is shaking US to its foundations simply confirms Bible picture of all human govts. In the April portion of "Second Voyage to Australia," an idealistic young man 75 years ago told bro. Roberts his life's ambition was to clean up US politics. How unutterably sad! Bro. Roberts told him it was a hopeless, impossible task. _ - _ _ _ _ _ _ — _ _ - _ _ IRISH TERRORISM. The IRA last wk. carried battle to Britain. Did job well: 1 killed, 243 wounded, London in a state of shock. Bombs wrecked London bldgs. Unhappy prospect: all concerned, including people of England, in for new wave of terror. (Nwk 3:12) NOTE: It is always hard to believe that apparently rational human beings, with families of their own, can coldly & wantonly & indiscriminately murder children who have no connection with the problem, just to get attention & vent their blind, consuming hatred. But such is raw human nature, & as the Scriptures describe it. ECCLESIAL NEWS (Continued from Inside Front Cover) SAN ANGELA TEX.—English Rm., Cactus Hotel (All but first Suns.)—SS10 am; Mem. 11. Other Suns, at homes. Rec bro. Gary Smith, Star Route, Sweetwater, Tx. 79556. LOVING Greetings in the Lord's Name. It is with sadness we report the death of our beloved bro. Carl Gerdes. He died on April 10 at the age of 72. He passed away suddenly. He was an inspiration to our ecclesia and we will surely miss his exhortations. He loved the Truth, and it seemed always a great joy to him to talk of things con- cerning our pilgrimage in this life in preparing to be among those faithful ernes in the Kingdom of God. Bro. Wayne Wolfe Jr. of Lampasas spoke words of Truth at the funeral. Bro. Gerdes' sister-wife, Willie Mae, has moved to Pleasanton, Texas, to be with her daughter. She is in isolation. May she be comforted with God's blessings. Her address is Box 467, Pleasanton 78064. Since our last correspondence, bro. & sis. Nick Mammone have moved to Austin, Texas. We miss them all so much, in our meetings and in association in our homes. Bro. Mammone's exhortations were so encouraging. He was also very helpful to us in our Bible classes. We are happy they are able to visit our ecclesia occasionally. May we ever press on to be among those faithful ones. —bro. Gary Smith Bible Questions WHO DIED IN OR AT . . Write the number of each item in List 1 beside correct person in List 2. LIST ONE—QUESTIONS 1. Ur 11. Achor 41. Winepress 21. Goshen 31. Samaria 2. Hor 12. Haran 42. Baal-hazor 22. Canaan 32. Shushan 3. Nob 13. Joppa 23. Hebron 43. Tabernacle 33. Bethany 4. Abel 14. Mamre 24. Rabbah 44. Wilderness 34. Babylon 5. Gaza 15. Shiloh 45. Perez-uzzah 25. Thebez 35. Shechem 6. Nebo 46. Kirjatharba 16. Riblah 26. Kadesh 36. Pergamos 47. Ramothgilead 7. Moab 17. Kishon 27. Mizpah 37. Damascus 18. Gibeon 8. Millo 48. Ephesdammim 28. Jezreel 38. Bethelem 19. Gilboa 9. Sinai 49. Temple Court 29. Nineveh 39. Jerusalem 20. Tirzah 10. Giloh 50. House of Baal 30. Lachish 40. Gibbethon NOTE: Nadab is not Aaron's son. NOTE: Kirjatharba was the name at the time. LIST TWO—ANSWERS Ahimelech Eli Abihu Uzzah Amnon Mahlon Ahaziah Zechariah Hamor Samson Ahab Aaron Sarah Amaziah Ahithophel Haman Goliath Joab Abner Nadab Seraiah Jehoiachin Moses Antipas Onan Achan Sheba Ananias Malchishua Rachel Tabitha Zeeb Jacob Haran Gedaliah Zelophehad Mat tan Jezebel Zimri Benhadad Terah Joash Miriam Lazarus Sennacherib Uriah Abimelech Isaac Amasa M a y Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. WHAT CHAPTER BEGINS Baal prophets God Who— Heb. 1 11. Lord Thou hast—Ps. 90 21. And Hannah prayed-1 Sm.2 Ο foolish—Gal. 2 12. M y God, M y God—Ps. 22 22. Forasmuch as many—Lk. 1 Comfort ye—Isa. 40 Ί3. -- Tho — I- speak—Τ Cr. 13 23. Blessed is the man—Ps. 1 The former—Acts 1 14. And I saw a new—Rv. 21 24. I am the true Vine—Jn. 15 The Lord is—Ps. 23 15. Now the serpent—Gn. 3 25. The Lord said unto—Ps. 110 Who is this—Is. 63 16. Dare any of you—1 Cr. 6 26. Praise ye the Lord—Ps. 150 Adam,Sheth-lChr.l 17. " In the beginning—Jn. ning—J 1 27. There was a man in—Jb. 1 Now faith is-Heb.ll 18. The words of the—Ec. 1 28. Why do the heathen—Ps. 2 9. Go to now ye—Jm.5 19. How doth the city—Lm. 1 29. Then was Jesus led—Mt. 4 10. The vision of—Obad. 20. Who hath believed-ls.53 30. Let brotherly love—Heb. 13 31. Behold what manner—1 Jn. 3 41. Behold will send—Mai. 3 32. Then 14 years after—Gl. 2 42. And there was given me—Rv. 11 33. The heavens declare—Ps. 19 43. And Saul yet breathing—Acts 9 34. Now after the death—Jsh. 1 44. Therefore thou a r t inex—Rm. 2 35. M y heart is inditing—Ps. 45 45. And seeing the multitudes—Mt. 5 36. The beginning of the—Mk. 1 46. And I stood upon the sand—Rv. 13 37. Again there was a day—Jb. 2 47. And the 5th angel sounded—Rv. 9 38. From whence come wars—Jm. 4 48. And there appeared a great—Rv. 12 39. Therefore leaving the—Heb. 6 49. The book of the generation—Mt. 1 40. The burden of Nineveh—Nah. 1 50. Now king David was old—1 K g . 1 Printed in U.S.A. $3.50 per yr. (only for those who desire to pay) VOL. 61, NO. 7 JULY, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited and Published by: G.A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Apt. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C 4H1, Can. (( They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL Ν EWS: Sarasota Inside Front Cover Bible Questions and June Answers Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Walk in Wisdom 193 APPROACH ING JUDGMENTS (Bro. Thomas) 195 ANSWERS BY BRO. ROBERTS: Body/ soul & spirit, Notable to kill soul; Heavens pass away, earth burned up 201 LORD, REMEMBER ME! 205 JOSEPH AND JESUS 214 CURRENTWORLD EVENTS FULFILLING PROPHECY 221 We ore anxious to send the Bereon FREE to any desiring it that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it# please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH lnside Front Ecclesial News SARASOTA, Fla. 33580—Sis. Mabel Sargent 1077 Highland St., Ph. (813) 3551901. Sister Edgar (Mabel) Sargent Sr., formerly of Boston, is now living in Sarasota. She writes that she would be happy to see any brethren or sisters who are passing through. Bible Questions CONNECT ITEM WITH PERSON Write the number of each item in List 1 beside correct name in List 2 LIST ONE—QUESTIONS Fleece Censer Gutter Cheese Dagger Oxgoad Ranges Thumbs 1. Ass 2. Nail 3. Dart 4. Flax .>. Heel (>. Mint 7. Dish a. Cart 9. Cake 17. Amber 10. Harp l». Arrow 11. Mice Μ. Frogs 12. Mess 2i). Pulpit 2». \'λ. Paint 21. Coffin 29. 14. Withs 22. Clouts M). 1). Gourd 23. School Hi. Gallows 24. Floats :\2. Job Ehud Jubal Judas Reuben Ephraim Benjamin Jael Joab Peter Hiram Balaam Absalom Jonathan Saul Esau Rahab Haman Samson Solomon Tyrannus Ezekiel Shamgar Demetrius LIST TWO- -ANSWERS Lattice Figleaf Sundial Conduit Javelin Sandals Vinegar Pottage Shrines 42. Praetorium 43. Bullrush 44. Potsherd 4.). Peacocks 4(i. Plumbline 17. Millstone 4». Alabaster 49. Parchment )(). Mandrakes Paul Ezra Jacob Moses Ruth Adam Jesse Pilate Jezebel Athaliah Pharisees Ahaz Amos Jonah Gideon Ahaziah Hezekiah Abimelech Uzza Mary Korah Joseph Pharaoh Jeremiah Adonibezek Philistines June Answers Ur—Haran Hor—Aaron Nob—Ahimelech Abel—Sheba Gaza—Samson Nebo—Moses Moab—Mahlon Millo—Joash Sinai—Abihu Giloh—Ahithophel Achor—Achan Haran—Terah Joppa—Tabitha Mamre—Isaac Shiloh—Eli Riblah—Seraiah Kishon—Baal prophets WHO DIED IN OR AT . . Ί8. 19. 20. 21. 22. 23. 24. 25. 26. 27. 28. 29. 30. 31. 32. 33. 34. Gibeon—Amasa Gilboa—Malchishua Tirzah—Zimri Goshen—Jacob Canaan—Onan Hebron—Abner Rabbah—Uriah Thebez—Abimelech Kadesh—Miriam Mizpah—Gedaliah Jezreel—Jezebel Nineveh—Sennacherib Lachish—Amaziah Samaria—Ahaziah Shushan—Haman Bethany—Lazarus Babylon—Jehoiachin 35. 36. 37. 38. 39. 40. 41. 42. 43. 44. 45. 46. 47. 48. 49. 50. Shechem—Hamor Pergamos—Antipas Damascus—Benhadad Bethlehem—Rachel Jerusalem—Ananias Gibbethon—Nadab Winepress—Zeeb Baalhazor—Amnon Tabernacle—Joab Wilderness—Zelophehad Perezuzzah—Uzzah Kirjatharba—Sarah Ramothgilead—Ahab Ephesdammim—Goliath Temple court—Zechariah House of Baal—Mattan CHRIST'S TWO GKNKALOGIES The proof that Luke gives the genealogy of Christ through Mary, lies in three things: 1. The tradition that has conic dawn from the lirst century that it is so: 2. Tlie tact that Matthew gives us his genealogy through "Joseph, the husband of Mary"—a totally different lino from David—which excludes the possibility of Luke's being the same: and 3. The necessity that Christ's descent must have been iron? David on his MOTHER'S side before he could be "the s^ed oi' David according to the iiesh," seeing he was not the actual son of Joseph. That Joseph also should be descended from David was a necessity, seeing that by marriage, Mary was legally iused in him. The two genealogies are the same down to David, and then set forward by two different branches, one through Solomon and the other through Nathan—both sons of David. EDIT0RIAL Walk i nW i s d o m 1973 -""" 3 "The fear of the Lord is the beginning of Wisdom, and the knowledge of the Holy is understanding"—Prov. 9:10 On a bright summer afternoon, I stood by a small stream and watched the water as it fell over a low dam and continued on a winding course until it disappeared from view in the distance. As I gazed upon this peaceful scene, I realized that, throughout its course, the water followed the path of least resistance as it continued on the downward grade and sought its own level. How like men and women, I thought, as they, in pursuit of happiness, seek after the pleasures of this life, walking according to the course of this world, and spending their years in voluptuousness. To walk in the way of the world requires no effort; you merely drift along, like the quiet stream, until you find your own level. That is what the Apostle speaks of as " walking after the flesh," or walking in our own ways. When writing to the believers in Ephesus, on this subject, Paul said, " Wherein in time past ye walked according to the course of this world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience : among whom al^so we all had our conversation in times past in the lusts of our flesh, fulfilling the desires of the flesh and of the mind ; and were by nature the children of wrath, even as others "—Ephes. ii, 2-3. The entrance of the knowledge of the truth into our lives alters our course and, after putting on Christ in baptism, we rise to walk in newness of life. This is the class of people to whom Paul wrote many interesting and instructive messages. To the brethren at Thessalonica he said, " Ye know how we exhorted, and comforted, and charged every one of you, as a father doth his children, that ye would walk worthy of God, Who hath called you unto His kingdom and glory "—I Thes. iiy 11-12. With Paul the truth was a very serious business. He exhorted ; he comforted, and he charged the believers that they should walk worthy of God. This was Paul's course throughout his entire ministry, and it would be the same if he were here to-day. There are certain phases of our newness of life that we have to affirm constantly. It is not the first principles of the truth, for they are foundations upon which we are expected to build. The things that must be constantly brought to our attention are those that constitute our worthy walk, and are designed to keep us on a firm foundation. Paul gave us a lead when he said, " Brethren, be followers together of me, and mark them which walk so as ye have us for an ensample. For many walk, of whom I have told you often, and now tell you even weeping, that they are the enemies of the cross of Christ : whose end is destruction, whose God is their belly, and whose glory is in their shame, who mind earthly things "—Phil, iii, 17-19. This would indicate that it is our moral relation to the world of wickedness in which we live that has to be continually brought to our attention. This is where the great value of the daily reading of God's word is realized, because "the way of man is not in himself: it is not in man that walketh to direct his steps "—Jer. x, 23. Therefore, it is not for us to trust ourselves to determine the nature of a walk that is worthy of God. We must depend upon, and rely with a full assurance of faith upon what is revealed in the Scriptures, as we look to Jesus, the Pioneer and Perfecter of our faith. We see this idea expressed by Paul as he writes to the brethren in Colosse. " As ye have therefore received Christ Jesus the Lord, so walk ye in Him : rooted and built up in Him, and stablished in the faith, as ye have been taught, abounding therein with thanksgiving "—Col. ii, 6-7. In like manner, said John, " we ought to walk, even as He walked." When we examine the records concerning Jesus, we find that His walk was vastly different to that of other men. To walk as He walked, we must travel in the opposite direction of those who walk in the way of the world. Therefore, if we progress in our pilgrimage, it is the result of exertion. At first, it may be hard to pull against the stream, but persistent effort is soon rewarded by increased strength and courage. Then as our strength increases, we soon discover that less effort is required. Some mistake this for a time to rest. Let us not be deceived ; the time to rest is still future. To-day is a time for action. Our standing before God will be determined by the nature of our walk. Therefore, one thing is certain—we cannot walk in opposite directions at the same time. We must make a definite choice, and then carry out our plan. Again Paul gives us a lead. " Furthermore then we beseech you, brethren, and exhort you by the Lord Jesus that as ye have received of us how ye ought to walk and to please God, so ye would abound more and more "—I Thes. iv, 1. Walking so as to please God, was the keynote of Paul's life and work. He warned, the brethren night and day with tears. If companions of Paul required such warning, how much more do we need to be warned and exhorted. As in many other questions, Paul supplies the answer, " so much the more as ye see the day approaching." So that we may please God requires that, in the first place, we be clothed with humility. This was one of the great features in the life of Jesus. The prophets also understood it. Micah expresses it in terms unmistakable. "What doth the Lord require of thee, but to do justly, and to love mercy, and to walk humbly with thy God "—vi, 8. The life of the believer must also be characterized by integrity, and straightforwardness, and freedom from deceit. Here is the divine specification, " That ye may walk honestly toward them that are without "—I Thes. iv, 12. This thought was strongly emphasized by Jesus in the parable of the unjust steward, " If therefore ye have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who wjU commit to your trust the true riches ? "—Luke xvi, 11. Another feature of our conduct that requires careful attention is our moral relation to the world of wickedness by which we are all surrounded. As we stated previously, this is one of the phases of our newness of life that must not be lost sight of. It is stated by Paul in these words, "Walk in wisdom toward them that are without"— Col. iv, 5, and by Peter, when he said, cc Dearly beloved, I beseech you as strangers and pilgrims, abstain from fleshly lusts, which war against the soul ; having your conversation honest among the Gentiles : that, whereas they speak against you as evildoers, they may by your good works, which they shall behold, glorify God in the day of visitation"—I Peter ii, 11-12. 1973 Berean 194 In a recent address, a brother referred to the many attractions in the world to-day which arc designed to draw men and women into the paths of pleasure, and said, " one wonders, sometimes, how near the believer may come to these things without being drawn away from the truth." This, however, is approaching the problem from the wrong angle. Our question should not be " how near can we come to these things ? " but " how far can we keep away from them ? " The divine injunction is stated by James, " draw near to God, and He will draw near to us." Isaiah, throughout his prophecy, has painted some beautiful word pictures, but none more exquisite than that found in cap. xxxv. When the glory of the Lord shall fill the earth as the waters now cover the sea, Isaiah says, " the redeemed shall walk there," and when the law goes forth from Zion, and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem, " the people will be taught of God, and will walk in His paths." If we would be among those who will walk with Jesus in the age to come, we must be mindful of the fact that walking in the way of the world is easy, but it will lead us unto death. Walking in the way of truth requires an effort, but it will lead us unto life. Let us then " walk in the truth," for if we do we can join with the Psalmist and say, " The Lord is my light, and my salvation ; whom shall I fear ? The Lord is the strength of my life ; of whom shall I be afraid ? "—Editor. Approaching Judgments "When Thy judgments are in the earth, the inhabitants of the world will learn righteousness"—Isaiah 26:9 BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS I CAN well imagine many a one exclaiming— "Judgments! Approaching Judgments! Why? When did there seem less occasion for fear? When was the air so calm? The horizon so clear? The prospect so enchanting?" Dear reader, it is not by appearances we have to judge, but by the Word of God. And do you not know what that Word records in the history of the past, as well as what it foretells of the future? The antediluvians thought Noah mad to predict a deluge and prepare an ark (Lk. 17:27)— "They did eat, they drank, they married wives, they were given in marriage—until the day that Noah entered into the ark.. " —and what then?— "The flood came, and destroyed them all." So it was too with the cities of the plain (v. 28)— "They did eat, they drank, they bought, sold, planted, builded . . " And nature seemed to smile on their pursuits. The sun arose as usual on the morning of their overthrow. Scripture notes this— "The sun was risen upon the earth when Lot entered into Zoar." What ensued? (Gen. 19:24-25— 1973 Bepear> "Then Yahweh rained upon Sodom and Gomorrah brimstone and 195 fire from Yahweh out of heaven. And He overthrew those cities, and all the plain, and all the inhabitiants of the cities, and that which grew upon the ground." "But what is all this to us?" you may enquire. Let our Lord himself reply (Luke 17:30)— "EVEN THUS SHALL IT BE IN THE DAY WHEN THE SON OF MAN IS REVEALED/' Ah yes, peace and plenty, order and tranquilty, the advance of science, and the growth of intelligence, are no signs that judgment is far off!— "When they shall say, Peace and safety, then sudden destruction cometh upon them as travail upon a woman with child, and they shall not escape" (1 Th. 5:3). And while it is quite true that they who only regard appearances on earth may suppose that everything bespeaks the continuance of peace and prosperity, there are those who know that God's Word is "settled for ever in heaven," and who will, through His grace, listen to what that Word proclaims of approaching judgment, desolation and woe. Then, besides whether men will hear or whether they will forbear, they to whom the knowledge of these things has been confided must, deliver their own souls, lift up their voices, cry aloud, spare not. There may be some, however, who are not so blinded by appearances as to suppose that the present partial lull will continue, who yet have no adequate conception of the nature and extent of the solemn changes which are at hand. You recognize, dear reader, that no dependence is to be placed on the sort of quiet which at present exists. You know well that the atmosphere is never so still as just before the bursting forth of a wild and desolating storm. And seeing in Scripture that there are great convulsions to take place before the world is subdued to the scepter of Immanuel, you may be looking for these as near at hand. 1973 Berean 196 But then your expectation of these convulsions, and of the woes and calamities inseparable from such events, is associated in your mind with the idea that, after all, the world is to be converted, and the Millennium introduced, by agencies and influences of a kind already at work for this end. You perceive, indeed, that at the slow rate at which Christianity has progressed (even where it has achieved its greatest victories), it can only be after the lapse of almost interminable ages that it becomes universal among mankind. Its forces seem so feeble and so few, and the opposition they encounter is so formidable, that there appears no prospect of universal triumph within any period that the mind can span. But judgment, you think, is to aid in accelerating the work. And all that you anticipate in the way of judgment is, you suppose, that the national convulsions and political overturnings (accompanied perhaps by providential scourges such as famine, pestilence and the like) will open the way for the wider, more rapid, and more effectual spread of the Gospel. The Papacy will, you suppose, be overthrown; Mohammedanism be deprived of political power; governments hostile to the spread of Truth give place to others who will be its nursing father; China, Japan and Tartary be opened to Christ η missionaries—while in these and other ways the God of Providence will interpose to accomplish the final, universal triumphs of the Gospel of His grace. Such are the thoughts cherished by numbers of professed believers at the present moment. Two points, in view of these things, forcibly occur to one's mind. First, this anticipation of providential interpositions and mighty national convulsions is itself an advance on the thoughts generally entertained by the religious 20 or 30 years ago. We heard of nothing then but the power of the Truth, the effusion of the Spirit, the spread of the Gospel, and the speedy and universal triumph of missions with all kindred institutions and efforts for conversion of the world. The experiences of the last half century have so far sobered the expectations of many that they do now admit the necessity of some grand providential interposition to remove obstacles otherwise insuperable, and to secure thus the end which once they expected to be attained by the blessing of God on philanthropic efforts and evangelical labors. This is, of itself, progress toward the Truth. But then, and this is the second point referred to, if it be necessary that God should interpose, and if it be revealed in His Word that He will do so, where are we to learn the nature and extent of this interposition? Where but in the same "sure Word of Prophecy" which reveals to us that such interposition will take place at all? If, as many still think, the conversion of the world is left in human hands, dependent upon human diligence and the progress of human affairs, then speculation and calculation may both be of service in determining the probable aspect of the future. And all one can say in this case is : if the past is to afford a presage for the future, then alas for us! Alas for the "Church"! Alas for the world! But if it be admitted that God must in some extraordinary way interfere, and if it be further admitted that Scripture tells that he WILL interfere; then where, I ask, are we to learn the manner, the mode, the magnitude of such interference but in those Scriptures which warn us of its approach? Speculation has no place here. Calculation of the future from the past is utterly out of the question. Nothing will serve but simple subjection to God's Word: a childlike, docile reception of whatever God's Word declares. God grant us such a spirit, in inquiring what the testimony of Scripture is on the solemn subject at present before us. 197 1 9 7 3 Berean Before producing, however, the direct testimony of Scripture on this subject, I would like to make this one remark: that it is taken for granted here that there is to be a Millennium. Proof of this from Scripture may occupy our attention hereafter, as well as much that relates to the nature of millennial blessedness. But this is not our present question. The question before us is— FIRST: Whether judgments do not introduce this period of universal blessing? SECOND: What is the nature, and what is the extent, of these judgments? Not only shall we find that the Millennium is introduced by judgments, but that these judgments are of a character perfectly unparalleled. National convulsions there will be, no doubt, and political overturnings such as this earth has never witnessed. Providential scourges, too: famine, pestilence, earthquakes, hurricanes, and every kind of terrific deviation from the usual course of things. But all these—so far from being subsidiary interventions, designed to hasten the triumph, and secure the success, of benevolent agencies already at work—are themselves either the precursors or attendants of an event which closes the present, and introduces a new, dispensation: an event with which no other (save one) in the whole history of this world, past, present or future, can for a moment compare. THAT EVENT IS THE SECOND COMING, THE APPEARING IN GLORY OF OUR LORD JESUS CHRIST. Even the one exception—his own first coming in humiliation—was in order to this, the second. This is the grand event which is before us: an event to which the Christian indeed may look forward with intense desire and expectation; but which—in its bearing on the world—is connected with those terrible judgments which shall prostrate the pride of man, rebuke for ever the swellings and vauntings of iniquity, purge the earth of corrupters and destroyers, and usher in the blissful period of the reign of Christ with his glorified Saints over the spared and pardoned and renewed inhabitants of the millennial earth. First, let us glance quickly through the Scriptures and seek to gather their general voice, their concurrent testimony. Enoch, the 7th from Adam, is the first whose voice we hear. True that it is Jude, not Moses, who records his prophecy, and he records it as yet to be fulfilled. But what does this prove, save that the Spirit of prophecy in Enoch looked beyond the Deluge, beyond the judgments on Sodom and Gomorrah, beyond all intermediate ages and events—to that stupendous one before us. Hear his words— <( Behold, Yahweh cometh with 10,000 of His saints, to execute judgment upon all, and to convince all that are ungodly among them of all their hard speeches which ungodly sinners have spoken against Him" (Jude 14-15). 1973 Berean 198 To what else does the Midianitish seer refer when he says— "I shall see him, but not now. / shall behold him, but not nigh. "There shall come a Star out of Jacob, and a Scepter shall rise out of Israel, and shall smite the corners of Moab, and destroy all the children of Sheth" (Num. 24:17). He says further (v. 19)— "Out of Jacob shall come he that shall have dominion, and shall destroy him that remaineth in the city." Nor is it of mere local circumstances that this extraordinary man is inspired of God to treat. The prophetic Spirit looks far and wide, and speaks not only of Moab and Sheth, of Israel and its glorious Star—but of Edom and Amalek, the Kenites and Asshur, Eber, and the ships from the coast of Chittim. It is in reference to all these, and to the utter destruction of the wicked from among them, that this grand intervention of God's power takes place. And in view of all this, what does Balaam exclaim?— "And he took up his parable, and said: Alas, who shall live when God doeth this?" (Num. 24:23). Thus early in Scripture have we the prophetic anticipation of God's doing a work of judgment so terrific as to awaken the inquiry— «ψΗΟ SHALL LIVE when God doeth this?" But my immediate object is not in the first place to discuss individual passages so much as to glance rapidly along the current of Scripture testimony and prophetic instruction, that we may have some idea of its general burden and tone. Hear we, then, a Moses, who recites to us the words of the Almighty— "For I lift up My hand to heaven and say, I live for ever. "If I whet My glittering sword, and Mine hand take hold on judgment, I will render vengeance to Mine enemies, and will reward them that hate Me. "I will make Mine arrows drunk with blood, and My sword shall devour flesh, and that with the blood of the slain and of the captives, from the beginning of revenges upon the enemy" (Dt. 32: 40-42). Listen to a Hannah, who sings (1 Sam. 2:10)— "The adversaries of Yahweh shall be broken to pieces: out of heaven shall He thunder upon them. "Yahweh shall judge the ends of the earth, and He shall give strength unto His King, and the horn of His Anointed (Heb: Messiah)." Hear too, for a moment, the son of Jesse, concerning an Anointed One of the Elohim of Jacob, the pleasant theme of Israel's songs. They are his "last words" I am about to quote, words uttered amid the sad fruit of his own sin, and in the deep consciousness of his having been himself unable to cope with the enemies which his sin had raised up around him. But it is no mere effusion of his own which his pen records, or his lips utter— 1973 Berean 199 "The Spirit of YAHWEH spake by me, and His word was in my tongue. The Elohim of Israel said, the Rock of Israel spake to me, "There shall be ruling over men a Just One, ruling in the righteous precepts of the Elohim" (2 Sam. 23:2-3). Alas! He himself had failed in this. But he anticipates the coming of One who should not fail, and who should be— "As the light of the morning when the sun riseth, even a morning without clouds" (v. 4). But what is there here of judgments? Nothing, as yet. But read what follows (vs. 6-7)— "But the sons of Belial shall be all of them as a thornbush caused to be thrust away; tho not with hands shall they take possession of them. "But the Man shall smite upon them. He shall be filled with iron, and the shaft of a spear. "And they shall be utterly burned with fire in their habitation." But we cannot pass on from David's testimony with but this. I am not about to analyze the different passages in the Psalms which treat of approaching judgments. To do this would require a volume, and a large one, instead of a few pages such as these. But look through the book of Psalms. Leave aside every passage which admits of a question as to its bearing on our present subject. And what have we still remaining? Why, the occurrence at almost every turn of anticipations such as the following— "Ask of Me, and I shall give thee the heathen for thine inheritance, and the uttermost parts of the earth for thy possession. "Thou shalt break them with a rod of iron; thou shalt dash them in pieces as a potter's vessel" (Ps. 2:8-9). "The nations are sunk down in the net that they made; in the net which they hid is their own foot taken. "Yahweh is known by the judgment which He executeth: the wicked is snared in the work of his own hands" (9:15-16). "Upon the wicked He shall rain snares, fire and brimstone, and an horrible tempest: this shall be the portion of their cup" (11:6). "Thine hand shall find out Thine enemies: Thy right hand shall find out those that hate Thee. Thou shalt make them as a fiery oven in the time of Thine anger. Yahweh shall swaiiow them up in His wrath, and the fire shall devour them" (21:8-9). "Come, behold the works of Yahweh, what DESOLATIONS HE HATH MADE IN THE EARTH" (46:8). 1973 Berean 200 "Ail Elohim Yahweh hath spoken, and called the earth from the rising of the sun unto the going down thereof.. "Our Elohim shall come, and shall not keep silence. A fire shall devour before Him, it shall be very tempestuous round about Him" "The righteous shall rejoice when he seeth the vengeance. He shall wash his feet in the blood of the wicked. "So that a man shall say, Verily, there IS a reward for the righteous; verily, there IS Elohim judging in the earth" (58:10-11). "Say ye to the Elohim, How terrible Thy works! Through the greatness of Thy power shall Thine enemies submit unto Thee. "All the earth shall worship Thee, and shall sing unto Thee. They shall sing to Thy Name. Come and see the works of Elohim: terrible of deed toward the children of men" (66:3-5). "Thou didst cause judgment to be heard from heaven. The earth feared, and was still, in the Elohim arising for the judgment, to save all the meek of the earth" (76:8-9). "The Adon at thy right hand shall strike through kings in the day of His wrath. He shall judge among the heathen; "He shall fill the places with the dead bodies; He shall wound the head over an extensive region" (110:5-6). These are but a few out of a whole class of passages running through the whole book of Psalms. How manifestly they point onward to an intervention of the power of Jesus and the Saints in judgment, SUCH AS EARTH HAS NEVER YET WITNESSED! (Continued next month, if the Lord will) Answers by Bro· Roberts "BODY, SOUL& SPIRIT" . . "NOT ABLE TO KILL SOUL" "1 pray God your whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of our Lord Jesus Christ"—1 Thess. 5:23 "Fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul: but rather fear Him which is able to destroy both soul and body in hell"—Matt 10:28 PAUL'S words, "body, soul and spirit" (1 Th. 5:23), define the natural divisions of man's nature: body, life and mind. A carcase illustrates the first: an idiot illustrates the first and second without the third: a fullgrown efficient manhood presents us with the 3 in combined manifestation. None of the 3 can exist as an individual abstraction by itself. "Body, soul and spirit" are but names descriptive of different aspects presented by the unit, man: and if you destroy the body, you necessarily destroy the life which is but a phenomenon manifested in or through'the body. But you ask, what then is the meaning of Christ's words— "Fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul (or life)"—Mt. 10:28. In reply, we may say there is a life in relation to those who are Christ's which cannot be touched by any man, howsoever violently they may treat the body and the poor mortal life belonging to it. THIS life, Paul says— '7s hid with Christ in God" (Col. 3:3). He says (next verse)— "Christ is our life, and when he shall appear, then shall we appear with him in glory." He is the (2 Cor. 5:1-3)— 1973 Berean 201 "Building of God, an House not made with hands, eternal in the heavens .. our House which is (to come) from heaven .. " —on being clothed with which our mortality is swallowed up of life (v. 4). This life is the (Lk. 12:33)— "Treasure in the heavens which faileth not. . " —spoken of by Jesus, and said by Peter to be— "Reserved in heaven." Now, when men kill the saints, they only terminate their mortal existence. They do not touch their real life, which has its foundation in their connection with Christ in the heavens. This life Christ has in his keeping, and specially takes it into his keeping at their death— "Precious in the sight of the Lord is the death of all His saints." Their lives—in the sense of future purpose—then go into His hands in a special manner. Having been faithful unto death, He takes special notice, and prepares a crown of LIFE, to be given at that day (2 Tim. 4:8). Therefore we are not to fear those who can only demolish our corruptible body, and cannot do anything to prevent resurrection. Who ARE we to fear? Him Who hath power to destroy both body and soul (life) in hell (the antitypical judgment fires of Gehenna which will burn up the proud and all that do wickedly, leaving them neither root nor branch, but utterly destroying them from the presence of the Lord and the glory of his power—Mai. 4:1, 2 Th.1:9). We are to fear God, Who has the power to utterly annihilate from the universe, and Who will use this power on all such as are unworthy. But we are not to fear man, who can at best only hasten the dissolution to which we are Adamically liable. * * * As to Rev. 20:10, it must be observed that it is part of a symbolism in which the Beast stands for a system of confederate nations (Rev. 13: 17:9-12), and the False Prophet stands for the ecclesiastical polity maintained among these nations. The Beast and False Prophet being symbols, it follows that the things alleged of them must be similarly symbolic in character. "Torment day and night for ever and ever" (or more strictly rendered, "the ages of the ages") must be taken as the symbolical representation of the final completeness of the result symbolized. That result is the infliction of God's destroying judgment on civil and ecclesiastical Europe. This judgment will break in pieces the kingdoms of the continent, and entirely destroy the blasphemous system of religion which they have helped through many centuries to maintain. There will be no remedy. It will be God's work: and what can man do against God? 1973 Berean 202 And because the judgment will prevail over all human resistance, and accomplish its destined work—(referred to by Paul in the following words: "Then shall that Wicked be revealed whom the Lord will CONSUME with the spirit of His mouth, and DESTROY with the brightness of his coming")—because of this, the infinitude of time is chosen as the symbolical area over which the process operates. The original word translated "tormented" means rather more than its English equivalent. It signifies "to examine judicially by torture," and therefore when we read that the Beast and False Prophet are to be "tormented for ever and ever," an apprehension of the symbolism will teach us nothing more than that the systems of iniquity represented by the Beast and the False Prophet (and now prosperous in the earth) will for ever be subject to the judgment that destroys them. That is to say, when they fall by the divine hand, they will rise no more.—1865. * * * "HEAVENS PASS AWAY . . EARTH BURNED UP" "The heavens shall pass away with a great noise, the elements shall melt with fervent heat, and the earth shall be burned up"—2 Pt. 3:10 TO BE in a position properly to understand any one part of the Bible, a man must be acquainted with the whole. No one can understand 2 Pet. 3 (literal alleged earth-burning) who is ignorant of the prophets, for Peter, directing attention to them in 2 Pet. 1:19; 3:2, accords to them the principal place of authority, and speaks in their language. The key to the meaning of 2 Pet. 3 is in ν. 13— "Nevertheless we, ACCORDING TO HIS PROMISE, look for NEW HEAVENS AND NEW EARTH." Now, if we can find the promise plainly, we shall discover the meaning of the politico-prophetic metaphor, "New Heavens and New Earth," and will be in a position to understand the dissolution of heavens and earth spoken of by Peter. The promise in its plainest form is to be found in Isa. 65:17-19— 1973 Berean 203 "Behold, I create New Heavens and a New Earth, and the former shall not be remembered nor come to mind. "But be ye glad and rejoice forever in that which I create, for behold, I create JERUSALEM a rejoicing, and her people a joy. "And I will rejoice in Jerusalem and joy in My people, and the voice of weeping shall no more be heard in her, nor the voice of crying." This work is assigned to Jesus, of whom it is said— "/ will preserve thee, and give thee for a covenant of the people, TO ESTABLISH THE EARTH, to cause to inherit the desolate heritages . . "And they shall build the old wastes. They shall raise up the former desolations. And they shall repair the waste cities and the DESOLATIONS OF MANY GENERATIONS" (Isa. 49:8; 61:4). It is also written in reference to the same mission (Is. 51:16)— "I have put My words in thy mouth, and I have covered thee in the shadow of Mine hand, THAT I MAY PLANT THE HEAVENS AND LAY THE FOUNDATIONS OF THE EARTH, and say unto lion, "Thou art My people: awake, stand up, Ο Jerusalem." The New Creation which Jesus is to be instrumental in developing has no reference to the material structure of the universe. The work of physical creation has been done. To send Jesus to work geologically and astronomically would be to go back in the order of creation. Christ's mission has reference to things moral and political. The only thing physical to which it creatively has to do is the body, but this only insofar as moral principles are involved. Man is mortal BECAUSE OF SIN. Christ comes to take sin away, and therefore to remedy its physical consequences. The New Heavens and New Earth promised are: the reorganization of the Kingdom of Israel for the purpose of ruling all nations. In this will dwell righteousness; for he shall "reign in righteousness," and execute judgment and justice "in the earth." Now if this be the New Heavens and New Earth referred to by Peter (and it MUST be so, since he connects it with a PROMISE), it follows that the dissolution of heavens and earth of which he speaks is simply an inversion of that process—this is, the overturning and dissipation of the kingdom as THEN existing. This inference is supported by prophetic example. Take, for instance, the description in Isa. 24:19-20 of the breakup of the Jewish state— "The earth is utterly broken down; the earth is CLEAN DISSOLVED; the earth is moved exceedingly. "The earth shall reel to and fro like a drunkard, and shall be removed like a cottage, and the transgression thereof shall be heavy upon it, and it shall fall and not rise again." Or take the prediction of the revolution by which Babylon was overthrown by the Medes (Isa. 13:13-17)— "I will shake the heavens, and the earth shall remove out of her place in the wrath of the Lord of hosts and in the day of His fierce anger . . "They shall every man turn to his own people and flee every man to his own land.. Behold, I will stir up the Medes," etc. _ , i.i_ · j. i_ i. i.i_ -li re- 1 9 7 3 Berean 204 There are other instances, but these will suffice. Peter refers to a former destruction by water of the "world that THEN WAS." Now the literal world was not destroyed in the Flood, but simply submerged in water for the destruction of what Peter describes in 2:5 as— „_,, I 1 7 ~~ r r , , x, ,, „ "The WORLD of the ungodly. "The heaven and earth that ARE NOW" in the literal sense are the same heaven and earth that were then (before the Flood), but Peter—as has appeared evident—was not referring to the literal heavens and earth at all, but to the system of things prophetically described by that phrase. THIS (system), he said, was to— "Pass away with a great noise, and melt in fervent heat." What event was then impending? The letter was written t> years before the destruction of Jerusalem. What was the destruction of Jerusalem? It was the consumption by fire of the constituent elements of the heavens and earth of the Kingdom of Israel. The Temple, the utensils of the Law, the rulers, the priestly orders, and almost the whole nation were destroyed. A new heavens and earth are to succeed these, but the time has not yet arrived. Peter takes no note of the interval between the two events, any more that Jesus does in predicting the transfer of the Kingdom from the Pharisees to the approved— "Nation bringing forth the fruits thereof" (ML 21:43). —but this does not interfere with the facts of the case. The ordinances of heaven and earth PHYSICAL will be perpetual: see Jer. 31:35-37; Psa. 72:17; 89:36, in connection with Psa. 2:8; Rev. 9:15; and the promises made to Abraham, and the whole tenor of the Word.—1866. Lord, Remember Me! "Jesus cried with a loud voice, saying, Eli, Eli, Lama sabachthani? That is to say, My God, My God, why hast Thou forsaken me?"—Matthew 27:46 RECENTLY on radio, I listened to a visiting high dignitary of the Presbyterian Church of Scotland speak about the utterances made from the cross by our Savior Jesus Christ. In dealing with the episode of the thief, the usual church answer to support the immortal soul theory was advanced, quite ignoring that which the thief requested of Christ (Lk. 23:42)— "Remember me when thou COMEST into thy Kingdom" - ^ o m e day FUTURE, for Christ said (Mk. 13:32)— "0/ that day and that hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels which are in heaven, NEITHER THE SON, but the Father." However, the speaker proceeded to give the thief a reward that would harmonize with church teaching—an immediate reward of an immortal soul ascending to heaven, laying great emphasis on the word, "Today—now, now, today!—thou shalt be with me in Paradise," and concluded by saying, "And so the trinitarian blessing came upon the thief." It is not our purpose to refute in fulness the fallacy of this teaching. The purpose of mentioning it is the hope that OUR thoughts might be directed to the true spiritual significance of the words spoken by our Lord, even while suffering the agonizing death of crucifixion. 1973 B e r e a n 205 The church speaker next directed his listeners to the words spoken by Christ to Mary and John. To Mary, "Behold thy son"; and to John, "Behold thy mother." Of this incident, the pith of his remarks are summed up in the words, "Christ here taught the universal brotherhood of man." Our only comment on this is to quote the true teaching of our Lord (Mt. 12:50)— "Whosoever shall do the will of my Father which is in heaven, the same is my brother, and sister, and mother" (Mt. 12:50). The inadequacy and emptiness of church theology is perhaps shown at its fullest by this Church leader's treatment of those soexpressive words of our Master— "Eli, Eli, lama sabachthani . . My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?" (Mt. 27:46). The actual words of this cry were not quoted, the words of this appeal unto God by the Son hardly according with the trinitarian theory. Instead of quoting these so intense words, this church dignitary prefaced his remarks by saying, "Why did Christ suffer and die?" It would seem from his treatment of Christ's words that he did not know the purpose or the necessity of Christ's death, for he went on to render Christ's cry as; "My God, my God, why, why?" He then proceeded to ask, "Who has not at some time experienced suffering or tragedy in which there seemed no purpose, and the cry, Why? was brought forth?" He then went on to relate an experience he had had among his parishioners in Scotland. An elderly bedridden lady lived with her widowed daughter, the mother of 2 young children. On one occasion the elderly lady had said that she wished death would visit the house, as it distressed her hearing her daughter telling the children to be quiet and not disturb their grandmother. Well, death came to the house: the mother of the children died, the grandmother was taken to an infirmary, the boy and girl to separate orphanages. Why? Why did this happen? It was left to his listeners to answer. He had no answer. This man had not learned the solemn Scripture truth of natural human life— "All flesh is grass, and all the goodliness thereof is as the flower of the field . . "Man that is in honor and understandeth not is as the beasts that perish . . 1973 B e r e a n "My people are destroyed for lack of knowledge." 2°6 "It is finished!" Of these last words uttered from the cross by Christ the speaker said that Christ by his life had left for all to behold, the great pattern of love to guide men's lives. True, indeed, but how much MORE than that is comprehended in these words! This man's oratory was excellent, but how empty! One wonders why the story was told of the elderly lady and the 2 children. How cold and stark the fate church theology left them to: where is the brotherhood of man; where the heeding of the pattern of love to guide men's lives—the pattern that taught OBEDIENCE TO GOD'S WORD. It is not our purpose to scoff at this church dignitary, a blind leader of the blind. Our purpose in mentioning it is to intensify our humble gratefulness and our sense of solemn responsibility that our Heavenly Father—for some purpose best known to Himself—gave us the opportunity, and opened our eyes to the understanding of the glorious Gospel of the Kingdom. In the light of our great blessing in a world of darkness, let us searchingly examine ourselves: our characters, our conduct, all our activities, the extent of our work for God. Are we a— "Peculiar (special, unique, completely ZEALOUS OF GOOD WORKS''? different) people, In this self-examining process, let us recall again the patientlyendured ordeal of the cross, the words our Master spoke, the purpose of his death, and why he was left to his own strength in that final supreme act of love, sacrifice and obedience. Firstly, let us hear again the request of the thief— "Lord, remember me WHEN thou COMEST into thy Kingdom." No asking here, or concern shown, for an immortal soul going anywhere, but a plain request to be "remembered" at a later time— WHEN Christ came into his Kingdom. As from the beginning—when the serpent, the representative of sin and darkness, beguiled Adam and Eve into believing a lie—so today the false teachers of an immortal soul beguile the unwary. In this instance they ignore the thief's request to Christ, and in an effort to bolster their false theories, they give to the thief something he did not ask for or believe in, in effect saying to him, "We know better than you: this is what you want." But this thief on the cross DID know very clearly what he was requesting. He, apparently alone of all the people witnessing the crucifixion of the Lord, understood and BELIEVED the purpose and what was being accomplished in that crucifixion. What faith! He most certainly was an Israelite, and obviously he was familiar with the Law of Moses, the Prophets, and the Promises to the Fathers. Turning to Isa. 53:8, we read the RV rendering— 1973 Berean 207 "By oppression and judgment he was taken away, and as for his generation, WHO AMONG THEM considered that he was cut off out of the land of the living: for the transgression of my people was he stricken." He, the thief, of that generation witnessing the crucifixion, alone appears to have considered and realized what was transpiring before their eyes. The High Priest and Pharisees and Sadducees— the rulers who claimed to know and teach the law of God—clamored for and delivered Christ to crucifixion. Jeeringly they taunted— "He saved others: himself he cannot save. If he be the King of Israel, let him now; come down from the cross, and we will believe him! "He trusted in God: let Him deliver him now, if He will have him! For he said, I am the Son of God." The disciples in the main stood afar off. And the few of his followers who ventured to stand near him on that hill of torture saw only in that anguished suffering crucifixion of the one they loved, the death knell to all their hopes and beliefs— "We trusted it had been he which should have redeemed Israel!" Not so the thief. He saw in Christ the Lamb without spot or blemish, the Lamb that was to "take away the sin of the world" as taught by the Mosaic sacrifices. Understanding Christ to be a man (for he said, "This man has done nothing amiss"), he acknowledged the Scripture that— "As by one man's disobedience many were made sinners, so by the obedience of one shall many be made righteous." He went on to confess himself a sinner worthy only of death— "We indeed justly, for we receive the due reward of our deeds." He manifested faith in the resurrection of Christ, and also for himself, for his request necessitated the resurrection of both for its fulfilment. He recognized in Christ the greater Son of David, who would establish again the throne of David, by his request— "When thou comest IN THY KINGDOM." He saw in Christ the promised Messiah, the Seed of Abraham through whom all the promises of God would be fulfilled. In short, all those things which make up the Glad Tidings of the Kingdom of God. This man asked, not for an imaginary soul going to a fictional reward, but for that real, tangible eternal glory promised by God to Abraham, the father of the faithful, through his Seed Christ. Yes, he alone of all that generation witnessing the bruising of the head of the Serpent-Power Sin, gives evidence of understanding and acknowledging in humble faith the presence of the Messiah, of seeing beyond the crucifixion to the glorious fulfilment and culmination of Isa. 53. Prophecy was being fulfilled before his eyes, and he recognized it, and he did not, like the bemused Presbyterian preacher, cry out: Why? Truly there were other hints of possible discernment: in the anointing by Mary, in the sudden courage of Joseph and Nicodemus, in the strange statement of the Roman centurion. But the thief appears unique in the full manifestation of understanding and belief at the moment of greatest darkness. We now turn our thoughts to the words spoken by Christ to his mother and John. Do they teach, as this churchman suggested, the "universal brotherhood of man"? 1973 Berean 208 The record of this incident tells us that there were other women present besides Christ's mother, who had pressed to the forefront of the crowd to stand beside the cross, and who by their quiet grief and anguish manifested themselves as being faithful followers of him. Mary, the mother of our Lord, had that added incentive—the love of a mother for her son—to draw her close. But the love of the other women would arise solely from the teachings and example set them by Christ during that companionship when they lived in his presence. These were the women who lovingly "ministered unto him" during his journeys throughout the land. Surely, by their lives and on this occasion they manifest an equal love to that of Mary. Yet our Lord concerns himself directly with his mother, and makes no mention of the others. Here then is no "universal brotherhood of man," but a beautiful manifestation of personal concern. We learn that the elderly are to be cared for on the close basis of mother and son. How wonderful if all were so cared for in their final years! There is truly a scriptural sense in which "universal brotherhood" should prevail— "Thou shalt love thy neighbor AS THYSELF." —a very searching command. But this second command does not precede, but arises out of the first— "Hear, Ο Israel, the Lord our God is one Lord: and thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength." It is useless to talk about the "universal brotherhood of man" until the first commandment has been acknowledged and followed. The Word of God tells us that— "Unless ye believe and are baptized, ye cannot be saved." Outside of that, there is no "brotherhood." The Scriptures abound in teachings showing that universal brotherhood is utterly foreign to natural man, and that man's ways are "only evil continually." And we witness today the sad truth of scriptural prophecy— "As it was in the days of Noah, so shall it be in the days of the coming of the Son of man." As we contemplate this dark crucifixion scene, our minds turn again to that cry of Jesus— "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?" We can only be deeply and sadly impressed with the utter emptiness and inadequacy of the Trinity theory to give any meaning or purpose to these words. The Trinity theory purports a co-equal, coeternal part of an immortal God asking himself why he had forsaken himself. And we witness the impossible: that which is immortal dying. We do not say these things lightly, but very seriously and Sadly. 1973 Berean 209 And for one professing to be a "master in Israel"—a church dignitary—to suggest that Christ was ignorant of the necessity of his death and could ask, Why, is astounding. It manifests the blindness of church theology. Very early in his ministry, Christ went into the synagog at Nazareth, and when handed the book of Isaiah he purposefully read from ch. 61. After doing so, he said to the assembly— ' 'This day is this Scripture fulfilled in your ears." From this episode we realize not only Christ's familiarity with the Scriptures, but also that he UNDERSTOOD them. Therefore he undoubtedly understood the prophecy of Isa. 53. The picture of it would constantly be in his mind for those 3V2 years of his ministry, burning more deeply within him as the days of fulfilment drew near— "7 have a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I straitened till it be accomplished!" And so he trod the path that brought him at last to Calvary, where this prophecy was fulfilled before the eyes of the people of Israel. Did he question Why? Recall just a few of our Lord's remarks prior to crucifixion— "Then said Jesus to Peter, Put up thy sword into the sheath: the cup which my Father hath given me, shall I not drink it?" "The Son of man shall be betrayed into the hands of men, and they shall kill him; and the third day he shall be raised again." "Now is my soul troubled, and what shall I say: Father, save me from this hour? But for this cause came I unto this hour." What WAS the "cause" that required the crucifixion of a righteous man? And if death was a necessity, why could it not have been a peaceful death in sleep? The answer can perhaps be summed up as: the remission of sins for the establishment of God's covenant. Scripture tells us that— "Without shedding of blood there can be no remission of sins." Why not? Let us start at the beginning for a brief summary of this question. Adam and Eve, created "very good," had one law placed upon them: they were not to eat of the fruit of the Tree of Knowledge of Good and Evil. The pronounced penalty if they transgressed W a S ~ DYING THOV SHALT DIE." By their disobedience, mortality passed upon them, and the knowledge of good and evil. So by one man's disobedience sin entered the world, and death by sin. Mortality became inherent in all mankind: death doubly so because all men sin. By our first father's sin, sin is "in our members" (Rom. 7:23)—part of our consititution. So, left to himself, man's case is hopeless: he could not progress beyond his short mortal span. 1973 Berean 210 But it pleased God to acknowledge obedience even as He condemns disobedience. Before and up to Noah's time we perceive His graciousness to those who sought Him. Later to Abraham, the great example of faith, He made a Covenant of a future everlasting possession of land, and in Abraham's Seed all nations of the earth should be blessed. Later David, the "man after God's Own heart," had revealed to him the Kingdom aspect of the purpose, to be fulfilled in the One Seed of Abraham and David. So God reveals His plan of salvation for fallen man. By the Mosaic Law and its attendant ordinance of sacrifices, there was typified how God would effect a way for man to be saved from sin and its consequence, death: and yet uphold God's righteousness and justice. God, by His overshadowing of Mary, brought about the birth of Christ. Born of a mortal mother, the babe was subjected to all the weaknesses of human nature. By obedience, strengthened by God, he overcame the weaknesses of human flesh, and so came to the cross in character without spot or blemish. Why then the need of sacrifice? Adam by disobedience went from life to death, and took the human race with him. This man by obedience would go from death to life, and take those with him. In the process, faith would be fully manifested in the hope of life by resurrection by the power of God the Creator— "The Son of man shall be betrayed . . and they shall kill him . . and the third day he shall be RAISED AGAIN." The shedding of blood in death, and the nailing of the sin-nature to the tree, not only testified that God is holy and righteous, and His ways just, but in wisdom and mercy it made other beneficiaries of Christ's death, partakers of the Covenant made to the worthies of old as bound up in the Gospel of the Kingdom on earth, to be ruled over in righteousness by the Seed of Abraham and David. By the sacrificial and ratifying death of Christ, the promises contained in the Covenant became available and were made possible of fulfilment. That Christ recognized this fact is manifested when at the Passover feast with his disciples a few hours before his crucifixion he said— "This is my blood of the New Testament (Covenant) which is shed for many for the remission of sins." By Christ's sacrifice, the Covenant to Abraham was brought into force, and we as beneficiaries take unto ourselves that described by Paul in Gal. 3:27-29— "For ye are all the children of God by faith in Christ Jesus. "For as many of you as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ. There is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither bond nor free, there is neither male nor female, "For ye are all one in Christ Jesus. And if ye be Christ's, then are ye Abraham's seed, and heirs according to the promise." Christ's sacrifice, says Paul (Rom. 3:25-26), was— erean 2U "To declare His (God's) righteousness, that He might be just, and the Justifier of him which believeth in Jesus." It was to "condemn sin" (Rom. 8:3), and lay a foundation of holiness upon which the mercy of God can righteously be extended. Paul expresses it very simply and beautifully when he says— "He put away sin by the sacrifice of himself' (Heb. 9:26). Any who are ignorant of this Covenant of Promise, any asking why Christ died, are indeed (Eph. 2:12)— "Strangers from the Covenants of Promise, having no hope and without God in the world." God indeed "hath no pleasure in the death of the wicked," but His plea, "Turn ye and live" is in the main unheeded, and so we see a world of tragedy and evil. Certainly Christ knew the Scriptures, and for the "joy set before him" he endured the cross. Why then did he cry, "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?" The answer provides yet another proof of the absurdity and falseness of the Trinity theory. Christ was not God, or a third part of a "Godhead," but a MAN—a man suffering the agony of crucifixion. For over 3 years, from his baptism by John, he had possessed "without measure" the power of the Holy Spirit to demonstrate that God was with him in opening up a way unto life eternal. He had lived in intimate communion with the Father in prayer and ever doing those things pleasing to God. And now in this final hour the Spirit is withdrawn and he is left alone for this final act of obedience. Imagine his thoughts—realizing the eternal destiny of so many rested upon him: the faithful of old who had "seen his day," and those associated with him during his life's work, and also the hope of all future ones. He was so alone, for they "hid as it were their faces from him." His only companionship and encouragement the words of faith of a crucified thief- , L 0 R D R E M E M B E R ME . „ —and those few troubled, grief-stricken ones at the foot of the cross. Surely his whole life leads us to believe that it was deep loving concern for all who trusted in him and depended upon him that caused him to exclaim— "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?" These were not the words of an all-powerful God, but the anguished cry of a man bearing the burden of all mankind, aware of the weakness of mortal flesh, and desperately longing for the sustaining companionship of his Heavenly Father. He was, in fulfilment of prophecy, quoting the opening words of Psa. 22, the crucifixion Psalm— 1973 Berean "All they that see me laugh me to scorn .. "He trusted on the Lord that He would deliver him .. "They pierced my hands and my feet.. 212 "They part my garments among them . ." The psalm begins in anguish, but ends in exultant triumph, and the whole psalm would be before his mind in that dark hour. "Surely he hath borne our griefs and carried our sorrows! " God trieth no man beyond that he is able to bear. It would seem a merciful death came to our Lord more quickly than usual for people crucified. He had faithfully finished the work God gave him to do. My brethren and sisters, Christ did not fail us. We are assured of the certainty of the fulfilment of the covenants of promise. God, Who in His wisdom left Christ to his own strength in that final act of obedience, had proven the worthiness of Christ to be King of kings, qualified to rule the earth in love, justice, and to the glory of God. Of that last utterance by our Lord, "It is finished," the speaker quoted earlier said that "Christ by his life left for all to behold, the great pattern of love to guide men's lives." This is true— PROVIDED the pattern of love exemplified by Christ is fully comprehended, which sadly it is not in the churches. Christ taught— "If ye love me, KEEP MY COMMANDMENTS." (John 14:15). "He that hath my commandments and KEEPETH THEM, he it is that loveth me" (v. 21). OBEDIENCE brought the commendation of God— "This is My beloved Son in whom I am well pleased." OBEDIENCE produced the perfect sacrifice & victory over death. OBEDIENCE has made possible for mankind the sharing of the eternal glories of the Kingdom of God. This, then, is the "pattern of love" that should guide men's lives—loving obedience to Yahweh. In Christ's life we behold the depth of beauty of character and action that should make us desire to follow him, to press forward and stand with him, to strive in love to be like him, manifesting ourselves true followers of him, that we may be numbered among the beautiful "strong ones" with whom he will joyfully share the spoils of his victory. May we each in this our generation manifest true wisdom and faith, beholding as clearly as did the thief, the "Messiah," the "King of Israel," ever acknowledging our guilt of death, but always praying "Lord, remember us when thoucomest into thy Kingdom." * * * "Now the God of peace that brought again from the dead our Lord Jesus, that great Shepherd of the Sheep, through the blood of the Everlasting Covenant, make us perfect in every good work to do His will, working in us that which is well pleasing in His sight, through Jesus Christ, to whom be glory forever and ever. Amen." j£ pj If the Berean is received unwanted, please mark the envelope, "Refused, return to sender," and drop it in a mailbox. 1 9 7 3 Berean 213 Joseph and Jesus "Shalt thou indeed reign over us? Or shalt thou indeed have dominion over us ? And his brethren hated him yet the more for his dreams"—Genesis 37:8 IN OUR Daily Readings, we have recently again been reading, at the same time, about two of the greatest men in the history of Israel—yea, indeed, in the history of the whole world. Surely in all the world's literature there is nothing to equal the true story of Joseph. And yet how few recognize the importance of this heartsearching narrative! Here is a young man of sterling character, beloved of his father, yet bitterly hated by his brothers even to the planning of his murder. We behold him in youthful innocence on an errand of peace to them, but even when afar off his brothers conspire to kill him. We follow him throughout his life until he stands before his brethren in great power. But it is the same Joseph, showing love, mercy and generous, open-hearted forgiveness to those who had wronged him so grievously and had sold him into exile, slavery and prison. But why did the Spirit through Moses devote so much space to the story of this one man?—11 chapters out of 50 in a book covering nearly 2500 years. Is it merely an appeal to our emotions? Is it just something to excite our feelings? No, not by any means! It was the purposeful, perfect work of God, and like all the rest of the Scriptures of Truth, it was written for our instruction. Sometimes, as we read about him, it all seems so cruel and heartless, but Joseph had to be prepared for an exalted position of great power, and therefore he had to suffer for his own good, and for the good of his people. Let us look into this record, that we may be strengthened and encouraged and, at the same time, increase our wisdom and understanding of the Word of God. First, we look at his youth at home: "Now Israel loved Joseph more than all his children, because he was the son of his old age: and he made him a coat of many Colors. "And when his brethren saw that their father loved him more than all his brothers, they hated him, and could not speak peaceably unto him" (Gn. 37:3-4). In this same chapter, we learn of 2 dreams that Joseph had, and they are of deep interest. The first is in vs. 5-8— "Joseph dreamed a dream, and he told it his brethren, and they hated him yet the more. And he said unto them, "Hear, I pray you, this dream which I have dreamed: For, behold, we were binding sheaves in the field, and lo, my sheaf arose, and also stood upright; and behold, your sheaves stood round about it, and made obeisance to my sheaf. "And his brethren said unto him, Shalt thou indeed reign over us? Or shalt thou indeed have dominion over us? 1973 Berean 214 "And they hated him yet the more for his dreams, and for his words." The second dream follows in vs. 9-11— "Behold, I have dreamed a dream more; and behold, the sun and the moon and the 11 stars made obeisance to me. "And he told it to his father: and his father rebuked him, and said unto him, What is this dream that thou hast dreamed? Shall I and thy mother and thy brethren indeed come to bow down ourselves to thee to the earth? "And his brethren envied him; but his father observed the saying." Ordinary dreams come from many causes. Joseph's dreams, however, were from God, and were prophetic. This is proved by later events in his life. His father and his brethren realized that they were not ordinary dreams. Concerning the latter day outpouring of the Spirit, God testified through the prophet Joel, saying— "Your old men shall dream dreams" (Joel 2:28). And through Moses He said (Num. 12:6)— "// there be a prophet among you, I the Lord will make Myself known to him in a vision, and will speak unto him in a dream." Joseph's dreams were of this class. They forecasted coming events. Realizing the nature of his dreams, his brethren were filled with envy. They could not speak peaceably to him, for their envy turned to deadly hatred, and they plotted against his life. At 17 years of age (his mother Rachel having been dead several years), this peace-loving boy, beloved of his father, was sent on an errand of goodwill to enquire after the welfare of his brethren. But when they saw him approaching, their hatred was so great that they conspired to kill him— "And they said one to another, Behold this dreamer cometh. "Come now therefore, and let us slay him, and cast him into some pit. And we will say, Some evil beast hath devoured him: "And we shall see what will become of his dreams" (Gn. 37:19-20). Had they done this, they would have interfered with God's plans for Joseph's exaltation and for their own welfare. Therefore something had to be done. In vs. 21-22 we have the solution— "Reuben heard it, and he delivered him out of their hands, and said, Let us not kill him. Shed no blood, but cast him into this pit that is in the wilderness, and lay no hand upon him: "That he might rid him out of their hands, to deliver him to his father again." This plan was accepted, and when Joseph drew near they seized him, stripped him of his coat, and cast him into the empty pit. Then these hard-hearted brethren sat down quietly to eat their lunch. Joseph must have been terrified, as he appealed to them in vain. The thought is well expressed in Psa. 55:4-5— 1973 Berean 215 "My heart is sore pained within me; and the terrors of death are fallen upon me. Fearfulness and trembling are come upon me, and horror hath overwhelmed me" (vs. 4-5). Listen to his brethren, about 23 years later (Gn. 42:21-22)— "And they said one to another, We are verily guilty concerning our brother, in that we saw the anguish of his soul, when he besought us, and we would not hear. Therefore is this distress come upon us." But again, if Reuben had had HIS way, God's plan could not have been carried out. Gen. 37:29 shows that Reuben was separated from his brethren for a time; and during that period a company of merchants appear, and Judah suggests that they sell Joseph, so that his blood would not be upon their hands. And this they do. Later, Reuben returns to the pit to rescue his younger brother, and is overwhelmed with grief when he finds that Joseph is gone. To complete their cruel work, the brothers killed a kid and dipped Joseph's coat in its blood, and presented it to their father. The poor old man was almost heart-broken, and refused to be comforted, declaring that he would go down to the grave for his son mourning. But let us return to Joseph. He is now in the hands of the Midianites, and on the way to Egypt. The account is brief, so we will look behind the scene. Here is the favorite son of an old man, accustomed to all the comfort of home, and the tender love of his father, suddenly snatched from these quiet, joyful circumstances, and alone in the hands of heartless strangers, to be sold into cruel bondage. Can you see him as he proceeds in despair, doubtless bound in order to prevent escape. What agony! What grief! Was there ever such loneliness as his? How could human prospects be darker? Yet, unknown to Joseph, he was on his way to power and great glory in the land of Egypt, but many dark days and bitter trials lay in between. Upon arrival in Egypt, he is sold to Potiphar, captain of Pharaoh's guard. In his service as a slave, the noble character of Joseph is revealed. He proved himself to be of high morality, gentleness, fidelity, patience, and perseverance. He also possessed an iron will, and an indomitable energy. Everything seemed to be well, and the Egyptian prospered because of Joseph. Then suddenly, like a bolt from the sky, Joseph is again plunged into the depths of despair, and again as a result of his own goodness and faithfulness. Think of him, an outcast, a slave in a strange land, and now in prison, a victim of false accusation. YET, unknown to Joseph, he was still on the road to exaltation. This appears in VS. 21-23. 1973 Berean 216 Though cruelly cast down again, Joseph firmly maintains his faith in God, in spite of all appearances. In process of time, through faithful service, matters begin to brighten again (v. 21)— "But the Lord was with Joseph, and showed him mercy, and gave him favor in the sight of the keeper of the prison." After some years in prison, ch. 40 brings us to a new scene in the life of Joseph, and shows how, though all unseen, God was working with him. Two servants of Pharaoh—the butler and the bakerhaving offended Pharaoh, were put into prison. They dreamed, but their dreams were not of the ordinary type. Interpretation of their dreams was given by Joseph, and accordingly the baker was hanged and the butler was restored to his office. Joseph pleaded with the butler— "But think on me when it shall be well with thee; and show kindness, I pray thee, unto me; and make mention of me to Pharaoh, and bring me out of this house: "For indeed I was stolen away out of the land of the Hebrews: and here also I have done nothing that they should put me into the dungeon" (vs. 14-15). Ch. 41 brings us to the end of his long years of affliction, but not till 2 more weary years were spent in prison. Then came Pharaoh's 2 dreams: first of 2 groups of cattle, and then of 2 groups of corn. Upon hearing of them, and the inability of the wise men to interpret the dreams, the butler recalled his own experience, and his ingratitude toward Joseph, and told Pharaoh how Joseph had interpreted his and the baker's dreams. This is recorded in vs. 9-13. Joseph was hastily called from prison, and interpreted the 2 dreams of Pharaoh, the substance being that there were to be 7 years of plenty, followed by 7 years of famine. As a reward, and because of his ability, he was made ruler over all the land of Egypt. This is outlined in vs. 37-45. His work is listed in vs. 47-57. From the time he was sold by his brethren to the time when he stood before Pharaoh had been 13 years. 1973 Berean 217 Chs. 41-45 bring us to the climax in the life of Joseph. On account of the famine that had spread throughout the countries surrounding Egypt, the land of Canaan was greatly affected. His father Jacob, realizing the position they were in, and hearing that there was plenty of food in Egypt, sent 10 of his sons to Egypt to buy corn. As Joseph had charge of all sales, it was necessary for his brethren to appear before him. He recognized them, but they did not recognize him. The details of this visit are given in ch. 42, to the end of v. 28. We see how ch. 42:6 gives the fulfilment of Joseph's boyhood dreams, and again in 43:26 upon their second visit, and we are deeply impressed with the wonderful workings of God, and the importance of maintaining faithful, cheerful, hopeful obedience to Him, in spite of the bitterest and most trying of experiences. Here is the essence of faith—complete, dependent, obedient trust—without which it is impossible to please God, Who must try His servants for their great and glorious destiny. How blessed were those who held fast and true, even unto cruel deaths, as Paul stirringly records in Heb. 11! We must pass over the details concerning his brothers' first and second visits, except to call attention to the ordeals Joseph caused them to pass through, for their own sakes, until they were completely humbled. The opening words of ch. 45 manifest Joseph's deep love, in spite of all they had done, and shows how that he could refrain himself no longer; and how he made himself known to his brethren. They were so terrified at his presence that they could not answer him. But Joseph—showing love, mercy and forgiveness to those who had treacherously wronged him and caused him such long years of suffering and grief—turned to them and said— "I am Joseph your brother, whom ye sold into Egypt. Now therefore, be not grieved, nor angry with yourselves, that ye sold me hither: for God did send me before you to preserve life" (vs. 4-5). Then he instructed them to hurry home and give the news to his father. And he added some sound advice, saying (v.24)— "See that ye fall not out by the way." In other words, "No quarreling, please." That advice is also good for us. We may have sincere disagreements, but there must be no quarreling among us. It is so easy and natural for the flesh to get sidetracked from the main purpose of carrying the Good News to the hungry, and fall to quarrelling on the way. When Jacob heard the news, he was overjoyed, saying— "It is enough: Joseph my son is yet alive: I will go and see him before I die." In chs. 46-47 we have the record of the family reunion, and their establishment in the land of Egypt. All this was written for OUR instruction, and 0, what a wealth of necessary instruction we find in this, the loveliest and most fascinating story ever written! First, we learn that Joseph is a remarkable type of the Lord Jesus in marvelous detail. Then we discover that he also typifies all true sons and daughters of God. Let us look briefly at some of the parallels between Joseph and the Lord Jesus— 1973 Berean 218 Gen. 37:8—"Shalt thou indeed reign over us?" 37:8—"His brethren hated him." 37:4—"Their father loved him more than all his brethren." Lk. 19:14—"We will not have this man to reign over us." Jn. 15:25—"They without a cause." hated me Mt. 3:17—"This is My beloved Son." 37:18—"When they saw him afar Mk. 12:7— "When the husbandmen off, they conspired against him to saw his son they said, This is the kill him." heir: come, let us kill him." 37:28—"They sold him for 20 pieces of silver." Mt. 26:15—"They covenanted with him for 30 pieces of silver." 37:28—"Cast him into a pit, and brought forth alive." Jesus buried, and brought forth alive. 41:45—"Promoted by Pharaoh to be ruler over all the land of Egypt" Mic. 5:2—"Out of Bethlehem shall he come forth that is to be ruler in Israel." 45:1 — "Joseph made himself known to his brethren . . they were troubled." Zee. 12:10—"They shall look upon me whom they have pierced, and they shall mourn." 45:7—"To preserve posterity in the earth." Isa.49:6—"My Servant to raise up the tribes of Jacob, and to restore the preserved of Israel." you a There are other likenesses, but these illustrate the wonderful resemblance. Joseph had to suffer for his own good, and ultimate exaltation, but he did not understand it at the time. We clearly see, and Joseph could at last see in looking back, that God was ever with him, and His loving hand was in all Joseph's bitter trials. Do we not often wonder why certain afflictions come upon us? Our outlook may be dark. Everything may seem to be against us, and as we endeavor to look ahead, there seems to be no way out. If we ever feel that way (and surely such times come upon us all), then let us think of Joseph, and how he was faithful and patient through it all. The Kingdom of God lies ahead. What ever lies in between in this so brief life, still THAT Kingdom is at the end for those who hold fast. We press toward that Kingdom, and hope to see it, but who knows what each one may have to pass through in the way of tribulation. Clouds of darkness may come over us, and we may feel as though the sun may never shine again into our lives. The time seems long; the way narrow; human nature is weak; and we may feel as though we could cry out in despair. If we ever feel that way (and who does not?), then let us think of Joseph: his bitter darkness, his steadfast faith; his ultimate glory. Trouble is trouble, no matter how we look at it. But there are 2 ways of taking it. If it comes upon us, and we can see no reason why, the natural thing is to complain, and find fault with our lot, and to sulk about it, and to weaken in our faith. But is this pleasing to God? We know it is not. What then shall we do? We have an answer in lPet. 5:6— "Humble yourselves under the mighty hand of God, that He may exalt you in due time." And Paul in Heb. 12:5— "My son, despise not thou the chastening of the Lord, nor faint when thou art rebuked of Him." 1973 B e r e a n 219 Also, in v. 11— "Now no chastening for the present seemeth to be joyous, but grievous. Nevertheless afterward it yieldeth the peaceable fruit of righteousness unto them which are EXERCISED THEREBY." If, therefore, dark and dreary days come upon us, let us not become impatient, or slacken in our faith, but THINK OF JOSEPH. We look past our own small circle out into the world at large, and what do we see? Trouble? Yes, the sky seems to be overhung with clouds of intense darkness. There seems to be no way out. Yet we know there is, and we know what God intends to do. Then why not apply this assurance to ourselves, and commit our way completely unto the Lord, as David says in Psa. 37:5— "Trust also in Him, and He SHALL bring it to pass." The lesson of Joseph's life shows plainly that we must not look for signs from heaven, because God works in apparently natural ways. And even when our case seems hopeless, we may be on the verge of deliverance. If, then, we feel at any time that our trial is more than we can bear, let us remember the agony of Joseph in the pit. Let us think of him in his days of slavery—of how he was falsely accused, and put into prison, and cruelly abused (Psa.105:18). And then, let us think of the anti-typical, greater Joseph, recorded in Heb. 12:2— "Who for the joy that was set before him endured the cross, despising the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of God." For it is he who has said (Rev. 3:21)— "To him that OVERCOMETH will I grant to sit with me in my throne, even as I also overcame and am set down with my Father in His throne." "To him that overcometh"—that is the key, Joseph did not waver in his faith. He did not say, "I know that is God's command, but I am in an extremity, I am forced to break it because there is no other way out." That is tragedy and failure. The worthies of Heb. 11 were faithful unto the loss of all things, and even life itself. They sought strength from God to do what was right regardless of consequences. Therefore they have a reward. Where is this strength to be found? If we could but keep the glorious conception of the Truth of the Gospel constantly before our eyes, how brilliant its light would be in all its transcendent glory! When we consider what the Lord Jesus has accomplished for us through the Gospel, our gratitude should be unbounded. For we are no longer "aliens from the Commonwealth of Israel," no longer "without God in the world;" for we have been elevated to the place of honor described by Paul— "But now IN CHRIST JESUS ye who sometimes were afar off are made nigh by the blood of Christ" (Eph. 2:13). As we reflect on the things we have considered, our minds turn to the wonderful, comforting words of Paul in Rom. 11:33— "O the depth of the riches and wisdom and knowledge of God! "How unsearchable His judgments, and untraceable His ways!" 1973 Berean 220 —G.A.G. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "The heart is deceitful above all things, and desperately wicked: who can know it?"—Jeremiah 17:9 SEARCHING AGAIN FOR THE SACRED. Since end of 19th century, growing feeling that religion not a thing of pious Sundays but vigorous, shirtsleeve weekdays. Churches & synagogs involved in struggles for racial justice & economic equality. In '60s, secular religion reached its peak. God took back seat. Some said God was dead: the personal, loving, father-figure of Bible. While that God was dying, a "New Morality" was being baptized, a "situation ethics" that morals depend on individual circumstances. But this liberal optimistic vision of human race was at odds with growing current of disillusionment with man's ability to transform either himself or his world. Hitler & Hiroshima suggested that spiral could spin downward into new dimensions of evil. Slowly, as out of a fog, life began to be a matter of basic questions again: Who am I? Why was I born? Why must I die? What is life all about? Few are finding what they seek in liberal churches or synagogs. Mainstream churches are slipping in numbers. Most impressive example of growth is Southern Baptist Convention which has maintained a staunchly biblical faith. Young of all faiths are turning to "Jesus movement." Reform Jews are returning to traditional religious law; Conservative Jews are tightening their own practices; ranks of Catholic traditionalists are growing. The Orthodox Church in America last wk. attacked ecumenical movement for "secular Christianity." Many mainstream Protestants & Catholics are caught up in rapidly expanding Pentecostal movement, seeking to renew their belief thru ecstatic personal encounter with Holy Spirit. Others are looking for guidance to great Eastern religions—mostly Hinduism & Buddhism. Hindu philosophy has long attracted Western minds. Hindus have many personal deities. Hindu imports spin on & on in the catalog of current US spiritual movements. So does Buddhism, a reform movement within Hinduism in 6th century BC, which de-emphasized the Hindu gods. Some schools of Buddhism—Zen, for instance—are a kind of agnosticism. Recently a Tibet lama was aided by Episcopal Bishop Myers & a Catholic Franciscan friar to set up a center for young Buddhists. "A few years ago," Myers chuckled, "the very thought would have been shocking. But we were brothers. It's great thing that Christians can help other religions find root here." Eastern religions "may provide a way into the mystical experience of both East & West, Myers says, "We don't seem able to go the direct way." Similarly, Catholic Carmelite Friar McNamara has incorporated strains of Eastern mystical traditions into 2 ecumenical contemplative centers he runs. Daily meditation periods include readings from Zen, Hindu & Islamic literature. One notable visitor, a member of the Pope's Theological Commission, said, "Nothing in my 57 years rivals it." Zen Master Kapleau disdains Christian enthusiasm for Zen & other Buddhism. "There is no God concept in Buddhism," he says flatly. (Tm 4:9) NOTE: What a pitiful & confused picture!—so-called "Christian" leaders running greedily after the murky abominations of the heathen! Can we wonder at bro. Thomas' scathing indignation at these traitorous "bishops" who are sworn to preserve & defend the Word of God, but who degrade & adulterate it with pagan superstitions? Episcopal "Bishop" Myers "chuckles" that up to recently the "very thought would have been shocking." Truly it would, & rightly so: under the holy Law God gave Israel, Myers would have been stoned to death to rid the land of his corrupt influence. That day will come again, on all false prophets & deceivers of the people. 1973 Berean 221 VIOLENCE IN SCHOOLS. Problems run gamut of woes of adult society: murder, rape, drugs, assaults, armed robbery, arson & wanton destruction. The violence usually is sparked by children—striking out against other children, teachers, & school property. Students in danger every day—in schoolrooms, halls, yards, & on street going to & from school. Crime & violence accelerating at alarming pace. CHICAGO: In one recent month, 155 teachers assaulted. LOS ANGELES: Gang violence has turned schools into garrison camps with steel-mesh fences & padlocked gates. Teachers lock classrooms. Some students afraid to go to school. An LA principal says: "For both teachers & students, issue is no longer learning, but survival." Many students carry knives & guns for self-defense. NEW YORK: 1052 reported assaults on students & teachers in 72, up from 423 in 71. Many assaults not reported from fear of retaliation. Vandalism cost $3.7 million in 71. Too many schools resemble Dodge City: everyone must carry a gun for protection. HOUSTON: Violence getting so bad many teachers quitting, listing "fear" as reason. Houston security guards cost of $400,000 a yr., with big increase planned next yr. More & more students carrying firearms. School violence not singular to US. BRITAIN: Vandalism, theft & assault cause tumult in 60 pet. of high schools: authorities call it4 crisis of discipline.' FRANCE: Growing unrest & rebellion in schools: dozen or so deliberate school fires this year: 21 died in one school fire in Paris. Discipline relaxed to point where quality of achievement is impaired. SWEDEN: Long been struggling with mounting juvenile delinquency & discipline problems in schools. Aggressiveness of students increasing, with wide use of drugs & alcohol. (USN 4:16) NOTE: The school picture is surely one of the saddest pictures of all. A new generation rising, & this is the atmosphere they are developing in. What chance do they have? Clearly the generation at Christ's coming will be a lost generation, like Israel in the wilderness, who must die off one by one for 40 years, before their children can enter the Promised Land. COLLEGE CRIME. On many campuses, biggest problem today is crime: assaults, armed robberies, rapes—up 50 pet. in 2 years. Even 10-ft. brick walls of Harvard Yard not sufficient to prevent wave of thefts & assaults. In a recent 2-wk. period, 42 recorded burglaries of Harvard student rooms. At Purdue, reported thefts jumped from 300 in '65 to 922 in 72. At Illinois U., stolen property soared from under $50,000 to over $200,000 in 3 yrs.(Tm4:2) NOTE: Crime & violence are seeping into & permeating every facet of US life, & the worse it gets, the faster it will develop, & the harder it will be to stop. Already courts are clogged & prisons are jammed, & are spilling the criminals back on the streets as fast as they are caught. MORALITY IN US. Great lack of discipline in schools today; also in churches. Some churches no longer demand high standard of integrity & morality: they haven't same ideals of Christian living as in past. Constantly rising crime rate is a reflection of this. Until there's moral reawakening & restoration of respect & reverence for home & for ideals once held, crime may well continue to increase. Another factor is weakness of law enforcement. So many k^own criminals escape with either very little punishment or none at all. If one correctly assumes it's very unlikely he'll be punished, there's little or no deterrent. So he'll follow his natural instinct to commit crime. (USN 3:26) NOTE: "Because sentence against an evil work is not executed speedily, therefore the heart of the sons of men is fully set in them to do evil" (Ec. 8:11). How much trouble & sorrow man could save himself if he would only accept the guidance of God's wisdom, & not his own foolish "modern" 1973 theories! Berean 222 A FAIL-SAFE PLAN FOR WORLD PEACE. In this nuclear age, it's an awesome fact that a very few, fragile, unpredictable human beings have power to decide whether mankind will survive or be extinguished. They do not differ from others except in terms of having this terrifying ultimate power. They suffer from same weaknesses, conflicts, anxieties, doubts & insecurities that afflict all humanity. They too seek to mask their doubts & errors by dogmatism. The whims of the powerful are no less whims than those of the powerless—only much more dangerous. What if Hitler had had atomic weapons? There are no safeguards against a Hitler or Stalin coming ίο power in either an authoritiarian or "democratic" nation. The very pattern of personality that leads to successful competition for top leadership in all forms of govt. is the same that makes for success in dominating & intimidating associates & "advisers." Given this historical dilemma with its new, nuclear urgency, the problem now becomes a scientific one. Researchers in US, Russia & other countries for many yrs. have been systematically studying roles of various areas of brain, & effects of tranquilizing, depressing & stimulating drugs on perception, thought & emotional behavior. It's now clear that it's possible to manipulate the feelings of individuals. With increased research, direct chemical intervention & control of human behavior will become more precise. I propose a morally & scientifically powerful international agency for this purpose. Without question, this raises many complex questions, & strong potential for abuse. But dangers of refusing to assume responsibility of scient ically controlling man's bad impulses & strengthening his good ones are clear & present. All attempts to avoid this responsibility are immoral. Scientists are close to perfecting a moral & effective form of intervention for control of negatives & strengthening positives in human behavior. Nations must cooperate in providing resources & appropriate international agency to enable science to save man from annihilating himself—By a NY University psychology professor. (Nwk 3:19) NOTE: The problem is real & terrible enough, but the "solution" is pure Alice-in-Wonderland. Because they cannot trust fallible human leaders with the nuclear push-button, a panel of fallible human scientists will somehow agree just what way to program, for instance, Brezhnev and Nixon so they will do "good" and not "bad." Could any international panel including deadly rivals like US & Russia ever agree on what IS "good" and "bad" in the actions of each nation's leaders? What pitiful fantasy! But it shows how man is at his wits' end. "A WAR OF EXTERMINATION" On Nov. 29, '47, UN voted to partition Palestine. Next day, Arab League Sec.-Gen. said, "This will be a war of extermination & a momentous massacre." The Palestine Arab representative at UN agreed. (LfSpcIsrllssue 73) NOTE: And the day after the State of Israel was formed, six brave Arab armies attacked from all sides, telling the Palestine Arabs to get out of the land so the armies could sweep through and massacre the Jews. Hypocritical Britain & UN made no provision for Jews' protection. THIS is the background of the present picture. Twice again, in '56 & '67, the Arabs tried to exterminate the Jews. Present Arab statements and claims must be judged in the light of these facts. FOOD POLITICS. US Govt. heavily subsidizes the US grain going to Russia; those sales helped drive up prices for feed grains, adding to US meat cost. Common Mkt. selling surplus butter to Russia at 1 5 of subsidized price for butter in W. Europe. (USN 4:30) NOTE: Russia was desperate; had to have the food; could not get it elsewhere. So US sells it far below cost, & poor US taxpayer foots the bill, & the dealers make a huge profit. Such are the ways of man that Christ will correct. 1973 Berean 223 PENDULUM SWINGS. After yrs. of sunny admiration, science suddenly finds itself in shadow. No longer are scientists the public's great heroes. In part, turnabout came from increasing awareness of environmental ravages that accompany technological advance. On more philosophic level, reversal is result of new mood of skepticism about science methods. There has begun to emerge a new fascination with the very antithesis of science: the mystical & even irrational. Such was faith in science that its practitioners quickly came to believe all mysteries would yield before it. Science in effect became the new religion. Science did indeed bring forth a Brave New World—of transistors & electronics, antibiotics & organ transplants, computors & jet travel. But progress came at a price. It was the genius of science that made possible exploding mushroom cloud over Hiroshima, chemically ruined forests of Indochina, threat of a shower of nuclear missiles, a planet increasingly littered with technology's fallout. Science's alleged objectivity & its attendant evils have denatured man's personal experience & taken mystery & sacredness out of life. There may be processes in universe totally at odds with accepted physical laws. There's renewed interest in ESP (extra-sensory perception): in a questionnaire, 70 pet. of answering scientists in Britain considered it possible. (Tm 4:23) NOTE: How man wavers & fluctuates from one extreme to another! One day "science" is going to solve all problems & explain all mysteries; the next day mysticism & witchcraft is all the learned rage! Man will run greedily after any idea but the Truth, but Truth is too holy, & sets too high a standard, & evil man is frightened away. And the way to Truth is divinely guarded, 8c revealed only to those whose heart is right with God. ISRAEL'S MASADA COMPLEX. Masada is the mountain in Israel where defending Jews of first century died to last man rather than surrender to Romans. Golda Meir has declared that all Jerusalem will remain a Jewish city & nothing but a Jewish city, and that Israel would never, never, withdraw from Sharm El Sheikh or west bank of Gulf of Aqaba. Israel's present borders are more secure militarily than any that could emerge from a settlement. Israel's policy seems to be: "What we have, we hold"; This is both rational & humanly understandable. But Israel is paying a price for that policy. As recent UN votes show, Israel has only one firm friend left in world—US. As long as Israel holds fast to her conquests—26,000 sq. mis. of Arab land & over a million Arabs—the Arabs' hatred will burn high. Arabs are powerless now, but they're becoming richer & more industrialized every year. Can Israel, outnumbered 40 to 1, endure indefinitely as a tiny island in a sea of Arab hatred? (Nwk 3:19) NOTE: "Israel has only one friend left." Why does US continue to support Israel, when there is so much feeling even here against the Jews, & they are so relatively few, & it would be so much more profitable to side with the Arabs as the big oil companies are pressing it to? The only answer is that God is controlling them for His own purposes—contrary to their own natural best interests. ^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^^,^ OIL WEALTH & INTRIGUE. Around Persian Gulf, a basin containing 60 pet. of weald's proven oil reserves, are 3 sizable nations & 10 small sheikdoms. Annual oil income (over $7 billion now) will soar to $35 billion by '80, & $55 billion by '85—the largest pool of capital in world history. With so much treasure, Gulf is aboil with plays for power. Russia, US, Japan, West Europe & China all involved. (USN4:23) NOTE: How naturally are affairs working out to focus all world attention on the vital Mideast: oil, wealth, strategic location, Israel-Arab conflict, great power fear & greed & rivalry. The Berean is covered financially through the August issue. 1973 Berean 224 ASTRONOMY: NEW PUZZLES. Series of dramatic observations of new astronomical phenomena over last decade: continually heralding discovery of some unexpected new objects in heavens: quasars, pulsars, X-ray stars, & "black holes"—objects so immeasurably dense that even light rays cannot escape from their gravitational fields, so they are inherently invisible. Recent observations have cleared up some mysteries, but others have raised entirely fresh & disturbing questions. Undoubtedly most puzzling are quasars, which shine with brilliance of a million normal stars. A quasar each year eats up as much energy as our sun will use in its entire existence. Behavior of quasars remains a tantalizing mystery. (Nwk 5:7) NOTE: Just a reminder that for all his ρ retentions, man knows very, very little about the universe, & this year's "facts" are continually being shattered by next year's discoveries. The article mentions very contradictory theories, & they are constantly changing. AMERICAN FAMILY IN DANGER. Strong questioning of values that have shaped life in Western civilzation for centuries: lifelong commitment, parental responsibility, & distinct roles for man & wife. In '20, 1 divorce for every 7 marriages; in '40,1 in 6; in '60, 1 in 4; in '72, 1 in 3. No end in sight to divorce & remarriage cycle. Drive underway to make divorce even easier. Fourteen states have "no fault" divorce. Marriage traditionally has involved a lifelong commitment: it is now becoming a tentative arrangement—often a transitory one. A high proportion of delinquents originate from homes where father is absent, or both parents work. Rising rate of divorces will be reflected inyrs. ahead in nation's juvenile courts. (USN 4:16) NOTE: As mankind sinks back into animalism & irreligion, "marriage" in the world has less & less similarity to true marriage in God's sight. Any relationship that is not consciously & sincerely entered for life is not "marriage" at all, but merely another corrupt form of fornication. Most modern world "marriages" now fall into this category. WHAT SCHOOLS CAN'T DO. For generations, schools had mission in US : to make democracy possible & guarantee its prosperity. This exalted conception has paled in recent years; doubts whether schools are really instruments of equality they were thought to be—& whether there are elements in man beyond reach of education. There's a tempering of recent, enthusiasm for "open education," a new version of "progressive" movement of '30s. Billions of $s spent in name of "reform," but very little evidence of success. Rand Corp. researchers found that for every study proving a program "worked," another equally good study proved it was ineffective. (Tm 4:16) NOTE: So many modern experiments to take all the effort & work & "drudgery" out of learning, & make it "relevant" & "exciting" & "selfexpressive," etc. But all true learning IS effort & perseverance & attentive application. THIS is the very quality schools should teach. Man is the eternal, rootless Athenian, always seeking "some new thing." And sadly this applies to divine things too. GASOLINE SHORTAGE. Nixon's long-awaited energy message disappointing to friend & foe alike. Administration's hands-off approach feeds growing suspicion that whole oil shortage was planned by big companies to raise prices & destroy independent dealers. (Nwk 4:30) NOTE: The whole world order is built on greed, oppression & suspicion. NEW RUSSIAN ICBM. Russia h a s successfully tested SS-17, advanced version of SS-11 intercontinental missile. Has built in c o m p u t e r for in-flight guidance enabling it to zero in on US missile silos. (USN 4:2) inside Back KING FAMINE. Even in best of yrs., much of sub-Sahara Africa is stalked by grim specter of famine. This yr. one of worst. A 40-mo. drought has left area brown & blistered. Crops failed; millions of cattle died. Farmers eating seed grain to stave off starvation, thus ensuring insufficient food from future harvests. In Mali alone, at least 1 million of nation's 5 million cattle have perished in worst drought in memory. Major reason for drought is man's neglect of land. Goats & camels have denuded millions of acres. To feed their animals, herdsmen have cut off tops & branches of trees, halting their growth. This systematic stripping of land has altered climate & caused decline in rainfall. As result, Sahara Desert spreading south over V2 mile per yr. (Tm 4:30) NOTE: If we could truly realize the hopelessness & misery in which most of the world lives, we could not really selfishly enjoy any of our idle, tinseled luxuries, & we would constantly pray God to end this terrible night of human oppression & wickedness, & bring the Day of Promise. SIBERIA'S RICHES promise to make Russia of 21st century the wealthiest nation on earth. Siberia has largest gas & oil reserves in world. Almost every day brings new discoveries. Scientists believe entire region, as big as all N. America, is giant raft floating on sea of gas & oil. Already Russia has built world's 2 largest dams on Yenisei & Angara Rivers, & 3rd is going up at Ust-Ilimsk. Russia has undertaken greatest construction effort in history: as tho N. America being rediscovered. TYUMEN: oil production doubled every yr. since '65; expect 130 million tons by 75—V2 of Saudi Arabian output. SAMOTLOR: beneath 100 sq. mi. Lake Samotlor is believed to be world's richest single oil deposit, equal to entire Alaskan North Slope. NADYM: newly discovered gas field contains 6 trillion cubic meters, equal to 3 4 of all US reserves. (Tm4:9). NOTE: All signs point to the rise of Russia's wealth & power, & the decline of US's. And Russia is channeling all her resources to one end: military might & world power, while US squanders hers on riotous & improvident living. ^__m_mm_____m_i_mmmmt^emimm^mmmimmmmmmim REDS GAIN IN INDOCHINA. Mid-April brought rapidly expanding crisis for US in part of world where war was supposed to be over & done with. Cambodia aflame with fighting. Massive infiltration from North into S. Vietnam & dangerous surge in Red attacks brought truce to most fragile point yet. Peacekeeping machinery all but broken down. Reds on move everywhere, putting heavier weapons & additional men in place. N. Viets have set up over 1000 antiaircraft guns & 10 missile installations in S. Vietnam, & large numbers of Russian tanks. (USN 4:23) NOTE: What a dismal ending to a mighty effort that cost 100s of billions of $s, & 100s of 1000s of lives, & rent US asunder with bitterness & conflict, & kept it bogged down & bleeding while Russia raced to multiply its ships & missiles & armed forces. "PROGRESS" IN JAPAN. Since WW II, pellmell industrialization has catapulted Japan to 3rd place in world; but has also transformed the oncebeautiful land into a vast, smoke-belching factory, so it now has dubious distinction of "most polluted country on earth." For yrs., Chisso Corp. plants have dumped organic mercury waste into Yahsushiro Bay. Mercury found its way into bay's fish, then into the townspeople who ate them, & has brought paralysis, deformities, brain damage, blindness & death to 100s. Stark evidence of the disease is everywhere in the town. (Nwk 4:2) NOTE: "Most polluted country on earth." The lessons of "civilization" that Japan has eagerly learned from US are destroying it. Modern "progress" is a soul-debasing & self-consuming monster. $3.50 per year (only for those whodesire to pay) Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO. 8 AUGUST, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian Λ monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Editedand Published by: G.A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Apt. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL ΝEWS: Whangarei Inside Front Cover Bible Questions Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Be Zealous Therefore 225 APPROACH ING JUDGMENTS (Bro. Thomas) Part 2 227 The True Ecclesia of God 233 Resurrection of Rejectors (J.T.) 233 ANSWERS BY BRO. ROBERTS: God Manifest in Christ 234 ΤΗ Ε TONGU Ε OF THE LEAR NE D 241 THE NEWMAN IN CHRIST JESUS 248 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS F U L F I L L I N G PROPHECY 252 Going to Law Against Another Back Cover July Answers Back Cover We ore anxious to send the Bereon FREE to any desiring it that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News Inside Front WHANGAREI, New Zealand—YWCA Hall, Rust Ave.—Memorial 10:30 a m ; Lecture 7 pm—Bro. M.J. Griffin, PO Box 55, Whangarei. LOVE and greetings to all of the Household of Faith. All here were deeply moved and encouraged by the many messages of love and greetings received on the card from the Hye Fraternal Gathering. Truly the Truth, loved and obeyed, generates a deep and abiding love of the brethren and sisters throughout the world. May it please God to grant an increase of this spirit in the Household as we await him who is the perfect manifestation of the Father's love. We are indeed happy to report that, after a full examination, we welcomed into fellowship on August 7, sister RUTH RILEY, wife of bro. Riley, who had previously been a member of another group. With love in the Truth to all, from the brethren and sisters in Whangarei. _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ —bro. M. J. Griffin Bible Questions WHAT KING . . . Write the number of each item in List 1 beside correct person in List 2. LIST ONE—QUESTIONS 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. Ate grass? 18. Was hidden? 19. Was a leper? 20. Spared Agag? 21. Was blinded? 22. Was very fat? 22. King of Elam? 24. King of Salem? 25. Killed Josiah? 26. Eaten of worms? 27. Married Esther? 28. Was suffocated? 29. Burned himself? 30. Drove furiously? 31. Built Samaria? 32. Killed Benhadad? 33. Diseased in feet? 34. "Lover of David"? 35. Named only in Proverbs? Burial of an ass? 36. Was killed by Samuel? Allied with Ahab? 37. Consulted young men? Wrote 1005 songs? 38. Was allied with Rezin? Had iron bedstead? 39. "We have no king but"? Put Daniel in den? 40. "The great & noble"? Besieged Hezekiah? 41. Recovered from a boil? Conquered Babylon? 42. Tried to curse Israel? Gave David Ziklag? 43. "Caused Israel to sin"? Wanted a vineyard? 44. Was 'almost persuaded'? Defeated by Barak? 45. Taken captive to Egypt? Was a sheepmaster? 46, Sent Ezra to Jerusalem? Saw writing on wall ? 47. Besieged Jabeshgilead? Last king of Israel? 48 Took away gold shields? Reigned in Heshbon? 49 Married Ahab's daughter? Dreamed of animals? 50 . Filled Jerusalem with blood? Abraham prayed for? Og Balak NOTE: Darius was a Persian (not a Mede) LIST TWO—ANSWERS Uzziah Necho Shishak Jehoahaz Asa Jabin Herod Achish Jehoram Benhadad Johoiakim Belshazzar Artaxerxes Saul Eglon Cyrus Hoshea Solomon Jeroboam Jehoshaphat Agag Pekah Hiram Lemuel Pharaoh Manasseh Melchizedek Jehu Zimri Mesha Nahash Hezekiah Rehoboam Sennacherib Ahab Sihon Hazael Caesar Zedekiah Abimelech Chedorlaomer Omri Joash Darius Agrippa Asnapper Ahasuerus Nebuchadnezzar FREE BOOK ON VITAL SCRIPTURE TRUTH "Christendom Astray," a 462-pg. book outlining and scripturally proving all basic Bible doctrines involved in the Gospel of salvation, which has helped thousands find the Way of Life, will be gladly sent free and without obligation. Write: G. V. Growcott, 12954 St. Marys, Detroit, Mich. 48227. Anything printed in the Berean may be reprinted freely by anyone In any form. No permission is needed; no credit is required. Reprint in whole or In part, and the more widely the better! EDITORIAL Be Zealous Therefore "Our Savior Jesus Christ, who gave himself for us, that he might redeem us from all iniquity, and purify unto himself a peculiar people, zealous of good works"—Tit. 2:14 THE work of Moses, as the administrator of the Law, begins in Exodus. But it is greatly amplified in Leviticus, and Deuteronomy, where the service of the Levites, and the establishment of the Aaronic priesthood, are recorded. In the latter book, we learn that— "Moses wrote this Law, and delivered it unto the priests the sons of Levi, which bare the ark of the covenant of the Lord, and unto the elders of Israel"—Deut. 31:9. Moses, was, therefore, the first scribe: for the duty of the scribes was to care for the Law, and make transcripts of it. Gradually, it developed into a profession, whose members expounded the Law and taught its doctrines. They became consulting lawyers, authorized expounders of the Scriptures and, finally, schoolmasters; thus blending together in one character the several elements of intellectual, moral, social and religious influence. In the days of Jesus, the scribes were a body of high state officials, who, in conjunction with the Pharisees and the high priests, constituted the Sanhedrin. The Pharisees were the most powerful party among the Jews, both in politics and religion. In politics, they were national, and opposed to the Roman rule. In religion, they adhered strictly to the letter of the Law. Paul was a member of this body, and well describes their characteristics when he stood before Agrippa. Using the Diaglott, we quote from Acts 26— "According to the most rigid sect of our religion, I lived a Pharisee. "Many of the saints I shut up in prisons, having received authority from the high priests; and when they were killed I gave my vote against them. "And punishing them often in all the synagogues, I compelled them to blaspheme; and being exceedingly furious towards them, I pursued them even to foreign cities." (vs. 5,10,11). The Pharisees also maintained that there existed an oral tradition descended from Moses, and to that tradition (of which they pretended to be the sole possessors), they ascribed an authority equal to the Law. By this means, they attempted to keep the conscience of the people in abject slavery, and troubled men's minds with many questions and traditions. Is it any wonder that they received such scathing denunciations as we read in Matthew 23? It must be borne in mind that these people were highly educated and possessed an intimate knowledge of the Law. But in their eagerness to administer the Law strictly to the letter, they omitted the weighter matters such as judgment and mercy. For, said Jesus— 1973 Berean 225 "They bind heavy burdens and grievous to be borne, and lay them on men's shoulders; but they themselves will not move them with one of their fingers"—Matt. 23:4. The acutest intellects of Israel, members of the Sanhedrin, watched Jesus closely in an attempt to detect him in some breach of the Law. They lost no opportunity to take exception to what he said, and eagerly sought to entangle him in the web of their specious reasoning, or to confound him by their artful questions. Although they boasted in Moses, and were exceedingly zealous of the traditions of their fathers, they failed to comprehend the spirit of the Law. Having been one of them, Paul was well qualified to give the following reason — "For I bear them record that they have a zeal of God, but not according to knowledge. For they being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves unto the righteousness of God"—Rom. 10:2-3. Thus Paul describes a body of men who themselves believed that they only were capable of an accurate interpretation of the Law and the prophets, and were so pertinacious in their opinions that they would exclude Jesus from their fellowship because he held views contrary to theirs. What a tragedy! Here was a people (Rm.9:4)— "To whom pertained the adoption, and the glory, and the covenants, and the giving of the Law, and the service of God, and the promises" They were not satisfied to abide by the Law. Tradition after tradition was added to it until the authority of the Law faded to such an extent that Jesus said to them (Mt. 15:6)— "Thus have ye made the commandment of God of none effect by your tradition." Let us ponder well the lesson to be derived from a consideration of the foregoing, lest by any means we might develop into modern scribes and Pharisees. Let us abide by our Statement of Faith, which has stood the test of so many years. It remains unshaken because it is built upon the Rock of God's Truth. Let us avoid the danger of passing resolutions to "strengthen" our statement of Faith in specific detail. As it stands, it is amply sufficient to deal with every point that may arise, especially where goodwill and a genuine desire to heal, and to be healed, prevails. Let us do all we possibly can to hold the Body together in these perilous times. We cannot do that if we deny each other the comfort of mutual friendship and help; but we can do it if we walk in the Truth, and be zealous of good works. We are commanded to be zealous for the Truth, and to contend earnestly for it; but let us be careful that our zeal is according to knowledge, and that our contending is for the Faith, and not for personal or hidden ends. A grave responsibility rests upon our shoulders because of our belief and obedience of the Gospel. How are we responding to it?—Editor 1973 Berean 226 Approaching Judgments BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS "I will set My glory among the nations, and all the nations shall see My judgments that I have executed, and My hand that I have laid upon them"—Eze. 39:21 PART TWO IN turning our attention to the prophets, what do we find at the very beginning? ISAIAH records (1:24-28)— "Therefore, saith Yahweh of hosts, the Mighty One of Israel: "Ah, I will ease Me of Mine adversaries, and avenge Me of Mine enemies . . Zion shall be redeemed with judgment, and her coverts with righteousness. t "And the destruction of the transgressors and of the sinners shall be together, and they that forsake Yahweh shall be consumed" In the very next chapter we have the "Day of Yahweh" foretold; a Day the power and terror of which shall— "Be upon every one that is proud and lofty, and upon every one that is lifted up, and he shall be brought low. "In that Day a man shall cast his idols of silver, and his idols of gold, which they made each one for himself to worship, to the moles and to the bats, "To go into the clefts of the rocks, and into the tops of the ragged rocks, for fear of Yahweh, and for the glory of His majesty, when He arises to shake terribly the earth" (Isa. 2:12, 20, 21). Such is the testimony with which the first book of the prophets opens. And such a testimony is sustained throughout. We read of the Lord standing up to plead, and standing to judge the people (Isa. 3:13). Mention is made (10:3) of— "The Day of visitation, and the desolation which shall come from far." We read of the world being punished for their evil, and the wicked for their iniquity (Isa. 13:11); of a man being more precious than gold, even a man more than the golden wedge of Ophir (13:12). We are told (Isa. 14:26-7) of— "A purpose that is purposed upon the WHOLE EARTH; and this is the hand that is stretched out upon ALL ΝA TIONS. "It is Yahweh of hosts Who hath purposed, and who shall disannul it? And His hand is stretched out, and who shall turn it back?" All the inhabitants of the world, and dwellers upon the earth, are called upon to see an ensign which is to be lifted up, and to hear a trumpet which is to be blown (Isa. 18:3). And this call for universal attention is connected with a rushing of the nations, and of the multitudes of many people, like the rushing of mighty waters. The nations are thus to rush; but God, we are told, shall rebuke them; and they shall flee afar off, and be chased like chaff before the wind, and thistledown before the whirlwind (Isa. 17:12-13). We read, moreover, of the Lord's purpose (23:9)— 73 Berean 227 "To stain the pride of all glory, and to bring into contempt all the honorable of the earth." We read of the Lord making the land empty and making it waste; of the inhabitants being burned and few men left, so few as to be compared—at least in the center and special scene of these judgments—to the shaking of an olive tree, and the gleaning grapes when the vintage is done (Isa. 24:1,6,13). The land is spoken of asbeing utterly broken down, clean dissolved, moved exceedingly (v. 19). If this has happened to Israel for wickedness, what may we not expect for the nations in punishment for theirs? We hear an invitation to God's people to enter into their chambers, and hide themselves for a little moment, till the indignation be overpast— "For Yahweh cometh out of His place to punish the inhabitants of the earth for their iniquity" (Isa. 26:20-21). The earth also is to disclose her blood, and no more cover her slain (ν. 21). An overflowing scourge is to pass through; judgment is to be laid to the line, and righteousness to the plummet. The hail is to sweep away the refuge of lies, and the waters to overflow the hiding place (Isa. 28:15-17). From the time that the scourge goes forth, it is to pass over morning by morning, by day and by night, so that it shall be a vexation merely to understand the report. Yahweh is to rise up as in Mt. Perazim, to be wroth as in the valley of Gibeon; that He may do His work, His strange work; that He may bring to pass His act, His strange act. Men are warned not to mock, lest their bands be made strong— "For I have heard (says the prophet) from Adonai Yahweh of hosts, a consumption, even determined, upon the WHOLE EARTH"(28:19-22). We read of the Name of Yahweh coming from far, burning with His anger, the burden thereof being heavy; His lips full of indignation, and His tongue as a devouring fire, to sift the nations with the sieve of vanity (Isa. 30:27-28). We are told (v. 30) that— "Yahweh shall cause His glorious voice to be heard, and shall show the lighting down of His arm, with the indignation of His anger, and with the flame of a devouring fire, with scattering, tempest, and hailstones" No mere national convulsion this! No mere political overturning !— "Now wiH I rise, saith Yahweh. Now will I be exalted." The nations are again invited to hear, the people to hearken: the earth and all that is therein; the world and all things that come forth of it. And why?— "For the indignation of Yahweh is upon ALL NATIONS, and His fury upon all their armies. He hath utterly destroyed them; He hath delivered them to the slaughter" (Isa. 34:2). 1973 Berean 228 Such is the doctrine of the prophet Isaiah. Such are the ap- proaching judgments to which he bears testimony. He speaks of One who is to tread the winepress alone: who will tread the people in his anger, and trample them in his fury, sprinkling their blood upon his garments, and staining all his raiment (Isa. 63:3), for— "The Day of vengeance is in mine heart, and the Year of my redeemed is come!" (v. 4). He is to tread down the people in his anger, to make them drunk in his fury, and to bring down their strength to the earth (v. 6). Yahweh is to— "Come with fire, and with His chariots like a whirlwind, to render His anger with fury, and His rebuke with flames of fire. "For by fire and by His sword will Υahweh plead with ALL FLESH: andtheslainofYahwehwill be many" (Isa. 66:15-16). It may be said by some— "These are undoubtedly predictions of terrible judgments; but what warrant have we for concluding that they are future and universal? "May they not have been already accomplished in calamities of a local character, which are now matters of history? "How shall we distinguish those judgments which are local, partial and accomplished, from those which are future and universal?" To these questions I would reply that many of the passages cited or referred to bear the evidence of their futurity and universality on the surface. Has Yahweh Elohim ever yet arisen to shake terribly the earth, so as to cause men to cast their idols to the moles and bats, He alone being exalted as the result? Has the world ever yet been punished for its iniquity so as to make a man more precious than gold; more precious, not in intrinsic value which is of course always the case, but in RESPECT TO SCARCENESS, as the passage evidently implies? Has the "consumption determined upon the WHOLE EARTH" ever yet taken place? Has the passage in Isa. 63:1-6 ever been accomplished? The prophet here beholds in vision a mighty warrior, returning victorious from the slaughter of his enemies, his garments red with their blood. And, astonished at the sight, he asks— "Who is this that cometh from Edom, with dyed garments from Bozrah? This that is glorious in his apparel, traveling in the greatness of his strength? (v. 1). What is the reply?— "I that speak in righteousness, mighty to save!" Can this be any but Jesus, the Lion of the tribe of Judah? Can any but he use such language, and not blaspheme? Hear him further— "I have trodden the winepress alone, and of the people there was none with me: for I will tread them in mine anger, and trample them in my fury, and their blood shall be sprinkled upon my garments, and I will stain all my raiment." 1973 Berean 229 Some, indeed, interpret this of the sufferings which Christ en- dured when he was here 1800 years ago. But what more than the simple reading of the passage is needed to show that it is not with his OWN blood that his garments are stained, but with that of his adversaries?— "For I will tread THEM in mine anger, and trample THEM in my fury, and THEIR blood shall be sprinkled upon my garments." Further, he says (v. 6)— "I will tread down the PEOPLE in mine anger, and make THEM drunk in my fury, and I will bring down THEIR strength to the earth." Is that a character of action which has ever yet appertained to the meek, the lowly Sufferer, who said, describing the object of his mission (Lk. 9:56)— "The Son of man is not come to destroy men's lives, but to save them" How evidently does this passage, & the whole class of passages to which it belongs, point out an interposition of Christ in destroying judgment which is yet future! JEREMIAH takes up the sorrowful strain, and adds his testimony to all that has been rehearsed. True indeed that Jeremiah's prophecies in general relate chiefly to his beloved nation and the city of his heart, Jerusalem, which in his day began to be a prey to the destroyer of the Gentiles. But this is not always the case. In one remarkable passage he speaks of judgments which—however they may have been foreshadowed by events which are now past—are manifestly universal and, in the full sense of the passage, are manifestly future— * * • * • "I will call for a sword upon all the inhabitants of the earth, saith Yahweh of hosts. Therefore prophesy thou against them all these words, and say unto them, "Yahweh shall roar from on high, & utter His voice from His holy habitation . . He shall give a shout against ALL THE INHABITANTS OF THE EARTH . . "For Yahweh hath a controversy with the NATIONS: He will plead with ALL FLESH: He will give them that are wicked to the sword. "Thus saith Yahweh of hosts, Behold, evil shall go from nation to nation . . the slain of Yahweh shall be at that day from one end of the earth even unto the other end" (Jer. 25:29-33). 1973 Berean 230 Dear reader, this is a different vision of futurity from that which is before most men's minds. But THIS is what is really coming— "Behold, the whirlwind of Yahweh goeth forth with fury; a continuing whirlwind: it shall fall with pain on the head of the wicked. "The fierce anger of Yahweh shall not return until He have done it, and until He have performed the intents of His heart. "IN THE LATTER DAYS YE SHALL CONSIDER IT" (Jr. 30:23-4). Observe these last words: "In the LATTER DAYS ye shall consider it." Whatever the FORESHADOWINGS there may have been of this terrible intervention of the power of Yahweh Elohim in judgment, the FACT itself has its accomplishment "in the latter days." Many a cup may have passed from one king to another, and from one nation to another: but never yet THIS cup which is to pass round to ALL, and of which none may refuse to drink. Would indeed that even now, in these "latter days," men might be warned, and led to consider these solemn and impending visitations of God's wrath! •k -k -k EZEKIEL had a roll presented to him, by a hand which spread it before him. What were its contents?— "It was written within and without: and there was written therein lamentations, and mourning, and woe" (Eze. 2:10). Fit emblem of the testimony he was called to bear! True, indeed, that like that of Jeremiah, it was addressed very chiefly to the nation of Israel, and a great part of it in reference to circumstances at that time transpiring, or calamities at that time about to visit them. But in the latter part of the book he looks out beyond Israel, and beyond any circumstances either passing or impending at the time he wrote. He prophesies of judgments upon all the surrounding, and even all the more distant, nations: not only Ammon, Moab, Edom, and the Philistines, but Tyre, Sidon, Egypt, the isles of Chittim, Persia, Lud, Phut, Javan, Tubal, Meshech, and numbers more—too many to enumerate. It is in Ezekiel we read of a huge assembly of God's adversaries, whose overthrow is to be so terrible that their weapons are to furnish fuel to a whole nation for 7 years, and 7 months are to be employed in burying the dead. The fowls of heaven are invited that they may eat flesh and drink blood. They are to eat the flesh of the mighty, and to drink the blood of the "PRINCES OF THE EARTH" (39:18-20). And — "I will set My glory among the nations, and all the nations shall see My judgments that I have executed, and My hand that I have laid upon them" (v. 21). And this is to be "in the latter years . . in the latter days" (Eze. 38:8-16). Who anticipates such an interposition of divine power and righteousness as this? The "minor" prophets (so styled because their writings are briefer—but equally the sayings of the Deity) corroborate the testimony of the others. 1973 B e r e a n 23i DANIEL prophesies of a mighty image—emblem of the great monarchies of this world—and of a destruction overtaking it, in which— "The iron, the clay, the brass, the silver, and the gold, were broken to pieces together, and became like the chaff of the summer threshingfloors; and the wind carried them away, that no place was found for them" (Dan. 2:35). He sets forth the same monarchies in another chapter (7) by the symbol of 4 great Beasts, the last of the 4 being most terrible of all. He beholds till the thrones are set, and the Ancient of Days sits, a fiery stream issuing from before Him. The judgment is set, and the books are opened. Daniel still beholds till the last Beast is slain, and his body destroyed and given to the burning flame, and "the Kingdom is given to the saints." I need not stop to discuss the meaning of these symbols. As far as our present subject is concerned, their language is sufficiently clear. It speaks of judgments yet to come, such as we have found foretold by all the prophets to whose predictions we have as yet referred. * * * JOEL testifies of a day of darkness and of gloominess, a day of clouds and thick darkness; a day ushered in by wonders in the heaven and in the earth— "Blood, and fire, and pillars of smoke: the sun turned into darkness, and the moon into blood, before the great and terrible Day of the Lord come" (Joel 2:2,30,31). He speaks of God sitting in the Valley of Jehoshaphat to judge all the heathen (nations) round about (3:12-14)— "Multitudes, multitudes, in the valley of decision, for the Day of Yahweh is near in the valley of decision." This "gathering of all nations" is (v.D— "When I shall bring again the captivity of Judah and Jerusalem." * * * In MICAH'S prophecy we hear God saying (5:15)— "I will execute vengeance in anger and fury upon the nations SUCH AS THEY HAVE NOT HEARD." He, too, is speaking of the "last days" and Israel's regathering, and war abolished, and all nations brought to serve God (4:1-8). * * * ZEPHANIAH witnesses of the "Great Day of the Lord" (1:14-15)— "A day of wrath, a day of trouble and distress, a day of wasteness and desolation, a day of darkness and gloominess, a day of clouds and thick darkness." He speaks of God bringing distress upon men, so that (v 17)— "They shall walk like blind men, and their blood be poured out as dust, and their flesh as the dung." And he continues (3:8,9,20)— "Therefore wait ye upon Me, saith Yahweh, until the day that I rise up to the prey: "For My determination is to gather the nations .. to pour upon them Mine indignation, even all My fierce anger, for all the earth shall be devoured with the fire of My jealousy.. "At that time (O daughter ofZion) will I bring you again, even in the time that I gather you." * * * 1973 Berean HAGGAFS voice to us is (2:6,7, 21,22)— "For thus saith Yahweh of hosts, Yet once, it is a little while, and I 232 wi// shake the heavens, and the earth, and the sea, and the dry land; and I will shake ALL NATIONS. (< And I will overthrow the throne of kingdoms, and I will destroy the strength of the kingdoms of the heathen (the nations)." * * * ZECHARIAH says (14:1,2,3,16)— "Behold, the day of the Lord cometh. . "For I will gather all nations against Jerusalem to battle. . "Then shall Υahweh go forth and fight against those nations. "The Lord will smite all the people that have fought against Jerusalem . . and every one that is left of all the nations that came against Jerusalem shall go up from year to year to worship the King." * * * We come to MALACHI, the last of the prophets of the Old Testament. And what is the message he bears? (4:1-3)— "Behold, the day cometh that shall burn as an oven: and all the proud, yea, and ALL that do wickedly, shall be stubble. "And the Day that cometh shall burn them up, saith Yahweh of hosts, that it shall leave them neither root nor branch.. "And ye (that fear My Name) shall tread down the wicked, for they shall be ashes under the soles of your feet in the Day that I shall do this, saith Yahweh of hosts." With such anticipations of the "Great and dreadful Day of the Lord" (v. 5) does the Old Testament close. Its very earliest intimations of that future which awaits this poor, giddy, thoughtless, proud and boasting world, are in perfect and solemn harmony with the warnings which terminate the Book. God grant that this passing glance at the solemn depositions, made by these many witnesses at various times during a period of thousands of years, may not be lost upon the consciences of those who read these pages. We turn now to the New Testament. (Continued next month, if the Lord will) The True Ecclesia of God Impatience, and reckless haste of speech or action, cannot exist a moment where that love is which "suffereth long and is kind." Envy dies in the presence of its meek and quiet spirit. Wrath and anger are turned away by its kindness, and the simplicity which thinketh no evil. Iniquity flees the society which love has purged of all bitterness, and where slander, filthiness, foolish talking, vain boasting and jesting have been THOROUGHLY SUPPRESSED, and where EVERY man's speech is "ALWAYS with grace seasoned with salt" Bound together by the cords of that love which "never faileth," all things are possible: affliction is light, faith is strong, hope triumphant, and endurance to the end for all assured.—Christadelphian, 1885 ' • 1973 Berean 233 RESURRECTION OF REJECTORS The Gospel condemns its rejectors to a resurrection to punishment. The alternatives of the Bible are: (1) Possession of the kingdom with all its appurtenances by a resurrection to eternal life; (2) Resurrection to punishment, consequent on rejection of the Gospel and unworthiness of the kingdom; or (3) A return to original dust and sojourn therein forever, consequent on unavoidable ignorance of the whole matter—J. T., Herald, 1852, Answers by Bro· Roberts "GOD MANIFEST INCHRIST": APPARENT INCONSISTENCIES QUESTION: You say (12 Lectures, pgs. 131-132), that "Christ, therefore, though NOW possessed of inherent life, has been invested with it: it is NOT, in his case, underived. It is only the Great Increate, the Father, who can say, Ί am, and there was none else before me.' Yet though Christ's is not underived existence, it is more directly divine than the human . . He did not exist prior to his birth by Mary." Dr. Thomas says (Christadelphian, Aug. 1869, pg. 216) that "Jesus Christ, in the day of his weakness, had two sides—the one Deity, the other man. The Eternal Christ-power veiled in and manifested through the flesh created from the ground, which flesh had wantonly transgressed the divine law, the penalty of which sent it back into the dust from whence it came: this is Jesus, the True Deity, whom to know is life eternal." I shall be glad if you can harmonize these apparent inconsistencies. ANSWER: There is no contradiction in the views placed in juxtaposition by our correspondent. They are different aspects of the same truth. Dr. Thomas writes technically on the subject: the other work quoted aims at literal definition. Hence the appearance of conflict when there is actual harmony, as we shall show. Dr. Thomas employs the terms of the Spirit, as one having spent a life in the Spirit's atmosphere, and having his whole mind molded by the mind of the Spirit. He speaks as the Spirit speaks, but is not careful to define terms. To those apprehending the ideas represented by the terms, technical writing is the richest and most suggestive of all writing. 1973 Berean 234 There are 3 terms, the imperfect understanding of which gives rise to all the difficulty. These are: GOD, SPIRIT, and ANOINTED. We don't speak of the words, but rather of the profound ideas of which they are the verbal symbols; and our remark holds good whether the ideas are expressed in English, Greek or Hebrew. And if these are not apprehended, how can Jesus of Nazareth, who is the human focus of them, so to speak, be understood? First, Take "God." Do we grasp the Deity with our understanding? The man who thinks he does is incapable of comprehending the "doctrine of Christ," because his limitation of the being of the Deity (implied in his supposition that he has measured it) erects a barrier in the way of that comprehension. We can follow the idea of the Creator to a certain small height, and there we stop. We cannot go beyond our little atmosphere. Overwhelming immensity bewilders: eternity and the ways of infinity stagger the mental man; and he drops his flight, and returns to earth with the stunned feeling of one who has ventured too high in a balloon. We know that the person of the Deity is "in heaven"; but this knowledge is apt to mislead us. We are apt to think of Him as we think of ourselves, or those we know. We are apt to think of Him as CONFINED to the space His dazzling and inscrutable substance occupies. This would be a great mistake; He ''fills heaven and earth"; His being occupies boundless space (Jer. 23:24; Ps. 139:7). His person "in heaven" is but the focus of His being, as it were—the seat of that ineffable Intelligence which guides, and is embodied in, Universal Power. His illimitable being is ONE. You cannot divide anything from God, or any part of Him from Himself. He consciously fills all. He is, as it were, an Intelligence of measureless vastitude, holding in Himself all that exists or can exist, occupying all space by spirit irradiant from His person "in heaven," which is spirit intensely. And of "spirit," what know we? Nothing but in its effects. The gifts of the Spirit are familiar only as the manifestations of power. God, by the Spirit, enstamped on the apostles and early believers, certain powers and faculties extra to those appertaining to the living soul of Edenic origin: but the essence of the spirit is as inscrutable as the Father's person. Prophets spake as they were moved by the Holy Spirit. This was but the expression of ideas burningly impressed on their minds by the omnipotent power of the Father, exerted by, or through, or in, the spirit. Our familiarity with prophecy is apt to make us imagine ourselves familiar with the WAY inspiration was performed. The prophets were acted upon by divine impulse; but UNDERSTAND ye the divine impulse? Nay: we know it as a fact—that is all. The spirit, though a fact, is a mystery to our understanding. We talk much of it, and may come from sheer familiarity with the word, to put it by in the mind as a thing we understand. But let it be perceived that it is only in its manifestations or functions toward ourselves, that we apprehend it. In itself, it is incomprehensible. 1973 Berean 235 If the spirit is incomprehensible, what say ye to the "anointing" with it? Do ye understand the mighty idea involved in this expression? Many talk as if it were mere effusion of galvanism—the pouring out of something which, when poured, was a limited quantity in the possession of him anointed. We shall find it imports a profounder thing than this—namely, the establishment of such a connection between the Anointer (God) and the anointed, as that power & intelligence of the One streams with the anointing through the other, establishing a unity of which we have little conception. Whence comes the term "anointed"? It is borrowed from the practice under the Law of pouring oil in token of appointment or consecration. Confined to this, the limited idea just referred to is in its place: but it must be remembered that the anointing with oil was a mere type of that marvelous operation which was to result in Christ—the great end, and substance, and antitype of all the Mosaic ceremonials: God manifest in the flesh by the Spirit, constituting a Son of God. When that operation was accomplished, Jesus of Nazareth was in the bosom of the Father— "For God giveth not the Spirit by measure unto him" (Jn. 3:34). By the spirit, he was in God, and God was in him. The connection was one of power and intelligence. If the limited action of the Spirit on a prophet made the prophet's mind "en rapport" with the Deity for the time being, what was the mental condition of a man begotten of the Spirit and inhabited by the Spirit in measureless presence? It was a condition of unity with the great Fountain Head. Jesus and the Father were ONE. When did this begin? There were stages in the development. The first was when the words of the angel to Mary were fulfilled— "The Holy Spirit shall come upon thee; and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: "Therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee shall be called the Son of God" (Luke 1:35). A child begotten of the Holy Spirit—that is, of God— was a very different child from one begotten of the will of the flesh. The difference was manifest in the fact that at no period did the child commit sin. An ordinary child, however well organized, would have gone astray before acquiring the experience necessary to give wisdom. The brain brings nothing into the world but impulse. There is the latent capacity for wisdom, but no wisdom until the experience of evil imparts it. But this child had wisdom from the beginning: wisdom was its starting point. It grew in wisdom; it never sinned: at 12 it knew its Father and its mission, and devoted himself to His work—a knowledge intuitively derived from the Spirit that guided him from his mother's womb (Ps. 22:9-10; 71:6);for such a knowledge with such results at such an age would have been an impossibility with a merely human brain. At 30, the time had arrived to introduce him to Israel, and to bestow an increase of the power to which he owed his existence. Accordingly, it was revealed to John (sent to prepare the way of the Lord) that on whomsoever, among the crowds that came to his baptism, the Spirit should visibly descend: that was the Christ.When Jesus came out of the water, the manifestation was given, and Messiah (the Christ, the Anointed) stood revealed— "This is My beloved Son in whom I AM well pleased!" (Mt. 3:17). He then entered upon the second stage: the manifestation of God in mortal flesh by the Spirit shed without measure upon a man provided for Himself by the operation of the Spirit upon the— "Seedof David according to the flesh" (Rm. 1:3). 1973 Berean 236 For 3V2 years, this wonderful man—in whom God tabernacled: to whom the winds and the sea were obedient—went about doing good, speaking the words of God, and teaching as one having authority and not as the scribes (Mt. 7:29). At the end of that time he was crucified, and the Father left him for 3 days. On the 3rd day He returned to him, and the anointing was then consummated in the substance of the man Christ Jesus being changed to spirit, and he was "received up into glory" (lTm.3:16), where (Heb. 7:25)— "He ever liveth to make intercession for those who come to God by him" With these facts in view, we are prepared to answer our correspondent's queries. Jesus Christ, as an individual manifestation of Eternal Power, had a personality and a character as the Son of God: distinct from the Father, Whose Son he was. And this personality and character, from the very nature of things were developed subsequently to his begettal by the Holy Spirit. The personality was the attribute of the body born of Mary and afterwards crucified on Calvary, and raised from the dead, and "taken up into glory." The character was the result of his probationary contact with evil during the days of his flesh. But the individuality of his own existence as a man does not exclude the fact that he was the flesh-embodiment of the Eternal Father by the Ρ Ι Π — << ^ Cor. 5:19). "The Father dwelleth in me" (John 14:10). "A man approved of God among you by miracles and wonders and signs which God did BY HIM, in the midst of you" (Acts 2:22). These are New Testament definitions on the point. It may be difficult for us, as mere flesh-borns, to realize this combination of the human and the divine in one person, but the FACT of the combination is self-evident. Someone says, "O, that is Trinitarianism!" Not at all. Trinitarianism teaches the incarnation of "the SON": the Truth recognizes the incarnation of the FATHER, resulting in a son—which is a very different thing. Of Jesus Christ, the individualized and intelligent manifestation of the Father, then, it IS true that— "Though now possessed of inherent life, he has been invested with it: it is not, in his case, underived . . he did not exist prior to his birth by Mary" (12 Lectures, p. 131-2). 1973 B e r e a n w There is nothing inconsistent with this in Dr. Thomas' statements— A. "Jesus Christ, in the days of his weakness, had 2 sides, the one Deity, and the other man." B. "The Eternal Christ-power, veiled in and manifested through, the flesh created from the ground" in Eden, etc. C. "This is Jesus Christ, the true Deity, who to know is life eternal." (A) Dr. Thomas does not say that the 2 sides of the Christ were (1) the divine Son, and (2) man. He affirms that which the Scriptures declare—that his 2 sides were (1) the Father Who was manifested in him, and (2) the medium of manifestation—the man who was of the seed of David according to the flesh, begotten by the Spirit. This manifestation of the divine in the human was Jesus Christ. Jesus Christ was not the human or the divine separately, but both in combination, constituting the Son. (B) What then, it is asked, is the meaning of— "The Eternal Christ-power, veiled in & manifested thru the flesh"? The meaning is evident when the language is correctly understood. The "Christ-power" has no reference to the character or individuality of Jesus Christ, our Elder Brother, who learned obedience by the things that he suffered. It has reference to the power that was before him, and of which he was the incarnation. Who is the Eternal Christ-power? Why, the Father, Who is Spirit, and everywhere present. Then why obscure the subject by this mode of description? There is a reason. But first, it is no real obscuration, though the matter can be otherwise expressed. Whence sprang "Jesus Christ"—understood in the most superficial way? From Eternal Power. Would there have been such a man, but for the power of the Spirit upon Mary? No. What determined his character and gave him his power? That to which he owed his existence, which was the eternal power of the Father exerted by the Spirit. It is, therefore, no inaccuracy to term that antecedent power, the "Eternal Christ-power." There would have been no Christ but for that power. But the reason for keeping this aspect well in the foreground? Well, that is to be found in the tendency on the part of some (having but a superficial apprehension of the truth) to ignore the divine element in Jesus, and teach falsehood concerning him, in saying that he was a mere man, tho begotten of the Spirit, having but the nature of his mother, and not of his Father. Or that he was the son of Joseph. The forms in which truth are expressed are always affected by the attitude of heresy. Our correspondent asks— "WHEN did the Deity (that is, the Eternal Christ-power) 'veil Himself in the flesh'?" The answer has virtually been given. The process was commenced with the conception of Jesus, and completed by the visible descent of the Spirit at the Jordan. He then asks— "Was it the DEITY, or the SPIRIT of the Deity?" This question reveals the source of misunderstanding. To speak of the Deity apart from "the Spirit of the Deity" in such a matter as this, is a mistake. The Deity and His Spirit are ONE in the sense attempted to be defined a little way back. What one does, the other cannot be said not to do. 1973 Berean 238 The difference between the Father and the Spirit is only a difference from our point of view. As bearing upon us finite mortals, there is the Spirit, in which we live, move, and have our being; and the Father, dwelling in light that no man can approach. But when we take God's point of view, there is a great change in the situation. God is one, and fills all— "He fills heaven and earth" (Jer. 23:24). "He is not far from every one of us" (Acts 17:27). The Spirit is but the infinite extension, so to speak, of Himself: and when the Spirit does anything, it is the Father doing it, because the Spirit is not separate from the Father. Now, on the question of God's manifestation in the flesh, the language is derived from God's point of view, because God is the actor. To ask, then, whether it was the Father, or the Spirit of the Father, that was veiled in the flesh, is to go off the track. The Father (by the Spirit) veiled Himself in the flesh, and the result was Jesus of Nazareth, the Son of God and King of the Jews. If it be asked— "Was not the Father as much dwelling in light in the heavens after Jesus was born, as before?" —the answer is, Certainly. And it was to this glorious and everlasting Father that Jesus prayed, and taught his disciples to pray: but Who, nevertheless, dwelt in Jesus (Jn. 14:10). When men realize the immensity of Deity, they will better comprehend the doctrine of His manifestation in Jesus. Read the following— "If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also; and from henceforth, ye know Him, and have seen Him. "Philip saith unto him, Lord, show us the Father, & it sufficeth us. "Jesus saith unto him, Have I been so long time with thee, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? He that hath seen me hath seen the Father. Believest thou not that I am in the Father, & the Father in me? "The words that I speak unto you, I speak not of myself, but the Father that dwelleth in me, He doeth the works. "Believe me that I am in the Father and the Father in me, or else believe me for the very works' sake" (Jn. 14:7-11). (C) Jesus was the true God in manifestation. The angels who spoke to the fathers were so also, and hence, relatively to men, are described as God (Jdg. 2:1-3). The angel in the bush said— "lam the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob" (Ex. 3:6). When 3 angels presented themselves to Abraham, it is said that "Jehovah appeared unto him" (Gn. 17:1). So with "the angel on the Mt. Sinai that spoke to Moses" (Acts 7:38), and many other cases. There is nothing inappropriate in this. These were the official manifestations of the Eternal Power of the Universe to the fathers. The fact that Eternal Power was the speaker was kept in the foreground, but this does not exclude the minor fact that the mediums of speech were created intelligences. 1973 Berean 239 So Christ being the Father veiled in our flesh is styled the Deity, but this does not exclude the fact that, literally, he is but the manifestation of Him, namely, the Son of God, the man Christ Jesus. The 2 aspects co-exist. Indeed, there is a trinity in the case, thought not THE Trinity. Jesus is "the Father (manifested in a) Son (by the) Holy Spirit"; and in combination "these 3 are one." Hence, in being "baptized into Jesus Christ" (Rom. 6:3), we are "baptized into the Name of the Father, Son and Holy Spirit" (Mt. 28:19). When we are in Christ, we are "in God" (1 Th. 1:1), because he is in the Father— "The head of every man (in Christ) is Christ, and the head of Christ is God" - · "All things are yours, and ye are Christ's, and Christ is God's" (1 Cor. 11:3; 3:23). God is the great Head; Christ is the mediator. In due time God will be "all in all" (1 Cor. 15:28)— "Then shall the Son also himself be subject unto Him." Our correspondent observes— "Nowhere does the Deity style Himself the Christ." There are not wanting instances where the Deity's operations are described even under this name. The "Spirit of Christ" was in the prophets (lPt. 1:2). This is parallel with the "Spirit of God." "Let us not tempt Christ as some of them (under Moses) also tempted, and were destroyed of serpents" (1 Cor. 10:9). "He (Christ) preached unto the spirits in prison, who were disobedient in the days of Noah" (1 Pt. 3:19). "But does not such a use of the term 'Christ' involve confusion?"—our correspondent may ask. On the surface it may appear so. But when we consider that the Christing of Jesus was the Deity dwelling in him by the Spirit, it is no marvel that the same power, otherwise manifested, should be designated in the same way in the days of the apostles, when their great effort was to set forth the Lord Jesus as the Word made flesh, in opposition to those who "Is not this the son of Joseph? Whence hath this man this wisdom and these mighty deeds?" Realize the nature of the anointing that constituted Jesus the Christ, and there will be less difficulty apprehending language that speaks of Deity and Christ as the same. We conclude with a hint that may not be amiss for those who think Dr. Thomas mistaken on this question: Do you think that the intellect that produced Elpis Israel and Eureka, applied for many years to the study of the Holy Oracles, is less likely to arrive at a correct apprehension of the matter than your own feebler minds, but recently directed to the consideration of these profound subjects? We leave the wisdom that any man may have, to supply its own answer. , Please notify us promptly of address changes. 73 Berean 240 The Tongue of the Learned ISAIAH CHAPTER FIFTY "Where is the bill of your mother's divorcement, whom I have put away? . . For your transgressions is your mother put away." SO God begins His appeal to Israel recorded in Isa. 50. We are reminded of Hosea's beautiful living allegory of Israel as the unfaithful wife who abandoned her husband and children. It is a sad picture that the Scriptures present to us of God's chosen people. In the main, it is 3V2 thousand years of wickedness, bondage, and estrangement from God. Why? Why must such terrible sadness be? Because of folly, wilfulness, shortsightedness of seeking, and being immersed in the passing animal present instead of the eternal spiritual future. We each have just a few brief years of opportunity. We are here but for a moment—a moment so short and precarious that nothing really matters about it but one thing—laying hold on eternal life. Anything that does not contribute to this is precious, irreplaceable time forever wasted, forever lost. Most of us live as though we take our eternal salvation for granted, with plenty of time for passing, perishing things. What folly! What tragedy!— "Work out your salvation with fear and trembling." "Always abounding in the work of the Lord." "If the righteous shall scarcely be saved, where shall the wicked and the ungodly appear?" Do we really BELIEVE these warnings? Do we really believe God—or are we just like blind, stupid, heedless Israel? Do we really believe God when He says the righteous shall scarcely be saved, and that it is only by always abounding in the work of the Lord that any shall attain to the Kingdom? How do we possibly think that we have time for a host of other things? VERSE 2: "Wherefore,when I came, was there no man? When I called, was there none to answer?" Why has it always been thus? Why is it that most who take on the Name of Christ proceed thereafter to "neglect so great salvation?" Why did Paul have to say— "I have no man likeminded . . ALL seek their own, not the things which are Jesus Christ's"? We each have 24 hours a day, 168 hours a week. How much of it is spent in "always abounding in the work of the Lord?" Set it side by side: time spent for ourselves, time spent for God's work. Add your own up for yourself. Is it a record worth turning in to the Master? Whom do we think we are deceiving? <<TI7 , , , _ ., ,.,, 1973 B e r e a n 241 Wherefore, when I came, was there no man? VERSE 2: " .. Is My hand shortened at all, that it cannot redeem? Have I no power to deliver?" Is our lack of service and dedication because we don't really believe God can do what He promises? Do we have to spend so much time grubbing for present things because we do not believe He will or can take care of us?— "Having food and raiment, be therewith content." "Give us this day our daily bread." "Seek ye first the Kingdom of God." VERSE 2: " . . Behold, at My rebuke I dry up the sea; I make the rivers a wilderness." God has given ample evidence of His power and His moment-tomoment control of all things. What more evidence do we need, or could He give? VERSE 3: "I clothe the heavens with blackness, and I make sackcloth their covering." From the natural ordinances of day and night, to the obliteration and overthrow of the mightiest political heavens, God manifests His power and control continually before our eyes. •k * * "Where is the bill of your mother's divorcement, whom I have put away?" Consider the long and dreadful history of Israel—their degradation, their constant living in fear and insecurity, their frequent massacres, their being driven like cattle from country to country. All these things are terrible lessons written in blood and fire to try to teach us wisdom, and realization, and spiritual awareness, and total, urgent, exclusive dedication to the one thing that is needful. But how many are really moved to tremble at these things and to walk in wisdom? VERSE 4: "The Lord God hath given me the tongue of the learned." The word for "learned" here is actually "disciple"—the faithful follower, the one who is taught by the master. The picture here changes abruptly from condemnation of the unfaithful wife Israel to a beautiful portrayal of Christ, her one true, faithful Seed unto God: a portrayal of wisdom, of beauty, and strength of character, and faithfulness. If we only had the simple common sense to put verses 4 to 9 in actual practice in our lives on a robust, full time basis, most or all of our problems would disappear, and we would be well on the way to the Kingdom of God. If we do NOT have the sense to put these things in constant, daily practice in all that we do, we are just completely wasting our time and lives. In their perfection of beauty, these verses describe Christ— "This is My beloved Son, in whom lam well pleased." But they are far more than that. They are the required pattern for all who would be Christ's at his coming. 1973 Berean 242 VERSE 4: "The Lord God hath given me the tongue of the learned, that I should know how to speak a word in season to him that is weary." Can we say honestly this? Do we want to be able to say it? Is this the way we want to dedicate our lives; or do we prefer to seek our own pleasure and profit? How did Christ acquire the tongue of the learned so he could give joy and life to the weary? By suffering and by study— "He learned obedience by the things that he suffered." "O how love I Thy Law! It is my study all the day . . Through Thy precepts I get understanding." So it must be with all who would be Christ's— "Thou hast known the Holy Scriptures, which are able to make thee wise unto salvation." How many of us can say we know the Holy Scriptures? How is it we can talk a blue streak all day about passing, present things with no memory problems, but when someone starts asking very simple, elementary Bible questions, the answer so often is a blank stare and a weak smile, and—"Oh, I have such a terrible memory?" "Where your treasure is, there will your heart (and your memory)be also." So much knowledge about so many things that do not matter! So little knowledge about the one thing that does matter! VERSE 4: " . . He wakeneth morning by morning ; He wakeneth mine ear to hear as the learned (as the disciple—the eager learner)." Morning by morning, day by day, precept upon precept—steady, consistent plodding study and application. The rage today among those who esteem themselves wise is for what they quaintly call "higher education"—so they can earn a few more grubby dollars and enjoy a few more snobbish luxuries and pleasures. How empty and how sad! And the end they are so diligently laboring toward is the same old cold dark endless grave as everyone else. But what about the TRUE "higher learning," the TRUE "education"—the one that can really do us some lasting and eternal good? Their poor little animal minds cannot comprehend this— "The natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God . . they are foolishness unto him." God says, to Israel and to us (Ps. 32:9)— "Be ye not as the horse and the mule, that have no understanding." —set your sights on a destiny a little better than that of the dumb beasts that perish. VERSE 5: "The Lord God hath opened mine ear, and I was not rebellious." The flesh, being naturally foolish, naturally rebels against wisdom. The key to salvation is to discern and overcome IN OURSELVES the natural rebelliousness of the flesh against the Word of God. We can see it SO clearly in others. 1973 Berean 243 "The flesh lusteth against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh, and these are contrary the one to the other." VERSE 5: " .. I was not rebellious, neither turned away back." In a similar passage in Psalms it is put this way (40:6-8)— "Mine ears hath Thm opened . . I delight to do Thy will Ο my God. Yea, Thy law is within my heart" (Ps. 40:6-8). God does not just require obedience. He requires an intense desire and JOY to obey. He requires a constant "searching the Scriptures" to know and fulfill His will more fully and more perfectly— "The zeal of Thine house hath eaten me up." The only true Christadelphian—bride of Christ—is the one whose whole life and interest revolves wholly and exclusively around God, who is always about the Father's business. There are no halfmeasures. If we have the Truth in truth, this is what it will inevitably do to us. It will transform us. It will eat us up. It will grow and grow stronger and stronger in our lives. It will be a fire in our bones. We have read in the past few days— "I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot; I would thou wert cold or hot. "So then because thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor hot, I will spue thee out of my mouth." Lukewarm—unpalatable, sickening, disgusting to God. Half and half—half in the Truth and half in the world. There are many commands of God's love and wisdom to discipline and subdue and mortify the flesh. The flesh will of course fight them. We have 2 courses to follow—to either recognize the evil motions of the flesh within us, and pray like Paul— "Who shall deliver me from this body of death? " Or we can stupidly side with the flesh against the commands, and squirm and twist and maneuver to obscure and evade them. We can either be zealously on the safe side of a commandanxious to manifest our love by over-obedience if possible. Or we can raise every objection and stretch every apparent loophole or supposed obscurity of the command to justify the wilful way of the flesh. One way is life—the other is death. VERSE 6: "I gave my back to the smiters, and my cheeks to them that plucked off the hair." Why? Because it is God's will and wisdom that we overcome the flesh and put it to death by the mind of the Spirit. This was Christ's great victory: "I have overcome." "Blessed is he that overcometh." 1973 B e r e a n 244 How much have we overcome the flesh? How much do we live think and act by the mind of the Spirit? The fruits of the Spirit are these— "Love, joy, peace . . " Is this the picture that our lives and characters give to the world, and to our brethren and sisters?— "Love, joy, peace, long suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness, self-control." Is this how an impartial observer would describe us? Would he marvel at our unearthly, patient, long-suffering Godliness under pressure and provocation? If not, why do we think we shall get eternal life? God insists on RESULTS, on fruit—this "fruit of the Spirit." Of the tree that bears no fruit He says— "Cut it down! Why cumbereth it the ground?" We must be visibly radiating spirituality, or we are living a lie— we have made no contact with divinity as we claim to have done. If a light bulb does not radiate brilliance, it has either made no contact with the source of power, or it is just a dead bulb. In either case, it is worthless as a light in a dark place. If we really ARE brethren and sisters of Christ, we SHALL radiate in the world, and stand out like a live bulb amid a host of dead ones. We shall be utterly and strikingly and unmistakably DIFFERENT from all natural, animal mankind. "If we would judge ourselves, we should not be judged.." —judged at the last day and condemned. VERSE 6: " . . I hid not my face from shame and spitting." This is the faithful victory of Christ, and this is why he now sits in glory at the Father's right hand. We are well aware of the patience and gentleness and self-control with which he went through every form of humiliation and suffering. This is our great example. This is our great inspiration. None of us is ever asked to submit to a fraction of what he suffered in order to manifest his faith and love and obedience to the Father. And what little we are put through, in our training and development for the Kingdom, we are assured will never be beyond our power to sustain. Not, of course, our OWN power. If we rely on that, we are lost. 1973 Berean 245 The Spirit of Christ in Isaiah 50 continues— VERSE 7: "For the Lord will help me, THEREFORE shall I not be confounded." That is the point. We have got to be tried so we can learn to draw upon and experience this help—so that our faith can be developed and strengthened by being put to test and to use. VERSE 7: ".. Therefore have I set my face like a flint." Let us keep that expression ever before us. Here is the only true wisdom and character and maturity and stability— "I HAVE SET MY FACE LIKE A FLINT." Not stubborness: not wilfulness—that's the flesh; but a steadfast, enlightened, unshakable courage and determination to stick close to God and to follow the path of obedient, CHEERFUL holiness regardless of any adversity. Let us be like Christ who "set his face to go to Jerusalem." VERSE 8: "He is NEAR that justifieth me; who will contend with me?" Here is the secret of strength. He IS near! Of Moses it is said (Heb. 11:27) that he "endured as seeing Him Who is invisible." He endured everything—the meekest of all men—because he could SEE GOD. God was a tremendous, overwhelming, ever-present reality to him. God said to Jacob— "I am WITH THEE . . in all places whither thou goest." David said, and here again it is the spirit of Christ speaking— "I have set the Lord always before me. Because He is at my right hand, I shall not be moved" (Psa. 16:8). This is the psalm where he says— "Thou wilt not leave my soul in hell." Jesus is here telling us the secret of his endurance and victory over the world— "HE IS NEAR THAT JUSTIFIETH ME." If we were actually in the direct presence of God, we would have no difficulty maintaining faith and holiness, and keeping our mind on divine things. We ARE in the direct presence of God—ALWAYS. It is all a matter of perception and discernment. This is how all the faithful of old were able to endure— "He endured as seeing Him Who is invisible." Jesus said— "I am not alone; because the Father is with me." And when he left his disciples, he gave us a beautiful promise that is all too little remembered and laid hold on (John 14:23)— "If any man love me, he will keep my words, and my Father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him." "We"—God and Christ—will "come unto him and make our abode with him." Have we sought the fulfillment of this marvelous promise? Has it happened to us? VERSE 9: "Behold, the Lord God will help me: who is he that will condemn me?" Again, the primary reference is to Christ, and his Godstrengthened perfection— 1973 Berean 246 "Which of you convinceth me of sin?" "I do always those things that please the Father." But Paul, writing to the Romans applies this very quotation directly to Christ's brethren, at the end of ch. 8. He is developing and climaxing that glorious theme that— "ALL things work together for good to them that love God." (v. 28) If we are the children of God, nothing can possibly happen to us that is not for ultimate and eternal good. What a wonderful and comforting assurance! What is there in the world that can begin to offer a minute fraction of that guarantee? Why then do people depend on broken cisterns when the waters of life flow so freely? We do not need to worry about the reason of things. All we need to be concerned about is that we react faithfully and spiritually to ANYTHING that comes upon us, knowing that all evil will at last pass away, if we hold fast. Paul continues in v.31— "If God be for us, who can be against us?" Our only concern in this life should be to make sure God IS for us. And that is done by careful, reverent, loving, thankful obedienceconstant effort to get a deeper knowledge of His Word, and a closer likeness to the character of His Son. We hear so much in the world about consolidating all our debts into one simple bank loan—about consolidating all types of insurance into one simple overall policy. But the world has nothing like this simple solution that covers every problem and every need: this Bank to end all banks, this Insurance to end all insurances, this comprehensive, immutable guarantee to eclipse all ricketty human schemes of "cradle-to-grave" security blankets against f e a r e r GOD BE FOR US, WHO CAN BE AGAINST US?" And here Paul brings in the verse from the chapter in Isaiah we are considering (Rom. 8:33-34)— "Who shall lay anything to the charge of God's elect? It is God that justifieth; who is he that condemneth?" We deal with no one but God. We are accountable to no one but God. We are concerned with no one's judgment but God's. Paul said to the Corinthians— "With me it is a very small thing that I should be judged of you, or of any man's judgment. He that judgeth me is the Lord." Truly we must conform to many things to do with men, but only because God says so—not because of any inherent importance in the things or men themselves. Of all human, worldly, present things and people, Jesus continues in Isa 50— i973 Berean 247 VERSE 9: " . . Lo, they all shall wax old as a garment. The moth shall eat them up." Here is the only true test of value and of importance. What will last, and what will pass away? Let us consciously separate all things clearly into these 2 categories—the things that last and the things that pass—and then give all our attention to the things that are eternal. Ask yourself of everything: Will it last? Is it related to eternity? If it is not, forget it. Life is too short. It isn't worth our precious time. Paul builds this theme to a glorious climax in the final verses of Romans 8. Let us conclude with them, and try to keep them ever before our minds in all that we do, in all our waking hours (35-39)— "Who shall separate us from the love of Christ? shall tribulation or distress, or persecution, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or sword? "As it is written, For Thy sake we are killed all the day long; we are accounted as sheep for the slaughter . ." Stop and think deeply about all these terrible trials the faithful of old have cheerfully endured, and held firm and obedient through— "Nay in all these things we are more than conquerors through him that loved us. "For I am persuaded, that neither death, nor life, nor angels nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to come. "Nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord." —G.V.G. The New Man in Christ Jesus "// any man be in Christ he is a new creatture. Old things have passed away. Behold, all things have become new!"—2 Cor. 3:17» These words of the apostle Paul teach a lesson which is common to Bible teaching, but which seems to be one of the most difficult things for the natural mind of mortal man to understand. These words are in perfect harmony with a divine precept which goes back to Eden where our first parents transgressed God's law and brought sin, disease and death upon all their posterity. "By one man sin entered into the world, and death by sin, and so death passed upon all men, for that (or 'in whom') all have sinned" (Rom. 5:12). This first sin caused the moral ruin of the whole race. The whole world became involved in a state of universal sin. Constitutionally, physically and mentally, his natural being became impregnated with sin. 1973 Berean 248 THE OLD MAN OF SIN By natural birth all humankind inherited this sin-cursed condition. Sin became a principle which causes one to go contrary to the will of God; and this principle of sin dwelling inherently in the flesh of all mankind, is the cause of all disease, death and dissolution into the dust from whence he came. From this state of sin—from this sin-nature—there is no escape within the power of man. And the whole human race being sin- ners, they are naturally in a state of alienation from God, without any hope of a life beyond the grave, except through divine deliverance. Natural birth, then, confers nothing more than a life in a state of sin and alienation from God, with death as a finality: "For the wages of sin is death" (Rom. 6:23). Natural birth brings into being a creature that may have capabilities which, under divine guidance and instruction, may ascend to spiritual things, but if left to the natural tendencies of the human mind—if guided solely by the lusts and desires of sinful flesh — can never attain unto the righteousness of God, or build a character pleasing to God. Seeing that these things are so, the words of Jesus in John 3:7 ring with truth and power: "Ye MUST be BORN AGAIN." THE NEW MAN One must be the subject of a new creation. So long as one is related only to the natural creation, death is his only hope for release from sin and sorrow. Birth, whether used in the literal or figurative sense, implies that something new, something which did not previously exist, has come into being. In the figurative sense, rebirth is often applied to a new character or disposition having been formed in a person because of some revolutionary change which has taken place in their mind and in their manner of life. Such is the New Man in Christ Jesus. It is the creation of a new mind, a new disposition, a new spirit in a sinful son or daughter of Adam, transferring his relationship from death in Adam to a relationship to life in Christ—though he is still burdened with sinful nature in which he was born; the law of sin and death still works in his members, and he must say with Paul (Rom. 7:21-23), "I find a law that, when I would do good, evil is present with me." —a law which he said was— "Sin which is in my members." But he said that, regardless of this natural tendency to sin, "I delight in the law of God after the inward man." —and that Jesus Christ would deliver him from "this body of death," or sinful nature. This "inward man" is the new man in Christ Jesus, through which Paul served the law of God, and through which was held in subjection the sinful tendencies of the natural man. ORIGIN OF THE NEW MAN As in the natural birth, which begins with generation and ends with having been born, so the new man is the subject of a process. In 1 Peter 1:23 we read: "Being born (begotten) again, not of corruptible seed, but of incorruptible, by the Word of God, which abideth forever." The old man of the flesh is begotten of corruptible seed, and is corruptible—physically and mortally. The new man is "created in righteousness and true holiness." In speaking of Christ, we are told in John 1.12-13— 1973 Berean 249 "As many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name, which were born (begotten), not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God." The new man is exclusively a divine creation. The natural, sinful man, no matter how wise, cannot create the new man. "That which is born of the flesh is flesh." He can only produce his own kind, with reference either to the physical, mental or moral capacities. In Eph. 4:21-24, Paul reveals the origin and the nature of the new man. He says: "If so be that ye have heard him, and have been taught by him, as the truth is in Jesus; that ye put off concerning the former conversation the old man, which is corrupt according to the deceitful lusts; and be ye renewed in the spirit of your mind; and that ye put on the new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true holiness." Let us notice here that Paul is not speaking of a converted immortal soul, as some erroneously define the new man to be. He speaks of an "old man" which is to be "put off" before the new man can be "put on." This "old man" refers not to the body, but to the corrupt, sinful character and disposition of the old, or natural man. This is accomplished by being "renewed in the spirit of your mind." It is a change in the mental state of the individual. Instead of the old sinful disposition, there is created a new man, after, or like God; no more like sinful man. The new man is created through a knowledge of God's ivord: "In Christ Jesus I have begotten you through the Gospel" "The Gospel is the power of God unto salvation to every one that believeth" (Rom. 1:16). "Of his own will begat he us by the Word of Truth" It is folly for any one to imagine that he can be the subject of the new birth while possessing but a faint knowledge of God's word. The new man is created of God through a knowledge of His ivord. As Paul says in Eph. 2:10— "For we are His workmanship, created in Christ Jesus unto good works, which God hath before ordained that we should walk in them." The new man is not the old man made over, reformed or improved upon. "The carnal mind," the natural, sinful man, "is enmity against God, for it is not subject to God's law, neither indeed can be."—Rom. 8:7. There must be an entirely new man created, whose mind, sentiments and affections are in harmony with divine things as revealed in God's Word. DEATH AND RESURRECTION Paul uses another figure of speech in describing the creation of the new man. It is death and resurrection. Death of the old man of sin, and resurrection to a life of righteousness. W e read— "Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Christ, were baptized into his death? Therefore we are buried with him by baptism into death; that like as Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life. 1973 Berean 250 "Knowing this, that our old man is crucified with him, that the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin" (Rom. 6:3-4). The old man here has reference to corrupt human nature, the inborn tendency to evil in all humankind. As in natural birth, there are two distinct operations in the creation of the new man. First, generation, by the operation of the Word of God upon the mind, causing repentance from dead works and the creation in the mind of the believer a "right spirit," which sets his affections on divine things. Second, the coming forth, or being born of water, or baptism for remission of sins. Being then justified from dead works and clothed in God's righteousness, he is the new man "created in righteousness and true holiness." The new man is also referred to in Scripture as the "inner man," the "hidden man of the heart," etc., all such terms referring to the same things, the creation in the believer of God's Word a "clean heart and a right spirit," in the mental image of him whom God has appointed to be the pattern for all who come unto God by h i m CHRIST IN YOU In Col. 1:27 the new man is defined as— "CHRIST IN YOU, the hope of glory." And in Gal. 2:20 Paul shows how the new man in him was Christ who lived in him. He says: "I am crucified with Christ; nevertheless I live; yet not I, but Christ liveth in me; and the life which I now live in the flesh I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me and gave himself for me." The old Paul who blasphemed God and persecuted the saints had, by a figure, been crucified with Christ and no longer lived, or no longer had control over him. The life and character of the true believer is not his own life and character. It is Christ reflected in one who has put on the godly spirit and character of him who is the image of the eternal Father. It is the purpose of God to make "all things new." (Rev. 21:1-5). Those who will occupy and inherit those new things, that new order of things, must likewise be made new. The natural, sinful man is altogether incompatible with this new order. Therefore, we are told 1 Cor. 15:50-53: "Flesh and blood (sinful nature) cannot inherit the kingdom of God . . . For this corruptible must put on incorruption, and this mortal must put on immortality." A new man, mentally, morally and physically must be created to inherit the kingdom of God and adorn that magnificent spiritual temple in which God is to dwell for eternity. —O.B. TRADE UNIONS As to trade unions, a brother is not of the world and does not want to be involved in its disputes on one side or the other. Doubtless abstention will often be very difficult; but God—Who clothes the lilies and feeds the sparrows—can preserve a man who separates himself from doubtful connections for Christ's sake—Christadelphian, 1899. 1973 Berean 251 Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "The Lord bringeth the counsel of the nations to nought; He maketh the devices of the people of none effect"—Psalm 33:10 CONGRESS TIES NIXON'S HANDS. Congress has dealt Nixon stunning blow on his Cambodia bombing campaign; voting to deny any funds. A historic step & remarkable turnaround for hawkish House which till last wk. had supported every President since Eisenhower in Indochina. Watergate scandal had clearly eroded the Administration's moral authority in Congress: vote seen as opportunity to reassert Congressional prerogatives & leadership. (Nwk 5:21) NOTE: Naturally speaking, Nixon is clearly right about the very real danger of creeping Communist conquest of the globe, & the vital need to draw a line & hold it. Those who know prophecy can see that. But Watergate & other Govt. corruptions have destroyed his prestige & authority & moral power, & the misguided, head-in-the-sand Munich "peace in our day" policy of Congress appears about to prevail. Before Watergate, Nixon had the popular support to face up to the ostriches of Congress. So God turns the wisdom of man backward. DEPLETED US RESOURCES. Besides fuel, US may be headed for severe shortages of other vitally needed minerals. Rapid industrial growth has seriously depleted reserves of nearly all key minerals, the physical source of most of the necessities, conveniences & comforts of US life today. US has already run out of chromium & manganese, vital to manufacture steel. It now has to import at least V2 its needs of aluminum, nickel, tin & zinc. US has sufficient of following for number of yrs. indicated: iron, 72; copper, 38; zinc, 28; lead 27; bauxite (aluminum), 2 yrs. These shortages threaten not only US affluence, but its civilization. (Nwk 5:21). NOTE: A very sobering picture. US's natural wealth has been the foundation of its prosperity & world power. Russia is now revealed as swamped with unmeasured & untapped resources, while US frantically scrapes the bottom of the barrel. HIGH STAKES IN LEBANON CONFLICT. Lebanon squeezed more & more into vise of Arab-Israel conflict: deeply enmeshed in bloody struggle with 1000s of guerrillas who live in Lebanon—all bitterly-hostile anti-Israel refugees. There are 300,000 Palestinians in a total population of 3 million. It was Israeli action against Palestinians in Lebanon which set off present crisis. Lebanese never wanted to be active participants in Arab-Israel conflict. They were—& still are—the principal traders, bankers & brokers in Arab Mideast. Lebanon is only Israel neighbor not in '67 War. (USN 5:21) NOTE: Lebanon is ancient Phoenicia & Tyre, the traders of the ancient Mideast world (which it is interesting to note they still are). It is equally divided between Christians (mostly Catholics) & Moslems, & can be expected to side with Gog in the end. Israel, in attempting to deal with the guerrilla problem, seems to be pushing Lebanon into the enemy camp. NORTH SEA OIL. World's most frantic rush for undersea oil & gas: 350 companies in search: $12V2 billion investment in next 10 yrs. North Sea oil is low-sulfur & non-polluting, & it lies on W. Europe's doorstep. Expected to supply 10 to 15 pet. of W. Europe's power needs by '80. Britain will get $1.2 billion a yr. in taxes, plus profits from 48 pet. Govt.-owned British Petroleum. (Tm 5:14) NOTE: Another very interesting & unexpected aspect in the world energy picture. 1973 Berean 252 RUSSIAN ARMED MIGHT. Gloomy picture for US. Russia not only caught up & passed US in nuclear arms, but now consolidating its advantage & moving further ahead. Has more land-based missiles than US & testing new ones. Has 48-to-41 nuclear sub lead; building 18 more: US building none. In number of planes & missiles that can deliver nuclear warheads, Russia has overcome the once-substantial US lead. In defense against nuclear attack, Russia far ahead:at least 64 anti-missile missiles; US has none. Russia has 3000 interceptor planes & 10,000 surface-to-air defense missiles; US has only 600 planes & 500 missiles. (USN 4:9) NOTE: Russia's purpose is so obvious, even apart from the clear testimony of prophecy. But US & Europe are divinely blinded to their own destruction. •—»——«————______ US SHOCKS JAPAN AGAIN. For Jap Govt., "Nixon shock" has become a way of life. Without a word to Tokyo, Nixon moved last yr. to thaw relations with China, & revamp world monetary system. Eventually, those tremors began to fade, but recently Nixon has set Japs to brooding over what they see as most coolly calculated shock of all. In recent "State of World" message, Nixon talked tough on relations between US & Japan, & laid blame for enormous imbalance in trade between them squarely on Japs' doorstep. What's more, he suggested that trade problem could force US to reconsider its security treaty with Japan. For most part, Jap reaction was stunned silence. Foreign Minister Ohira warned, "When US shouts, it's dangerous; but when Japan stops talking, it will be even more dangerous." (Nwk 5:21) NOTE: It would certainly appear to be a mistake to unnecessarily offend & alienate established friends. US is no longer the overwhelming giant who can safely ignore the feelings & wishes of others. Nixon's style is a secretive one-man show of spectacular, unpredictable innovations & switches. This is hard on old friendships & established alliances. Perhaps we can see here too the hand of God alienating Tarshishfrom the rest of the world. WICKEDNESS IN HIGH PLACES. In eyes of country, White House in shambles. Nixon's closest advisors revealed as men without morals who considered themselves above law. By last wk., 17 of Nixon's associates & employees under investigation. List will undoubtedly grow. Many could wind up behind bars for criminal activities committed while working for Nixon. These men had been selected by him, helped lift him to power, & took their ethical cues from him. Every day brought new details that beggared the suspicions of Nixon's enemies. Nothing unbelievable any longer. All the official spying that preceded Watergate, as well as lying & destroying evidence that followed, reveal fearsome degree of lawlessness at highest govt. levels. (Tm 5:14) NOTE: If this lawless seizure & abuse of power can happen in the world's proudest & supposedly most stable "democracy," what protection has any man or nation against usurpation & dictatorship? The conspirators manipulated the US Justice Dept. & the FBI, supposedly impregnable bastions & guarantees of legal justice. And they used, compromised, & sought to implicate the CIA, US's official foreign intelligence agency which is supposedly above & independent of politics & partisanship. Thank God we have a better foundation in which to trust than sinful man! MORAL BANKRUPTCY. What appals about Watergate, even more than criminal aspects, are moral aspects. Crooks in govt are nothing new, tho we may never before have had so many of them. What is new is wide-spread moral bankruptcy at highest levels. It's enough to give nightmares to anyone who believes in constitutional govt. (Nwk 5:14) NOTE: Men in great power soon come to consider themselves above the law. It is impossible for natural man to rule in righteousness. UN VETOS: US3: France4; BritainlO; Russia 1O9.(USN4:2) 73 Berean 253 PERSIAN GULF OIL STRUGGLE. New arena of confrontation. Prize is oil: a glittering magnet in a world growing short of energy. Rivals include Europe, Japan, US, Communist countries, & Persian Gulf states. Potential for violence growing stronger as competition for energy increases. For Russia, getting dominant role in region would give it hand on "oil faucet" to West. For over 100 yrs., Britain dominated area, but pulled out in '71, leaving power vacuum. Russia makes no secret of ambitions in Gulf. IRAQ: Focus of Soviet initiative is to build up Iraq, helping oil development & building large port & naval base at Umm Qasr, which Russia will use.With Red help,Iraq setting out determinedly to become THE Gulf power. Entire Iraqi coast is only 55 miles, so remedy is to carve out larger presence on coast at expense of smaller & weaker Kuwait. In recent months Iraq troops have more than once occupied slices of Kuwait territory. Essential ingredient in Iraq's latest thrust for power is closer relations with Russia. When Russia ousted from Egypt, their ambitions focused on Iraq & Syria. IRAN (Persia): Shah has stated his objective clearly—make Iran the one military force in Persian Gulf. Currently buying $2 billion in planes & weapons. Iran's vision of power extends not only to Gulf but to Indian Ocean. Plans well under way to expand Iranian Navy, already the biggest in the Gulf, so it can patrol seas between Iran & India. Shah is basically proWestern but cooperates with Russia. He has bought military equipment from Russia, & this spring entertained Kosygin at opening in Isfahan of a Soviet-built steel mill—Iran's first. SAUDI ARABIA is main rival to Iran in region: would like to be leading power on Gulf: could prove irritating antagonist to Iran. (USN 5:21) NOTE: Suddenly the oil crisis has become front page news, & there is revealed a tremendous military buildup & jockeying for power in the Persian Gulf. Russia is arming Iraq, & US is arming Iran & Saudi Arabia. The latter 2 are natural rivals, & both want to dominate the area. Saudi Arabia is strongly pro-US & anti-Russian. Iran (Persia) is more moderately proUS, but has many & increasing ties to Russia also (with which it has a 1000 mile border). We know from Eze. 38 that Persia must be an active Russian ally when Gog sweeps down on the mountains of Israel "for a spoil & for a prey." . _ _ _ . _ _ _ _ - _ _ _ _ - _ ISRAEL MILITARY SHOW. Beyond doubt, most imposing display of military might in Mideast since '67 war. To most Israelis, a thoroly satisfying— & justified—demonstration of Israel's sophisticated war machinery. Others felt it was unnecessarily provocative—especially since it went thru Israel-occupied Old City of Jerusalem. One said, "Before '67 War there was some justification for showing Arabs we had muscle. But now, we're going to look like Russians with this sort of thing." (Tm 5:21) NOTE: It is tobe wondered why Israel feels it must deliberately commit this provocation & annoyance, & give its enemies fuel for their charges of militarism & aggression, but from the beginning of their history the Jews have so acted as to bring judgment upon themselves. Truly they are God's People, the chosen channel of His world operations; & truly they will at last be purified & blessed; & truly God will terribly punish any who at any time lift a finger against them. But we must keep a balance & a perspective. They still are—& will be till Christ comes—proud, fleshly, rebellious, disobedient TO BRINK IN LEBANON. In 2nd wk. of deadly clashes between army & Palestine guerrillas, some Lebanese politicians actively siding with guerrillas, raising specter of civil war. Scores killed & 100s wounded as fierce battles raged. Most significant confrontation between an Arab govt. & Palestinians since Jordan crushed & drove them out in 70. (Tm 5:21) NOTE: Lebanon is small & weak & religiously divided. Since the '67 War it has the only border left with Israel where the terrorists have much chance of any successful operation. Clearly both Israel & Syria will intervene if the conflict gets out of hand. 1973 Berean 254 MARXISM IN EUROPE. Last wk., host of young left-wing Europeans paid tribute to ideas and ideals of Karl Marx. Europe is discovering that its sons & daughters are increasingly hostile to industry & ''the System." Marx has suddenly emerged as official philosopher for Europe's younger generation. The mentality & vocabulary of class struggle gaining ground. Professors, journalists, union bosses & church leaders find it fashionable to be as far left as possible. A Communist was once an anti-Christ; now he's a man to have dialog with. Bishops talk kindly about socialism, & priests about Marxism. Students pack lectures on Marxist philosophy. Publishers have found a vigorous market for Marxist books. The radicals have changed from rockthrowing students to short-haired, white-collared, law-&-order Communists. Marxist resurrection seems confined to Germany, France & Italy. GERMANY crawls with left-wing organizations. Marxist control student council & sometimes even administrations in all but a handful of Germany's 67 universities & technical institutions, which have combined enrolment of 670,000. Said a professor, "If you're not Marxist, you don't get students." Radicals'demands are ouster of US forces, drastic reduction of defense budget, & reunification of both Germanys under socialist govt. ITALY: Communist Party has membership of IV2 million & won 27 pet. of vote last year. Party has chosen to march to real power by proving itself effective & responsible. Communist mayors rule a number of cities, including Bologna (V2 million population), Italy's best-run city. FRANCE: Socialist-Communist coalition won 46V2 pet. of national vote in March, & has a plausible shot at presidency in '76. (Tm 5:14) NOTE: This is just as it should be, drawing Europe toward Russia, & more & more alienating it from "reactionary" US. And the bishops & priests encourage the Communist trend. THAILAND: NEXT ON HANOI'S LIST? Precarious ceasefire in Laos & crumbling of Cambodia Govt. have put N. Viets on Thailand's border—a nation already troubled by Communist insurgency. US is obligated under SEATO to defend Thailand against Red aggression & subversion. US has given Thailand nearly $2 billion aid in past 20 years. Thai Govt. failure to respond to obvious needs of rural areas make poor peasants & villagers easy targets for Red propaganda. Anti-Govt. movement in countryside spreading past 2 years. Authorities can't enter northern districts without sizable military escorts. Anti-US feeling growing among students & intellectuals. Thailand faced with 3 insurgencies: North, Northeast, & Far South. In this conflict there are many parallels with early fighting in Vietnam. Worrisome to Thais are roads being built by Chinese across Laos to Thai border. (USN 5:21) NOTE: US is far more committed to Thailand than it ever was to S. Vietnam. A Communist conquest of Thailand, by subversion or other means, would be a tremendous blow to US power, prestige, & credibility. INDIA'S UNTOUCHABLES. Since mid-50s, over 2 million of India's 100 million social outcasts have taken Buddhist vows. Buddhism is a natural refuge for the untouchables. Unlike Hinduism, it is a classless religion, & emphasizes individual freedom. Founded by Gautama Buddha, it flourished for over 1000 yrs. in India before Hinduism reasserted itself as dominant faith in India about 500 AD. The Untouchables are social lepers. Economically they're worse than slaves. They're denied entrance to places of worship. In theory, Indian law has abolished discrimination, but in practice it's widespread. (Nwk 4:2) NOTE: All nations must have their despised "Untouchables" to feed their egos & their pride. Snobbery & "superiority" over others is one of the most deeply ingrained human vices—the "pride of life," & it is the life-mission of advertising to cater to it and inflame it. 1973 Berean 255 "PROGRESS." Our diet has become imbalanced to the point it has been termed a "national disaster" by a prominent nutritionist. Present practices in food production have drastically altered its nutritional value. Animals are fed, not with natural food, but "concentrates." In eagerness to produce more food, nutrient content has been sacrificed. Canned meat stored 6 mos. loses 30 pet. of vitamin B. Frozen orange juice loses 60 pet. of its ascorbic acid. In whole wheat, zinc buffers dangerous cadmium. In refined flour, most of the zinc is lost, & the cadmium is 6 times as dangerous. In artificial "enrichment," iron is restored to flour, but not copper. Yet the copper is needed to utilize the iron. Canned peas have 66 pet. less potassium, & 1400 pet. more sodium, than fresh. Commercial processing robs food of essential metals, & contaminates it with undesirable ones. "Hydroge nation" in modern food processing changes desirable acids into undesirable ones.'Convenience' foods are often seriously depleted of their original nutrients. Raw potatoes harvested in Oct. lose over 90 pet. of their ascorbic acid when processed as flakes in following May. 90 pet. of vitamin Ε lost in flaking, shredding & puffing breakfast cereal. Many food additives & pesticides are hazardous; many are vitamin antagonists & destroyers of enzymes essential to health. Every phase of modern food processing adds to sum total of nutrient losses. (CnsBul 1:73) NOTE: This is not a health item. It is quoted simply to illustrate the utter falsity of the illusion of human "progress." "Go to, let us make us a city and a tower whose top may reach unto heaven." The further man gets away from the simple, humble, and natural way of life appointed by God—"Every man under his own vine and figtree," with God as the center and joy of his life—the more he corrupts himself. This simple way will be reconstituted in Christ's Kingdom, when the great bulk of man's dreadful, giddy, nightmare "progress" will be swept away. The world today is full of prisons and hospitals: neither will be needed when divine wisdom takes the place of human bungling in the management of the world. END OF OUTRAGE. "Angry, shocked, outraged" are outmoded words. Nothing is forbidden. We cannot be shocked any more. That doesn't sound like much of a loss when you put it next to all the other things we've lost since '63. We're so cool & hard & hip that there's a large dead spot inside us all. The lines have been erased; nothing is forbidden in 73. Before we knew it, we were in the age of Anything Goes. If it Feels Good, That's Cool! Heroin addiction & veneral disease became so common that both were soon acceptable dinner-table conversation. All sex barriers came down. We called each other "brother," but weren't crazy enough to walk streets at night. And biggest change of all, of course, was our inability to even work up any feeling about what was going on. Everything's OK, nothing's forbidden, so why do things feel wrong all the time? (Nwk 2:26) NOTE: This state of utter, meaningless, bankrupt morality, which the thoughtful see but do not have the answer for, is exactly how the Scriptures describe the last days. The whole world must be in the abominable condition of the nations of Canaan when Israel were commanded to destroy them & cleanse the land from their moral filth. CHINA'S REASON. Primarily, China's desire is to thwart its most bitter enemy, Russia. China sees detente with US as way of heading off any military adventures by Russia along China's border, & to check Russian diplomatic maneuvering in Asia & Pacific. (Nwk 3:5) NOTE: How sad that the flesh is so evil, & great nations are like squabbling children snatching each others toys! US OIL SHORTAGE. In 72, US, pumping at capacity, produced 11 million barrels a day: consumption was 16 million. By 75, consumption will be 20 million barrels a day, production only 10 million. (USN 4:30) 1973 Berean 256 RUSSIA TALKS PEACE BUT SHARPENS SWORD. While Nixon talks of "generation of peace," Russia's leaders shaping a military force as if they expect WW III to erupt at dawn tomorrow. Russia continues to train millions of soldiers, sailors & airmen each year. An all-inclusive draft is in full swing. Universal military service, which has little support in US, is fact of life in Russia. Conscription starts at 18; preinduction training at 16. Russia has 3% million men on active duty; could field 3 million more in 90 days, all with 3 yrs. active service experience. Massive Soviet force mans over 9000 aircraft, 235 warships, 300 subs, 1600 long-range missiles, 10,000 anti-aircraft missiles, & 36,000 tanks. Russia has 31 divisions in E. Germany, Czechoslovakia, Poland & Hungary, all excellent, full-strength, highly mobile, & prepared for offensive operations at moment's notice. All told, Reds have in E. Europe a striking force of over V2 million, with 15,000 tanks—& this could be doubled in strength in 30 days. Soviet military doctrine envisions any war in Europe as short & extremely violent. Unless W. Europe undertakes vast expansion & improvement of their forces, Russia could drive to English Channel in 90 days or less. Soviet leaders have given scant indication they really believe in East-West accommodation. (USN 5:7) NOTE: How vividly & ominously we are reminded of the years just before WW III Germany was feverishly arming to the teeth, while repeatedly protesting her "peaceful" intentions, & world leaders chose to believe protestations rather that the obvious facts. Winston Churchill, who raised his voice in warning, was a voice in the wilderness, & a very unpopular man. The world preferred soothing self-delusion to rough reality. OIL GIVES ARABS UNPRECEDENTED POWER. Never before has a tiny country like Saudi Arabia had power to bring world's economy to virtual standstill, or to precipitate an international monetary crisis. But Mideast rulers control the oil that's essential to world for next 25 years, & they're beginning to use their enormous power. Oil producing countries have formed most powerful cartel in history. Last yr., oil users paid $15 billion in "taxes" to oil countries; by '80 "taxes" could run to $55 billion a year. Flow of funds will become staggering—greatest holdings of money ever. By '80, Mideast Arabs will have $100 to $200 billions cash reserves, & will be adding $20 to $30 billion a year to it. They'll be in position to disrupt whole fabric of world monetary flows, & could become major property owners thruout Europe, US, Canada. If they withheld oil, world would be faced with monumental crisis; & as they build currency reserves, they increase ability to withhold oil. Kuwait says it will withhold oil from West if there's Israel-Arab war. A showdown would lead to armed intervention, & confrontation with Russia. So far US has been able to retain close cooperation of Saudi Arabia, richest of all oil countries, but danger of intrigue & overthrow always exists in such a country. (TorStar 3:26) NOTE: Oil gives the Arabs great power & leverage in the struggle against Israel Cutting the flow of oil would cripple Europe & Japan, & very seriously weaken US. It is marvelous how God has arranged these circumstances in the last days to bring all the nations into conflict in the Mideast. Iran, Iraq & Saudi Arabia are all straining to build their military strength to dominate the area. .-___——ι— WORLD SHIP TONNAGE rising 8 pet. a year. Total by '80, 680 million tons, double the 330 million tons of 70 & over 4 times the 150 million of '60. Japan launched nearly V2 world's new ship tonnage in '72; could climb to 70 pet. in 5 years. Japs have 13 building docks that can handle vessels of over 200,000 tons; one dock can build 1-million tonners. (USN 5:7) NOTE: Time was when Britain, not Japan, was world's greatest shipbuilder. US & Britain ("merchants of Tarshish") still have l/2 the world's merchant tonnage. inside Back Going to Law Against Another The following is reprinted from the Berean for Sep., 1947. It was inserted at that time in an effort to encourage and strengthen the hands of the brethren in England who were studying the possibility and advisability of "reunion":— We feel compelled to express our alarm at the apparent trend in thinking in regard to going to law. The following quotations, which are but a few out of many, will illustrate the clear stand taken among us upon this matter 20 years ago. All are from the Berean: 1925: p. 386—"Suing at law for divorce is altogether contrary to the letter and spirit of the law of Christ . . . No sanction for an appeal to Gentile law courts can be justly drawn from the words of Jesus . . . To 'put away' a bad wife does not entitle a brother to run counter to another command (such as 1 Cor. 6:1-7), enforce one's right, and parade Christadelphians' differences 'before the unbeliever'." 1926: p. 438—"We are asked to set up a reservation to 1 Cor. 6:1. If we agree to this we cannot complain of any other reservation to clear, plain doctrines and commandments." 1926: p. 520—"There is no warrant for going into the Court over the matter 'before the unbelievers,' but MUCH THE REVERSE. If separation must occur, the parties should remain as they are" (Quoted from Christadelphian, 1906, p. 72). 1927: p. 83—"Suing at law for the enforcement of any right whatsoever is to be shunned by a servant of Christ (Matt. 5:39; 1 Cor. 6:1; Pet. 2:21-23). We invite the fellowship of those only who endorse the scripturalness of this statement." 1327: p. 234—"The Spirit's method does not require, nor permit, the sinner being hailed before the unjust in a Gentile court of law: such a process is absolutely forbidden by God." 1927: Sep. back cover—"It is an established fact that not even for the 'one reason' would bro. Roberts tolerate a breach of 1 Cor. 6:1." The reunion discussions in Britain broke down because it was impossible to get agreement on a clear and strong scriptural stand concerning resistance to evil and going to law. INDIANS & BUREAUCRACY. US Govt. appropriates $8000 for every Oglala family: bureaucratic salaries, overhead & waste cut average family income to $1900. (Nwk 3:19) NOTE: This is a miniature picture of what happens to all efforts to help the needy. In a recent similar case, $200,000 was appropriated to repair the houses of the poor: $9,000 of actual repair work was done. July Answers CONNECT ITEM WITH PERSON 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10 Tj 12 !3 14 ' 15* 16 17. Ass—Balaam Nail—Jael Dart—Absalom Flax—Rahab Heel—Jacob Mint—Pharisees Dish—Judas Cart—Uzza Cake—Ephraim Harp—Jubal /v\ice—Philistines Mess—Benjamin p am t—Jezebel with—Samson Gourd—Jonah Gallows—Haman Amber— Ezekiel 18. Arrow—Jonathan 19. Frogs—Pharaoh 20. Pulpit—Ezra 21. Coffin—Joseph 22. Clouts—Jeremiah 23. School—Tyrannus 24. Floats—Hiram 25. Fleece—Gideon 26. Censer—Korah 27. Gutter—Joab 28. Cheese—Jesse 29. Dagger—Ehud 30. Oxgoad—Shamgar 31. Ranges—Athaliah 32. Thumbs—Adonibezek 33. Lattice—Ahaziah 34. Figleaf—Adam $3.50 per year (only for those who desire to pay) 35. Sundial—Ahaz 36. Conduit—Hezekiah 37. Javelin—Saul 38. Sandals—Peter 39. Vinegar—Ruth 40. Pottage—Esau 41. Shrines—Demetrius 42. Praetorium—Pilate 43. Bullrush—Moses 44. Potsherd—Job 45. Peacocks—Solomon 46. Plumbline—Amos 47. Millstone—Abimelech 48. Alabaster—Mary 49. Parchment—Paul 50. Mandrakes—Reuben Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO. 9 SEPTEMBER, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited and Published by: G.A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Apt. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIAL NEWS: Wanaque Inside Front Cover Bible Questions Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: Wisdom 257 Love in the Scriptural Sense (R.R.) 259 APPROACHING JUDGMENTS (Bro. Thomas) Part 3 260 ANSWERS BY BRO. ROBERTS: The Present Priesthood of Christ 265 LET EVERY ONE PLEASE HIS NEIGHBOR 270 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS F U L F I L L I N G PROPHECY 282 What Knowledge Is Needed at Baptism? (J.T.) Back Cover August Answers Back Cover We ore anxious to send the Bereon FREE to any desiring it that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News Inside Front WANAQUE, N.J.—Memorial 10:45 am—Home of bro. David Sommerville, 224 Conklintown Rd., Wanaque, N.J. 07465; Phone (201) 835-4751. Occasionally at home of sis. Ella Smith, Blooming Grove, Pa. GREETINGS to all of like precious Faith. On Oct. 7 our ecclesia held a special effort at which time bro. David Clubb lectured on: Christ Is Coming Again: the Only Hope for a Troubled World." The following brethren and sisters made it a miniature Gathering: bro. & sis. Russell Frisbie (Baltimore); bro. Harry Phillips and sis. Wm. Phillips (Canton); bro. & sis. David Clubb (London); bro. & sis. Warren Rankin, bro. & sis Edgar Sargent, sis. Helen Buchanan, sis. Nor ma Rankin, sis. Violet Rankin (Worcester). Previous visitors in fellowship were: bro. & sis. Nick Mammone (Austin); bro. Gordon Jones and sis. Phyllis Jones (Richard). Bre. G. Jones, N. Mammone and E. Sargent gave us stirring words of exhortation from which we derived spiritual benefit. We regret that sis. Ella Smith is ill at present requiring hospitalization. Much matter for spiritual consideration is provided in current world events, especially in the Middle East. May the signs in the political heavens and earth strengthen us to hold fast the profession of our faith without wavering. —bro. David Sommerville Bible Questions WHO W A S . . . Write the number of each item in List 1 beside the correct person in List 2. LIST ONE—QUESTIONS 1. 2. 3. 4. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. Tanner? 18. Ethiopian? 19. Cupbearer? 20. Areopagite? 21. Silversmith? 22. Coppersmith? 23. King of Moab? 24. Priest of On? 25. King of Gath? 26. Mighty hunter? 27. Priest of Baal? 28. Jehu's captain? 29. Prince of Rosh? 30. Deputyof Achaia? 31. Deputy of Cyprus? 32. Master of Israel? 33. Prince of Midian? 34. King of Zidonians? 35. King of Damascus (NT)? Abraham's servant? 36. Captain host of Syria? Governor of Syria? 37. High Priest's servant? Tetrarch of Iturea? 38. Governor Ahab's house? Ruler of synagogue? 39. Governor beyond River? Tetrarch of Galilee? 40. Chamberlain of Corinth? Chief man of Melita? 41. Ahasuerus' chamberlain? Tetrarch of Abilene? 42. Governor of Judea (NT) ? Queen of Ethiopians? 43. Captain Solomon's host? Captain Saul's host? 44. Captain Absalom's host? Herod's chamberlain? 45. Chief of Saul's herdm&i? Captain Jabin's host? 46. Centurion Augustus band? Chancellor (in Ezra) ? 47. Centurion Italian band? Hezekiah's treasurer? 48. Captain of guard (Egypt) ? Captain David's host? 49. Captain of guard (Babylon)? Honorable counsellor? 50. Captain of host (Philistine) ? Chief captain( Roman) ? Demetrius LIST TWO—ANSWERS Gog Abner Oreb Hege Tatnai Bidkar Ethbaal Malchus Alexander Amasa Pilate Shebna Eliezer Lysanias Nicodemus Rehum Achish Joseph Blastus Nehemiah Potipherah Doeg Simo#n Aretas Nimrod Erastus Cyrenius Ebedmelech Joab Gallio Sisera Naaman Obadiah Potiphar Nebuzaradan Herod Julius Jairus Publius Benaiah Cornelius Sergius Paulus Eglon Philip Mattan Phichol Candace Dionysius Claudius Lysias Anything printed In the Berean may be reprinted freely by anyone in any form. EDITORIAL "The fear of Yahweh is the BEGINNING of wisdom; & the knowledge of the Holy is understanding"—Prov. 9:10 Wisdom, truly, is a Bible subject. Throughout the Scriptures of Truth it is mentioned 224 times, and in the book of Proverbs alone, it comes to our attention 52 times. One of the striking features of the Proverbs is the frequent use of the word wisdom. This book is usually regarded as a collection of moral axioms assembled by Solomon; but a careful study of it reveals it to be of a much higher character. Because the word wisdom appears therein so often, it is only reasonable that we should ask, What is wisdom? Webster defines it as "a quality of being wise: ability to judge soundly, and deal sagaciously with facts, especially as they relate to life and conduct." Bro. Roberts, however, defines it in a very interesting way when he says: "Wisdom, then, in its most elementary conception, is the power and disposition to adapt means to the accomplishment of good ends." Looking at wisdom from the creative viewpoint, behold the human frame and consider how we see; how we hear; and how we speak. Think of how we eat, and the digestive system that extracts life-giving power from our food. Think of the nerve system, and the blood stream as it flows through the body. Consider, too, wisdom in general as exhibited in the creation, and expressed in our 44th hymn— "The spacious firmament on high, With all the blue ethereal sky, And spangled heavens—a shining frame— Their great Original proclaim. The unwearied sun, from day to day, Doth his Creator's power display, And publishes to every land The work of an Almighty Hand. Thus the majesty of the heavens enthralls us as we join with the Psalmist and say— "When I consider Thy heavens, the work of Thy fingers, the moon and the stars which Thou hast ordained; what is man, that Thou are mindful of him? And the son of man, that Thou visitest him?" Wherever we look we see the manifold works of wisdom. As we behold them, we are compelled to stand in awe with admiration of the wisdom that lies behind it all. But all of this great wisdom in creation is wisdom mechanically applied. Solomon is well aware of this, and his treatment of it is captivating. But, in the Proverbs, he deals principally with another form of wisdom— the wisdom as it relates to individuals. Man, being gifted with intelligence and the faculty of reason, has the power of choice. In the Bible lies the foundation for his selection. It teaches us that there are two forms of wisdom—the wisdom of God, and the wisdom of man. There is such a vast difference between these two forms that Paul says, 1973 Berean 257 "The wisdom of this world is foolishness with God." Paul says further, "For the preaching of the cross is to them that perish foolishness; but unto us which are saved (or, being saved) it is the power of God . . . "For after that in the wisdom of God the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased God by the foolishness of preaching to save them that believe . . . "Because the foolishness of God is wiser than men; and the weakness of God is stronger than men"—1 Cor. 1:18, 21, 25. Solomon presents a similar case in Eccles. 2:13, when he says, "I saw that wisdom excelleth folly as far as light excelleth darkness." This is the wisdom Solomon deals with in the Proverbs—divine wisdom made known unto the sons of men by Moses, the prophets, the Lord Jesus and his apostles. People do not come into possession of either form of wisdom naturally—both have to be sought after. As we said before, man has the power of choice. If he set his heart on temporal things— on the things of this life, and determines to make a name for himself in the world; or if his ambition is to become possessed of much of this world's goods and riches; or if his aim be to set his heart on pleasure, then he will choose the wisdom of this world. But if he sees the folly of all this, and realizes that even though he gain the world he must still lose his life, then he will choose the wisdom of God, and he will search for it as for hid treasure. This is where he exercises the wisdom of individual practice. The wisdom of God is from eternity, and inseparable from the Great Creator. Listen to His declaration— 1973 Berean 258 "The Lord possessed me in the beginning of His way, before His works of old. I was set up from everlasting, from the beginning, or ever the earth was . . . "When He prepared the heavens, I was there: when He set a compass upon the face of the depth, when He gave to the sea His decree that the waters should not pass His commandment, when He appointed the foundations of the earth—then I was by Him, as one brought up with Him; and I was daily His delight, rejoicing always before Him . . . "Now therefore hearken unto me, Ο ye children: for blessed are they that keep my ways. Hear instruction, and be wise, and refuse it not. Blessed is the man that heareth me, watching daily at my gates, waiting at the posts of my doors. "For whoso findeth me findeth LIFE, and shall obtain favor of the Lord. But he that sinneth against me wrongeth his own soul: all they that hate me love death"—Prov. 8:22-36.> What beauty of expression, and what plainness of speech! We have this word of wisdom in our possession. We must not, however, treat it as a miser treats his treasures—sealed up in a bag, and be content with a mere knowledge of the first principles of the oracles of God. There must be progression—not a broadening out, but a holding fast to the narrow path that leads unto life. There must be a crying after knowledge, an inclining of the ear unto wisdom, and an application of the heart to understanding. There must also be a seeking, and a searching as for hid treasure. Then, says, wisdom, we shall understand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God. Again we read— "Get wisdom, get understanding: forget it not; neither decline from the words of my mouth. Forsake her not, and she shall preserve thee: love her, and she shall keep thee. "Wisdom is the principal thing; therefore get wisdom: and with all thy getting get understanding"—Prov. 4:5-7'. Does that not signify that it is possible to memorize wisdom in its various aspects without understanding what it means? Yes, it is possible to memorize the first principles of the Truth without discernment, or comprehension. Therefore, says wisdom, with all thy getting get understanding. That is, exercise the power we possess to understand God's plan of salvation, and comprehend its meaning. What we accomplish in understanding the wisdom of God, depends upon the amount of energy we expend in searching for it. As Paul says, "He who sows sparingly will also reap sparingly, and he who sows bountifully will also reap bountifully." No, wisdom is not acquired with a slack hand. If we obtain sufficient knowledge to be baptized, and then sit back and take it easy, and go after the pleasures of this life, how are we to attain to the knowledge of God that results in the love and reverence for His name? // cannot be done. "Therefore," says Paul, "We ought to give the more earnest heed to the things which we have heard, lest at any time we should let them slip. "For if the word spoken by angels was stedfast, and every transgression and disobedience received a just recompense of reward; how shall we escape, if we neglect so great salvation?"—Heb. 2:1-3. Some day our journey will be ended, and our trial finished, and then there will be a verdict. The decision and judgment will either produce great joy or sorrow. If we desire joy then let us listen to the voice of wisdom as she cries in the places of the paths, and at the coming in at the doors. And let us listen to her voice as she speaks and says— "The fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom, and the knowledge of the holy is understanding"—Prov. 9:10— _ _ _ ^ _ _ _ _ _ —Editor. LOVE IN THE SCRIPTURAL SENSE "Love your enemies; do good to them that hate you." That love requires a distinct effort. It cannot develop itself in a selfish bosom. It is an impulse created from within ourselves; not by the natural lovableness of the object. Its cultivation help to assimilate us to the supreme source of love, and tends to amalgamate and improve inferior elements. In an ecclesia, while there are those who by the power of truth are made lovely, there are those who, by reason of weakness, are destitute of power to attract. To these, this love make advances in kindly words and deeds. We have loved God because He first loved us. The same principle acts between man and man, but at the same time we must expect failures. In some bosoms manifested love will have no power to enkindle a reciprocal flame, because the Truth does not dwell deeply. A great many pass current among us who will be rejected. We must remember that few will be chosen; only those will be accepted who are the jewels; the precious stones of the Sanctuary transparent to the rays of the Truth, ari*d yielding a beautiful refraction of them· in the lovely tints of individual excellence—Bro. Roberts. Please notify us promptly of address changes. 73 Berean 259 Approaching Judgments BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS 'The Lord Jesus shall be revealed from heaven with his mighty angels, in flaming fire taking vengeance on them that know not God"—2 Thess. 1:7-8 To him thatkeepeth my works will 1 give power over the nations: he shall rule them with a rod of iron . . they shall be broken to shivers'*—Revelation 2:26-27 PARTTHREE IN turning to the New Testament, we must bear in mind that its grand subject is not judgment, but grace (Jn. 1:17)— "The Law was given by Moses, but Grace and Truth came by Jesus Christ." (John 1:17). "God was in Christ, reconciling the world unto Himself, not imputing their trespasses unto them*' (2 Cor. 5:19). Nor is it the testimony of mere prophets to which we listen now— "God, Who at sundry times and in divers manners spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets, hath in these last days spoken unto us by a Son" (Heb. 1:1-2). But while the grace of the message, and the divine dignity of the Messenger, thus wondrously comport with each other, what shall be said of the guilt of those who reject the message and despise the Messenger? And this is the guilt under which the world lies. A few in each successive generation have had their hearts opened by the Truth, to receive the one and welcome the other. But as to the mass of mankind, yea, even in those countries where Christ is nominally owned, they join with one consent to slight, to neglect, to despise God's embassy of peace. Nay, worse than this: in nominally Christian countries, the name and the ostensible authority of Christ are used to consecrate the sins from which he came to deliver us—to bind more firmly on men's souls the chains and shackles from which he came to release us. Christianity, instead of converting the world, as is the boast of our day, has itself been corrupted, and is the means—in this corrupted state—of plunging men (with fairer appearances) into deeper moral abasement than that in which it found them. IT IS FOR THIS THAT JUDGMENT IS AT THE DOOR. God has long patience, and we know that His longsuffering is salvation (2Pt*.3il5). He is not willing that any should perish, but that all should come to repentance (2 Pt.3:9). But ere long he who once came in humiliation will come in glory. He who once came to suffer and to save, will come to judge. 1973 Berean 260 First must the co-heirs of his glory be quickened to know and to confess him. And when these have been all brought in by his favor, the One who has been owned by them in his rejection will come to receive them to himself. This is the first stage in his return to the earth. But wickedness on the earth will come to its full head, and he will descend, followed by his glorified saints, to execute the judgments of which we have been hearing in the Old Testament, and of which we have abundant warning in the numerous and explicit predictions in the New Testament as well. I do not now refer to them as proofs of Christ's speedy coming. I now adduce them as following on in the train of those already cited from the Old Testament, and as premonitory of those approaching judgments which will shortly burst upon an astonished and affrighted world. What can be more solemn than the testimony of our Lord himself? Does he not apply to himself the Psalmist's words as to the rejected Stone becoming the head of the corner? And while he intimates that any—during this whole period—who fall on this Stone, or stumble over it, shall be broken, does he not also warn us that the Stone itself is yet to fall? And that on whomsoever it does fall, it will grind him to powder? (Mt. 21:42-44). And elsewhere, he says the sign of the Son of man in heaven shall appear.. ".. and then shall all the tribes of the earth mourn, and they shall see the Son of man coming in the clouds of heaven, with power and great glory" (Matt. 24:30). Does not our Lord in another gospel say (Luke 17:26-30)— "As it was in the days of Noah, so shall it be also in the days of the Son of man. They did eat, they drank, they married wives, they were given in marriage, until the day that Noah entered into the ark, and the Flood came and destroyed them all. "Likewise also as it was in the days of Lot: they did eat, they drank, they bought, they sold, they planted, they builded. "But the same day that Lot went out of Sodom it rained fire and brimstone from heaven and destroyed them all. "EVEN THUS SHALL IT BE IN THE DAY WHEN THE SON OF MAN IS REVEALED." This was realized in the time preceding the overthrow of Judah's Commonweath, and will doubtless be characteristic of that other day of the Son of Man when he shall come in power. Does he not set forth to us the whole subject of his rejection, and absence, and return, in the parable of the nobleman who went into a far country to receive for himself a kingdom, AND TO RETURN?— "His citizens hated him, and sent a message after him, saying, We will nothave this man to reign over us" (Luke 19:12-14). His servants were left to occupy in his absence. Among these, when he returns, he distributes the tokens of his approval or displeasure. But what becomes of the citizens who hated him, and would not submit to his reign?— 1973 Berean 261 "But those mine enemies which would not that I should reign over them, bring them hither, and SLAY THEM BEFORE ME" (v. 27). Such are the words of Jesus himself. And still further, he speaks of "days of vengeance" on the Jews, that "all things that are written may be fulfilled" (Lk. 21:22). But are approaching judgments confined to the Jews? Nay: far from it!— "There shall be signs in the sun, and in the moon, and in the stars: and upon the earth DISTRESS OF Ν A TIONS, with perplexity: the sea and the waves roaring. "Men's hearts failing them for fear, and for looking after those things which are coming ON THE EARTH: for the powers of heaven shall be shaken. "And then shall they see the Son of man coming in a cloud with power and great glory" (Lk. 21:25-27). True, the word to the DISCIPLES is (v. 28)— "And when these things begin to come to pass, then look up and lift ur> your heads, for your redemption draweth nigh." That which fills the world with forebodings, inspires with stronger hopes those who have hearkened to the Lord's voice. But even to these he says— "Take heed to yourselves lest at any time your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness and cares of this life, and so that day come upon you unawares. "FOR AS A SNARE SHALL IT COME UPON ALL THEM THAT DWELL ON THE FACE OF THE WHOLE EARTH" (vs. 34-35). How awful are these words! Are any of those quoted from the Old Testament more pregnant with solemn warning and admonition? But how is this? How can men's hearts be failing them for fear, and for looking after those things which are coming on the earth— and yet this terrible day come as a snare upon all them that dwell on the earth? Ah, there is no contradiction here. The premonitory calamities will awaken men's fears, and cause their hearts to fail, just as many hearts did fail in the convulsions of a few years ago (1848). But we have evidence all around us of how soon men's fears may be allayed: how a temporary lull soothes all to deeper slumber— slumber not disturbed but made still more fatally sweet by dreams of safety and prosperity and peace and plenty, and all that the heart of man desires to form a paradise in this evil state. It will be at such a time that, as a snare, the Day of the Lord will all at once enclose them in the grasp of those terrific judgments from which there is no escape. As Paul witnesses— "For yourselves know perfectly that the Day of the Lord so cometh as a thief in the night. "For when they shall say, Peace and safety, then sudden destruction cometh upon them, as travail upon a woman with child: and they shall not escape" (1 Th. 5:2-3). 1973 Berean 262 Want of space compels the passing over of all intermediate testimonies, that we may listen for a moment to the beloved disciple, the prophet of Patmos, and to those wondrous revelations he was privileged to receive and to communicate. What have we as one of the earliest anticipations in his prophecy? Rev. 1:7— "Behold, he cometh with clouds: and every eye shall see him, and they also which pierced him. AND ALL KINDREDS OF EARTH SHALL WAIL BECAUSE OF HIM." Visions of judgment, one after another, are beheld by the apostle. Seals are opened, trumpets are sounded, vials of wrath are poured out. War, famine, pestilence, persecution of the saints; earthquakes, judgments upon natural objects, judgments upon commerce, and judgments upon all the sources of moral influence by which men are affected; a withholding of the light which had been previously vouchsafed; the letting loose of one horde after another of infernal enemies and tormentors till men shall seek death and not find it—shall desire to die while death flees from them. These are some of the woes pronounced in this book upon the world of the ungodly. The final crisis of human iniquity is portrayed, and the principles marked out of which this crisis will be the full development. Then we are told of worse judgments still. The vials of God's wrath are to be poured out: poured upon the earth, and the sea, and the rivers and fountains of waters; on the sun; on the seat of the Beast; on the Great River: then, last of all, on the Air— "And the 7th Angel poured out his Vial into the Air: and there came a great voice out of the Temple of heaven, saying, IT IS DONE! "And there were voices, and thunders, and lightnings: and there was a great earthquake, such as was not since men were upon the earth, so mighty an earthquake, and so great" (16:17-18). Then we are told of a plague of hail, every stone about the weight of talent (v. 21). We have further details of instruction as to the ecclesiastical apostacy, and the war against Deity by the imperial power of the earth. We have the doom of Babylon, with all its luxuries, delicacies, and refinements—and heaven rejoicing at her fall. A mighty angel, taking up a stone like a millstone, and casting it into the sea, says— "Thus with violence shall that great city Babylon be thrown down, and be found no more at all . . for by thy sorceries were ALL NATIONS deceived" (18:21-23). 263 1 9 7 3 Berean But previously to the fall of mystic Babylon, the heaven opens: a white horse comes forth, and he that sat upon him, called Faithful and True, and in righteousness he JUDGES AND MAKES WAR. He is clothed in a vesture dipped in blood. He has on his vesture and on his thigh a name written: KING OF KINGS, AND LORD OF LORDS. The armies which were in the heaven follow him upon white horses, clothed in fine linen, white & clean. Out of the mouth of this glorious One goes a sharp sword with which to SMITE THE NATIONS. He is to rule them with a rod of iron. He treads the winepress of the fierceness and wrath of Almighty God. The Beast, and the kings of the earth and their armies, gather together to make war against him that sits on the horse, and against his army. The Beast and the False Prophetare taken, and cast alive into the lake of fire burning with brimstone, and their followers are slain with the sword of him that sits upon the horse (19:11-21). Such is the end of the course of this Aion, or "times of the Gentiles"! Its commerce and its pleasures, its politics and its religion, its philanthropy and its misanthropy, its hypocrisy and its blasphemy, its morality and its open wickedness—all find their termination here. Reader, whoever thou art, if thou hast not been separated from this present evil world, by God's revelation to thy heart of His Son Jesus Christ, this is the end to which thou art hastening. Thou art unconscious of it, it is true, but this makes thy situation not one whit the safer. Thou art like a man in a boat drifting down a rapid stream, with his back to the danger, and entertaining himself, as he looks up the river, with all the gay, pleasant objects which are flitting past him. But as each moment bears him onward to the falls where he must ere long be dashed to pieces, so my reader, thou art—with the poor world—gliding down to destruction. There is no hope of stopping the vessel: it must perish. God can snatch thee out of it, and rescue thee from the overthrow: and this is the only hope one can have concerning thee. God grant that these pages may be used to this end. And we, brethren—what shall WE say to these things? The detailed proof that the judgments we have been hearing of precede and introduce millennial blessing, and that it is the personal return of Christ which brings these judgments—is purposely reserved for another occasion. But can we think of such a doom awaiting the world in which we sojourn, and not sorrow for its guilty, condemned inhabitants? Did Jesus weep over ONE city, and say — "If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong unto thy peace! But now they are hid from thine eyes'* —and shall not our hearts yearn for a whole world that lieth in wickedness, and daily ripens for destruction? 1973 Berean 264 And shall we be content,my brethren, with sorrowing? The hour of judgment, near as it may be, has not yet come. The door of mercy still stands open: yea, as yet it opens into the scene of those heavenly delights and bridal glories which Christ and his brethren shall share, ere he comes forth from the wedding to execute vengeance on his foes. And shall we not use the opportunity to sound forth the Gospel of God's grace? If it be true that judgment is at the door, instead of the gradual, peaceful introduction of millennial blessedness that some expect, shall we on that account be less urgent in our entreaties, less zealous in our labors, less instant and earnest in our prayers? God forbid! Knowing the judgments which await the world around us, knowing that grace has rescued us from those judgments, and that when they are executed we ourselves shall (if worthy) be with him who executes them, is it possible that we can selfishly enjoy the thought of our own security, and leave the poor world unwarned, the grace of Christ and the Father's love unproclaimed, or poor sinners uninvited—unurged—UNENTREATED—to flee to the shelter of His open arms? Ο for more earnest love to Christ, and deeper compassion for our fellows! Brethren, the time is short. The moments glide rapidly away. Soon will the only opportunity be gone that we shall ever have of confessing our Master, and seeking his glory, in the midst of a world which either rejects him openly, or the more decidedly rejects him in reality though owning him in appearance and in word. May communion with him cause the fountains of compassion for those around us to gush forth! May men be gathered to his arms of mercy! May his people be stirred up to pray, and watch, and labor! May we humble ourselves, and stir up and exhort one another, and so much the more as we see the day approaching! Answers by Bro· Roberts THE PRESENT PRIESTHOOD OF CHRIST "We have a Great High Priest"—Hebrews 4:14 THE priesthood of Christ is one of the plainest teachings of the New Testament. In proof, we have but to refer to the following— "Wherefore, holy brethren, partakers of the heavenly calling, consider the Apostle and High Priest of our profession, Christ Jesus" (Heb. 3:1). "Seeing then that we have a Great High Priest that is passed into the heavens, Jesus, the Son of God, let us holdfast our profession. "For we have not an High Priest which cannot be touched with the feeling of our infirmities; but was in all points tempted like as we are, yet without sin" (Heb. 4:15-16). "Called of God an High Priest after the order of Melchizedek" (Heb. 5:10) 19 73 Berean "Whither the Forerunner is for us entered, even Jesus; made an High Priest for ever, after the order of Melchizedek" (Heb. 6:20). "But this man, because he continueth for ever, hath an unchangeable priesthood. Wherefore he is able also to save them to the uttermost that come unto God by him, seeing he ever liveth to make intercession for them . . "For such an High Priest became us, who is holy, harmless, undefiled, separate from sinners, and made higher than the heavens, who needeth not daily, as those high priests to offer up sacrifice, first 265 for his own sins, and then for the people's.. "For this he did once, when he offered up himself" (Heb. 7:24-27). "But Christ being come, an High Priest of good things to come, by a greater and more perfect Tabernacle, not made with hands: that is to say, not of this building" (Heb. 9:11). "And, having an High Priest over the House of God, let us draw near with a true heart, in full assurance of faith, having our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience, and our bodies washed with pure water" (Heb. 10:21-22). "My little children, these things write I unto you, that ye sin not. And if any man sin, we have an Advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the righteous" (1 John 2:1). In view of the above, there can remain no question as to the FACT of Christ in his present exalted position exercising the priestly office in behalf of those who become constituents of his House by the belief and obedience of the Truth. But the question which has suggested itself to some minds is, What does this mean? Priesthood, argue they, implies a Deity to be propitiated: and that since God is gracious He requires no propitiation; and that therefore the priesthood of Jesus must be of another order. The idea of Jesus pleading with the Father, they seem to think inconsistent with the fact that it is the Father Himself Who has made the first advances of love, and that Jesus is but the medium thru which He seeks to reconcile the world to Himself (2 Cor. 5:19). They argue that Jesus and the Father being "one," it is not possible that there could exist even that mild degree of antagonism involved in a request by the one that the other should act differently from his disposition. They are therefore disposed to suggest that the advocacy of Christ bears towards his people rather than towards the Father—that he is an Advocate FROM the Father TO us, rather than an Advocate with the Father for us. There is a certain amount of truth in these suggestions, but they are defective in omitting other elements of truth that require to be taken into account before a truthful result can be arrived at. The bearing and nature and objects of Christ's priesthood can only be apprehended in the light of first principles, taken together without the leaving out of any. While it is a first principle that God is kind, it is also a first principle that—in certain relations—He is a "consuming fire" (Heb. 12:29). Anger describes an attribute of His character, as well as love "He is angry with the wicked" (Psa. 7:11). 1973 Berean 266 "He cannot look on iniquity" (Hab. 1:13). "He is of purer eyes than to behold evil" (Hab. 1:13). "He will by no means clear the guilty" (Num. 14:18). This hostile disposition toward rebellion of every kind (a hostility—be it at the same time observed—which has its foundation in benevolence, for its objects and operation are the extirpation of the root of misery) finds shape and expression in the fact that the wages of sin is death; and is palpably illustrated in the Flood and the destruction of Sodom. God will not tolerate sin: death and sin are eternally linked: and with sinners He will hold no intercourse— "He heareth not sinners" (John 9:31). This is the immutable law of the divine government; and this fact we shall find at the basis of the institution of priesthood. Priesthood was an early institution in the relations of God to man. It existed before the Mosaic constitution of things, as evidenced by the case of Melchizedek in the days of Abraham, and probably was of antediluvian origin. Its existence embodies a principle which is practically illustrated more than once in the course of Bible history : namely, that God will not hear or deal directly with offenders, but will be entreated concerning them by those whom He regards with pleasure. The plagues of Egypt were restrained at the request of Moses. Rebellious Israel were on the point of being devoured like Korah, Dathan and Abiram, when the intercession of Moses averted the outburst of divine vengeance. Job acted as intercessor for his offending friends. They were thus addressed by the voice of God (Job 42:8)— "Take unto you now 7 bullock and 7 rams, and go to My servant Job, and offer up for yourselves a burnt offering, and My servant Job shall pray for you; "For HIM WILL I ACCEPT, lest I deal with you after your folly, in that ye have not spoken of Me the thing that is right, like My servant Job" Jeremiah was told not to intercede for Israel (7:16)— "Therefore, pray not thou for this people, neither lift up cry nor prayer for them, nor make intercession to Me, for I will not hear thee." This implies that had Israel's offences been less grievous, Jeremiah's imploration WOULD have been of some avail. But the nation's wickedness had reached such a pitch that God said to him: "Though Moses and Samuel stood before Me. yet My mind could not be toward this people" (15.1) Now, with regard to Christ, we have the same principle, but in relation to a different matter. The intercessions of the Old Testament record had reference to the limited penalties of the time then present. They were instrumental in securing immunity from the temporary evils of mortal life. They had no effect as regards the dispensation of eternal results. It was not in the power of any arrangement in force before the appearance of Christ, to secure everlasting life. 1973 Berean 267 The High Priesthood of the Law, under which the successor of Aaron once a year entered the Holiest to supplicate the blessing of Jehovah upon an offending generation, was only a type of the true mediation. As regards eternal life, the High Priest was no more in a position to be heard than any of the people. He was equally under condemnation with them, and carried the token of this fact in the blood of the slain lamb which he offered "First for his own sins, and then for the people" (Heb. 7:27) But though ineligible as an intercessor for life everlasting, the Levitical High Priest typified the Great Priest through whom mortal man might obtain a standing and a hearing in the presence of God, with reference to the forfeited gift of life for evermore. The whole arrangement of which the High Priesthood was a part was of this typical character. Paul says that the ''first tabernacle" was "a figure for the time then present" (Heb. 9:9). It allegorically prefigured the literal method by which human salvation was to be worked out. This literal method is presented in Christ. He was a spotless Son of God, wearing the condemned nature of Adam. He suffered death, and thus met the demands of the righteous law that constituted man a mortal in the Garden of Eden. He was personally sinless, and thus presented in himself an open door through which, by resurrection, sin-destroyed life could return in triumph from the grave. It was in harmony with the law of God's operations to raise to life everlasting a righteous man. It would not have been so to resuscitate and immortalize a sinner. Christ was the lamb in his meekness; the spotless lamb in his innocence; the slain lamb in his death. But he had to develop the literal counterpart to the living High Priest. This he did in rising from the dead and entering the divine presence to supplicate—in their individual details—those results which his own position as an accepted, immortalized, and well-beloved member of the human family, enabled him to acceptably intercede for. God looks only on Christ. No human being can be heard on his own merits. No man can come to the Father but by the Mediator (Jn. 14:6) The Father judgeth no man, but hath committed all judgment to the Son (Jn.5:22). Whom the Son prays for will be given to him, and he has power over all flesh, that he may give eternal life to as many as the Father gives him. 1973 Berean 268 God's relations to the condemned children of Adam's race are readjusted in the last Adam, in whom the law has been upheld, magnified, and made honorable. All of Adam's race who cast off the Old Adam in the waters of baptism concurrently with a repudiation of the Old Adam principles and practices; and constitutionally put on the New Man—Christ Jesus—become morally incorporated with the new mediatorial man in the presence of God, and will be physically assimilated to him and by him at the resurrection. But are there no transgressions after the initiatory union in baptism? Does the weakness of the flesh not continue still in operation, leading to remissnesses, failures of duty, and positive offences ^ "1/we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the Truth is not in us" (1 John 1:8). Now, what is it that prevents these post-immersional sins from being as fatal as Adam's disobedience in the Garden? By what arrangement are Christ's people saved from the death-power of their own offences? The answer is in the words of John — "If any man sin, we have an Advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the righteous" (1 John 2:1). Again (1 John 1:9)— "If we confess our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins, and to cleanse us from all unrighteousness." See also the passages quoted at the commencement of this article. God heareth not sinners, but He hears Christ, and through him will forgive unto life eternal. We are, therefore, says Paul, having such an High Priest (one who sympathizes with our infirmities from having tasted them), to— "Come boldly to the throne of grace, that we may obtain mercy, and find grace to help in time of need" (Heb. 4:16). "He ever liveth to MAKE INTERCESSION for us" (Heb. 7:2$). And he intercedes for those who come to avail themselves of his intercession, but none else. It was only for those transgressors who brought the typical sacrifice to the priest at the door of the Tabernacle that the priest interceded. So it is only for those who make confession in prayer, and supplicate the divine forgiveness in the Name of Jesus, that Christ's mediatorial function will be exerted. Israel did not worship the High Priest: they sought the Increate God of their fathers through the High Priest; worshipping without while he interceded within. So the people of Christ worship not Christ, but, in the Name of Jesus, worship God. And Jesus, in the presence of God maketh intercession. And God hears him, and through him—by the means of His personal will—vouchsafes the blessings sought. There is nothing in all this to clash with the fact that God is gracious to our worthless race. His love is shown in establishing an arrangement by which we have access to His favor and life for evermore. His love could not be allowed to violate any other attribute of His being. It must work in harmony with all His rules and methods of operation. And this is what it does in the work of Christ. God was "in Christ reconciling the world to Himself" (2 Cor. 5:19), but the METHOD OF RECONCILIATION was by sacrifice and mediation. God advances to us through Christ, but yet His advance takes the form of appointing a Mediator— 1973 Berean 269 "To make intercession according to His will" (Rom. 8:27). It need not be urged that present forgiveness of sins interferes with the operation of the judgment seat. If we were now made immortal in answer to our prayers for forgiveness, such a reflection might arise, but all that is done is the obliteration of the offences from the divine mind. If they were not so obliterated, they would be disclosed against us at the judgment seat to our condemnation. Unpardoned sins will be fatal, and the pardon is to be sought NOW in daily prayer without ceasing. Yet—practically—the judgment seat will witness and administer the results of prayer. We know not till then if our prayers are heard. God knows now. He "knoweth them that are His," but it is not permitted us to know the secrets of His counsels toward ourselves until the Day which He hath appointed for the disclosure of them by the mouth of Jesus Christ, whom He has constituted Judge of the quick and the dead. It would be a fatal mistake to overlook the priesthood of Christ, as now accessible to his Household by prayer. The Truth would be of no use to us if we did. The intercession of Christ is necessary to our salvation; and we can only set it in motion in our individual behalf by individual prayer. To live in disregard of this would be soon to decay from our places in the True Vine, and, finally, at his coming, to drop as withered branches to the ground, to be bundled up for consumption, with all other fruitless branches, for any cause cut off.—1869. Let Every One Please His Neighbor FINAL (Sunday morning) ADDRESS, HYE, TEXAS GATHERING, 1973 "And it came to pass that the cloud was taken up from off the Tabernacle of the Testimony, and the children of Israel took their journeys*'—Numbers 10:11-12 ROMANS, CHAPTERS 14-15-16 THERE came a time, in the lives of the. Children of Israel, when the Cloud went up from the Tabernacle, and they again took up their wilderness journey. We have just sung together Hymn 41— "Awake, asleep, at home, abroad, 1973 Berean 270 We are surrounded still with God . . Oh, may these thoughts possess each breast, Where'er we rove, where'er we rest And, since Thou dost Thy Children see, May we be holy like to Thee." In our day by day assembly under this Tabernacle, we should not fail to see in our surroundings—the green pastures, the quiet river below us, the pasturing sheep which we must pass on our way here, those sheep, young arid old, browsing upon the natural verdure of this river valley—we should not fail to see in these things our own situation for the past seven days. We should be impressed with the exalted position we have enjoyed here—that of all the earth's millions, we a few, together with other brethren and sisters throughout the world, have been called to know the wonderful workings of an Allwise Creator. We have just concluded our reading of the Epistle to the Romans once more, according to the Bible Companion. These last chapters, read this morning, impress us with this family closeness: the oneness of the Body of Christ, the interrelationship of all our activities, our need for care and concern for each other, even as we have observed in these pasturing sheep down the river banks. Yesterday we "Put ye on the Lord Jesus Christ" (Rom. 13:14). 'Tutting on" may be likened to donning a garment, endowing, covering with. We put on the Lamb of God. We put on his raiment. We must put on the Divine character which so clearly clothed Christ Jesus in all his actions and thoughts. This "putting on" is the clothing or adorning of the heart— "Whose adorning, let itbe.. the hidden man of the heart . . a meek and quiet spirit" (1 Pet. 3:3-4). Unless this is accomplished, we are of that category of which Paul speaks to the Ephesian elders, on his last visit to them at Miletus. Among them, he said, would be found wolves in sheep's clothing. This must not be the manner of our adornment. It must be of the heart, as of the Lamb without spot and without blemish. We must therefore, having endowed ourselves with this characteristic, manifest the same loving care that Christ exhibited all through his life. As we read and reread his life, we find that his was not a selective care—just one here and there. He concerned himself with the whole flock, strong and weak alike. As Paul later—after his trials and tribulations—manifested to the Corinthians, the "care of all the ecclesias" fell upon him. Our care likewise should be for all the brethren and sisters, wherever they be. The attitude of Cain- « A m , my brother>s keeper?" —must be far removed from every heart. We, verily, brethren and sisters, ARE our brother's keeper— "Inasmuch as ye done it unto one of the least of these my brethren,, ye have done it unto me." So spake the Master, just before he laid down his life for his brethren. And if we have done it unto Christ, we have done it unto God. Again we read together yesterday— "Him that is weak in the Faith, receive ye" (Rom. 14:1). This verse includes all of us. We were weak, and without strength. That was our natural condition. If, while we were in that condition, God had not made the first move, we would now be strengthless in relation to eternal salvation—every one of us. God made the first move of love and reconciliation— 1973 Berean 271 "We love, because God first loved us." As we have read again this week in Rom. 5:6-8— "When we were yet without strength (that is, weak, helpless), in due time Christ died for us. . "God commended (introduced, exhibited, caused to stand near us) His love—His great love—in that while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us." Remember, this was the first move. We are all beneficiaries of that move, if we follow in the steps of His Son. One more look at these pasturing sheep down by the river. We have noticed, as we passed, that some are robust and healthy, while others are lean and sickly. Similarly, we will notice a wide range of perception among those who are called to be the children of God. Their backgrounds, circumstances, capabilities and opportunities will all vary. Shall we question God's selection? We know the lesson of the talents—brought to our attention this week in our studies together. Those talents which were bestowed were for the Master's advantage, while he is absent. This should teach us that the same divine measuring of attainment, during our sojourn, according to what we each have been given, will be a fair and just measurement. All have been created, formed, and molded by God, as the Master Potter. True, one talent should bring forth in kind, in full measure—but we cannot expect 10 for one. God alone has the right to determine the increase required. He alone knows each heart, and what is possible in each case. These are objective thoughts in relation to the flock of God, and of our own personal view toward the flock. Personally, in relation to ourselves—and this is an introspective view—we each one must press with all our powers toward the mark of the prize of our high calling; must agonize toward that goal. We have been shown this week what agonizing really means, in the supreme sacrifice of Christ— "Father, if it be possible, let this cup pass from me.. Nevertheless not my will, but Thine, be done." "Being in an agony (in the Garden), he prayed more earnestly: And his sweat was, as it were, great drops of blood." Brethren and sisters, this was for us. Are we able, th$n, to enter into the same degree of concern for each other? Or are we indifferent and thoughtless toward our fellow-companions? If we truly enter into these things, we shall agonize for, or because of, each of our brethren and sisters. Paul speaks in Rom. 8 about the whole creation being subject to vanity, and for a purpose: to develop us. But here we were shown that we all need help— 1973 Berean 272 "The Spirit also helpeth our infirmities: for we know not what we should pray for as we ought: but the Spirit itself maketh intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered" (Rom. 8:26). We do not know how to pray. We do not know what to pray for. But we are asked to pray, seeking Divine direction of our thoughts— "He that searcheth the hearts knoweth what is the mind of the Spirit, because he maketh intercession for the saints according to the will of God" (v. 27). Christ knows. He went through this vale of tears. He knows how to intercede, for it is through Christ that we approach unto God in prayer. Paul's own disposition is illustrated in what he writes to the Colossians- , F o r l w o u i d that ye knew what great conflict (agona—struggle, agony) I have for you" (2:1). Can we truthfully say that we agonize for the welfare of our brethren and sisters—the brethren and sisters of Christ? That this is our chief concern in life? When we look at the lives of Christ's disciples, we see a varying cross-section of understanding among them. We will find the same situation throughout the Brotherhood today—differing degrees of perception. In our growth in the Truth, we have all passed through (or should have passed through) various phases and degrees of understanding. Yet even today, who has attained to the plateau of bro. Roberts, of bro. Thomas, of the apostle Peter, or Paul, or Christ? Paul tells us not to measure ourselves by ourselves (2 Cor. 10:12). In those wellknown words in 1 Cor. 11 he says— "Be ye followers (imitators, copiers) of me, even AS I ALSO AM OF CHRIST.' Christ must be the primary pattern for all, even as he was for Paul. As we read the gospel records we are impressed with the depth of the writings of John, when compared with the different style of Matthew, Mark and Luke. Is there a distinction? All were by the Spirit of God directed. It was Paul—whose epistles we have been considering this week, Paul the persecutor of the Brotherhood—who later had on one occasion to withstand Peter, because he was to be blamed. Yet it was the same Peter who could write, years later— "Our beloved brother Paul, according to the wisdom given unto him, hath written unto you" (2 Pet. 3:15). These things should place a different perspective on what we see in our brethren and sisters: on how we should value their association. "Our beloved brother": this deep mutual affection appears again throughout Rom. 16, read among us this morning— "Beloved in the Lord . . Stachys my beloved . . beloved Persis." Are we so affectionately moved toward the brethren and sisters that God has given us today? Do we feel as the apostle did, about every one of OUR brethren and sisters with whom we run the race of life? We read yesterday in Rom. 14:3 that— "God hath received him." 1973 Berean 273 Whom had God received?— "Him that is weak in the Faith." If God hath received our brother, actually taken him unto Himself, it is important that we feel the same way. It is vital that we perceive the operation of God's hand in the lives of all our brethren and sisters. It is not for us to choose whom we shall associate with, except strictly according to the commandments of God: never according to our own preferences and desires. It is all for a purpose. Not one sparrow falls to the ground that God is unconscious of. Naturally speaking, we would feel like James and John—to call down fire from heaven when things do not please us. If we react this way—the way of the flesh—we need the instruction of Christ, as he gently gave it to them— "Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of" (Luke 9:55). It is quite obvious, in reading the epistles, that Paul did not find conditions and situations always pleasing to him. In fact, many of the epistles which we read at least twice each year actually came into being as a result of situations that needed exhortation and guidance, and have been preserved to teach us also. For this we should be thankful to God that these things have been brought about for our benefit—and that, in the wise providence of God, by means of weaknesses and need for instruction in earlier brethren and sisters. While varying talents exist, varying degrees of energy and zeal, of effort and agonizing, we must ever pray God in relation to our own selves that we faithfully use the full measure of strength and energy and ability that God has given to each of us. "For God hath received him." Paul desired to see a clear perception of the Truth in the hearts and minds of all his associates. His love was misunderstood, his zeal was laid to self-seeking, his concern for others as a desire for preeminence. This came upon him from without and from within. When he asked that the "thorn" be taken away, the Lord replied— "My grace is sufficient for thee: for my strength is made perfect in weakness" (2 Cor. 12:9). Similarly we read yesterday from 2 Sam. 22:36, in David's beautiful prayer of thanksgiving— "Thy gentleness hath made me great." It was not David in his military exploits: it was David in his weakness, in his lowliness of mind, in his complete submission to the hand of God. And so, with Paul, the thorn had to stay. The Lord had placed it there, to serve a beneficial and eternal purpose, to the glory of God and the spiritual welfare of the suffering apostle. And God causes the thorns to grow around the roses, and the roses are nonetheless beautiful and fragrant, amid the thorns. 1973 Berean 274 "God hath received him." The basis of all we do is defined in Rom. 14:6— "He that regardeth the day, regardeth it unto the Lord; and he that regardeth not the day, to the Lord he doth not regard it. "He that eateth, eateth to the Lord, for he giveth God thanks. ." That's the important phrase: "He giveth God thanks"— ".. and he that eateth not, to the Lord he eateth not.." And, again: "He giveth thanks." The principle of all our actions must be thankfulness to God for everything (1 Th. 5:18)— "In EVERYTHING, give thanks: for this is the will of God." Every act and thought must be with the glory of God in mind. Then our actions will be acceptable. If we eat or refrain from eating—or do anything else—only to be considered as martyrs by our brethren, or to exalt our own position, then we have pride and self-glorying. The heart is deceitful above all things. Having been received by God, whether strong or weak, we each must perceive that we were all in need of having our infirmities removed, in need of being endured by God in patience and love, as He in our lives manifests His constant long-suffering, not willing that any one of us should perish. So Paul declares— "Who are thou that judgeth another's servant? To his own Master he standeth or falleth. Yea, he shall be holden up, for God is able to make him stand" (Rom. 14:4). Being received by God, we all—strong and weak, able and unable—are related to Him as His sons and daughters. We are all, every one of us, members of His family. We are all members of a common Body. We do not exist as separate entities, once we have entered into Christ, any more than any part of the natural body is able to function, or remain healthy, or even stay alive at all, without the life-giving nourishment which is by joints and marrow moved from place to place throughout our bodies. This natural operation we take so casually every day without concern—until one member ceases to function or to perform its constant service to the body. "The eye cannot say unto the hand, I have no need of thee: nor again the head to the feet" (1 Cor. 12:21) That is, "lean manage quite well without you," or, "It does not make any difference to me what you do." That is not the spirit of the Truth, and it cannot be the spirit of any of the members of the Body of Christ. The whole orderly functioning of the Body is completely inter-related, and must respond in unison, as one entity, with joy and with sorrow. The Greek word for "please," in the command— "Let every one of us please his neighbor." !973 —carries this meaning— Berean 275 "To excite emotion, to be agreeable to." In following Paul's analogy in 1 Cor. 12, we know in the natural that when one part of the body is affected for good or for ill, there is a complete response of the whole nervous system which alerts the basic functions to immediately provide what is necessary for the care of the affected member. Even so it is—or should be—in the spiritual Body of which we are individual components, operating in unison and harmony and immediate mutual concern. For, says the apostle (v.7)— "None of us liveth to himself, and no man dieth to himself." Paul urges (v. 9) that it was for this perfect health of the Body that Christ died, and rose, and revived— "That he might be Lord both of the dead and living." "Why, then," he continues (v. 10)— ". . dost thou judge (condemn) thy brother? Or why dost thou set at nought thy brother?" "At nought" means to treat with utter contempt; literally, "to put out as nothing." Remember that God is the Judge of all. In 1 Cor. 10:12, after referring to Israel's failures, Paul warns us that we should take heed—not to our brother—but to ourselves— "Let him that thinketh he standeth take heed lest he fall." We are not "saved" now, except in a prospective sense. We are in the process of being saved. We cannot assume that because we have (or think we have) strength, we do not need to stand at the judgment seat—but that only those weak vessels must do so. Rather— "ALL flesh (all inclusive) is as grass . . that withereth." All the strength of man must be humbled. All must recognize and confess that their salvation will only be a result of the mercy of God, and by nothing unto which we have attained by the use of our own faculties. Paul continues— "As I live, saith the Lord, every knee shall bow to Me, and every tongue shall confess to God" (Rom. 14:11). Such a quotation by Paul, at this point in his reasoning, is evidence that God will bring everyone who is responsible to the judgment seat. None have yet attained. There have only been a few—very special characters in God's purpose—who have been given any direct assurance that they will be in the Kingdom of God. And even such must stand before the tribunal of Christ, that their works may be revealed for all to see. Paul said of himself (2 Tm. ' "There is laid up for me a crown of righteousness." But he also said (2 Cor. 5:10)— "We (including himself) must ALL appear before the judgment seat of Christ." What for? To bless God. For God's glory. In these instances also, it will be clearly evident that their salvation has been predicated on the mercy of God. 1973 Berean 276 Paul continues his exhortation to discern the effects of our action and conduct in relation to our brethren and sisters. Every word and deed must be mentally tested to be sure that they in no way cause our companions, our brethren and sisters, to stumble, or be offended, or depart from the Faith. We must be a source of STRENGTH and encouragement, not weakness and offense, to each other. Note what we have read in Rom. 15:1— "We that are strong ought to bear the infirmities of the weak, and NOT TO PLEASE OURSELVES." Our life in the Truth—and having put on Christ, that is the only life we should have—consists not in meat and drink, in pleasing ourselves, in catering to the flesh, to the carnal mind, to the exciting of fleshly desires and emotions—the empty things of this world that the Gentiles seek. Paul uses his own circumstances to stress and illustrate his point- ..Allthingsarelawfulforme·. (l CorA0:23h Because of his position, his strength in the Spirit, his very clear perception and discernment, he could have done many things which would in no way have affected his standing before Christ. His conscience would have been quite clear. But he hastens to add— ". . but all things are not expedient." This is the crowning thought, for it prevented him from using his position and his knowledge to please himself. He was very careful that at no time would be please himself, or consider his own desires and comfort. There are far more important and over-riding considerations than our own personal liberties and the indulging of our 4 'freedom in Christ/' due to our strength in God, and understanding in the Spirit. If we believe we are among the "strong," we must share that strength and energy with our companions toward the Kingdom. We must be careful to do nothing to offend them, though we ourselves may perceive it is "lawful." "All things are not expedient" The word "expedient" (sumphero) means "to bear together, to bring together." If we please ourselves, ignoring the effect upon our brethren and sisters, we are not bearing or carrying the load together. We may be perfectly "lawful," but we are not Christlike. We are self-centered, we are selfish, we are selfseeking. We are not manifesting what the Spirit requires of us— "Bear ye one another's burdens, and so fulfil the law of Christ." This is the "royal law," which James defines as— 'Thou shalt love thy neighbor AS THYSELF." This is the real fulfilling of the Law— 1973 Berean zn "To love the Lord our God with all our heart, and our neighbor as ourself." This IS 'excellent,' because in that word we are bearing one another's burdens. Every day, God endures—actually tolerates—us in our weakness and failures, with much longsuffering, because He is not willing that any should perish. He, by example and precept, calls upon us to endure and sustain our brethren and sisters in their weaknesses. When Paul calls upon us to "endure," and tells us that true spiritual love "endures ALL things," he does not mean that we should be stoically indifferent to care for others' problems, or as though it were a painful duty we must resignedly carry. Rather he means we must wholeheartedly and sympathetically enter into the afflictions of others, as being partakers, or fellowshipers with them of their sufferings, just as the physical body must and does enter into the aches and pains of any part thereof— "We that are strong ought to bear the infirmities of the weak." The word "infirmity" is related to the same root as our word "asthma," actually, "not to have breath." "Breath" is used in a natural sense as that by which our life and existence are sustained, the living and breathing moment to moment. In this question it refers to spiritual perception. Notice the force of Paul's argument— "If thy brother be grieved with thy meat, nowwalkest thou not charitably. Destroy not him with thy meat for whom Christ died." Christ is the fulness of the power of God. And in his fulness he died for all such as Paul is speaking of. We are among that such. Shall we, in that which we think is our strength, bring to nothing the work of God in Christ Jesus?— "For meat, destroy not the WORK OF GOD" (v. 20). We are all the work of God, every one of us, strong and weak. "Meat" here is whatever we believe we have liberty in Christ to indulge in, regardless of the scruples or feelings of others. Paul presents the Christlike course (v. 19)— "Let us follow after (pursue, press toward) the things which make for peace, and the things whereby one may edify (build up, strengthen, not tear down) another." "Follow after" in this case does not mean trailing behind reluctantly. It is a strong, active word, the same word Paul uses in— "I PRESS (dioko—pursue) toward the mark of the prize of the high calling in Christ Jesus." (Phil. 3:14). His whole salvation depended on the energetic, zealous, striving for the prize. This is how we must "pursue" the things that make for peace among our brethren and sisters, and the edificatien—building up—of each other in love. This does not mean at any time a compromise of the Truth. Paul is speaking of our following our own desires without Christlike love and concern for the feelings of others. Just to please ourselves, as we may feel that we have liberty and right, let us not destroy in any way the work of God—that which He is patiently accomplishing in thOSe arOUnd US. 1973 Berean 278 Where WE may fail, in regard to our brethren and sisters, in carrying their burdens, holding up the failing hands, strengthening the feeble knees, then GOD is able to provide in another manner. We can well say, as Mordecai said to Esther— "If we altogether hold our peace (or do nothing in a time of need), then shall enlargement and deliverance arise from another place, but we shall be destroyed." It will be said to many, in the great day of account— "Inasmuch as ye did it not unto the least of these my brethren, ye did it not to me. Depart from me!" Now is our brief day of opportunity to serve Christ in serving his brethren, and so to escape these dreadful words of rejection. "Even Christ pleased not himself, but as it is written, the reproaches of them that reproached Thee fell on me." (Rom. 15:3) Paul quotes this from Psa. 69, which speaks of Christ's last extremity, which we have considered this week. Paul illustrates (v. 4) that these things were written for our learning. They were not written for the prophet's immediate generation, but— "For our learning, that we through patience and comfort of the Scriptures might have hope." —that we might learn patience and comfort from the Scriptures. Without these—patience and comfort—we will never have hope. Here, in the example of Christ, is the way we should act toward each other. Christ accepted or permitted the reproaches of God to come upon himself in enduring the cross. Paul's reference to Psa. 69 at such a time is especially forceful in view of our memorial service this morning— "Save me, Ο God, for the waters are come in unto my soul! . . "The zeal of Thine house hath eaten me up: and the reproaches of them that reproached Thee fell upon me. . "They that sit in the gate speak against me: and I am the song of the drunkards . . "Reproach hath broken my heart, and I am full of heaviness; and I looked for some to take pity, but there was none: for comforters, but I found none . . "They gave me gall for my meat; and in my thirst they gave me vinegar to drink" (vs. 1,9,12,20, 21). 1973 Berean 279 Then vs. 32-33 give the joyful side, if we respond to these things— "The humble shall see this, and be glad: and your heart shall live that seek God. For the Lord heareth the poor, and despisethm not His prisoners." If we are of the scripturally humble and poor, then God is working gloriously through Christ in our lives, as Paul goes on to say in v. 5— "The God of patience and consolation grant you that ye might be likeminded one toward another, according to Christ Jesus." That is, according to his beautiful example, and according to his commandments to his brethren. If we are truly part of Jesus Christ, if we have properly put on—been endowed with—Christ's sincovering garments, we will joyfully act toward one another even as Christ has illustrated in giving his whole life to carry OUR burdens. This week of fellowship together should have filled us with the fulness of God in Christ Jesus, as Paul expresses it in vs. 13-14— "Now the God of hope fillyou with ALL JOY and peace in believing, that ye may abound in hope, through the power of the Holy Spirit. "And I myself am persuaded of you, my brethren, that ye also are FULL OF GOODNESS, filled with all knowledge, able also to admonish one another." The loving care shown by Paul for the ecclesias is evident in the closing verses. He tells the Roman brethren that, if God permit, he will visit them in time to come, after he had performed a loving service on behalf of his brethren and sisters in Macedonia and Achaia for the needy believers in Jerusalem. If such were enjoying the spiritual blessings from the Jewish saints at Jerusalem, it was fitting that they share their natural blessings with them. Paul assures the Roman brethren that he is willing to spend and be spent for his family in Christ Jesus. He knew that bitter persecution lay ahead, on the path that the Lord Jesus had laid out for him. He entreated them to pray unto the Father for him, that he might be delivered from unreasonable men, and from those that would oppose themselves in Jerusalem. But the prospect of certain affliction did not deter him from going forward on the set path of duty and service. We come now to the final chapter (16) of his message to those at Rome. Here we find a list of names—a very interesting list of names, inscribed in the book of remembrance for certain actions and characteristics— 2: 3: 4: 6: 8: "She hath been a succourer of many"—Phebe. "My helpers in Christ Jesus"—Priscilla and Aquila. "They have for my life laid down their own necks." "Who hath bestowed much labor on us"—Mary. "My beloved in the Lord"—Amplias. 'Our beloved brother"—do we feel that way toward all those whom God has given us as companions Zionward? We must. This IS the Truth in its living fulness! 10: "Approved in Christ"—Apelles. What a glorious assurance! It is for those who agonize for righteousness as Christ and Paul did, casting aside all else. 12: 12: 13: 16: "Who labor in the Lord"—Tryphena and Tryphosa. "The beloved Persis, which labored much." "Chosen in the Lord"—Rufus. "Greet one another with an holy kiss." 1973 Berean 280 Paul then turns to a warning exhortation, in reference to those who nominally are in the Body, but do not enter into the works of the Spirit. Their names are not in this list of life and spiritual activity. He concludes with fraternal greetings to all that be in Rome, to all those he knew in Rome, from those companions who traveled with him. This was a greeting from those who labored with the apostle, a salutation of love and fellowship which we have received and been comforted by this week, as we have labored together toward the Kingdom. Soon after, Paul took his journey to Jerusalem. We learn from the Acts that he was viciously attacked, and beaten, and taken prisoner, and that he languished in prison for 2 years in Caesarea at the whim of wicked men. Then of his arraignment before Festus and Agrippa, his appeal to Caesar, and of his consignment—because of that appeal—to Rome to the hearing of Augustus. In Acts 27 we read of one of Paul's terrible experiences of "perils of the sea." Here we see his bold faith in God, and his concern for his fellow-travelers that they, through the mercy of God, might be delivered. They are shipwrecked, and winter on the isle of Melita. In the spring, they renew their journey. So again, for us, brethren and sisters, "the cloud goes up from the Tabernacle." Once more we must take our journey. "And after 3 months" (Luke records), "we departed in a ship of Alexandria which had wintered in the isle.. "And landing at Syracuse, we tarried there 3 days. And from thence we fetched a compass, and came toRhegium .. "And after one day the south wind blew, and we came the next day to Puteoli, where we found brethren, and were desired to tarry with them 7 days . . " This would appear to be in order to break bread together. "And so we went toward Rome. And from thence, when the brethren heard of us, they came to meet us as far as Appii Forum and the Three Taverns . , Whom, when Paul saw, he thanked God and took courage." Brethren and sisters, from these associations together, let us feel of one another, as "our beloved brother," our brethren and sisters in Christ Jesus. For these wonderful associations together, let us— "THANK GOD, AND TAKE COURAGE!" —E.F.H. ----—--•—--•-———--——· 1973 Berean 281 CORNELIUS RECEIVING THE SPIRIT BEFORE BAPTISM Some think this strange, but the impression of strangeness vanishes if we have in view the object to be accomplished. It was that God might stamp with His own approbation the offer of life eternal to the Gentiles, with whom, as Peter said, it had been till then unlawful for the Jews to mingle. That this is the view Peter took is evident from what he says in Acts 11:17. The outpouring of the Spirit on these Gentiles did not displace their water baptism, for THAT WAS THE VERY FIRST THING THAT PETER COMMANDED THEM (10:47): And it was not intended to deny the hopelessness of their position as Gentiles, which Paul affirms (Eph. 2:12)—it was to sanction their invitation INTO the way of hope (Acts 11:14). And God foreknew their entrance therein—it was an anticipatory act, like Ananias addressing Paul as "brother" before the act of immersion (Acts 9:17).—Bro. Roberts, 1897. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "Vain man would be wise, though man be born like a wild ass's colt"—Job 11:12 CHINA A NUCLEAR POWER: Now China's nuclear missiles have range to wipe out Tokyo or devastate Russia's industrial heartland. In 2 or 3 yrs. expected to have 7000-mile 3-megaton missiles able to reach virtually all major targets in US. For 24 yrs. policies of most nations have depended on their relations with the 2 nuclear power, US & Russia. Now there are 3. What would happen to US if Russia and China patched up differences? China's leaders have said they could lose 200 million people, & still fight back. Chinese population not concentrated in areas that can be targeted. Peking is pressing development of solid-fuel missiles for subs: US could in time face 2 hostile sub forces cruising off its shores with nuclear weapons. Size of China's new silos being built indicate missiles bigger than Russia's 20-megaton SS-9. (USN 5:28) NOTE: There is no specific prophecy, but it would surely seem China must be pro-Russian and anti-VS at the Armageddon crisis, though at present it serves as a check on Russia until the proper time comes. Both are vicious, ruthless, anti-God dictatorships. Neither dares permit its enslaved millions any true freedom of thought or expression, religious or otherwise. Both tell their own people that the current detente with US is just a temporary expedient to get certain advantages. Truly they are national rivals for leadership of the Communist world. And Russia holds 100s of 1000s of square miles of Chinese territory taken when China was weak and divided. But even bitter rivals can join as expediency dictates (remember Hitler and Stalin). Both are viciously anti-Israel, which is the ultimate key issue. WATERGATE & CORRUPTION. Last week, Watergate scandal revealed as part of a sad, slow process of the corruption of power—bending of ethics & laws into outright police-state tactics as Nixon Administration lost all sense of difference between U.S.'s welfare & its own. Week's worst news was emerging picture of almost routine resort to illegality by top U.S. officials. Foreign countries wondering whether Nixon could continue to play a forceful role in world affairs. Support for Nixon has become a political liability in Congress. Senators up for reelection bending over backward to vote against Administration. (Nwk 5:28) NOTE: Just now, when US needs moral strength and integrity to gain world credibility and to stand up to Russia, corruption for small ignoble political ends has made an open mockery of all its high-flown idealistic rhetoric. A strong, decent US might have rallied world opinion against the creeping shadow of Russian dictatorship. But that is not to be. FINLAND: RUSSIAN IDEA OF MODEL COUNTRY: Moscow considers Russia-Finland treaty of 1948 would be ideal basis for treaty with W. Europe. Finland totally dependent on Moscow's will. Russia has monopoly in supplying Finland's arms. Finland forced into Comecon— the Communist version of Common Market. Finns have no doubt about Russia's plans to extend power. They say withdrawal of US from Europe would end Finns' marginal freedoms: "If Sweden & Norway were in Finland's present position, then Finland would be in same position as Poland is today." (USN 5:28). NOTE: This is exactly what prophecy requires—the "Finlandization" of Europe under Russia's thumb. Arab oil—Europe's economic lifeblood—may be a major factor in the enslavement. 1973 Berean 282 VIET PEACE HOPES FADE: Things going from bad to worse in Indochina. N. Viets strengthening forces in South for major operation: building airfields, bringing in over 400 tanks. Communist campaign to kill village leaders: assassinations quadrupled in past 2 months. (USN5:28) NOTE: Surely this was obvious from the beginning of the "peace" arrangement. US failed in Vietnam, and got out. The Communists now hold more territory than ever. They have Russia and China—close neighbors— strongly behind their drive to make all Indochina Communist. The military dictatorship in Thailand—US's current mainstay in the area—has just been toppled by revolutionary students. GREEK COUP FAILS. Involved majority of Greece's naval units, plus elements of air force & army. Was betrayed: 200 officers, including dozen admirals & generals under arrest. In return for keeping its only remaining naval base in E. Mediterranean, US gives large amounts of military aid to Greek dictators. Attempted army coup shows armed forces deeply unhappy & therefore an uncertain element. Now US not sure they were right in backing Papadopoulos. (Nwk. 6:11) NOTE: Thailand in the East: Greece in the West. What shaky foundations US is building its anti-Russian defences on! Both are unpopular military despotisms. But they are the best allies available. INDIA & AFRICA FACE FAMINE. Their land parched by drought, their crops dead & their cattle dying, 200 million Indians face disastrous famine in months ahead. A tragic mixture of drought & crop-destroying floods has crippled rice production in Asian nations from Ceylon to Philippines. In China, 40 million face hungry months ahead. In Africa, situation's even worse. Most severe drought in 60 years has turned vast portions of 6 impoverished West African nations into arid wastelands: millions may die. India confronted by possibly worst famine in living memory. Human greed & corruption have kept food & water from some of the neediest areas. Half-starved Indians line up for hours in over 110 degree temperatures for 'rations — but many leave empty-handed because of insufficient supplies. Shortages largely due to drought in North & floods in South. Up to 80 pet. of livestock in Niger, Mali, Chad, Upper Volta, Senegal & Mauritania have perished. Farmers have exhausted food supplies & are scratching out an existence by eating seed grains stored for future planting—virtually guaranteeing hunger next year as well. Drought has wrecked millions of acres of cultivated & grazing land, making it unusable for years to come. Because of protein deficiency, 10s of 1000s of children destined to grow up mental & physical cripples. (Nwk 6:4) NOTE: "Greed and corruption" are given credit for much of the misery. Greed and corruption are the basic constituents of the natural man, as amply testified by Scripture, and amply manifested by history—and by contemporary history more than ever before. Earth's population mushrooms—doubling every 30 years. Food is already short. Clearly the end BERLIN'S YOUTH SHIFTS LEFT. University of Berlin now hotbed of radicalism. Shift to left reflects similar move among all of W. German students. Some young people seemed to have completely swallowed Communist propaganda line. One fashionable theory among German students is that U.S. deliberately kept Germany short of food after WW II to force them into Western camp. (Nwk 6:11) NOTE: Germany must unite with Russia. The obvious corruption of German and US politics is helping to drive Germany's youth into Russia's spider-web. 1973 Berean 283 US's SLIPPING POSITION. U.S. being overtaken by other countries: will soon cease to be "richest country in world." As late as '68, U.S. per capita income exceeded other leading countries by 1 / 3 to 1/2. Now Sweden, Switzerland & Germany on same level; France, Holland & Japan soon will be. Given the faster rate at which foreign countries are growing, the basic trends can hardly be in doubt. U.S. international role will decline. Mood of many Americans: "So what? " That misses the realities of a world where many countries have relied on U.S. to preserve peace & stability. Could U.S. do something to keep from falling behind? Not much. U.S. became rich because it grew stably, & has not suffered the devastations of major wars that have set back other countries. But U.S. has never saved or invested a high fraction of its income, as other countries have. (Nwk 5:28) NOTE: US has "wasted its substance in riotous living." It is becoming a "have-not" nation in terms of basic economic and industrial resources and raw materials. On the other hand, Russia has an immense and largely untouched treasure of mineral resources. US has taken its world dominion for granted as eternally assured, due to some assumed superiority of its people. Past empires have had the same delusion. KIDNAPPING IN ARGENTINA. In past year, guerrillas in Buenos Aires have seized at least 6 foreign executives & extracted ransoms of $3/4million to $2 million. May be only beginning. Many companies refuse to report for fear of further trouble. Experts say ransoms in first half of '73 total over $5 million; over $20 million in past 2 years. Life for foreign businessmen in Argentina now practically unbearable: must move in irregular patterns; shift sleeping places; houses surrounded with barbed wire & bodyguards. (Nwk 6:11) NOTE: Political terrorism is one of the major fulfilments of the prophetic "earth filled with violence" in the last day. "One sinner destroyeth much good." A small band of fanatical and dedicated terrorists can make democratic govt. impossible—especially where it is not strong and deeprooted. "NO-FAULT" DIVORCES CATCHING ON. Divorce at all-time high in U.S., & easier to get than ever before. Almost 1 / 3 of states have "no-fault" divorce. In past year 851,000 divorces in U.S.: more than doubled in 10 years. The "no-fault" concept has begun to lead to "do-it-yourself" divorce—kits are $25.00. In parts of California, divorce obtainable by mail. (USN6:4) NOTE: Jesus said of both Noah's day and the day of his return, that "marrying and giving in marriage" would be one of the major signs. Clearly he did not mean marriage as such, but corruption of "marriage." Marriage, in any true, wholesome sense, is rapidly ceasing to exist in US, and elsewhere too. When the relationship is not mutually entered with the since re'dedicatibn of faithfulness for life, then it ceases to have any claim at all to the term "marriage" in any sense, and is mere legalized fornication. VIETNAM'S WAR-TORN CHILDREN. Rare is the Viet child who hasn't been scarred by war which knew no fixed boundaries or front lines, & made little distinction between soldier & civilian, adult & child. There are 100s of 1000s of maimed & crippled children, who not only suffer physical agony but face a life of isolation in a society that has traditionally turned its back on weak & disabled. Up to lVfe million children have lost one or both parents. A tragedy of life & limbs whose magnitude we will never know. (Nwk 5:28) NOTE: These are the tragic realities of man's animal struggle for power and wealth and glory. 1973 Berean 284 DOLLAR KEEPS PLUNGING. Further turn from $, scramble for gold at soaring prices. Experts take sceptical view of $s future. Watergate scandal is an important depressant. It's hard to find a bright spot in gloomy currency outlook: $ in deep trouble: inflation out of hand everywhere. (USN 6:11) $ HITS NEW LOW. During past 2 years, once-almighty $ has lost 26 pet. of its value against currency of other major nations. Last week it plummeted again to new lows. In past 2 years, while most major nations were making moves to lower trade barriers, US has been raising them. (Tm 7:16) NOTE: In very recent memory, the $ was the impregnable Gibraltar-rock on which all the world's economic and monetary stability was built (as it had been in the previous century on the British pound). No one thought to doubt its eternal strength. But greed, corruption, folly and mismanagement have succeeded, in an incredibly brief time, in completely destroying this foundation. mmmmmmme>—^mmmmmmm^mmmmmmmmmmm NATO's TROJAN HORSE? In wake of abortive coup attempt, a massive purge of Greek armed forces—suddenly spotlighting both the glaring deficiencies of Athens regime, & the vulnerability of US & NATO in E. Mediterranean. The instability of Greek armed forces came to light at very moment NATO was meeting to discuss growing Russian might. Uncertainties in Greece carry grave implications for Western Alliance. Greece is key US home port in Mediterranean, & principal surveillance & communications post for NATO in S. Europe. One Greek officer said, "If NATO is counting on Greece for anything, they're crazy." The captains and officers of every Greek warship are being held for questioning. Up to now, the junta has been able to count on resolute support of US. Whatever moral doubts it had about the dictator govt, US felt sure {he govt. had Army behind it. But it's different now. Athen's position as a bulwark of Western alliance suddenly looking shakier. (Nwk 6:18) NOTE: The Russian military dictatorship steadily builds its aggressive strength, while NATO squabbles (as in Iceland) and calamities (as in Greece) make it less arid less credible as a deterent to Russian ambitions. Bro Thomas, 121 yrs. ago, said: "A pre-adventural Jewish colonization of the land of Israel will be going on while Russia is engaged in the conquest of the West"—Herald, Sept., 1852. At the time, both developments were scoffed at as impossible. Today we witness both. OIL & ARMS. US enlarging its role as major international weapons supplier. Last wk. Nixon authorized sale of supersonic jet fighters to Marxist Chile & 4 other S. American countries. Earlier, US indicated willingness to sell Phantom jets to Saudi Arabia, which is negotiating for $1 billion worth of arms. Kuwait wants $500 million worth. Both countries want to protect their oil riches against attack from their Mideast neighbors. Russian-armed Iraq has already scared Kuwait with border incursions. Saudi Arabia & Kuwait are 2 of biggest Mideast oil suppliers. US is helping to protect valuable sources of oil, & at same time reducing chances of these countries shutting off supplies to US, by making them as reliant on US for weapons, training & spare parts as US is on them for oil. (Tm 6:18). NOTE: What a grisly traffic in death and misery! What a striking fulfilment of Joel's prophecy of the Last Days (3:9-13)—"Prepare war . . beat your plowshares to swords . . Let the weak say, I am strong . . The harvest is ripe; the press is full—for their wickedness is great." RUSSIAN MISSILES. Now have 1.618 ICBMs vs. US's 1054. Testing 3 menacing new models, one with MIRVs. (Nwk. 6:11) NOTE: Sleeping, pleasure-mad US may awake some morning to the revelation of an infinitely-superior nuclear-powered Russia. Russia wastes no resources on luxury or folly or coddling its people. Its one goal is to crush US—its only barrier to world dominion. 1973 Berean 285 EUROPE'S DIZZY WHIRL OF DETENTE. This week's opening of the historic European Security Conference in Helsinki, Finland, clearly signals how far East-West rapprochement has come since icy days of cold war. Idea for all-Europe Conference first raised by Moscow in '54 to legitimatize its hold on E. Europe; but proposal got nowhere till Brandt's Ostpolotik began to mesh with a Kremlin diplomatic initiative toward West. Pace of change has been dizzying. By seizing initiative in bargaining with Russia, Nixon has seriously undermined W. Europe efforts to forge unified policy toward Russia. Russia sees Conference as a key link in its campaign to weaken W. Europe's ties to US: hopes to convince West that detente is a substitute for defense.(Nwk 7:9) NOTE: Moscow's plans seem to be moving apace. US was able for 20 years to resist the pressure for this show-window conference in which Russia has so much to gain. But the spirit in Europe has now changed. The shock of the vicious destruction of the democratic govts. in East Europe in the 40s, and the ruthless crushing ofE. German and Hungarian freedom in the 50s, and of the Czechs in the 60s—all has now worn off with time. Europe wants to believe that Russia is satisfied with what it has devoured, like the blind little men at Munich in 1938 wanted to believe Hitler was satisfied with his past -β*»—•___•—__- conquests. DEADLY ARAB-ISRAEL DUEL OF TERROR. Last wk. in Paris, bomb under his car's front seat instantly killed Mohammed Boudia, suspected of being Black September's head man in Europe. Three days later, Israeli diplomat Yosef Alon shot dead in Washington. Latest victims of deadly underground Israel-Arab war around globe. Such incidents now commonplace: similar assassinations this yr. in Rome, Paris, Cyprus, Lebanon, Madrid & London have claimed dozens of lives. (Tm 7:16) NOTE: Beyond being evidence of a worldwide era of violence, this particular strife (Arab-Israel) bears much more directly on the Divine purpose. It is the "perpetual hatred" always manifested by Edom (Esau) for Jacob, spoken of by Ezekiel (35:5)—that only the coming of Christ will terminate. • WATERGATE ON THE RHINE. Deputy Julius Steiner has admitted that in '72 he sold his vote to keep Willy Brandt in power—latest & most startling in a series of revelations of political scandal in W. Germany, involving bribery, cover-ups. Corruption coming to light could topple Brandt.(Tm6:25) CORRUPTION ABROAD TOO. London: On heels of sex scandal that brought down 2 aristocratic ministers of Govt., British now learn that many local officials are corrupt, taking bribes. Bankruptcy proceedings brought to light a payroll for civil servants in operation of multimillion-$ architectural firm. Several other cases unearthed. Rome: Several members of Parliament caught stealing public funds. A Govt. tax office spent $2-million in bribes for mayors & other officials. Nine years spent collecting evidence; 557 indicted; 300 of these had died by time case came to court. (USN 7:16) NOTE: Political scandals are not new. They are as old as politics itself. The evil of the human heart inevitably infects all it touches. But surely it is significant that what calls itself the "democratic process" is exposed as so corrupt at a time when it is setting itself up as the defender of "freedom" and "justice" against the efficient autocracy of dictatorial Communism— efficient, that is, in developing naked military power. Bro. Thomas saw the fatal weakness of "democracy" in corrupt human hands, and he expected kings to replace presidents as the Gogian power extended its power over Europe. And so it has been. All East Europe has kings (that is, autocrats— tho the actual term king is not currently used). "Kings" in Bible times were not necessarily hereditary. More often than not, they were simply dictators who had achieved power by violence or intrigue (as in Communism today), not by hereditary succession. 1973 Berean 286 BREZHNEV IN PARIS, troublemaking for US. Decision to spend 3 days in Paris on return from Washington summit is personal success for Pompidou. Brezhnev is rewarding France for pulling out of NATO, & maintaining policy ol "independence." He's appealing to French ego, making French more touchy than ever toward US, building up France as "honest broker" between superpowers. It's an old Russian game. Brezhnev is happy to encourage France's bid for special ties to Russia. (USN 7:2) NOTE: The "unclean spirits like frogs" are still up to their malicious mischief, gathering the kings of the earth to the battle of the Great Day of God Almighty. mmmmmmm^^^mimmmmmmmmmmmmmm.^..^^mm^m^mmm, FREAKISHLY FOUL WEATHER has struck so many parts of world in past year that meteorologists discern a complex, long-term change in climates. All agree the impact has been devastating to industry & most especially to world's already hard-pressed food supplies. In May, 12V2 million acres in Midwest & South US flooded: total damage $400 million. Surprise blizzards cut multi-million $ chunk out of livestock herds. Snowfall & tornadoes destroyed over half of Southeast's peach crop. California crops severely damaged by heavy rain, devastating cold, late frosts: many crops down 50 pet. Picture bleaker still in India & Africa. Indian losses in billions of $s. Six African states near Sahara are equally parched & devastated. Ecological balance has been so savaged that may take 30 years to recover foodgenerating potential. (Tm 7:9) NOTE: Mankind's hold on life is far more precarious than this proud and Godless generation realizes. All breath is in the hand of God, Whose longsuffering alone withholds the annihilation of this rebellious race. With a slight change of climatic conditions, God could flood the earth with heat, wrap it in eternal snow, or bring famine and starvation to its wicked inhabitants. __^^mm^mmmmm^immmmmmmmmmmm CONGRESS OF HELSINKI. Meeting of historic significance gets under way this week. Has opportunity to create grand new design for the future of Europe. By creating a false sense of security at this conference, Moscow could lay groundwork for its future domination of W. Europe. NATO SecGen. says bluntly: "Russia is trying to diminish— & eventually end—US presence in Europe by this conference". (Tm 7:9) NOTE: The leaders of Europe can recognize the tendencies and the dangers, but the people of Europe do not care. Russia, allied with the Papacy, must gain control of Europe, and marshall it to Armageddon. PHYSICS BY PHONE. In a little office at Tel Aviv University, the phone rings. The 1600-mile connection to Moscow has been made. Physics Prof. Mark Azbel begins in fluent English a lecture for Israeli students. Azbel is one of 6 prominent Soviet scientists fired from official posts for wanting to immigrate to Israel, & then barred from leaving Russia. The President of T.A.U. appointed 3 of them his faculty. At least once a week the 3 are on phone to Tel Aviv. They're bursting with thoughts to communicate. Sometimes they talk literally for hours on some scientific point. (Tm 7:9) NOTE: Perhaps not of much significance in the world picture, but a revealing sidelight on Russia, Israel, and the Jewish people. GASOLINE SHORTAGE. Long-feared, now making itself felt: 1000's of independent stations forced to shut down permanently. Independents claim big oil companies contrived phony shortage to drive them out of business. That conclusion supported by attorneys general of 6 states who testified before Senate last week. Justice Dept. suing Texaco. (Tm6:25) NOTE: Man's evil and greed is apparent at every turn, confirming the Word of God. 1973 Berean 287 ICELAND-BRITAIN FISHING CLASH. For Iceland, virtually a question of survival. Fishing is 20 pet. of gross national product; 82 pet. of exports. Iceland's govt. is Leftist. There's growing demand that Iceland reconsider its position in NATO. Militant Leftists in govt. pressing Prime Minister to keep his campaign pledge to close U.S.'s NATO airbase there. British have played into hands of Communists. (Nwk 6:4) NOTE: Another big plus for Russia. Another hard blow for NATO. The quarrel has for the present been patched up, but the damage remains. US'S ERRATIC TRADE POLICY. US international economic policy a mess; confused & confusing; open disregard for trading partners; actions running counter to announced goals & policies. Last week new shock for foreigners: export controls on steel scrap & food products. Will create shortages & aggravate inflation overseas. Soybean exports cut in half. Big sales to Russia & China: then sudden restrictions on regular customers in Europe & Japan. A staggering blow to Japs to whom US had repeatedly promised to supply all their needs. Action strengthens France's charge that US cannot be trusted to honor its commitments (Tm 7:16) NOTE: How can we explain this pitiful befuddlement of clever and intelligent men, except as a punitive, divinely-imposed confusion? We can understand crime and evil, because that is natural to animal man; but selfhurting folly and bumbling inconsistency in high places seems a direct fulfilment of the divine threat to the wicked to make their wise men mad. LATIN AMERICA DRIFTS AWAY. Widespread agreement that US hasn't been paying much attention to Latin America. Rampant nationalism combined with a growing political sophistication has made Latins increasingly suspicious of US intentions. With increasing frequency & success, Latin nations have turned to Europe, Japan & Communist bloc for military & economic aid they cannot get from US. (Nwk 5:21) NOTE: US once took Latin A merican support & following for granted. This was a large part of her power in the early years of UN. But she has little support or friendship there now. Latin America is overwhelmingly Catholic, & great changes are afoot, as in other parts of the Catholic world. The sharp trend is toward Socialism & the Left as a deliverance from a long history of capitalist oppression & corruption, & US imperialism is inescapably identified with that unlovely past. The Church is riding the new wave. BOOM YR. FOR MIDEAST ARMS. Shah of Iran got ball rolling with $2V2 billion arms deal. Saudi Arabia has earmarked $1 billion for weapons. Kuwait V/2 billion. Iraq, Syria & Yemen getting Russian arms. (Nwk 6:18) NOTE: Mideast oil profits are saturating the area with vast piles of sophisticated instruments of mass destruction and violence. At the same time, tensions are building and emotions flaring. Students of prophecy have long been eagerly watching for the final inevitable explosion in that area which will eventuate in worldwide desolation and the end of all human rule on earth. We rejoice to see the scene being so energetically prepared for the last great, earth-redeeming conflagration. "Come quickly, Lord Jesus!" CORRUPTION IN POLITICS. Not only Watergate: all across U.S. corruption keeps surfacing, at all levels. Result is growing distrust of politicians. Criminal cases involving public officials boiling up in many City & State Govts. Never anything like it in U.S. history. Temptation great; risks few; punishment light if wrongdoer caught. (USN 6:4) NOTE: ''Never anything like it in US history." CORRUPTION was the key to the Flood. Notice the striking, 3-fold repetition of this very word in Gen. 6: 12-13. Surely the grapes of wrath are ripe! 1973 Berean 288 "COD WAR" THREATENS NATO. Iceland threatening to kick US out of strategic NATO airbase that keeps watch on Russian movements in key Atlantic shipping routes. Growing concern that Iceland may pull out of NATO altogether. It's a valuable link in NATO defences because of location. For years, Russia has tried to lure Iceland out of NATO. Their hopes soared in 71 when 10 Communists were elected to the 60-man Parliament, & 2 Reds entered Cabinet. Now cod war gives Russia new boost. (USN 6:11) NOTE: How shaky is NATO! Iceland is a strategic link—1/6 of its Parliament is Communist, with 2 Communists in the ruling Cabinet. Communism is not just a political party: it is a godless, worldwide conspiracy, advocating dictatorship by the violent overthrow of govts. REASON FOR BREZHNEV VISIT. First & foremost, Moscow wants US technology, industrial equipment & credits on large scale, & guaranteed access to US feed grains. They want to convince US that close ties with Russia are far more valuable than ties with China. US cooperation is considered essential for success of their policy of better relations with Europe. Objective is to get recognition of their control over E. Europe, & to extend their influence to W. Europe. What US can hope to get from Russia is relatively little. Many experts believe Nixon & Kissinger have over-estimated Russia's bargaining strength & underestimated US's. (USN 6:11) NOTE: For Brezhnev to so come with hat in hand, clearly Russia desperately needs certain things from US (like the wheat last year). And apparently US—for a fast $—is willing to sell Russia the tools to shape US's own destruction. As the magazine points out, US has little to gain (except passing profits for the rich). As His purpose requires, God turns man's wisdom backward, and makes their wise men mad. EMBATTLED US DIPLOMATS. Terrorists, striking at US personnel abroad, have taken lives, won big ransoms. US embassies & missions starting to resemble fortresses: bulletproof windows, stronger locks, alarms, close-circuit TV. Visitors, letters, packages screened as never before. Embassy limousines being refitted into armored cars. Children ride guarded buses to schools. Officials vary daily routines to foil kidnapers; keep homes bolted. One embassy alone is spending $350,000 a year on security equipment & guards. (USN 6:11) UPSURGE IN INTERNATIONAL TERRORISM: almost an epidemic. World quite different frpm diays when soldiers in uniforms marched across borders. Now we have reached stage when dissidents kill innocent people in hope#of gaining their ends. US no longer immune from attacks on diplomats; •eventhreat of guerrilla-type assassinations. In New York, twice as many attacks on UN diplomats as 3 years ago. (USN 7:16) NOTE: What terrible, and yet what wonderful times! How hopeless is the prospect for unaided man to make a livable world! Yet man, in the deepening gloom of this present jungle-age, keeps trumpeting his empty boasts of "civilization" and "progress." MOST FREAKISH WEATHER in US history. Heaviest accumulation of rainfall ever recorded in East. An unprecedented volley of tornadoes. Floods that sent Mississippi & tributaries to record highs. Winter blizzards far to South. Over Memorial Day weekend, disastrous series of 196 tornadoes in 4day period: over 700 so far: almost sure to top 1000 for year. (USN 6:11) NOTE: By itself, this would not necessarily be significant. Weather comes and goes. But "most freakish in history" is the newsmagazine's own description. We must be cautious of misguided sensationalism, but combined with all other converging Signs, this adds force to the prophetic picture of a last-day warning from God to wicked mankind. inside Back What Knowledge Needed at Baptism? As to the question "How much knowledge is necessary for a candidate to have?" we would say, as much as will make him a believer in the One Faith and Hope of the Gospel, and not a believer only, but as will make this faith in him WORK BY LOVE, so that he may become revolutionized in his inner man, and made implicitly subject to the will of God as it is done in heaven. Whether a man possesses this amount of knowledge may be known by the EFFECT. To mind earthly things, to be conformed to the world, to lay treasures upon earth, to love the world and things of the world, to be covetous and parsimonious, etc., etc., are the attributes of the UNRENEWED creature. IF by knowledge his heart be changed in these carnal affections, and he has become the REVERSE of all these, yea, ready to be offered up a living sacrifice to God's will, he has knowledge enough TO BEGIN WITH. "We are renewed by knowledge after the image of him that hath created us." How much intelligent faith of this kind is there in the world? —Bro. Thomas. (Bro. Thomas* above analysis of the type and amount of comprehension that is necessary at baptism may go far to explain some of the problems and disappointments that perplex our ecclesias today) August Answers 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. 18. 19. 20. 21. 22. 23. 24. 25. WHAT KING Ate grass—Nebuchadnezzar Was hidden—Joash Was a leper—Uzziah Spared Agag—Saul Was blinded—Zedekiah Was very fat—Eg Ion King of Elam—Chedorlaomer King of Salem—Melchizedek Killed Josiah—Necho Eaten of worms—Herod Married Esther—Ahasuerus Was suffocated—Benhadad Burned himself—Zimri Drove furiously—Jehu Built Samaria—Omri Killed Benhadad—Hazael Diseased in feet—Asa Lover of David—Hiram Burial of ass—Jehoiakim Allied with Ahab—Jehoshaphat 1005 songs—Solomon Had iron bedstead—Og Put Daniel in den—Darius Besieged Hezekiah—Sennacherib Conquered Babylon—Cyrus 26. Gave David Ziklag—Achish 27. Wanted a vineyard—Ahab 28. Defeated by Barak—Jabin 29. Sheepmaster—Mesha (Moab) 30. Saw writing on wall—Belshazzar 31. Last king of Israel—Hoshea 32. Reigned in Heshbon—Sihon 33. Dreamed of animals—Pharaoh 34. Abraham prayed for—Abimelech 35. Named only in Proverbs—Lemuel 36. Killed by Samuel—Agag 37. Consulted young men—Rehoboam 38. Allied with Rezin—Pekah 39. We have no king but—Caesar 40. The great & noble—Asnapper 41. Recovered from boil—Hezekiah 42. Tried to curse Israel—Balak 43. Caused Israel to sin—Jeroboam 44. Almost persuaded— Agrippa 45. Captive to Egypt—Jehoahaz 46. Sent Ezra to Jerusalem—Artaxerxes 47. Besieged Jabeshgilead—Nahash 48. Took gold shields—Shishak 49. Married Ahab daughter—Jehoram 50. Filled Jerusalem with blood-Manasseh GENESIS I A FACT, NOT A "VISION" There can be no doubt that the whole creation work described in Gen. 1 was a work that was done 6000 years ago. It is an absolutely correct record (apart from all scientific views of the case) that in six days, 6000 years ago, this sublunary creation was "bara"-ed, or put in order by angels, acting as :he instrumental agents of the Eternal Spirlit.—Bro. Roberts, 1897. If the Berean is received unwanted, please mark the envelope, "Refused, return to sender," and drop it in a mailbox. $3.50 per year (only for those who desire to pay) Printed in U.S.A. VOL. 61, NO. 10 OCTOBER, 1973 The Berean Christadelphian A monthly magazine devoted wholly to the exposition and defense of the Faith once for all delivered to the Saints, with the object of helping to make ready a People prepared for the coming of the Lord. Opposed to the unscriptural teaching of the papal and protestant churches of the world. Edited and Published by : G.A. Gibson, 1501 Woodbine, Apt. 1616, Toronto, Ont. M4C4H1, Can. "They received the Word with all readiness of mind and searched the Scriptures daily, whether those things were so. Therefore many believed"—Acts 17:11 CONTENTS ECCLESIALNEWS: Chaska, Minn.; San Angelo, Tex Inside Front Cover Bible Questions Inside Front Cover EDITORIAL: The Joy of the Lord Is Your Strength 289 THE TREE OF THE LIVES (Bro. Thomas) 291 EMMANUEL: "GOD WITH US" (Bro. Roberts) 296 "FATHER, FORGIVE T H E M " 304 THE SMITTEN ROCK 310 CURRENT WORLD EVENTS FULFI LLING PROPHECY 313 September Answers GO ING TO LAW AGAI NST ANOTH ER Inside Back Cover Back Cover We ore anxious to send the Bereon FREE to any desiring it that way. Please do not hesitate to request it. If you know of any who might like it, please send us their names. CHRIST IS COMING SOON AND WILL REIGN ON EARTH Ecclesial News Inside Front CHASKA, Minn. 55318—10 Janice Drive. LOVING Greetings in the One Hope. Having moved, I would like to notify the brethren and sisters of my address change: Bro. Roger Walker, 10 Janice Drive, Chaska, Minn. 55318. I have not heard much of any of the brethren except through the Berean. I would appreciate hearing from any who have time to write. Your brother in Christ, —RogerWalker SAN ANGELO, Texas-English Room, Cactus Hotel (all except first Sundays)—SS 10 a m ; Memorial 11. Other Sundays at homes. Rec. bro. Gary Smith, Star Route, Sweetwater, Tex. 79556. LOVING Greeting in Christ's Name. We of the San Angelo ecclesia are happy to announce that two more of Adam's race have put on the Saving Name of our Lord Jesus Christ. Mr. & Mrs. L. A. PATTERSON gave a good confession of their faith on Sept. 8, 1973. Bro. and sis. Patterson live in Coleman, Texas, and will be attending the San Angelo ecclesia. In the Bonds of our Hope, —bro. Gary Smith Bible Questions HOW M A N Y . . . Write the number of each item in List 1 beside the correct amount in List 2. 1. 2. 3. 4. 5. 6. 7. 8. 9. 10. 11. 12. 13. 14. 15. 16. 17. Sealed? 18. Psalms? 19. Fish in net? 20. In shipwreck? 21. Smooth stones? 22. White baskets? 23. Stars in crown? 24. Rows of stones? 25. Saved by water? 26. Silver trumpets? 27. Killed by tower? 28. Killed by bears? 29. Number of Beast? 30. Ill-favored kine? 31. Cities of refuge? 32. Levitical cities? 33. Songs of Solomon? 34. Degrees backward? 35. Ungrateful lepers? 36. Evening-mornings? 37. Not bowed to Baal? 38. Virgins of Jabesh? 39. Palmtrees at Elim? 40. Goat hair curtains? 41. Courses of priests? 42. Stripes five times? 43. Baal prophets slain? 44. Foxes Samson caught? 45. Years in wilderness? 46. Kings with Benhadad? 47. Assyrian host slain? 48. Days to rebuild wall? 49. Joseph age when sold? 50. Kings Joshua subdued? Pieces Jesus sold for? Swine drowned (about)? Killed by ass jawbone? 5 loaves, 2 fishes fed? Cubits Haman's gallows? Pieces Joseph sold for? Yrs. for Rachel & Leah? Cubits above mountains? Korah followers burned? Provinces of Ahasuerus? Yrs. temple in building? Days witnesses prophesy? 7 loaves, few fishes fed? Souls added at Pentecost? Abraham's armed servants? Cubits Nebuchadnezzar's Image? LIST TWO — ANSWERS 2 7 12 20 39 50 150 318 1005 4000 5000 7000 40 52 153 400 1260 4 9 15 30 42 60 250 450 2000 5 10 17 31 46 70 276 666 2300 144,000 6 11 18 32 48 127 300 1000 3000 185,000 FREE BOOK ON BASIC Bl BLE TEACHING "Christendom A s t r a y / ' a 462-page book outlining and scripturally proving all basic Bible doctrines involved in the Gospel of salvation, which has helped thousands find the Way of Life, will begladly sent freeand without obligation. Write: G.V. Growcott, 12954 St. Marys, Detroit, Mich. 48227. EDITORIAL The Joy of the Lord Is Your Strength "Arid-all the people went their way . . to make great mirth because they had understood the words that were declared unto them"—Nehemiah 8:12 AMONG the many examples of faithful men and women, whose faith and works are recorded in the Bible, the name of Nehemiah stands high on the list. Although not a prophet, he was a prominent man of Israel, and left a record which has become a great source of instruction and comfort to many who know and love the Truth. His unusual character was of threefold formation:— 1. He adhered rigidly to his duties. 2. He was stern when opposing wrong. 3. Above all, he had an unwavering faith in God. Nehemiah comes to our attention in the year 446 BC, which was the 20th year of the Persian king Artaxerxes, whom he was serving as cupbearer. The office was one of the most dignified in an Oriental kingdom, and it said much for the character of Nehemiah that he, a stranger and a foreigner, should have been appointed to such an office at the Persian court. From his brother Hanani, he learned of the sad plight of his people in Jerusalem, and became sorely downcast when he was told that the walls of the city were broken down, and the gates were burned with fire. From a mere human point of view, there was no cause for his sorrow. He could have said, "I have a high position in the service of the king, and am being well paid. It is almost 800 miles to Jerusalem, and there must be men there who can get busy and make the necessary repairs." Consecrated service in the Truth alters the ways of the natural man. and causes him to seek the welfare of others. Therefore, when the sad news came to him, Nehemiah— "Sat down and wept, and mourned, and fasted certain days, and prayed." His fervent prayer appears in Neh. 1:5-11, and is a noble example for every one of us. Unlike the Pharisee in the parable of Jesus, he did not "thank God that he was not as other men." Nor was he unmindful of the majesty of God, for he opens his prayer in a most dignified manner— "I beseech Thee, Ο Lord God.of heaven, the great and terrible God, that keepeth covenant and mercy for them that love Him and observe His commandments. Nehemiah not only recognized the supremacy of God, but he realized his own position, for he not only confessed the sins of the people, but said— "Both I and my father's house have sinned." If a man of his high caliber could evaluate himself in the way just indicated, should not a little self-examination convince us that no matter how firmly we try to walk in the Truth, we still come far short of the standard set before us? is that not what we are to understand from the words of Jesus "When ye shall have done ALL those things which are commanded you, say, "We are unprofitable servants: we have done that 1973 Berean 289 which was our duty to do." Another severe lesson we learn from these words, is that there is no place in our lives for pride. It is one of the products of the flesh, and therefore one of the forms of sin that we are expected to overcome, for God hates it. Pride has many forms. One can be proud of his achievements, of his social advantages, and many other things. It will be found to be synonymous with conceit, vanity and self-esteem and is, therefore, of the world, and extremely displeasing to our h e a v e n l y Father. Many are proud of their humility. There are many examples in the Bible of how pride may be manifested, and there is much said about it. In Psa. 73:6 we read that— "Pride compasseth t h e m about as a chain." Prov. 11:2 declares— "When pride cometh, then cometh shame." But one that should especially make us stop and consider is found in Prov. 13:10— "Only by pride cometh contention." Some time when we are meditating upon divine things, this would be a statement that we would do well to consider. * * * THE principal work of Nehemiah was the repairing of the city wall, which was accomplished in 52 days in spite of the opposition of those who sought to hinder the work. One of the outstanding features in the building of the wall is revealed in Neh. 4:13-18. In this section, he describes the manner in which all of the people worked together, and how they finished the job; for, said Nehemiah— "The people had a mind to work." This is all comprehended in the one word, "cooperation." The same idea is expressed by the apostles in such words as "like minded," "one mind" and "one accord." We should think seriously about it, because it is the only way possible for an ecclesia to succeed. If we do not work together, we will fail as Jesus said in Mark 3:25— "And if a house be divided against itself, that house cannot stand." One of the engrossing features in the book of Nehemiah is found in 8:8. It was the occasion when the people gathered together on one of the streets, and Ezra the scribe brought the Book of the Law before the whole assembly "both of men and women, and all that could hear with understanding." Ezra was assisted by several of the Levites who caused the people to understand the Law— "So they read in the Book in the Law of God distinctly, and gave the sense, and caused them to understand the reading." That must have been a wonderful experience for those people, but in this they 'had no advantage over us. Many of our brethren can read distinctly, and give the ssnse. As to " c a u s i n g to understand," no people on earth are more blessed than we are. The works of brethren Thomas and Roberts were designed for that very purpose. If we are truly desirous of knowing the Truth, then by all means let us read their writings, but if we think it does not matter what we believe, then we should read the writings of those who criticize Eureka. * * * ON the first day of each week, when we come together, should there not be great gladness among us as we assemble on the basis of knowledge and 1973 Berean 290 understanding? Is it not knowledge that causes us to appreciate the things concerning the Kingdom of God, and the Name of Jesus? Let us remember, by all means, that the Truth, which we have learned to love, is the only real thing of any value in this life. On every hand, we see men and women striving with all their power to become successful in the arts or business. They boast themselves in their accomplishments, but these things are only temporary, and when we become u n c o n s c i o u s in death, our cares will cease, and our advantages will be gone. This truth is firmly set before us in Ps. 49:16-20— "Be not thou afraid when one is made rich, when the .c;Iory of his house is increased; for when he dieth he shall carry nothing away: his iilory shall not descend after him. •'Though while he lived he blessed his soul: and men will praise thee, when thou doest well to thyself. He shall go to the generation of his fathers; they shall never see light. "Man that is in honor, and understandeth not, is like the beasts that perish." Wherein then lies wisdom? It will be found in the words of Jesus in Matt. θ:33— >; But seek ye first the Kingdom of God, and His righteousness; and all these things shall be added unto you." // it is our ardent desire to meet ivith favor when the Lord Jesus returns, then let up keep continually before us such examples as that of Nehemiah, for surely few men, in any age of the world, liave combined in themselves the qualifications that are essential for salvation more than he did. —Editor The Tree of the Lives "And now, lest he put forth his hand, and take also of the Tree of the Lives, and eat, and LIVE FOR EVER—therefore Yahweh Elohim sent himforthfrom the Garden"—Gen. 3:22-23 BY BROTHER JOHN THOMAS THIS is the first hint of eternal life in relation to man. From this we learn that the fruit of this tree had the quality affixed to it of endlessly perpetuating the living existence of the eater. To have eaten of this would have changed Adam from a living into an everliving soul. It would have cured him physically, and constituted him an incorruptible sinner—the ever-abiding subject of the present state of good and evil. This would have been a fearful consummation: an immortal sinner in a corruptible estate, so that the earth would have become the abode of immortal giants in crime, without any hope of restoration. But this was not according to the Divine plan. Immortal saints in a state of unmixed good is the finality of Creation, Providence, and Redemption. 1973 Berean 291 The sinner was first to be sanctified, then tried, and afterwards to be immortalized, if approved. Therefore, lest Adam should invert this order, and become immortal of body before he should be purified from sin and accounted worthy of acceptance, the Yahweh Elohim expelled him from the dangerous vicinity of the Tree of Lives. He drove him forth that he should not then become incorruptible and deathless. The expulsion from Eden forcibly separated Adam and Eve from the means of present immortality; and whether they should attain to incorruptibility and life depended solely upon the will and philanthropy of God- But the Lord did not content Himself with their simple expulsion. Wayward as they had proved themselves, they would doubtless have conspired to regain Paradise that they might pluck from the Tree of Lives its immortalizing fruit, and so deliver themselves from the sentence of death to which they were consigned. They were expelled indeed; but to what will not the inconsiderate recklessness of man impel him! Apprehending some new act of presumption, the Yahweh Elohim placed a destroying flame to keep, or defend, the Tree against their intrusion. Here, as in the Most Holy under the Law of Moses, He placed the emblems of His majesty, styled Cherubim, whose consuming fires enfolded the Faces of the Lord. The Tree was hid by these symbols of the Divine presence; and the incorruptibility it was originally provided to impart and shadow forth, became to them a thing of hope and of present desire. Seeing that they could not eat of the Tree of Lives in the midst of Eden, how could they attain to that incorruptible life which it adumbrated? In what "Way" should they walk; or in what "Path" should they tread that would lead them to it? The answer is, in the words of Moses (Gen. 3:24), in— THE WAY OF THE TREE OF LIFE." In Gen. 6:12, this Way is styled "God's Way," from which all the Antediluvians, save Noah and his family, had apostatized by corrupting it, as it is written— "All flesh had corrupted HIS WAY upon the earth." But there was no Bible nor any priest in those days, from whom the exiles from Eden could learn "the Way leading unto Life." There were none to say to them— "This is THE WAY: walk ye in it." They knew the Tree of Life was situated in the midst of the Garden, and they knew the path which led to it. But the destroying flame which swept around it on every side, dared them to approach within its precincts. The Tree of Life was in "the East." They could look towards it wistfully; but the decree had gone forth, and they could nev^r eat of that Tree, nor touch it and live. 1973 Berean 292 With the way to the Tree in Eden, then, they were acquainted; but of the Way of God to the Tree of Life adumbrated by that Tree in the East of the Garden, they had no knowledge. They knew not where the New Tree of Life was planted: how could they therefore know the Way? It remained, then, for the Yahweh Elohim to enlighten them, for He alone could reveal it. They were, consequently, "taught of God." He instructed them what to do in order that they might approach His Cherubim, and bow down before His "faces" without fear of the devouring flame, all the days of their lives. These instructions revealed to them the Way of acceptance with Him, which then—as also through all subsequent ages-—consisted in (Rev. 2:7; 22:14)— DOING HIS COMMANDMENTS, that they might have right to eat of the Tree of Life, which is in the midst of the Paradise of God" The "Way of Yah-Elohim" is synonymous with what is termed "Religion"—which may be defined as "the Way of acceptance with God." Adam and his wife SUPPOSED they could appear before God acceptably by devising a way of their own by which to conceal their nakedness from His sight. But He refused to sanction their invention, and stripped them of the foliage they had wrapped around them. The Way of the Lord teaches that no man can cover his own sin, but it must be covered for him: and none can appoint the investment but the Lord. Hence, it is written (Gen. 3:21)— "Yahweh Elohim appointed coats of skin and clothed them." The appointment plainly indicates the sacrifice of the animals with whose skins they were clothed. Blood was shed in their investiture; and their sin was covered by the skins of the sinofferings in conformity with the principle that— "Without the shedding of blood there is no remission" (Heb. 9:22). But, without faith it is impossible to please God (Heb. 11:6). The mere sacrifice of animals, or offering of the fruits of the ground, will not gain man acceptance with God, for — "It is not possible that the blood of bulls or of goats should takeaway sin" (Heb. 10:4). Hence the association of something to be believed with the sacrifice of "the firstling of the flock and the fat thereof": or, in Other words, Of— "The Lamb slain from the foundation of the world." As the subject-matter of this faith, then, the Way of God directed the minds of Adam and Eve to the Seed, or descendant, of the woman, whose heel should be bruised on account of the sin of the world, and who should grow up as a tender plant out of a dry ground, and become the Tree of Life in the Paradise of God, in whom should be deposited the incorruptible life of the race of man. Eve's Son was to be the true Tree of Life, of which if a man shall eat he shall live forever! A Son who, as the Savior of his people from their sins, must die for sin: for without the shedding of his blood he could not be a purification-sacrifice. And such a one was necessary, for the blood of animals was inefficient. 1973 Berean 293 But, if the sacrifice without the faith was insufficient; so the faith that the woman's Seed should be a propitiation—unaccompanied by the appointed sacrifices—would leave the worshiper unaccepted. Or, if there were both faith in the promise and an oblation, yet if the offering were not of divine appointment, the subject was regarded an evil-doer, f o r d Sam. 15:22)— "To obey is better that sacrifice, and to hearken than the fat of rams." This is obvious from the testimony that (Heb. 11:4)— "By faith Abel offered unto God a more excellent sacrifice than Cain, by which he obtained testimony that he was righteous, God testifying of his gifts." "The Lord had respect unto Abel and unto his offering." From this we learn that Cain was faithless, and therefore unrighteous. He had no faith in typical sacrifice. He did not believe that without the shedding of blood there was no remission; or that a purification-sacrifice typified by "the firstling of the flock" would suffer for sin, and become a Tree of Life of the Lord's planting. Hence— (on[y) of the fruit of the t.He brought ground an offering to the Lord" (Gen. 4:3). —while his brother, in addition to this, presented of the lambs of his flock. But God had no respect unto Cain's offering, for Cain evinced a wilful disposition—a waywardness which corrupted the Lord'sWay. When he perceived that his unbloody and faithless oblation was not accepted, "enmity" was kindled within him. His aspect became lowering and dark with destructive feelings; and he ceased to behold the faces of the Cherubim with an upright countenance. While in the presence of these, the Lord demanded of him why he was angry, and why he looked so downcast? Abel had done nothing to offend him. Abel had "done well," because he had kept the Way appointed, and therefore his sacrifice was consumed. Had he (Cain) done likewise, his offering would have been accepted too— "If thou doest well, shalt thou not be accepted? And if thou doest not well, sin lieth at the door" (Gen. 4:7). —by all which we are instructed that the OBEDIENCE OF FAITH was the condition upon which the family of Adam might obtain a right to that eternal life which should be procured for them by the Woman's Seed. The Lord's Way of righteousness and life, styled the "Way of the Tree of Life," consisted in faith and obedience. This faith, the apostle tells us, was— 1973 Berean 294 "The substance of THINGS HOPED FOR; the evidence of THINGS UNSEEN" (Heb. 11:1). By the belief of these things, Abel, Enoch and Noah pleased God, and became "HEIRS of the righteousness" on account of which life and incorruptibility are bestowed upon man. They hoped for the Woman's Seed who, they believed—on the testimony of God—should bruise the serpent's head. Their faith was a living faith, and therefore they kept the Way of the Lord, in offering— "The firstlings of their flock, and the fat thereof" . . ''the fruit of the ground" . . and in "walking with God" by being "just and perfect in their generations." Such was the religion of the righteous among the Antediluvians. They were faithful AND obedient. And, as the earnest of what awaited them in the fulness of time— "Enoch was translated, that he should not see death: and was not found, because God had translated him. For before his translation he had this testimony, thathe pleased God" (Heb. 11:5). Thus they were taught that the corruptible body should put on incorruption, and this mortal should put on immortality, and so— "Death should be swallowed up in victory" (1 Cor. 15:54). Almost at the same time as the institution of religion, as we have seen, it was corrupted by Cain. He rejected from his system the principle of remission by sacrifice: hence he repudiated the promise, and constituted himself an evil-doer. Unbelief and disobedience became the characteristics of Cain and his associates, who dwelt eastward of the "presence of the Lord" (Gen. 4:16). These were termed "Men," while those who "walked with God" were styled "the Sons of God." In the sentence pronounced upon Eve and her posterity, the former are indicated as the "Seed of the Serpent," and the latter as the "Seed of the Woman"—of whom One was to arise that should destroy the former. Between these 2 classes of Antediluvians there was "enmity" such as was evinced in the fratricidal Cain. But the corruption first introduced by this arch-apostate undermined the principles, and overthrew the allegiance, of the "Sons of God": for, seeing that the "daughters of men" were fair, they intermarried with them; and the earth was replenished with a progeny fit only for capture and destruction. Their wickedness was great, and every imagination of the thoughts of their hearts only evil continually (Gn. 6:5). The antediluvian apostacy was complete, for— "All flesh had corrupted the Way of the Lord upon the earth" which was "filled with violence through them" (Gen. 6:11-13). The Lord by His Spirit in Noah labored patiently to reclaim them from their disobedience, but they disregarded His expostulations— "Eating and drinking, marrying and giving in marriage, until the day that Noah entered into the ark" when "the Flood came and took them all away" (Matt. 24:38-39). But Noah found favor in the eyes of the Lord— "Being warned by God of things not seen as yet: and, moved with fear, he prepared an ark to the saving of his house; by the which he condemned the (faithless) world, and became heir of the righteousness which is by faith" (Heb. 11:7). 1973 Berean 295 Eternal Life has been the hope of all those who have walked with God in all past ages and generations, since the Fall. In walking with God they have trod the same path, and journeyed along the same road, which is the only "Way that leadeth unto Eternal Life." The entrance upon this Way is strait, and its passage narrow, and there are few that find it (Mt. 7:14). BELIEF in the testimony of God, and OBEDIENCE to His commandments are the grand characteristics of "His Way" in its successive manifestations in all time. Dispensations have varied: but these leading principles have always remained the same— "These are written that ye may BELIEVE" (Jn. 20:31), and . . "Blessed are they that DO His commandments, that they may have a right to the Tree of Life which is in the midst of the Paradise of God" (Rev. 22:14; 2:7). "I," says Jesus, "am the Way, the Truth, and the Life" . . "lam the Resurrection". . "I am the Door: no man entereth but by me." ANSWERS BY BROTHER ROBERTS Emmanuel: "God With Us" "God was in Christ, reconciling the world to Himself"—2 Cor. 5 "He that hath seen me hath seen the Father"—John 14:9 "God was manifest in the flesh"—J Timothy 3:16 READING: PSALM 139 THE subject introduced to our notice in this psalm is a very great one. It is so great that David himself has acknowledged it was too wonderful for him— "It is high: I cannot attain unto it" (v. 6). If that is David's verdict, it would be presumptuous in US to profess to be able to grasp it. It is great because God is great, and it is above apprehension just as much as He is. "His ways are past finding out." He Himself says— "As the heavens are high above the earth, so great and so high are My ways over yours" (Isa. 55:9). Nevertheless, there are certain phases or features of the matter that are propounded for belief, and which are to a certain extent capable of being apprehended. The first is the one stated in this psalm: that God is everywhere present— "Whither shall I go from Thy Spirit, or whither shall 1 flee from Thy presence? If I ascend up into heaven, Thou art there: If I make my bed in hell behold Thou art there" (vs. 7-8). This is what God testifies of Himself through Jeremiah (23:24)— "Can any hide himself in secret places, that I shall not see him? Do not 1 fill heaven and earth? saith the Lord. 1973 Berean 296 And this agrees with what Solomon declared in dedicating the Temple. You recollect it is quoted by Stephen before the Sanhedrim "But will God indeed dwell on earth? The heaven—even the heaven of heavens—cannot contain Him: much less this house that I have built" (1 Kings 8:27). Now, the fact presented to our contemplation in these testimonies, though difficult to realize, is in harmony with what we can perceive must be. All things must be embraced in the Power from which they have sprung, and which sustains them in being. We must be in the presence of God. Orthodox teaching is that God made all things out of "nothing." If this were so, there is no need for supposing that we are in the presence of God; because if nothing produced them, nothing can sustain them. And thus, logically enough, God and divine things are in orthodox theology assigned a sphere "beyond the bounds of time and space." But Paul tells us that all things are "out of Him" (Rom. 8:30); t h a t "IN HIM, we live, and move, and have our being" (Actsl7:28). —and that, as Daniel said toBelshazzar (Dan. 5:23)— "In His hand our breath is, and His are all our ways." With this in view, it follows that what David says is inevitable— that the Spirit of God is everywhere. But then, in accepting that conclusion, we really assent to something that the intellect doesn't realize. David perceived this, and so will we when we have considered the matter. He says— "Thou knowest my downsitting, and mine uprising: Thou understandeth my thought afar off" (Psa. 139:2). Yet he adds (v. 6)— "It is too wonderful for me to understand. Such knowledge is too high: I cannot attain to it." That is precisely the attitude that every mind rising to the greatness of the matter will be forced into. People of limited power of reflection think it easy to understand. They have certain terms before their minds: they assent to the terms—and think they comprehend the idea involved in them. In this they make a mistake which a little more power of intellect would enable them to see. It is a matter of which the surface only can be skimmed. It is high and deep: we cannot attain unto it. 1973 Berean 297 Minds of another stamp may be tempted to emphasize on the absurdity of believing what cannot be understood; but if they will only range wide enough, they will meet with their own rebuke. We have all become familiar with the electric telegraph, in which is presented the extraordinary phenomenon that a principle, chemically developed, can be transmitted through 1000 miles of wire in a moment of time. Now, we BELIEVE the fact, because we are bound to believe it. We see it. No man can gainsay it. But, who UNDERSTANDS it? Nobody. It is impossible for the mind to realize the process that takes place, which involves the transmission of a principle, element, or affinity, or whatever else you like to call it, through 1000 miles of wire in a moment of time. We see it is so, and there our knowledge ends. It is scientifically demonstrated as a fact, and we believe it, though we have not the remotest conception of the nature of the "electric fluid," or the mode of transmission. So with regard to the matter in hand, we have a something that is presented to our minds to receive. We see it must be so. We apprehend superficially what is meant. But we are as helpless as a newborn babe when we attempt to grasp the idea. Just try for a moment to realize the immensity of the universe, and then you will see the enormous size of the idea that we have presented to us—and which we cannot grasp so long as we are in this finite earth nature, whose faculties are limited to the purposes to which present existence has relation. Why, we cannot deal with the magnitude of the earth! We are lost. 24,000 miles in circumference! A body of matter 8000 miles through from one side to the other! What an immense body! It baffles our imagination. We are familiar with the fact, but we fail to take it in. One step higher, and our discomfiture is complete. If the earth—a microscopic speck in the vast economy of existence—overpowers our faculties, who shall describe our bewilderment when we seek to survey that economy itself, which, in the course of endless ages—for there has been no beginning to God—has been slowly developing in the channel of His purpose? We have to confess ourselves utterly lost in the surrounding greatness. Now, if the mere mathematical bearings of the matter, so to speak, are beyond our grasp, what shall we say to the proposition that there is one indivisible element filling this measureless abyss of existence! Can you grasp the idea of one Spirit, one Presence, one principle of Power and Intelligence,embracing infinite space, and all that it contains? You cannot. It is simply impossible to grasp it. The task is beyond any faculty with which we are, at present, endowed. Well, then, if THAT is beyond us, how inscrutable is the other point presented to our faith, though its truth is evident as a matter of reason: namely, that there is, in relation to that universal element of power or existence, a PERSONAL CONTROLLING CENTER, from which it is but an eternal emanation, and with which it is ONE indissoluble: the First Cause, the Eternal Antecedent of all things, the seat of Ineffable Wisdom and Power—the FATHER, Who is above all and through all by His diffusive Spirit, and yet personally resident at a point of the universe, variously described in the Scriptures as "light unapproachable," "Jieaven of heavens," "heaven Thy dwellingplace. 1973 Berean 298 You will remember the frequency with which that idea is expressed. Perhaps it is well to realize that frequency, so that the idea may be perceived in its importance as a feature of Bible teaching. For instance, Jesus says— "Our Father Who are IN HEAVEN" (Matt. 6). David says (Psa. 123:1)— "Unto Thee I lift mine eyes, Ο Thou that dwellest in the heavens." Solomon, dedicating the Temple, frequently uses the phraseHear Thou in heaven, Thy DWELLING PLACE, and when Thou hearest, forgive." These are illustrations of the statements that teach the localization of the Father in central light—the sustaining principle of creation in, as it were, what you may style focus, or intensity of development. They teach that though that principle is universal, the Personal Intelligence from Whom it emanates dwells in local habitation: yet that He has conscious relation to infinitude. He fills all because He is The Spirit, and you cannot divide spirit from spirit. You cannot divide any one part of God from Himself. And here I will refer to an illustration I have before made use of, which helps in some slight degree to make the difficult idea palpable to our understanding—and that is the phenomenon of a jet of gas in a room, and the light emanating from it filling the room. You are well aware that to our perception, the jet of gas seems to be one thing, and the light in the room another thing. And yet they are both one. For the light—which we don't comprehend any more than philosophers and opticians and those who talk scientifically (that is to say, barbarically, for scientific nomenclature merely consists of superficial ideas in foreign dress, which make them profound to the ignorant)—the light, I say, is an effect of the flame. Stop the flame, & you extinguish the light.They are indissolubly one. Looking at the unity subsisting between the jet of flame issuing from the gas burner, and the light pervading the room, we get in a simple form the notion of One Central Source of all power—a Father dwelling in light, from Whom emanates the Spirit of His Own substance filling all space and constituting the basis of all creative developments, and yet with which He is essentially ONE, and by it consequently fills heaven and earth in consciousness and power. There is this very great difference between the illustration and the reality: that in the light there is no intelligence, but mere mechanical force, as it were, subject to mechanical and chemical law. There, therefore, the illustration fails. 1973 Berean 299 But if we were to suppose intelligence and volition to reside in the flame, and then imagine the flame making use of the light proceeding from itself to impress an image of itself on the wall, or to work out any other result—we should have divine operations illustrated. Literally, it would be light irradiant from the gas jet that would accomplish the results. Yet since that irradiant light is but the diffusion of the gas jet and its instrumental agency, the gas jet would as a matter of fact be the operator. Before applying this illustration to the most important of all God's works in relation to us—His interposition for our salvation—I should like to deal with another phase of the matter, which we may call an intermediate phase. The Spirit of God fills the universe, and all things exist by means of it. Without it, there is no power of any kind. In a sense, all things are of spirit. Yet the principle upon which Bible language is constructed does not justify us in speaking of the Spirit as the agent of operations which are the result of natural constitution. For instance, flesh and blood exist abstractly by the Spirit; yet it would not do to refer the workings of flesh and blood to the Spirit. Paul, in all his epistles, presents the work of the flesh and the works of the Spirit in CONTRAST. He says (Gal. 5:17)— "The flesh lusts against the Spirit, and the Spirit against the flesh. These are contrary the one to the other" The things contrasted are the results that come from the flesh AS SUCH, and the ideas and duties enjoined by the Spirit as a teacher. So with inspiration. In a natural sense, the Spirit is in all men as it is in all animals, and in everything that exists—for everything is upheld by divine power or spirit. But it would be a misuse of language to attribute directly to the Spirit, any function or power which is the result of natural constitution in man or animal. Thus, a bee is constructive, a lion carnivorous, a swallow migratory, and a man intelligent—not because of the direct operation of the Spirit, but because of the fixed constitution bestowed in Creation, and maintained while being continues. To attribute the manifestation of any of them to inspiration would be simply absurd. More, it would be mischievous, for it would confer on natural power an importance that attaches alone to the direct sayings and doings of the Almighty, and thus draw away from the fountain of living waters. Quakerism has erred here in its theory of "light within." The Spirit of God is in any natural man only in the same sense as it is in an animal, vegetable fibre, a piece of coal, rock, or any substance, living or inanimate. 1973 Berean 300 And please observe this, that when we come to define this sense, the Spirit of God does not exist in any of these as the "Spirit of God." It is merely the material means of its nature. The will of God determines the constitution of a thing, and its constitution is as fixed, individual, and distinct as if the Spirit of God had nothing to do with in. For instance: take the rose, and put it side by side with a nettle. They are both the products of the same spirit and power, and yet how radically different. Why is the one a rose the other a nettle? Simply because of the will of the First Cause. That is the nearest approximation we can make to a philosophical definition in the matter: the will of the First Cause has imparted a constitution to the one that doesn't belong to the other; and, therefore, there is a nettle nature and rose nature. Although abstractly both are of God and therefore of the Spirit, it would be a confusion of ideas and a stultification of language to talk of either of them as a spirit nature. Now, apply this to mankind, and you have his relation to God made clear. We live in the Spirit in the same way as the rose and the nettle, but we have a nature peculiar to ourselves, and which precludes us from speaking of anything we do as being the doings of the Spirit. All things are of God, but let us recognize the relation of things He had established (lCor. 15:47,44)— "The first man is of the earth, earthy.. "There is a natural body, and there is a spiritual body." —and our present nature is the natural which, left to itself, will develop from within itself—not that which is in accordance with the Spirit of God—but that which is in accordance with its own impulses as a flesh nature. A flesh nature, without instruction, is ignorant of God, and of God's requirements, and of God's purposes. And in this state of ignorance it will develop a character not at all divine, and having nothing to do with the Spirit of God. But God has spoken for human instruction, and His speaking has been by means of the Spirit, in men selected for the purpose (2 Pet. 1:21)— "Holy men of God spake as they were moved by the Holy Spirit." Hence originates a phraseology that exhibits the Spirit as the agent. This deserves close consideration. It is indeed a key to many things. Subsequent to the establishment of things upon their present basis, or to put it more plainly, subsequent to the Creation of things sublunary, God has appeared on the scene as an Operator distinct from what He has created. This appearance has been BY SPIRIT— in the person of angels sometimes, and as an abstract impulse in the prophets at other times. In such cases the operation has been independently of, or extra to, the order of things established in what we call "nature." Hence, God was the Speaker or Worker in a sense in which He is not the speaker or worker when a man speaks of his own volition. The prophet was a representative of God. 1973 Berean 301 But the prophet was a representative of God only in this sense: that he was the INSTRUMENT of the Spirit. The Spirit took hold of him, and made him say things he didn't understand— "The prophets have inquired and searched diligently. . searching what, or what manner of time, the Spirit of Christ which was in them did signify, when it testified beforehand the sufferings of Christ, and the glory that should follow. "Unto whom it was revealed that not unto themselves but unto us they did minister the things which are now reported unto you." (1 PL 1:10-12). And in that we shall see a great difference between the prophets and the man through whom the Father was vitally manifested. What the prophets said, however, constituted the mind of the Spirit, insofar as that was revealed in their words. The things they said, or at least some part of them, have been written and preserved, and we may read them. And understanding them, we get the ideas of the Spirit into our hearts, and then the Spirit by these ideas becomes a power in us: it is the power of the Spirit's ideas. It is not that there dwells in us a direct spiritual energy, generating the power and idea within us. Having the Truth uttered by the Spirit, if we are controlled by it we are controlled by the Spirit. But it would be a confusion of speech to characterize any of our sayings or doings as those of the Spirit of God. Our thoughts and our sayings are those of mortal erring organizations, which may or may not be in harmony with the Spirit. All depends upon whether the ideas of the Spirit have been photographed on our minds. If so, all is well. If not, it is a deception to attribute our mental workings to the action of the Spirit in any sense. If we recognize the fact that the language which exhibits the Spirit as an actor in the arena of human affairs originates in the fact that a NEW VOLITION from the Deity has taken place since He established the present order of things, we shall find our task greatly simplified in considering that profounder aspect of the matter already hinted at: the manifestation of God in the flesh. This introduces to notice "the man Christ Jesus/' who caused no end of controversy among his contemporaries (Jn. 7:43), and even among his own disciples (Jn. 6:60), and who has been the theme of much disputation ever since—even to bloodshed—in accordance with his own statement— "I came not to send peace on earth, but a sword: from henceforth there shall be division" (Mt. 10:34). The secret of this discordant tendency is doubtless to be found in the inability of most men to grasp the mighty phenomenon of the Creator of all things manifesting Himself in a man, who (though inhabited by the Father through the Spirit) was yet a distinct person, sustaining the relation of Son to the Father, and having to develop character under trial, like those he was manifested to redeem. Speaking of the subject, Paul says— "Great is the mystery of godliness. God was manifested in the flesh, justified in the Spirit, seen of angels, preached unto the Gentiles, believed on in the world, received up into glory" (1 Tim. 3:16). 1973 Berean 302 Critics have endeavored to get rid of this verse, substituting "he who" for "God," which would make the verse r e a d m e who was manifested in the flesh .. There are some grounds for this emendation, but they are not conclusive. The 3 most ancient Greek manuscripts extant (Vatican, Sinaitic and Alexandrine) all have "os" instead of "Theos" (that it, "he who" instead of "God"). The suggestion is that the introduction of "The" before "os" has been the blunder of a transcriber, or a wilful corruption of the text to support Trinitarianism. This, however, does not follow. The 3 manuscripts may themselves be but the perpetuation in the text in question of a previous corruption by which "The" was dropped. This is the more likely from the circumstance that the Latin Vulgate, on which the English Version of the Scriptures is chiefly based, is a translation made from earlier manuscripts than the date assigned to the above 3, made at a time when the translator (Jerome) had a wide range of choice, so far as what would now be very ancient copies of the New Testament are concerned. And this (Vulgate) contains the reading given in the English Version— "Deus conspicuus factus est in carne." The conflict is between 3 old manuscripts and the version of a man who had opportunity of choosing from a multitude of manuscripts contemporary with these, and who must have had a reason for declining the "he who" reading (which, by the way, is unsuited to the context). The correct reading is as likely to be on one side as the other. However, it does not much effect the argument on the main question, because although the words—as they stand in the common version—give a concise definition of the mystery of godliness, and a good starting point for the consideration of the subject, still they are not essential for the demonstration of the subject itself, because the fact that God was manifested in Christ is testified in too many ways to leave it dependent upon a single text. Thus John, in his first epistle, defines the matter in the following words (1:1-2)— "That which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we have seen with our eyes, which we have looked upon, and our hands have handled, of the Word of Life . . "For the Life was manifested, and we have seen it, and bear witness, and show unto you that Eternal Life WHICH WAS WITH THE FATHER AND WAS MANIFESTED UNTO US" (1 Jn. 1:1-2). This is only, in another form, what John says in the first chapter of his Gospel (1:1, 14)— "In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God . . "And the Word was MADE FLESH, and dwelt among us, and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only Begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth." (Continued next month, if t h e Lord will) 1973 Berean 303 Father, Forgive Them "And when they were come to the place which is called Calvary, there they crucified him . . Then said Jesus, Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." THIS intercessory prayer for his betrayers and murderers, Jesus uttered on the cross when he was crucified. It is found only in Luke, and there are some who claim the passage is not genuine because it is not found in some manuscripts. But that this prayer of Jesus is genuine, and does belong in the Gospel record, there should be no doubt, for several reasons— 1. Was it not written of him in Isa. 53:12 that he would do just that: intercede for his transgressors?—"He bare the sin of many, and made intercession for the transgressors." 2. Jesus taught his disciples to "Pray for them which despitefully use you, and persecute you." Surely he would be a faithful example of his own teachings. 3. And such forgiveness would be in harmony with what he said in Mt. 12:31-32—"All manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men; but the blasphemy against the Holy Spirit shall not be forgiven unto men. Whosoever speaketh a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him." 4. Did Jesus do less than the first of his martyrs, Stephen?—who, when he was unjustly stoned to death, prayed for his executioners: "Lord, lay not this sin to their charge." 5. Finally and certainly: Jesus' intercessory prayer for his betrayers and murderers would be the forgiving spirit of God's Anointed One, the Savior, whose very purpose in dying on the cross was to bring men forgiveness and life. Surely, then, we cannot doubt that Jesus prayed as Luke records. Why then the omission of this prayer from some manuscripts? We do not know. Many omissions occur in various manuscripts, both by error and by design. It has been suggested that this omission is the work of antiSemitism—that it may be due to the difficulty which many ''Christians" had in believing that Jesus could have prayed for the Jews. We know anti-Semitism has been a characteristic of apostate "Christendom." Further, it is a basic fact of the flesh that it is not natural or easy or to be expected that men should pray for their enemies and persecutors, let alone for their murderers. Most professed "Christians" reject both Christ's teachings and example on this point, and would clearly be happy to see this prayer omitted from Scripture. 1973 Berean 304 But thus DID Jesus pray for his murderers, even though he knew the suffering and the agony that they, in their ignorance, were bringing upon him—a suffering on the cross that was to last 6 hours before he was released from it by death. For we are told that Jesus hung on the tree from the third to the ninth hour—from 9 am to 3 pm: and 3 of those 6 hours were hours of darkness— "And it was the third hour, and they crucified him" (Mk. 15:25). "And when the sixth hour was come, there was darkness over the whole land till the ninth hour" (noon to 3 pm)—v. 33. Jesus knew the will of his Father that he drink of this cup, and with the full possession of his senses at every moment, and alert and aware of everything that was transpiring, he endured unto the end. In fact, he was the ONLY ONE who did know the significance of all that was happening (though the crucified thief showed great faith and comprehension). Jesus' flesh was crucified and his life blood poured out—an offering for sin. He would consciously drink of this cup to the dregs. So when he was offered "vinegar to drink, mingled with gall," this was NOT the cup he would drink (though he would be given vinegar at his very end). He declined to accept the sense-deadening drink which would have de-intensified the cup of the physical sufferings which he endured while he waited in agony to say, "I thirst," that he might further say, "It is finished," so that in the faithful ending of the drama of his life, he could finally say— "Father, into Thy hand I commend my spirit." No, he would not drink of THAT cup which would relieve his suffering on the cross. In Nazareth Revisited, bro. Roberts comments on this event in the crucifixion of Christ— "There was, first of all, a mitigating touch of humanity. They offered their noble victim a mixture to drink, which it is said would have had the effect of dulling sensibility to pain. "Was this the result of softened feelings, inspired by the spectacle of his broken-heartedness? (for it is written in the Psalms, 'Reproach hath broken my heart'—we may know that such would be his aspect). "Whatever feeling prompted their kindness, it was in vain. Jesus refused to drink. He would not assuage, by a mechanical stupefaction, the sufferings which the Father had called upon him to go through by the power of faith." 1973 Berean 305 Jesus would bear the mental and physical pain with no relief. He would consciously endure the agonizing 6 hours until it was indeed "finished." But this did not mean that his intense and prolonged suffering would cause him to lose his senses or become unconscious before he expired on the cross. He would suffer the agony AND retain his reason and his senses right up to the end. It must be said that the only begotten Son of God would remain steadfast in a fully conscious faith that works by love; possessed with his full, active mental capacity to his last breath on the cross, when he exclaimed— "Father, into Thy hands I commend my spirit." The seven utterances of Jesus on the cross all testify to his full awareness of His Father's will and purpose that he die a sacrificial death by being uplifted on the cross: which is to say, that Jesus would remain conscious and faithful while enduring suffering and pain until death ended it all, for had he been stupefied by the drink of gall, and then fallen into unconsciousness, his sufferings would have been limited. The 7 things he said on the cross are— 1. "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do" (Lk. 23:34). 2. "Verily I say to thee today, Thou shalt be with me in paradise" (Lk. 23:43). 3. "Woman, behold thy son! .. Behold thy mother!" (Jn. 19:26-27). 4. "My God, my God, why hast Thou forsaken me?(Mt 27:46). 5. "I thirst" (Jn. 19:28). 6. "It is finished" (Jn. 19:30). 7. "Father, into Thy hands I commend my spirit" (Lk. 23:46) Of these 7 sayings, 3 are prayers and 4 are statements. This division of 7 into 3 and 4 is characteristic of God's Word. Where 7 of anything appears, the 3 & 4 division is often quite evident. The 3 prayers are the first, middle and last of the 7. The first prayer (and first saying) was— "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." This is quite contrary to the natural feelings and reactions of human nature—sinful flesh—which was crucified on the cross, and which is the natural flesh of all men by birth and by descent from Adam and Eve. Who would utter such a prayer for his murderers, unless it be the Savior and those who would follow in his steps! We are told concerning those who were condemned to death by crucifixion, that when the sentence was carried out— "It was usual for the victims of that dreaded doom, frenzied with pain, to shriek, entreat, curse, and spit upon spectators." Surely this would be the usual reaction of those suffering such a death, especially if they were, or considered themselves, innocent or treated unjustly. The Romans and other heathen worshiped "revenge" as a god, and also worshiped gods of war—so belligerency and revenge were part of their vindictive spirit, according to the natural thoughts and works of the flesh. 73 Berean 306 In the face of death, even for the guilty, whether by crucifixion or stoning or any other condemnation to death, it was not the usual reaction for the victim to be silent and resigned. Yet in Jesus it was more than mere resignation. It was the positive frame of his mind, and the outpouring of his heartfelt feelings, when he prayed— "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." Of course they knew what they were doing—in one sense. That is, certainly all who were there—Jews and Romans and rulers—knew that Jesus of Nazareth was being crucified. But none of them knew Jesus AS THE MESSIAH, the Anointed One of the Only True God, who was to suffer death first, before he would reign in glory on the earth, and—besides—with a long interval of time between his suffering death and the glory of his reign. The words of Jesus, "for they know not what they do," mean simply, "ignorance." Since the Jews read the Old Testament Scriptures, which prophesied that their Messiah was to be rejected by the nation and to die a sacrificial death, and which foreshowed that he would be lifted up on the stake, and that after 3 days he would rise again to die no more, not seeing corruption—it might be supposed that the Jews as a whole, or at least some of them, were not "ignorant" of what they were doing. But they WERE in ignorance, as Jesus expressed it in his opening prayer on the cross, and as Peter and Paul also testify. And even his own chosen apostles were "ignorant" of what was going on. So, even though the Jews read Ihe Old Testament Scriptures, and many of them were well-versed in it, being their profession and their lifestudy, nevertheless they were in ignorance-—wanting perception. They were unable to see, and thereby learn of the sacrificial work of the Messiah foretold in their Scriptures. Paul, preaching in the synagogue at Antioch in Pisidia, said— "For they that dwell at Jerusalem, and their rulers, because they KNEW HIM NOT, nor the voices of the prophets which are read every Sabbath day, they have fulfilled them in condemning him" (Acts 13:27). Paul is saying, "The people living in Jerusalem, the very city where Jesus was crucified, along with their rulers—chief priests, scribes, elders—did not realize that Jesus was indeed the Messiah, nor did they realize the prophets taught that Messiah would suffer a sacrificial death, a message read every Sabbath, and they have fulfilled the very prophecies that say they would reject and condemn Jesus." And Peter similarly informed the Jews on the day of Pentecost of the ignorance in which they committed their crime against Jesus— "Ye denied the Holy One and the Just, and desired a murderer to be granted unto you; and killed the Prince of Life, whom God hath raised from the dead: whereof we are witnesses . . "And now, brethren, I know that THROUGH IGNORANCE ye did it, as did also your rulers" (Acts 3:14-17). It was against the flesh, even contrary to the natural mind and heart and the lusts of the flesh and pride and national self-esteem, for ANYONE to perceive and receive in faith the truth of the rejection and suffering and death for sin that was to precede the glory (with the one exception, of course, of the One who was to bear the Suffering). 1973 Berean 307 And we also, like the Jews, or like the apostles and other disciples of Christ, would not have been able to perceive the sacrificial work of God's Anointed by reading and studying the Old Testament, of which salvation even the prophets have enquired diligently, which things the angels desire to look into (1 Pet. 1:10-12). Its meaning would have been withheld from us, as it was from all of Jesus's followers. They were at that time "not able to bear it"; so in the wisdom of a gracious God it was withheld from their understanding, that they should see it not. And again we find the same "ignorance" spoken of when Paul wrote his first letter to Corinth, saying of Christ's sacrificial death— "Which none of the princes (Jewish and Roman rulers) of this world knew: for had they known it, they would not have crucified the Lord of Glory" (1 Cor. 2:8). Because of their ignorance, then, Jesus prayed— "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." —a prayer for all: Jews, Romans, other Gentiles, peoples and their rulers—remission of sins and salvation would be extended in invitation to all. But it was not, however, a pardon for sin which would have entitled the forgiven to eternal life, that Jesus prayed for—a forgiveness they were neither aware that they were in need of, nor that they were getting. His betrayers and murderers must repent and be baptized to find forgiveness unto life eternal, and then walk the rest of their life in obedience and fathfulness, as we will quote below. (But the betrayer Judas, being the "son of perdition," would not seek forgiveness, but went and hanged himself). So Jesus is not saying of those who crucified him, "You are forgiven and will be given life eternal by my sacrifice." The Greek word (aphieemi) here translated "forgive" is also rendered "suffer, let go, leave alone, let pass, permit," as in Mt. 3:15 ("suffer it to be so"); Mt. 15:14 ("Let them alone"); Mk. 11:6 ("Let them go"), etc. That is— "Father, suffer them now. let them alone, for they know not what they do." —for surely God could have struck them all dead there on the spot; or Jesus could call down upon them "12 legions" of avenging angels; or their sin could have been deemed an unforgivable sin. But Jesus is also praying for his Father's forbearance upon his betrayers and murderers; because God's forbearance to overlook their sin and suffer them now—at the time of His Only Begotten Son's cruel death at their hands—was needed to give those who condemned him both the time and the opportunity to repent and obey whatever God required of them. 1973 Berean 308 On the day of Pentecost (50 days later), Peter explained to the people of Jerusalem (and there must have been many of them who were at the crucifixion) that Jesus, whom they had taken and delivered up to be crucified in the place of a murderer, had been raised from the dead, and is Lord and Christ! He said (Acts 2:36)— "Therefore let all the house of Israel know assuredly, that God hath made that same Jesus whom ye have crucified, both LORD AND CHRIST!" The effect of Peter's revelation to them, and his answer to their critical problem, was (vs 37-38)— ' Now when they heard this, they were pricked in their heart, and said unto Peter and the rest of the apostles, "Men and brethren, what shall we do? "Then Peter said unto them: Repent, and be baptized every one of you, in the Name of Jesus Christ for the remission of sins." Yes, Jesus truly prayed— "Father, forgive them, for they know not what they do." —but "they" still would have to obey from the heart the divine command to repent, and to be baptized into the Saving Name of the One they had betrayed, condemned and put to death—and thereafter to walk in newness of life. They were guilty of putting the Son of God to death, and only their ignorance (necessitated by the need for Jesus to die on the cross for them) permitted the forbearance of God to be exercised that they might be freely given opportunity to not only make amends for their terrible mistake, but to receive life eternal by God's Plan of Salvation for sinful men—the Plan of the Ages being fulfilled in Christ. But the time would come—because of the Gospel being preached to all the world—when they could no longer be considered "ignorant," for God was revealing what was formerly kept secret. So all who would hear the Gospel of the Kingdom in the Name of Jesus would not be considered "ignorant." And all who heard could not plead ignorance of the suffering and the glory— "And the times of this ignorance God winked at (overlooked, closed His eyes to), but now commandeth ALL MEN EVERYWHERE—Jews, Romans, other Gentiles—TO REPENT" (Acts 17:30). Within 40 years the divine'Overlooking" and forbearance ended, and terrible judgments began to be poured out upon Israel, which are still continuing through our own days, nearly 2000 years later. Said they, in defiant blasphemy— "His blood be on us, and on our children!" (Mt. 27:25). And Jesus said, as they wept at his crucifixion (Lk. 23:28-31 )— "Daughters of Jerusalem, weep not for me, but weep for yourselves, and for your children: for, behold, the days are coming . ." -and what dreadful days he foretold!—and so indeed it has been! The times of "winking at ignorance" and "suffering them" (while the Gospel was graciously preached to them in the Name of him whom they had slain) came to an end with the destruction of Jerusalem and the Temple (AD 68-70), and the scattering of the people ever since. 1973 B e r e a n 309 But it was the will of Jesus that God "forgive" and "suffer" them, because they did not know what they were doing. Certainly Jesus, as Savior of the world, and being of one mind with His merciful Father, was to be of a long-suffering and forgiving frame of mind. We can be sure of this forgiving spirit in Jesus, as we can of many things written in Scriptures on which we have guidelines, without going into detail. In this case, introducing Jesus' prayer for them, we have the words (Lk. 23:34)— "Then Jesus SAID, Father, forgive them . . " The more literal meaning is, "Jesus KEPT SAYING," because the verb is imperfect, indicating continuous action. Other translations bear this out, as Rotherham, "Then Jesus kept saying"; and Robertson, "Then Jesus was saying." How true, then, that Jesus' prayer was not a momentary, passing, self-forced petition of reluctant duty, but rather it was the continual, consistent spiritual mind: the mind of Christ— "Jesus kept saying. Father, forgive them . ." He kept saying this, even as they mocked and abused him, and cruelly put him to an agonizing death—an outflowing manifestation of the forgiving spirit with which his whole mind and being was saturated, bringing salvation within the reach of all men by his obedient, loving submission to death, and his glorious resurrection to life for evermore! —Ν. Μ. The Smitten Rock "ALL our fathers were under the cloud, and ALL passed through the sea . . . and were ALL baptised . . . and did ALL tat . . . and did ALL drink"—) Corinthians 10:1-4. In these 5 things, the Israelites all partook of God's intimate favor and fellowship, but still He finally rejected them and scattered their carcases in the wilderness. The Israelites had every reason to believe that they were a specially selected and favored group, but they had the bitter lesson to learn that as regards eternal salvation, God has no favorites. He is no respecter of persons. His ways are rigidly just and equal. As a man sows, so shall he reap. "All our fathers were under the cloud''—That is, the miraculous and specially provided cloud of God's protection and guidance was spread over them all. Surely they could feel, u We are the chosen people." "And all passed through the sea." Here again a great miracle was openly performed on their behalf. Every one of them had the impressive personal experience of passing through that divinely provided channel of deliverance from bondage to freedom. This passage through the sea, with the water standing on both sides and the shielding cloud enveloping them above, Paul likens to baptism. And in this act Egypt—the world of sin—was left behind, and their former masters, the Egyptians—the old man of the flesh—were drowned in the cleasing baptismal waters. 310 1 9 7 3 Berean Let us bear in mind what Paul is driving at. He is saying that though all the Israelites partook of these things, yet the great majority were finally rejected and destroyed in the wilderness simply because—with special divine blessing and manifestations showered on them from every angle—they would not make the effort to rise above their natural, animal desires and way of life. "And did all eat the same spiritual meat." Paul is drawing the parallel between THEIR spiritual food and drink, and the bread and wine of the Lord's supper. The manna, we are told (Numbers 11:8) was GROUND or BEATEN to make bread, just as the Passover lamb was SLAIN to provide the protecting blood, and the rock had to be SMITTEN to provide the life-giving water. In all these things we are reminded that in the great battle against the evil consequences of sin, our Leader had to give up his life under the most cruel and agonizing conditions. This is to teach and impress us that the struggle for holiness and life is not a pleasant, easy pastime but a vitally serious thing which only a few have the wisdom to apply themselves to and follow through to the end. "And did all drink the same spiritual drink." The manna and the water from the rock are called "spiritual" because they were specially provided by the Spirit of God and not by natural, human effort; and also because they typified the true spiritual meat and drink of the Word, and of the Word-made-flesh, by regular partaking of which we may (and must) be spiritually transformed, and finally reborn of Spirit-power. SMITTEN BY THE ROD OF MOSES Paul tells us here that the rock struck by Moses to provide water represented Christ. He was smitten by the rod, or Law, of Moses, in order to provide a way of life. He came under the curse of the Law and broke it open to free those held in bondage by the Law. And it was the Levites, the tribe of Moses, the custodians of the Law, who smote him. They were the divinely-appointed "rod of Moses," for they were the administrators of Moses;' Law, confirmed in this office by the ROD of the tribe of Levi being caused to blossom (Num. 17:8). The incident of smiting the rock occurred at Rephidim, which was the last stop before reaching Mt. Sinai. Maps usually place it in the immediate Mt. Sinai region. The point is this. Paul says here that this rock "followed them." What did he mean? The most treasonable meaning seems to be that the stream caused by the* smiting of the rock followed them from Rephidim to Sinai, where they stayed a whole year. The smiting of the rock was a very significant and important event. It is reasonable that it is associated with their whole stay at Sinai, which was the most important year in their entire history. 1973 B e r e a n 311 THE BROOK FROM THE MOUNT If this be the case, it gives added harmony and meaning to Moses' action of grinding up the golden calf and casting the dust of it into the "brook that descended out of the mount" and making the people drink it (Ex. 32:20; Dt. 9:21). The water of life from the Rock, defiled by the sin of the people, would have the same significance as the brazen serpent—sin's flesh—lifted up to typify the nailing of the body of sin to the cross. In the one case the people had to drink, in the other to look with faith. In John 7:38, Jesus said— "He that believeth in me, as the Scripture hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water." John immediately explains that Jesus referred to the pouring out of the Holy Spirit, which was dependent upon Jesus' crucifixion and ascension. He says the Spirit was not given because Christ was not yet glorified. And Jesus himself said (John 16:7)— "If I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you." The Spirit-streams could not be poured forth until the Rock was smitten, just as the seals of the apocalyptic scroll could not be loosed until the Lamb was found worthy to loose them. The sacrificial death of Jesus—his glorious victory over, and destruction of, the sin-flesh-devil—was the great key that unlocked the treasures of spiritual blessing bound up in the Rock. "He led captivity captive, and gave gifts unto men" (Eph. 4:8). There is another interesting aspect to the water-supplying rock. We are familiar with Jesus' identification as the foundation-rock of the spiritual Temple—the rejected and smitten stone that was made head of the corner. Now the smitten rock, we are told was "in Horeb" (Ex. 17:6). The first time Horeb is mentioned it is called the "Mountain of God" (Ex. 3:1). Horeb is another name for Sinai. LIVING WATERS FROM THE HOUSE OF GOD So we can trace a parallel here between the old and new covenants—Sinai and Jerusalem. The rock was smitten in Mt. Horeb or Sinai, and the water of life came forth and sustained the people while the Law was being given to them and the FIRST Tabernacle was being built. This was the typical Mosaic shadow enacted at Sinai—the founding and organization of the NATURAL Israelitish Kingdom of God. Similarly, the TRUE, anti-typical Rock was smitten at Mt. Moriah at Jerusalem. From this mountain—"beginning at Jerusalem" (Luke 24:47)—the Spirit poured forth carrying the Gospel to the ends of the world. Furthermore, we are told that when the new Kingdom is set up, living waters—both literal and spiritual— will issue forth from here. At this mountain in the future, as at Sinai in the past, the Tabernacle of God—both literal and spiritual— will be built. Joel (3:18)? Zechariah (14:8), and Ezekiel (47:1) all speak of the LITERAL streams that will come from the foundations of the Temple, and the river of water of life of the last chapter1 of Revelation gives the SPIRITUAL counterpart. And finally, through the Prophet like unto Moses, the new Law will go forth from this mountain to all the earth. —G. V. G. 1 1973 Berean 312 RESURRECTION OF REJECTORS The Gospel condemns its rejectors to a resurrection to punishment. The alternatives of the Bible are: (1) Possession of the kingdom with all its appurtenances by a resurrection to eternal life; (2) Resurrection to punishment, consequent on rejection of the Gospel and unworthiness of the kingdom; or (3) A return to original dust and sojourn therein forever, consequent on unavoidable ignorance of the whole matter—J. T., Herald, 1852. Current Events Fulfilling Prophecy "Out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries, fornications, thefts, blasphemies"—Matt. 15:19 RUSSIAN MOTIVES: US STUPIDITY. An appropriate time to take hard look at US-Russian relations. Where are they heading? Nixon-Brezhnev summit euphoria could be costly to US. True, Russia at moment looking to US for way out of its troubles. Kremlin needs & wants US knowhow to solve industrial backwardness & technological lag. Need assurance of US grain to cover failure of their abysmally inefficient agricultural system. Want US support in neutralizing China & stabilizing E. Europe. All this puts Russia on good behavior—for now. But that does not mean Russia has abandoned its longterm objective. Brezhnev's present strategy is a 2-edged sword: on one side, Russia sees aura of good will as best opportunity of solving Russia's domestic problems. On other side, atmosphere of warmth promises opportunity of tilting political balance among US allies to Russia. Subtle persuasion will be used to persuade US & Europe to lose any sense of urgency about their own & their mutual defence. As result of detente, domestic pressures already mount in West to shift resources to other fields—welfare, housing,employment, etc. Russia, with its totalitarian govt., does not face same problem. No citizen or group of citizens is going to tell Kremlin what to do about defense or anything else. But in democratic US, when US & Russia talk amicably, people decide they can forget about defense & danger of war. Past has demonstrated that there can be changes in Moscow's tactics & theatrics, but goal of pre-eminent world power never changes. Warming trend poses many risks for US. (USN 6:18). NOTE: This should be so elementarily obvious. This is what Russia and China are assuring their own people—that they are just using US to their advantage. But if it is God's will that US build up the power of Russia in a blind euphoria of detente and commercial greed, then that is the way it will be. _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ _ WHY JOHNNY CAN'T ADD. For over 10 yrs., US children have been subjected to waves of curriculum "reform"—new physics, new chemistry, new geography, even new English & new history. But of all these programs, none so widely praised & widely accepted as "new math". By now, new math is taught in 85 pet. of US schools. Results are—to put it mildly—disappointing. In Calif., new math adopted statewide in '69. Within 2 yrs., average scores of 6th graders on standard math tests dropped 20 pet. Most kids had reasonably good skills when they entered the program, & got worse as they progressed. From outset, creators of new math openly disdained such mundane skills as addition & subtraction. After years of complaints, backlash has begun. In San Francisco, 87 pet. of elementary-school teachers report they've abandoned new math textbooks. Some educators still believe children ought to know how to add, subtract, multiply & divide. (Nwk 6:25). NOTE: The Athenians, who considered themselves the "intellectuals" of the ancient world, were always seeking "some new thing" (Acts 17:21). It is the same today: there must always be a running after a new fad: "All past generations knew nothing; we know everything." Surely this mania for fad and change in the US school system must be providential, as a punishment for folly and to weaken the nation before the advance of Russia—for to a generation who cannot read they are now adding a generation who cannot add. Meanwhile, single-minded Russia presses ahead its educational program wholely geared to advancing the scientific and military power of the Russian State. 1973 Berean 313 SHIPBUILDING BOOM, US shipyards deluged with orders as never before in peacetime. Several reasons: costs abroad rising; advanced US technology; demands for new-type ships; federal subsidies. On June 30, largest ship ever built in US was launched—1094-ft., 225,000-ton tanker Brooklyn: can carry IV2 million barrels of oil. In '63, 600,000 tons of ships under construction, value $370 million; in 73, 3 million tons, value $3 billion. Day of nuclear ship coming: may sign first atomic-power tanker contract this year. (USN 7:23) NOTE: The latter-day Tarshish must be a dominant sea-power and merchant-power. At the same time, it must be so weakened at the end (in relation to Russia and her allies) that it is obvious to Israel and all the world that Israel's deliverance from Gog is of God and not of man. So there is an apparent (though not real) conflict between the prophecies. Present trends dovetail both elements beautifully. RUSSIA'S ARMED MIGHT. Rising concern that easing of US-Soviet tensions may bring greater dangers for West. Fears that unbalanced withdrawal of US troops could lead to premature liquidation of NATO forces. Signs of growing apathy in Europe that could destroy alliances that have preserved non-Communist world against Communist advance since WW II. Goodpaster, Supreme NATO Commander, says Russia now has "strongest military power world has ever seen." (USN 7:23) NOTE: Is it not a wonderful Sign?—weakness and apathy in Europe; Russia the "greatest military power the world has ever seen/' US is weakened and isolated; Britain amounts to nothing; Russia grows and grows. PETER & THE PAPACY. "You are Peter, & on this rock I will build my church" (Mt 16:18). Does that long-contested verse mean that Roman Catholics traditionally take it to mean? Was Peter first Pope? An officially-sanctioned joint committee of 11 Catholic, Lutheran & other Protestant scholars agree that it makes Peter one of most prominent apostles, but it does not make him Pope. (Tm 8:6) NOTE: Theologians, within and without the Catholic Church, are trying to cut the Pope down to size. It is one of today's very interesting interplays of power and struggle. Some way must be found to make Catholicism.palatable to the returning Protestant Harlot Daughters of Mother Rome. But the Pope still has his part to play in the cementing of Europe and Russia, and the world will be deluded by the wonder-working of the Image of the Beast. NUCLEAR WEAPONS. Nations of world still sprinting ahead in atom race. France to detonate its 44th explosion near Tahiti this week, just days after an underground Russian blast & a Chinese atmospheric explosion. Of the 5 nuclear powers, only Britain is not racing to update its weapons. At great expense of time & effort, Russia has achieved quantitative equality with US, but continuing global rivalry leads both US & Russia to emphasize staggeringly expensive qualitative improvements, & development of new technology. Looking beyond the MIRV competition, US & Russian planners already envision whole new generation of weapons that include such devices as counter-satellite satellites. Nearly dozen nations possess capacity of going nuclear soon. Closest to threshold is Israel. In 15 years we shall see dozens of countries capable of utilizing nuclear energy. It would be putting considerable faith in human nature to expect this achievement won't be misdirected. (Nwk 7:23) NOTE: The last sentence sums up the hopelessness of the outlook, naturally speaking. Man has always used—and will always use—any weapon he has, to gain power. The only restraint is fear of retaliation. US used the atom bomb because Japan had none to strike back with. When the set time comes, Russia will strike with lightning speed, coming "as a cloud to cover the land." 1973 Berean 314 DROUGHT & STARVATION. With West & Central Africa in worst drought in memory, 20 million people in a 2000-mile belt of arid land are fighting to stay alive. Gravest danger now is disease. Very young & very old are dying from diseases they'd normally be able to resist, because they're so weakened & dehydrated. The tragedy can't be undone. Drought has permanently scarred land & allowed Sahara to creep further south. The economies have suffered blows from which they'll take years to recover. Huge numbers of cattle have died, so large numbers of nomads must alter their ways & crowd into towns looking for work. Future looks bleak in subSahara : land & people have lost too much to recover. (Nwk 7:23) NOTE: With all man's vaunted scientific "progress," the great majority of the world's inhabitants live in grinding misery, on the borderline of starvation. Used unselfishly and for the common good, the world is a treasure-house that could be made a paradise. But this would not solve the basic problems. Look at the richest nations: their people are no happier or nobler, as they pursue their selfish and insatiable lusts for luxury and pleasure. The most wealthy nations are the most violent. THE GREAT RUSSIAN GRAIN DEAL. Grain companies & ship operators collected needless federal subsidies. Shippers are just recovering from a nationwide transportation tie-up that resulted from the scrambling for freight cars to transport the grain. The deal contributed to a grain shortage in US, driving up prices of bread, meat, poultry & dairy products. Russia dickered separately with US grain companies, & Agriculture Dept. did almost nothing to monitor the purchases. Thus Russia was able to keep US businessmen & farmers in dark about how much grain they were buying at bargain prices kept low by Govt. export subsidies. (Tm 8:6) NOTE: The advantages of efficient,singleminded dictatorship over a "democracy" divided by a multitude of petty greeds and conflicts. Russia bought the grain at artificially low and US-taxpayer-subsidized prices, and could (and apparently did) resell it at huge profits. The whole transaction forced up US domestic prices, to the benefit of the rich at the expense of the SOME IN CHURCHES STILL BELIEVE BIBLE IS GOD'S WORD! In a bitter convention in New Orleans, representatives of Lutheran Missouri Synod, US's 2nd largest Lutheran body, gave its president constitutional power to dismiss any pastor, theologian, or any teacher in US's largest Protestant parochial-school system, who questions belief that every statement of fact in Bible is literally true. Thus it is absolute dogma that all miracles in Bible occurred precisely as reported, & Adam & Eve were real people created by God, (which means evolution theory is fantasy.) Victory for Bible fundamentalism was complete: churchmen loyal to it took control over every facet of church. Founded 125 years ago by descendants of pious German immigrants, the Missouri Synod—unlike most other Lutherans—adopted the central premise that Bible is inerrant in whatever it says. (Nwk 7:23) NOTE: In the general destruction of the evil and godless population of the world that is to come at Christ's return (like Israel's destruction of the filthy abominations of Canaan), there must be a small remnant worth preserving for the Kingdom of God. It is interesting to see, therefore, that some fairly large sections of the religious population still cling to the basic foundation— the wholly inspired Word of God. With this, there is hope: without it, men are hopeless. It is the general destruction of this foundation in the churches of the world that has opened the flood gates of violence, corruption and immorality. Note that the writer clearly recognizes what some who call themselves brethren fail to recognize: that if Adam and Eve were realities, then "Evolution" is fantasy. It would be much healthier for the Body if this were more clearly perceived. 1973 Berean 315 WEST EUROPE DRIFTS TO NEUTRALISM. 2 wks. ago NATO released a study of Soviet military strength in E. Europe: details were startling. In 5 yrs., they've added 6000 more tanks, increasing their advantage to 4 to 1. Number of Russian aircraft poised against W. Europe is up 50 pet. When NATO foreign ministers gathered last week, they faced 2-fold threat: Russian buildup that cannot be ignored, & W. Europe public that couldn't care less. Attitude is:"Don't bother us with news that disturbs our vision of a new era in which defense is obsolete." W. Europe sliding toward neutralism. Key officials in 6 capitals say they're powerless to reverse drift. Inclination to let down guard has been encouraged by mistaken notionspread by Soviet diplomats on cocktail circuit—that detente-minded doves in Kremlin have won showdown against expansion-minded hawks. Moscow has already achieved 2 of its 4 main objectives: conventional military superiority in Europe over US & allies, & recognition of Moscow's hold on E. Europe. Third on list is withdrawal of US forces from Europe & collapse of NATO. Fourth goal—to put productive capacity of West to work for Russia—is also very much on track. Biggest obstacle to real W. Europe union is France, whose concept of a united Europe is Paris thumbing its nose at US. US disengagement from Europe would be open invitation to Russia to become military supervisory power on Continent—an intolerable shift in world balance of power. (Nwk 6:25) NOTE: Three key points to note: (I) great Russian military power, constantly increasing; (2) Europe's people don't care; and (3) France is the major obstacle to a strong, US-oriented European union. How wonderfully the prophetic picture shapes up! "A PROVERB & A BYWORD." For 35 yrs., Britain's Jewry has tried to persuade lexicographers to change certain definitions in dictionaries. It has had scant luck with Oxford Dictionary, most complete & authoritative record in existence of what English is & has been. Now Marcus Shloimovitz will take argument to Britain's Supreme Court, asking that this definition of a Jew be deleted:"A name of opprobrium or reprobation: a grasping or extortionate money-lender or usurer; a trader who deals craftily." Oxford's chief editor says: "We are concerned with the. accurate recording of language, not what people think it should be." (Tm 6:25) NOTE: A vivid exemplification of that age-old prophecy by Moses to Israel because of their foreseen disobedience: "Thou shalt become a proverb and a by word among all nations whither the Lord shall lead thee" (Dt. 28:37). Rightly or wrongly, the term "Jew" has been for ages an expression of contempt, engrafted into many languages of the Gentiles, especially among those nations which blasphemously describe themselves as "Christian" nations. COMPUTER CRIME. Computer has become major crime problem for business & govt. Believed to be fastest-growing type of white-collar crime. Difficult to detect, more profitable, less dangerous, & easier to commit than most kinds of criminal activity. Computor criminals have stolen trade secrets, valuable equipment & millions of $s from banks, industry & govt. Virtually no limit in amount of money that can be taken once an opening is built into system. As computor use spreads, danger of crime grows apace. A dishonest employee with access to a computor can pull off a sizable theft in few seconds. (USN 6:18) NOTE: Computers—now an integral aspect of OS's increasingly complicated and artificial lifestyle—obviously open up a wide range of possibility of crime and embezzlement very hard to detect and control. The more complicated man makes life (in his greed and self-indulgence), the more scope is given to the forces of evil. 1973 Berean 316 THE PENTECOSTAL TIDE. Fastest growing force in Catholic Church is Pentecostals. Originating early in '67, the movement only attracted 90 persons to its first meeting that year. Number multiplied rapidly each year. This year's meeting of 25,000 represented only a fraction of over 200,000 Pentecostal Catholics in US. Movement has taken root in foreign countries, & is growing even faster. Catholic Pentecostals form third major group of Pentecostals. The original Pentecostals grew up around 1900: now 2V2 million in US alone. A new Pentecostal movement developed in past 20 years within mainstream Protestant churches, & is still spreading. All 3 groups believe necessity of personal "Baptism of Holy Spirit" to lead fully Christian life. The initiate undergoes this "Spirit Baptism" by visiting a Pentecostal meeting at which others join in laying on of hands. Then the initiate acquires one of "gifts" Paul describes in 1 Corinthians, as prophesying, healing, speaking with tongues. (Tm 6:18) NEW PENTECOSTAL PHENOMENON has spread with surprising speed thru all of world's major churches during past 5 years. In both style & fervor, they're not much different from traditional Pentecostals, but they come from a more restrained tradition: Catholics & mainline Protestants. To some, the sudden surge of Pentecostalism among Catholics is due to same forces at work in encounter groups: people who have grown up afraid of their own emotions & whose feelings have been repressed by the structure of the Church. Now they're coming together in an atmosphere that suddenly makes it legitimate to freely express those emotions. Regardless of denominational background, all Pentecostals believe no Christian's life is complete till he has received power of Holy Ghost thru "baptism of the Spirit." Chief sign baptism has occurred is ability to speak in tongues. (Nwk 6:25) NOTE: A deeply interesting phenomenon. The age-old interplay between cold, mechanical, fossilized institutionalized "religion," and man's deep, blind, hidden striving for that which is real and living and spiritual. But so few seek and find the Divine Light—most of the great tide of self-searching is blindly expended in animal emotion and self-invented disciplines. Man wants "religion" and "experiences," but he does not want plain, simple submissive OBEDIENCE to God's commands. That cuts the flesh too deeply. FOOD SCARE IN LAND OF PLENTY. For first time in memory: food shortage in country that has long fed much of world. Shortages may become so serious as to require rationing. How did US, long a land of plenty, get into this predicament? A combination of factors, including freak weather & huge grain exports to Russia. As supplies dwindle, prices soar & seem certain to go even higher. World food reserves are dangerously low: level of reserves far below any time in modern history. For first time, world is with out either of 2 important safety valves: stocks of surplus grain, & large reserve of US cropland that could quickly be brought into production. A few years ago there was great optimism that the world's supply of food was increasing. Till past year, Russians tried to make up for food shortages by belttightening. This time they decided on importing, & they've had enormous impact on world supplies & prices. In year ended June 30, they imported far more food than any country in history—28 million tons, nearly 2 / 3 from US. If US should ever have 2 or 3 poor crop years together, world would be in very precarious situation. (USN 7:16) NOTE: The picture is closing in. The slow food production rise, and the accelerating world population rise, have been for many years racing toward a climax of worldwide famine. This is not mere theory. Much of the world even at present is pitifully underfed. 1973 Berean 317 SLAUGHTER IN AFRICA. In terms of sheer brutality, few events in recent history can equal m a s s a c r e that took place last yr. in central African republic of Burundi. At that time, m e m b e r s of Bahutu tribe, which m a k e s u{) 85 pet. of the population, rose up against towering Watutsi overlords who have dominated them for centuries. The insurrection failed, & Watutsi govt. exacted frightful vengeance, slaughtering 250,000 men, women & children. Last month, Watutsis resumed the pogrom with a ferocity that smacks of outright genocide. They've been roaming countryside, burning villages & murdering Bahutus wherever found. The savage repression is in one way even worse than last year's. Then the govt. ap